Skip to main content

Full text of "A history of land mammals in the Western Hemisphere; illustrated with 32 plates and more than 100 drawings"

See other formats


A HI ST TOR uY A. | 
in 1 the WE: PERN 
e' HEMISPHERE ® 


4 9 r 
: + * 4 f " 
oN - ’ Pf eh + % . ro) “ps 


ae ' et aa 
: > As 


CORNELL 
UNIVERSITY 
LIBRARY 


BOUGHT WITH THE INCOME 
OF THE SAGE ENDOWMENT 
FUND GIVEN IN 1891 BY 
HENRY WILLIAMS SAGE 


Cornell University Lib: 
QE 881.843 won 


ei 
3 1924 004 446 211 essr 


Cornell University 


The original of this book is in 
the Cornell University Library. 


There are no known copyright restrictions in 
the United States on the use of the text. 


http://www.archive.org/details/cu31924004446211 


A HISTORY OF LAND MAMMALS IN 
THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


THE MACMILLAN COMPANY 
NEW YORK » BOSTON - CHICAGO - DALLAS 
ATLANTA - SAN FRANCISCO 


MACMILLAN & CO., Limrrep 
LONDON - BOMBAY » CALCUTTA 
MELBOURNE 


THE MACMILLAN CO. OF CANADA, Lrp. 
TORONTO 


*9OBI ULBYINOS ay} JO oN} Uo sAVY AVUI sv ‘ssaTIIEY STyUBYds[a ayL *(2quinjoo| spydajq) yuRYydey— ue Jo ssvo1ed ay} UO (snIIULOL4{DI 
uopopiwg |) Ist jy, 4}00j-s1qeg| pue (Snuip| SlUDD) S®ATOAA JUTTDH| : BIUIOSTTVO ULeYYNOS UI [OOd-1v} 9UBD0}SId[q YW -— ‘TOMIdSILNOUT 


A 
HISTORY OF LAND MAMMALS 


IN THE 


WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


BY 


WILLIAM B. SCOTT 


Pu.D. (Heidelberg), Hon. D.Sc. (Harvard & Oxford), LL.D. (Univ. of Pennsylvania) 


BLAIR PROFESSOR OF GEOLOGY AND PALZONTOLOGY 
IN PRINCETON UNIVERSITY 


ILLUSTRATED WITH 32 PLATES AND MORE THAN 100 DRAWINGS 


BY BRUCE HORSFALL 
» 


Neto Bork 
THE MACMILLAN COMPANY 
1913 


All rights reserved 
EN, 


CoryRicut, 1913, 
By THE MACMILLAN COMPANY. 


Set up and electrotyped. Published November, 1913, 


Norwood Press 
J. 8. Cushing Co. — Berwick & Smith Co. 
Norwood, Mass., U.S.A. 


DE 


Dedicated 


TO 
MY CLASSMATES 
HENRY FAIRFIELD OSBORN anp FRANCIS SPEIR 


IN MEMORY OF A NOTABLE SUMMER AFTERNOON 
IN 1876 AND IN TOKEN OF FORTY 


YEARS’ UNCLOUDED FRIENDSHIP 


Speak to the earth and it shall teach thee. 
— Jos, xii, 8. 


Can these bones live ? 
— EZEKIEL, xxxvii, 3. 


PREFACE 


OnE afternoon in June, 1876, three Princeton undergraduates 
were lying under the trees on the canal bank, making a languid 
pretence of preparing for an examination. Suddenly, one of the 
trio remarked: “I have been reading an old magazine article 
which describes a fossil-collecting expedition in the West; why 
can’t we get up something of the kind?” The others replied, as 
with one voice, “ We can; let’s do it.” This seemingly idle talk 
was, for Osborn and myself, a momentous one, for it completely 
changed the careers which, as we then believed, had been mapped 
out for us. The random suggestion led directly to the first of the 
Princeton paleontological expeditions, that of 1877, which took 
us to the “ Bad Lands” of the Bridger region in southwestern 
Wyoming. The fascination of discovering and exhuming with 
our own hands the remains of the curious creatures which once 
inhabited North America, but became extinct ages ago, has proved 
an enduring delight. It was the wish to extend something of 
this fascinating interest to a wider circle, that occasioned the 
preparation of this book. 

The western portion of North America has preserved a marvel- 
lous series of records of the successive assemblages of animals 
which once dwelt in this continent, and in southernmost South 
America an almost equally complete record was made of the 
strange animals of that region. For the last half-century, or 
more, many workers haye codperated to bring this long-vanished 
world to light and to decipher and interpret the wonderful story 
of mammalian development in the western hemisphere. The task 
of making this history intelligible, not to say interesting, to the 
layman, has been one of formidable difficulty, for it is recorded 
in the successive modifications of the bones and teeth, and without 


some knowledge of osteology, these records are in an unknown 
ix 


x PREFACE 


tongue. To meet this need, Chapter III gives a sketch of the 
mammalian skeleton and dentition, which the reader may use as 
the schoolboy uses a vocabulary to translate his Latin exercise, 
referring to it from time to time, as may be necessary to make 
clear the descriptions of the various mammalian groups. Techni- 
cal terms have been avoided as far as possible, but, unfortunately, 
it is not practicable to dispense with them altogether. The 
appended glossary will, it is hoped, minimize the inconvenience. 

No one who has not examined it, can form any conception of 
the enormous mass and variety of material, illustrating the history 
of American mammals, which has already been gathered into the 
various museums. A full account of this material would require 
many volumes, and one of the chief problems in the preparation 
of this book has been that of making a proper selection of the 
most instructive and illuminating portions of the long and com- 
plicated story. Indeed, so rapid is the uninterrupted course of 
discovery, that parts of the text became antiquated while in the 
press and had to be rewritten. As first prepared, the work 
proved to be far too long and it was necessary to excise several 
chapters, for it seemed better to cover less ground than to make 
the entire history hurried and superficial. The plan of treatment 
adopted involves a considerable amount of repetition, but this is 
perhaps not a disadvantage, since the same facts are considered 
from different points of view. 

The facts which are here brought together have been ascer- 
tained by many workers, and I have borrowed with the greatest 
freedom from my fellow labourers in the field of paleontology. 
As every compiler of a manual finds, it is not feasible to attribute 
the proper credit to each discoverer. Huxley has so well explained 
the situation in the preface to his “ Anatomy of Vertebrated Ani- 
mals,” that I may be permitted to borrow his words: “I have 
intentionally refrained from burdening the text with references ; 
and, therefore, the reader, while he is justly entitled to hold me 
responsible for any errors he may detect, will do well to give me 
no credit for what may seem original, unless his knowledge is 
sufficient to render him a competent judge on that head.” 


PREFACE xi 


A book of this character is obviously not the proper place for 
polemical discussions of disputed questions. Whenever, there- 
fore, the views expressed differ widely from those maintained by 
other paleontologists, I have attempted no more than to state, as 
fairly as I could, the alternative interpretations and my own 
choice between them. Any other course was forbidden by the 
limitations of space. 

It is a pleasure to give expression to my sincere sense of grati- 
tude to the many friends who have helped me in an unusually 
laborious undertaking. Professor Osborn and Dr. Matthew have 
placed at my disposal the wonderful treasures of the American 
Museum of Natural History in New York and in the most liberal 
manner have supplied me with photographs and specimens for 
drawings, as well as with information regarding important dis- 
coveries which have not yet been published. Dr. W. J. Holland, 
Director of the Carnegie Museum in Pittsburgh, has likewise gen- 
erously provided many photographs from the noble collection under 
his charge, kindly permitting the use of material still undescribed. 
To Professor Charles Schuchert, of Yale University, I am also 
indebted for several photographs. 

The figures of existing animals are almost all from photographs 
taken in the New York and London zodlogical gardens, and I 
desire to thank Director Hornaday, of the Bronx Park, and Mr. 
Peacock, of the London garden, for the very kind manner in 
which they have procured these illustrations for my use. The 
photographs have been modified by painting out the backgrounds 
of cages, houses, and the like, so as to give a less artificial appear- 
ance to the surroundings. 

To my colleagues at Princeton I am under great obligations 
for much valuable counsel and assistance. Professor Gilbert van 
Ingen has prepared the maps and diagrams and Dr. W. J. Sinclair 
has devoted much labour and care to the illustrations and has also 
read the proofs. Both of these friends, as also Professors C. H. 
Smyth and E. G. Conklin and Drs. Farr and McComas, have read 
various parts of the manuscript and made many helpful sugges- 
tions in dealing with the problems of treatment and presentation. 


xii PREFACE 


For thirteen years past I have been engaged in the study of 
the great collections of fossil mammals, gathered in Patagonia by 
the lamented Mr. Hatcher and his colleague, Mr. Peterson, now 
of the Carnegie Museum. This work made it necessary for me 
to visit the museums of the Argentine Republic, which I did in 
1901, and was there received with the greatest courtesy and kind- 
ness by Dr. F. Moreno, Director, and Dr. Santiago Roth, of the 
La Plata Museum, and Dr. F. Ameghino, subsequently Director 
of the National Museum at Buenos Aires. To all of these gentle- 
men the chapters on the ancient life of South America are much 
indebted, especially to Dr. Ameghino, whose untimely death was 
a great loss to science. It is earnestly to be hoped that the heroic 
story of his scientific career may soon be given to the world. 

Finally, I desire to thank Mr. Horsfall for the infinite pains 
and care which he has expended upon the illustrations for the 
work, to which so very large a part of its value is due. 

While the book is primarily intended for the lay reader, I can- 
not but hope that it may also be of service to many zodlogists, 
who have been unable to keep abreast of the flood of palonto- 
logical discovery and yet wish to learn something of its more 
significant results. How far I have succeeded in a most difficult 
task must be left to the judgment of such readers. 


Princeton, N.J., 
June 1, 1918. 


CONTENTS 


CHAPTER I 


METHODS oF INVESTIGATION — GEOLOGICAL 


CHAPTER II 


MeErHops OF INVESTIGATION — PALZONTOLOGICAL 


CHAPTER III 


THE CLASSIFICATION OF THE MAMMALIA 


CHAPTER IV 


THE SKELETON AND TEETH OF MAMMALS 


CHAPTER V 


Tue GEOGRAPHICAL DEVELOPMENT OF THE AMERICAS 


TIMES 


CHAPTER VI 


Tue GEOGRAPHICAL DISTRIBUTION OF MAMMALS . 


CHAPTER VII 


In CENOZzOIC 


Tae SuccEssIVE MAMMALIAN Faunas OF NortH AND SoutH AMERICA 


CHAPTER VIII 


History OF THE PERISSODACTYLA . 


CHAPTER IX 


History OF THE ARTIODACTYLA 


CHAPTER X 


History OF THE PROBOSCIDEA ‘ : F 
xiii 


PAGE 


29 


50 


61 


99 


135 


192 


288 


358 


xiv 


History 


History 


History 


History 


History 


HIstTory 


History 


OF 


OF 


OF 


OF 


OF 


OF 


OF 


CONTENTS 


CHAPTER XI 


THE fAMBLYPODA AND {CONDYLARTHRA . . 


CHAPTER XII 


THE tToxoponTia (oR fNOTOUNGULATA) 


CHAPTER XIII 


THE {LITOPTERNA AND tASTRAPOTHERIA - 


CHAPTER XIV 


THE CARNIVORA 


CHAPTER XV 


THE PRIMATES : , F : 3 F ‘ 


CHAPTER XVI 


THE EDENTATA . ‘ ‘ * = z 


CHAPTER XVII 


THE MARSUPIALIA : - ‘ . F ‘ 


CHAPTER XVIII 


Moves oF MAMMALIAN EVOLUTION 


GLOSSARY 


INDEX 


t+ Extinct. 


PAGE 


443 


461 


489 


516 


577 


589 


624 


645 


665 
675 


A HISTORY OF LAND MAMMALS IN 
THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


A HISTORY OF LAND MAMMALS IN 
THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


CHAPTER I 
METHODS OF INVESTIGATION — GEOLOGICAL 


THE term Mammal has no exact equivalent in the true 
vernacular of any modern language, the word itself, like its 
equivalents, the French Mammifére and the German Séduge- 
thier, being entirely artificial. As a name for the class Linneus 
adopted the term Mammalia, which he formed from the Latin 
mamma (i.e. teat) to designate those animals which suckle 
their young; hence the abbreviated form Mammal, which has 
been naturalized as an English word. ‘‘ Beast,’ as employed 
in the Bible, and ‘‘Quadruped”’ are not quite the same as 
mammal, for they do not include the marine forms, such as 
whales, dolphins, seals, walruses, or the flying bats, and they 
are habitually used in contradistinction to Man, though Man 
and all the forms mentioned are unquestionably mammals. 

In attempting to frame a definition of the term Mammal, 
it is impossible to avoid technicalities altogether, for it is the 
complete unity of plan and structure which justifies the in- 
clusion of all the many forms that differ so widely in habits 
and appearance. Mammals are air-breathing vertebrates, which 
are warm-blooded and have a 4-chambered heart; the body cavity 
is divided into pleural and abdominal chambers by a diaphragm ; 
except in the lowest division of the class, the young are brought 
forth alive and are always suckled, the milk glands being universal 
throughout the class. In the great majority of mammals the body 

B 1 


2 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


is clothed with hair; a character found in no other animals. 
In a few mammals the skin is naked, and in still fewer there 
is a partial covering of scales. The list of characters common 
to all mammals, which distinguish them from other animals, 
might be indefinitely extended, for it includes all the organs 
and tissues of the body, the skeletal, muscular, digestive, ner- 
vous, circulatory, and reproductive systems, but the two or 
three more obvious or significant features above selected will 
suffice for the purposes of definition. 

While the structural plan is the same throughout the entire 
class, there is among mammals a wonderful variety of form, 
size, appearance, and adaptation to special habits. It is as 
though a musician had taken a single theme and developed it 
into endless variations, preserving an unmistakable unity 
through all the changes. Most mammals are terrestrial, living, 
that is to say, not only on the land, but on the ground, and 
are herbivorous in habit, subsisting chiefly or exclusively upon 
vegetable substances, but there are many departures from this 
mode of life. It should be explained, however, that the term 
terrestrial is frequently used in a more comprehensive sense for 
all land mammals, as distinguished from those that are aquatic 
or marine. Monkeys, Squirrels, Sloths and Opossums are 
examples of the numerous arboreal mammals, whose structure 
is modified to fit them for living and sleeping in the trees, 
and in some, such as the Sloths, the modification is carried so 
far that the creature is almost helpless on the ground. An- 
other mode of existence is the burrowing or fossorial, the animal 
living partly or mostly, or even entirely underground, a typical 
instance of which is the Mole. The Beaver, Muskrat and Otter, 
to mention only a few forms, are aquatic and spend most of 
their life in fresh waters, though perfectly able to move about 
on theland. Marine mammals, such as the Seals and Whales, 
have a greatly modified structure which adapts them to life in 
the sea. 

Within the limits of each of these categories we may note 


METHODS — GEOLOGICAL 3 


that there are many degrees of specialization or adaptation to 
particular modes of life. Thus, for example, among the marine 
mammals, the Whales and their allies, Porpoises, etc., are so 
completely adapted to a life in the seas that they cannot come 
upon the land, and even stranding is fatal to them, while the 
Seals frequently land and move about upon the shore. It 
should further be observed that mammals of the most diverse 
groups are adapted to similar modes of existence. Thus in one 
‘natural group or order of related forms, occur terrestrial, burrow- 
ing, arboreal and aquatic members, and the converse state- 
ment is of course equally true, that animals of similar life- 
habits are not necessarily related to one another, and very 
frequently, in fact, are not so related. Among the typically 
marine mammals, for example, there are at least three and 
probably four distinct series, which have independently be- 
- come adapted to life in the sea. 


Before attempting to set forth an outline of what has 
been learned regarding the history of mammalian life in the 
western hemisphere, it is essential to give the reader some con- 
ception of the manner in which that knowledge has been ob- 
tained. Without such an understanding of the methods em- 
ployed in the investigation the reader can only blindly accept 
or as blindly reject what purports to be the logical inference 
from well-established evidence. How is that evidence to be 
discovered ? and how may trustworthy conclusions be derived 
from it? 

The first and most obvious step is to gather all possible in- 
formation concerning the mammals of the present day, their 
structure (comparative anatomy), functions (physiology), and 
their geographical arrangement. This latter domain, of the 
geographical distribution of mammals, is one of peculiar signif- 
icance. Not only do the animals of North America differ radi- 
cally from those of Central and South America, but within the 
limits of each continent are more or less well-defined areas, 


4 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


the animals of which differ in a subordinate degree from those 
of other areas. The study of the modern world, however, 
would not of itself carry us very far toward the goal of our 
inquiries, which is an explanation, not merely a statement, of 
the facts. The present order of things is the outcome of an 
illimitably long sequence of events and can be understood only 
in proportion to our knowledge of the past. In other words, it 
is necessary to treat the problems involved in our inquiry 
historically; to trace the evolution of the different mammalian 
groups from their simpler beginnings to the more complex and 
highly specialized modern forms; to determine, so far as that 
may be done, the place of origin of each group and to follow 
out their migrations from continent to continent. 

While we shall deal chiefly, almost exclusively, with the 
mammals of the New World, something must be said regard- 
ing those of other continents, for, as will be shown in the sequel, 
both North and South America have, at one time or another, 
been connected with various land-masses of the eastern hemi- 
sphere. By means of those land-connections, there has been 
an interchange of mammals between the different continents, 
and each great land-area of the recent world contains-a more or 
less heterogeneous assemblage of forms of very diverse places 
of origin. Indeed, migration from one region to another has 
played a most important part in bringing about the present 
distribution of living things. From what has already been 
learned as to the past life of the various continents and their 
shifting connections with one another, it is now feasible to 
analyze the mammalian faunas of most of them and to separate 
the indigenous from the immigrant elements. Among the 
latter may be distinguished those forms which are the much 
modified descendants of ancient migrants from those which 
arrived at a much later date and have undergone but little 
change. To take a few examples from North America, it may 
be said that the Bears, Moose, Caribou and Bison are late 
migrants from the Old World; that the Virginia and Black- 


METHODS — GEOLOGICAL 5 


tailed Deer and the Prong-horned Antelope are of Old World 
origin, but their ancestors came in at a far earlier period and 
the modern species are greatly changed.from the ancestral 
migrants. The Armadillo of Texas and the Canada Porcupine 
are almost the only survivors, north of Mexico, of the great 
migration of South American mammals which once invaded 
the northern continent. On the other hand, the raccoons 
and several families of rodents are instances of indigenous types 
which may be traced through a long American ancestry. 

Fully to comprehend the march of mammalian development, 
it thus becomes necessary to reconstruct, at least in outline, 
the geography of the successive epochs through which the 
developmental changes have taken place, the connections and 
separations of land-masses, the rise of mountain ranges, river 
and lake systems and the like. Equally significant factors in 
the problem are climatic changes, which have had a profound 
and far-reaching effect upon the evolution and geographical 
spread of animals and plants, and the changes in the vegetable 
world must not be ignored, for, directly or indirectly, animals 
are dependent upon plants. To one who has paid no atten- 
tion to questions of this kind, it might well seem an utterly hope- 
less task to reconstruct the long vanished past, and he would 
naturally conclude that, at best, only fanciful speculations, 
with no foundation of real knowledge, could be within our 
reach. Happily, such is by no means the case. Geology offers 
the means of a successful attack upon these problems and, 
although very much remains to be done, much has already 
been accomplished in elucidating the history, especially in its 
later periods, with which the story of the mammals is more 
particularly concerned. 

It is manifestly impossible to present here a treatise upon the 
science of Geology, even in outline sketch. Considerations of 
space are sufficient to forbid any such attempt. Certain things 
must be taken for granted, the evidence for which may be 
found in any modern text-book of Geology. For example, 


6 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


it is entirely feasible to establish the mode of formation of 
almost any rock (aside from certain problematical rocks, which 
do not enter into our discussion) and to determine whether it 
was laid down in the sea, or on the land, or in some body of 
water not directly connected with the sea, such as a lake or 
river. With the aid of the microscope, it is easy to discriminate 
voleanic material from the ordinary water-borne and wind- 
borne sediments and, in the case of the rocks which have 
solidified from the molten state, to distinguish those masses 
which have cooled upon the surface from those which have 
solidified deep within the earth. 

While the nature and mode of formation of the rocks may 
thus be postulated, it will be needful to explain at some length 
the character of the evidence from which the history of the 
earth may be deciphered. First of all, must be made clear the 
method by which the events of the earth’s history may be 
arranged inchronological order, for a history without chronology 
is unintelligible. The events which are most significant for 
our purpose are recorded in the rocks which are called stratified, 
bedded or sedimentary, synonymous terms. Such rocks were 
made mostly from the débris of older rocks, in the form of 
gravel, sand or mud, and were laid down under water, or, less 
extensively, spread by the action of the wind upon a land- 
surface. Important members of this group of rocks are those 
formed, more or less completely, from the finer fragments 
given out in volcanic eruptions, carried and sorted by the wind 
and finally deposited, it may be at great distances from their 
point of origin, upon a land-surface, or on the bottom of 
some body of water. Stratified or bedded rocks, as their 
name implies, are divided into more or less parallel layers or 
beds, which may be many feet or only a minute fraction of an 
inch in thickness. Such a division means a pause in the pro- 
cess of deposition or a change in the character of the material 
deposited over a given area. Owing to the operation of 
gravity, the layers of sediment are spread out in a horizontal 


METHODS — GEOLOGICAL 7 


attitude, which disregard the minor irregularities of the bottom, 
just as a deep snow buries the objects which lie upon the surface. 

A moment’s consideration will show that, in any series of 
stratified rocks which have not been greatly disturbed from 
their original horizontal position, the order of succession or 
superposition of the beds must necessarily be the chronological 
order of their formation. (Fig. 1.) Obviously, the lowest beds 
must have been deposited first and therefore are the oldest of 
the series, while those at the top must be the newest or 
youngest and the beds intermediate in position are inter- 
mediate in age. This inference depends upon the simple prin- 
ciple that each bed must have been laid down before the next 
succeeding one can have been deposited upon it. While this 
is so clear as to be almost self-evident, it is plain that such a 
mode of determining the chronological order of the rocks of the 
earth’s crust can be of only local applicability and so far as 
the beds may be traced in unbroken continuity. It is of no 
direct assistance in correlating the events in the history of 
one continent with those of’ another and it fails even in com- 
paring the distinctly separated parts of the same continent. 
Some method of universal applicability must be devised before 
the histories of scattered regions can be combined to form a 
history of the earth. Such a universal method is to be found 
in the succession of the forms of life, so far as that is recorded in 
the shape of fossils, or the recognizable remains of animal and 
vegetable organisms preserved in the rocks. 

This principle was first enunciated by William Smith, an 
English engineer, near the close of the eighteenth century, 
who thus laid the foundations of Historical Geology. In the 
diagram, Fig. 2, is reproduced Smith’s section across England 
from Wales to near London, which shows the successive 
strata or beds, very much tilted from their original horizontal 
position by the upheaval of the sea-bed upon which they were 
laid down. The section pictures the side of an imaginary 
gigantic trench cut across the island and was constructed by a 


LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


g @ 18 

2| 6 g ) 2 $ 3 

2! 2] g2] 8 52] 8 3 | 5 

OS|us wes, ats OGS ImZz! «Fé q 

s Ol’ os @ ® & £ = o 

Oe) 2) ee z EY) s 2 | 8 

par 5 a a 0 3 ] 

v - a 

ary q 

all : 

aae Wee 3 

8 

boat =-ar 7 3 

hema faa n 

1 3 

om Ol oe aa=n = $ 

aye a 

LU a ) 

LK pg 

fast fue oe ee ¢ 

oO 

tH) ac} 

Ld a) 

fam fhe Oo 

Wk 3 

| a) 

aus < 

a 

bed fey Fa 

bt i Q 

rl ° 

Lt hd 4) 4 = 

oO 

HW Hb 2 

i. 3 

nm 

m nL | 

J FE} > 

7 a 

Lt Ly LY s 

‘oon A oes | n 

I e= 

an =| 

= a ee iy 

a. ~ 

o 

LS by [> Q 

on loo ‘S 

Ly hey 2 

oO 

D =>] 

ro a 

Haag a 

oe 

LI 3 

ays : 

AS) 

Uae 8 

- ® 

Lo tol bd mn 

5 

ey J uu 6 

8 

— — be [a 

J L ] 

Le a] 

H E 
Lord 

u 


METHODS — GEOLOGICAL 9 


simple geometrical method from the surface exposures of the 
beds, such as mining engineers continually employ to map the 
underground extension of economically important rocks, and 
shows how an enormous thickness of strata may be studied 
from the surface. The older beds are exposed at the western 
end of the section in Wales and, passing eastward, successively 
later and later beds are encountered, the newest appearing at 
the easternend. Very many of the strata are richly fossiliferous, 
and thus a long succession of fossils was obtained in the order 
of their appearance, and this order has been found to hold good, 
not only in England, but throughout the world. The order 


Fic. 2.— William Smith’s section across the south of England. The vertical scale is 
exaggerated, which makes the inclination of the beds appear too steep. 
N.B. The original drawing is in colors, which are not indicated by the dotted strata. 


of succession of the fossils was thus in the first instance actually 
ascertained from the succession of the strata in which they are 
found and has been verified in innumerable sections in many 
lands and is thus a matter of observed and verifiable fact, not 
merely a postulate or working hypothesis. Once ascertained, 
however, the order of succession of living things upon the earth 
may be then employed as an independent and indispensable 
means of geologically dating the rocks in which they occur. 

This is the paleontological method, which finds analogies in 
many other branches of learned inquiry. The student of 
manuscripts discovers that there is a development, or regular 
series of successive changes, in handwriting, and from the hand- 
writing alone can make a very close approximation to the date 
of a manuscript. The order in which those changes came about 


10 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


was ascertained from the comparative study of manuscripts, 
the date of which could be ascertained from other evidence, 
but, when once established, the changes in handwriting are 
used to fix the period of undated manuscripts. Just so, the 
succession of fossils, when learned from a series of superposed 
beds, may then be employed to fix the geological date of 
strata in another region. Similarly, the archeologist has 
observed that there is an evolution or development in every 
sort of the work of men’s hands and therefore makes use of 
coins, inscriptions, objects of art, building materials and methods, 
etc., to date ancient structures. In the German town of Trier 
(or Tréves) on the Moselle, the cathedral has as a nucleus a 
Roman structure, the date and purpose of which had long been 
matters of dispute, though the general belief was that the 
building had been erected under Constantine the Great. In 
the course of some repairs made not very long ago, it became 
necessary to cut deep into the Roman brickwork, and there, 
embedded in the undisturbed mortar, was a coin of the emperor 
Valentinian II, evidently dropped from the pocket of some 
Roman bricklayer. That coin fixed a date older than which the 
building cannot be, though it may be slightly later, and it well 
illustrates the service rendered by fossils in determining geo- 
logical chronology. 

Other methods of making out the chronology of the earth’s 
history have been proposed from time to time and all of them 
have their value, though none of them renders us independent 
of the use of fossils, which have the pre-eminent advantage of 
not recurring or repeating themselves at widely separated inter- 
vals of time, as all physical processes and changes do. An 
organism, animal or plant, that has become extinct never 
returns and is not reproduced in the evolutionary process. 

Great and well founded as is our confidence in fossils as 
fixing the geological date of the rocks in which they occur, it 
must not be forgotten that the succession of the different kinds 
of fossils in time was first determined from the superposition of 


METHODS — GEOLOGICAL 11 


the containing strata. Hence, it is always a welcome con- 
firmation of the chronological inferences drawn from the study 
of fossils, when those inferences can be unequivocally estab- 
lished by the succession of the beds themselves. For example, 
in the Tertiary deposits of the West are two formations or 
groups of strata, called respectively the Uinta and the White 
River, which had never been known to occur in the same region 
and whose relative age therefore could not be determined by 
the method of superposition. Each of the formations, however, 
has yielded a large number of well-preserved fossil mammals, 
and the comparative study of these mammals made it clear 
that the Uinta must be older than the White River and that 
no very great lapse of time, geologically speaking, occurred 
between the end of the former and the beginning of the latter. 
Only two or three years ago an expedition from the American 
Museum of Natural History discovered a place in Wyoming 
where the White River beds lie directly upon those of the 
Uinta, thus fully confirming the inference as to the relative 
age of these two formations which had long ago been drawn 
from the comparative study of their fossil mammals. 

The paleontological method of determining the geological 
date of the stratified rocks is thus an indispensable means of 
correlating the scattered exposures of the strata in widely 
separated regions and in different continents, it may be with 
thousands of miles of intervening ocean. The general principle 
employed is that close similarity of fossils in the rocks of the 
regions compared points to an approximately contemporaneous 
date of formation of those rocks. This principle must not, 
however, be applied in an offhand or uncritical manner, or it 
will lead to serious error. In the first place, the evolutionary 
process is a very slow one and geological time is inconceivably 
long, so that deposits which differ by some thousands of years 
may yet have the same or nearly the same fossils. The method 
is not one of sufficient refinement to detect such relatively 
small differences. To recur to the illustration of the develop- 


LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


12 


SHY AM 9Y} Jo UorpIsodep oy} 109Je Buoy] yNO podred sea Aa]]eA a i 3 biting 
THI UL ‘Woy, useajaq uoneredas ay} Suryreul aury uayouq ‘AAvay oy} ‘ezUI 
sy} JO sovjINS poroyzveM PUB UIOM ay} UO pozIsOdep a1aM spoq JOATY OY M OY ‘“BuIMOAY “OD YUOMIAI ‘Ya0Ig ee se Nae ee 


METHODS — GEOLOGICAL 13 


ment in handwriting, the paleographer can hardly do more 
than determine the decade in which a manuscript was written ; 
no one would expect him to fix upon the exact year, still less the 
month, from the study of handwriting alone. As is the month 
in recorded human history, so is the millennium in the long 
course of the earth’s development. 

In the second place, there are great differences in the con- 
temporary life of separate regions and such geographical differ- 
ences there have always been, so far as we can trace back the 
history of animals and plants. A new organism does not 
originate simultaneously all over the world but, normally 
at least, in a single area and spreads from that centre until it 
encounters insuperable obstacles. Such spreading is a slow 
process and hence it is that new forms often appear in one re- 
gion much earlier than in others and in the very process of ex- 
tending their range, the advancing species may themselves 
be considerably modified and reach their new and distant homes 
as different species from those which originated the movement. 
Extinction, likewise, seldom occurs simultaneously over the 
range of a group, but now here and now there in a way that 
to our ignorance appears to be arbitrary and capricious. The 
process may go on until extinction is total, or may merely 
result in a great restriction of the range of a given group, or 
may break up that range into two or more distinct areas. 

Of such incomplete extinctions many instances might be 
given, but one must suffice. The camel-tribe, strange as it 
may appear, originated in North America and was long con- 
fined to that continent, while at the present day it is repre- 
sented only by the llamas of Seuth America and the true 
camels of Asia, having completely vanished from its early 
home. ‘These facts and a host of similar ones make plain how 
necessary it is to take geographical considerations into 
account in all problems that deal with the synchronizing of the 
rocks of separate areas and continents. 

Properly to estimate the significance of a difference in the 


14 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


fossils of two regions and to determine how far it is geographical, 
due to a separation in space, or geological and caused by separa- 
tion in time, is often a very difficult matter and requires a vast 
amount of minute and detailed study. Once more, the princi- 
ple involved is illustrated by the study of manuscripts. Down 
to the time when the printing press superseded the copyist, 
each of the nations of Europe had its own traditions and its 
more or less independent course of handwriting development. 
A great monastery, in which the work of copying manuscripts 
went on century after century, became an independent geo- 
graphical centre with its particular styles. Thus the pale- 
ographer, like the geologist, is confronted by geographical prob- 
lems as well as by those of change and development in general. 

In addition to the method of geologically dating the rocks 

by means of the fossils which they contain, there are other ways 
which may give a greater precision to the result. Climatic 
changes, when demonstrable, are of this character, for they may 
speedily and simultaneously affect vast areas of the earth’s 
surface or even the entire world. From time to time in the 
past, glacial conditions have prevailed over immense regions, 
several continents at once, it may be, as in one instance in 
which India, South Africa, Australia, South America were 
involved. The characteristic accumulations made by the 
,glaciers in these widely separated regions must be contempora- 
neous in a sense that can rarely be predicated of the ordinary 
stratified rocks. Such climatic changes as the formation and 
disappearance of the ice-fields give a sharper and more definite 
standard of time comparisons than do the fossils alone, and 
yet the fossils are in turn ‘needed to show which of several 
possible glacial periods are actually being compared. 

Again, great movements of the earth’s crust, which involve 
vast and widely separated regions and bring the sea in over 
great areas of land, or raise great areas into land, which had 
been submerged, may also yield more precise time-measure- 
ments, because occurring within shorter periods than do 


METHODS — GEOLOGICAL 15 


notable changes in the system of living things. Such changes 
in animals and plants may be compared to the almost imper- 
ceptible movement of the hour-hand of a clock, while the re- 
corded climatic revolutions and crustal movements often supply 
the place of the minute-hand. It is obvious, however, that 
if the hour-hand be wanting, the minute-hand alone can be of 
very limited use. There have been a great many vast submer- 
gences and emergences of land in the history of the earth, and 
only the fossils can give us the assurance that we are comparing 
the same movement in distant continents, and not two similar 
movements separated by an enormous interval of time. 

It may thus fairly be admitted that it is possible to arrange 
the rocks which compose the accessible parts of the earth’s 
crust in chronological order and to correlate in one system the 
rocks of the various continents. The terms used for the more 
important divisions of geological time are, in descending order 
of magnitude, era, period, epoch, age or stage, and the general 
scheme of the eras and periods, which is in almost uniform use 
throughout the world, is given in the table, which is arranged 
so as to give the succession graphically, with the most ancient 
rocks at the bottom and.-the, latest at the top. 


Quaternary period 
Tertiary period 
Cretaceous period 
Mesozoic era Jurassic period 
Triassic period 
Permian period 
Carboniferous period 
Devonian period 
Silurian period 
Ordovician period 
Cambrian period 
Algonkian period 
Archean period 


Cenozoic era 


Paleozoic era 


Pre-Cambrian eras 


16 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


It must not be supposed that all the divisions of similar 
rank, such as the eras, for example, were of equal length, as 
measured by the thickness of the rocks assigned to those divi- 
sions. On the contrary, they must have been of very unequal 
length and are of very different divisibility. The Pre-Cambrian 
eras, with only two periods, were probably far longer than 
all subsequent time, and all that the major divisions imply 
is that they represent changes in the system of life of 
approximately equivalent importance. It is impossible to 
give any trustworthy estimate of the actual lengths of 
these divisions in years, though many attempts to do so 
have been made. All that can be confidently affirmed is 
that geological time, like astronomical distances, is of in- 
conceivable vastness and its years can be counted only in 
hundreds of millions. 

To discuss in any intelligible manner the history of mammals, 
it will be necessary to go much farther than the above table 
in the subdivision of that part of geological time in which 
mammalian evolution ran its course. As mammals repre- 
sent the highest stage of development yet attained in the 
animal world, it is only the lattar part of the earth’s history 
which is concerned with them; the earlier and incomparably 
longer portion of that history may be passed over. Mammals 
are first recorded in the later Triassic, the first of the three 
periods which make up the Mesozoic era. They have also 
been found, though very scantily, in the other Mesozoic periods, 
the Jurassic and Cretaceous, but it was the Cenozoic era that 
witnessed most of the amazing course of mammalian develop- 
ment and diversification, and hence the relatively minute sub- 
divisions necessary for the understanding of this history deal 
only with the Cenozoic, the latest of the great eras. 

In the subjoined table the periods and epochs are those 
which are in general use throughout the world, the ages and 
stages are those which apply to the western interior of North 
America, each region, even of the same continent, requiring a 


METHODS — GEOLOGICAL 17 


different classification. The South American formations are 
given in a separate table, as it is desirable to avoid the appear- 
ance of an exactitude in correlation which cannot yet be at- 
tained. 


CENOZOIC ERA 


Recent epoch 
Quaternary period } Pleistocene epoch = Glacial and Inter- 
glacial stages. 
Pliocene epoch 
Miocene epoch 
Tertiary period Oligocene epoch 
Eocene epoch 
Paleocene epoch 


Continuing the subdivision of the Tertiary period still 
farther, we have the following arrangement : 


TERTIARY PERIOD (North America) 


Upper Wanting 

Middle Blanco age 

Pliocene Thousand Creek age 
Lower | Snake Creek age 

Republican River age 

Upper Loup Fork age 

Miocene {Middle Deep River age 

Lower Arikaree age 

Upper John Day age 

Lower White River age 

Upper Uinta age 

Eocene Middle Bridger age 

Wind River age 

Wasatch age 

[Upper Torrejon age 

Lower Puerco age 


Oligocene 


Lower 


Paleocene 


| Fort Union 


Cc 


18 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


This is arepresentative series of the wide-spread and manifold 
non-marine Tertiary deposits of the Great Plains, but a much 
more extensive and subdivided scheme would be needed to 
show with any degree of fullness the wonderfully complete 
record of that portion of the continent during the Tertiary 
period. A much more elaborate table will be found in Pro- 
fessor Osborn’s ‘“‘Age of Mammals,” p. 41. There are 
some differences of practice among geologists as to this 
scheme of classification, though the differences are not 
those of principle. No question arises concerning the reality 
of the divisions, or their order of succession in time, 
but merely as to the rank or relative importance which 
should be attributed to some of them, and that is a very 
minor consideration. 

Much greater difficulty and, eee much more radical 
differences of interpretation arise when the attempt is made to 
correlate or synchronize the smaller subdivisions, as found in 
the various continents, with one another, because of the 
geographical differences in contemporary life. Between Eu- 
rope and North America there has always been a certain pro- 
portion of mammalian forms in common, a proportion that 
was at one time greater, at another less, and this community 
renders the correlation of the larger divisions of the Tertiary 
in the two continents comparatively easy, and even in the minor 
subdivisions very satisfactory progress has been made, so 
that it is possible to trace in some detail the migrations of 
mammals from the eastern to the western hemisphere and 
vice versa. Such intermigrations were made possible by the 
land-bridges connecting America with Europe across the 
Atlantic, perhaps on the line of Greenland and Iceland, and 
with Asia where now is Bering Strait. These connections were 
repeatedly made and repeatedly broken during the Mesozoic 
and Cenozoic eras down to the latest epoch, the Pleistocene. 
By comparing the fossil mammals of Europe with those of 
North America for any particular division of geological time, 


METHODS — GEOLOGICAL 19 


it is practicable to determine whether the way of intermigra- 
tion was open or closed, because separation always led to greater 
differences between the faunas of the two continents through 
divergent evolution. 

Correlation with South America is exceedingly difficult and 
it is in dealing with this problem that the widest differences of 
opinion have arisen among geologists. Through nearly all 
the earlier half of the Tertiary period the two Americas were 
separated and, because of this separation, their land mammals 
were utterly different. Hence, the lack of elements common 
to both continents puts great obstacles in the way of establish- 
ing definite time-relations between their geological divisions. 
Only the marine mammals, whales and dolphins, were so far 
alike as to offer some satisfactory basis of comparison. When, 
in the later Tertiary, a land-connection was established between 
the two continents, migrations of mammals from each to the 
other began, and thenceforward there were always certain 
elements common to both, as there are to-day. In spite of the 
continuous land between them, the present faunas of North and 
South America are very strikingly different, South America 
being, with the exception of Australia, zodlogically the most 
peculiar region of the earth. 

In the following table of the South ‘Reason Cenozoic, the 
assignment of the ages to their epochs is largely tentative, 
especially as regards the more ancient divisions, and repre- 
sents the views generally held by the geologists of Europe and 
the United States; those of South America, on the contrary, 
give an earlier date to the ages and stages and refer the older 
ones to the Cretaceous instead of the Tertiary. 


CENOZOIC ERA (South America) 


Recent epoch 
Quaternary period ; Pleistocene epoch —Pampean Beds, 
Brazilian caverns 


20 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


Monte Hermoso age 

Pliocene epoch Catamarca age 

Parand age 

Santa Cruz age 

Patagonian age 

Deseado age (Pyrothe- 

Oligocene epoch rium Beds) 

Astraponotus Beds 

Casa Mayor age (Noto- 
stylops Beds) 


Tertiary period {Miocene epoch 


Eocene epoch 


The Pleistocene and Pliocene deposits are most widely dis- 
tributed over the Pampas of Argentina, but the former occur 
also in Ecuador, Brazil, Chili, and Bolivia. The other forma- 
tions cover extensive areas in Patagonia, and some extend into 
Tierra del Fuego. 

We have next to consider the methods by which past geo- 
graphical conditions may be ascertained, a task which, though 
beset with difficulties, is very far from being a hopeless under- 
taking. As has already been pointed out, it is perfectly 
possible for the geologist to determine the circumstances of 
formation of the various kinds of rocks, to distinguish terrestrial 
from aquatic accumulations and, among the latter, to identify 
those which were laid down in the sea and those which were 
formed in some other body of water. By platting on a map 
all the marine rocks of a given geological date, an approximate 
estimate may be formed as to the extension of the sea over the 
present land for that particular epoch. It is obvious, however, 
that for those areas which then were land and now are covered 
by the sea, no such direct evidence can be obtained, and only 
indirect means of ascertaining the former land-connections 
can be employed. It is in the treatment of this indirect evi- 
dence that the greatest differences of opinion arise and, if two 
maps of the same continent for the same epoch, by separate 
authors, be compared, it will be seen that the greatest dis- 


METHODS — GEOLOGICAL 21 


crepancies between them are concerning former land-connec- 
tions and extensions. 

The only kind of indirect evidence bearing upon ancient 
land-connections, now broken by the sea, that need be con- 
sidered here is that derived from the study of animals and plants, 
both recent and fossil. All-important in this connection is 
the principle that the same or closely similar species do not 
arise independently in areas between which there is no con- 
nection. It is not impossible that such an independent origin 
of organisms which the naturalist would class as belonging to 
the same species may have occasionally taken place, but, if so, 
it must be the rare exception to the normal process. This 
principle leads necessarily to the conclusion that the more 
recently. and broadly two land-areas, now separated by the 
sea, have been connected, the more nearly alike will be their 
animals and plants. 'Such islands as Great Britain, Sumatra 
and Java must have been connected with the adjacent mainland 
within a geologically recent period, while the extreme zodlogical 
peculiarity of Australia can be explained only on the assumption 
that its present isolation is of very long standing.| The princi- 
ple applies to the case of fossils as well as to that of modern 
animals, and has already been made use of, in a preceding 
section, in dealing with the ancient land-connections of North 
America. It was there shown that the connection of this 
continent with the Old World and the interruptions of that 
connection are reflected and recorded in the greater or less 
degree of likeness in the fossil mammals at any particular epoch. 
Conversely, the very radical differences between the fossil 
mammals of the two Americas imply a long-continued separa- 
tion of those two continents, and their junction in the latter 
half of the Tertiary period is proved by the appearance of 
southern groups of mammals in the northern continent, and of 
northern groups in South America. 

Inasmuch as the connection between North and South 
America still persists, the geology of the Isthmus of Panama 


22 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


should afford testimony in confirmation of the inferences 
drawn from a study of the mammals. Of course, the separating 
sea did not necessarily cross the site of the present isthmus.; 
it might have cut through some part of Central America, but 
a glance at the map immediately suggests the isthmus as the 
place of separation and subsequent connection. As a matter of 
fact, isthmian geology is in complete accord with the evidence 
derived from the mammals. Even near the summit of the hills 
which form the watershed between the Atlantic and the Pacific 
and through which the great Culebra Cut passes, are beds of 
marine Tertiary shells, showing that at that time the land was 
completely submerged. This does not at all preclude the 
possibility of other transverse seas at the same period ; indeed, 
much of Central America was probably under the sea also, but 
the geology of that region is still too imperfectly known to 
permit positive statements. 

When several different kinds of testimony, each inde- 
pendent of the other, can be secured and all are found 
to be in harmony, the strength of the conclusion is thereby 
greatly increased. Many distinct lines of evidence support 
the inference that North and South America were com- 
pletely severed for a great part of the Tertiary period. 
This is indicated in the clearest manner, not only by the 
geological structure of the Isthmus and by the mammals, 
living and extinct, as already described, but also by the fresh- 
water fishes, the land-shells, the reptiles and many other 
groups of animals and plants. 

The distribution of marine fossils may render the same sort 
of service in elucidating the history of the sea as land-mammals 
do for the continents, demonstrating the opening and closing 
of connections between land-areas and between oceans. The 
sea, it is true, is one and undivided, the continental masses 
being great islands in it, but, nevertheless, the sea is divisible 
into zodlogical provinces, just as is the land. Temperature, 
depth of water, character of the bottom, etc., are factors that 


METHODS — GEOLOGICAL 23 


limit the range of marine organisms, as climate and physical 
barriers circumscribe the spread of terrestrial animals. Pro- 
fessor Perrin Smith has shown that in the Mesozoic era Bering 
Strait was repeatedly opened and closed, and that each opening 
and closing was indicated by the geographical relationships of 
the successive assemblages of marine animals that are found 
in the Mesozoic rocks of California and Nevada. When 
the Strait was open, the coast-line between North America 
and Asia was interrupted and the North Pacific was cooled by 
the influx of water from the Arctic Sea. At such times, 
sea-animals from the Russian and Siberian coasts extended their 
range along the American side as far south as Mexico, and no 
forms from the eastern and southern shores of Asia accompanied 
them. On the other hand, when the Strait was closed, the 
Arctic forms were shut out and the continuous coast-line and 
warmer water enabled the Japanese, Indian, and even Mediter- 
ranean animals to extend their range to the Pacific coast of 
North America. A comparison of the marine fishes of the 
two sides of the Isthmus of Panama shows an amount and 
degree of difference between the two series as might be expected 
from the length of time that they have been separated by the 
upheaval of the land. 

In working out the geographical conditions for any particular 
epoch of the earth’s history, it is possible to go much farther 
than merely gaining an approximate estimate of the distribu- 
tion of land and sea; many other important facts may be 
gathered from a minute examination of the rocks in combina- 
tion with a genetic study of topographical forms. By this 
physiographical method, as it is called, the history of several 
of the great mountain-ranges has been elaborated in great detail. 
It is quite practicable to give a geological date for the initial 
upheaval and to determine whether one or many such series 
of movements have been involved in bringing about the present 
state of things. Similarly, the history of plains and plateaus, 
hills and valleys, lake and river systems, may be ascertained, 


24 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


and for the earth’s later ages, at least, a great deal may be 
learned regarding the successive forms of the land-surfaces 
in the various continents. It would be very desirable to ex- 
plain the methods by which these results are reached, but this 
could hardly be done without writing a treatise on physiog- 
raphy, for which there is no room in this chapter. We must 
be permitted to make use of the results of that science without 
being called upon to prove their accuracy. 

No factor has a more profound effect in determining the 
character and distribution of living things than climate, of 
which the most important elements, for our purpose, are 
temperature and moisture. One of the most surprising results 
of geological study is the clear proof that almost all parts of 
the earth have been subjected to great vicissitudes of climate, 
and a brief account of the evidence which has led to this un- 
looked for result will not be out of place here. 

The evidence of climatic changes is of two principal kinds, 
(1) that derived from a study of the rocks themselves, and (2) 
that given by the fossils of the various epochs. So far as the 
rocks laid down in the sea are concerned, little has yet been 
ascertained regarding the climatic conditions of their formation, 
but the strata which were deposited on the land, or in some 
body of water other than the sea, often give the most positive 
and significant information concerning the circumstances of 
climate which prevailed at the time of their formation. Cer- 
tain deposits, such as gypsum and rock-salt, are accumulated 
only in salt lakes, which, in turn, are demonstrative proof of 
an arid climate. A salt lake could not exist in a region of 
normal rainfall and, from the geographical distribution of such 
salt-lake deposits, it may be shown that arid conditions have 
prevailed in each of the continents and, not only once, but many 
times. As a rule, such aridity of climate was relatively local 
in extent, but sometimes it covered vast areas. For example, 
in the Permian, the last of the Palzozoic, and the Triassic, the 
first of the Mesozoic periods (see Table, p. 15) nearly all the 


METHODS — GEOLOGICAL 25 


land-areas of the northern hemisphere were affected, either 
simultaneously or in rapid succession. 

Until a comparatively short time ago, it was very generally 
believed that the Glacial or Pleistocene epoch, which was so 
remarkable and conspicuous a feature of the Quaternary period, 
was an isolated phenomenon, unique in the entire history of 
the earth. Now, however, it has been conclusively shown 
that such epochs of cold have been recurrent and that no less 
than five of these have left unmistakable records in as many 
widely separated periods of time. 

When the hypothesis of a great ‘‘Ice Age”’ in the Pleistocene 
was first propounded by the elder Agassiz, it was naturally 
received with general incredulity, but the gradual accumula- 
tion of proofs has resulted in such an overwhelming weight 
of testimony, that the glacial hypothesis is now accepted as one 
of the commonplaces of Geology. The proofs consist chiefly 
in the characteristic glacial accumulations, moraines and drift- 
sheets, which cover such enormous areas in Europe and North 
America and, on a much smaller scale, in Patagonia, and in the 
equally characteristic marks of glacial wear left upon the 
rocks over which the ice-sheets moved. Many years later 
it was proved that the Permian period had been a time of 
gigantic glaciation, chiefly in the southern hemisphere, when 
vast ice-caps moved slowly over parts of South America, 
South Africa, Australia and even of India. The evidence is 
of precisely the same nature as in the case of the Pleistocene 
glaciation. In not less than three more ancient periods, 
the Devonian, Cambrian, and Algonkian, proofs of glacial 
action have been obtained. 

While the rocks themselves thus afford valuable testimony 
as to the climatic conditions which prevailed at the time and 
place of their formation, this testimony is fragmentary, missing 
for very long periods, and must be supplemented from the 
information presented by the fossils. As in all matters where 
fossils are involved, the evidence must be cautiously used, for 


26 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


hasty inferences have often led to contradictory and absurd 
conclusions. When properly employed, the fossils give a more 
continuous and complete history of climatic changes than can, 
in the present state of knowledge, be drawn from a study 
of the rocks alone. For this purpose plants are particularly 
useful, because the great groups of the vegetable kingdom are 
more definitely restricted in their range by the conditions of 
temperature and moisture than are most of the correspondingly 
large groups of animals. Not that fossil animals are of no 
service in this connection; quite the contrary is true, but the 
evidence from them must be treated more carefully and criti- 
cally. To illustrate the use of fossils as recording climatic 
changes in the past, one or two examples may be given. 

In the Cretaceous period a mild and genial climate prevailed 
over all that portion of the earth whose history we ‘know, and 
was, no doubt, equally the case in the areas whose voolomy 
remains to be determined. The same conditions extended 
far into the Arctic regions, and abundant remains of a 
warm-temperate vegetation have been found in Greenland, 
Alaska and other Arctic lands. Where now only scanty and 
minute dwarf willows and birches can exist, was then a luxuri- 
ant forest growth comprising almost all of the familiar trees of 
our own latitudes, a most decisive proof that in the: Cretaceous 
the climate of the Arctic regions must have been much warmer 
than at present and that there can have been no great accumu- 
lation of ice in the Polar seas. Conditions of similar mildness 
obtained through the earlier part of the Tertiary. In the 
Eocene epoch large palm-trees were growing in Wyoming and 
Idaho, while great crocodiles and other warm-country reptiles 
abounded in the waters of the same region. 

It is of particular interest to inquire how far the fossils of 
Glacial times confirm the inferences as to a great climatic 
change which are derived from a study of the rocks, for this 
may be taken as a test-case. Any marked discrepancy be- 
tween the two would necessarily cast grave doubt upon the 


METHODS — GEOLOGICAL 27 


value of the testimony of fossils as to climatic conditions. The 
problem is one of great complexity, for the Pleistocene was not 
one long epoch of unbroken cold, but was made up of 
Glacial and Interglacial ages, alternations of colder and milder 
conditions, and some, at least, of the Interglacial ages had a 
climate warmer than that of modern times. Such great 
changes of temperature led to repeated migrations of the 
mammals, which were driven southward before the advancing 
ice-sheets and returned again when the glaciers withdrew 
under the influence of ameliorating climates. Any adequate 
discussion of these complex. conditions is quite out of the 
question in this place and the facts must be stated in simplified 
form, as dealing only with the times of lowered temperature 
and encroaching glaciers. 

The plants largely fail us here, for little is known of Glacial 
vegetation, but, on the other hand, a great abundance of the 
fossil remains of animal life of that date has been collected, and 
its testimony is quite in harmony with that afforded by the 
ice-markings and the ice-made deposits. Arctic shells in the 
marine deposits of England, the valley of the Ottawa River 
and of Lake Champlain, Walruses on the coast of New Jersey, 
Reindeer in the south of France, and Caribou in southern New 
England, Musk-oxen in Kentucky and Arkansas, are only a 
few examples of the copious evidence that the climate of the 
regions named in Glacial times was far colder than it is to-day. 

I have thus endeavored to sketch, necessarily in very 
meagre outlines, the nature of the methods employed to re- 
construct the past history of the various continents and the 
character of the evidence upon which we must depend. Should 
the reader be unconvinced and remain sceptical as to the possi- 
bility of any such reconstruction, he must be referred to the 
numerous manuals of Geology, in which these methods are 
set forth with a fulness which cannot be imitated within the 
limits of a single chapter. The methods are sound, consisting 
as they do merely in the application of “‘systematized common 


28 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


sense”’ (in Huxley’s phrase) to observed facts, but by no means 
all applications of them are to be trusted. Not to mention 
ill-considered and uncritical work, or inverted pyramids of 
hypothesis balanced upon a tiny point of fact, it should be 
borne in mind that such a complicated and difficult problem 
as the reconstruction of past conditions can be solved only by 
successive approximations to the truth, each one partial and 
incomplete, but less so than the one which preceded it. 


CHAPTER II 


METHODS OF INVESTIGATION — PALHONTOLOGICAL 


PALZONTOLOGY is the science of ancient life, animal and 
vegetable, the Zodlogy and Botany of the past, and deals with 
fossils. Fossils are the recognizable remains or traces of animals 
or plants, which were buried in the rocks at the time of the 
formation of those rocks. In a geological sense, the term rock 
includes loose and uncompacted materials, such as sand and 
gravel, as well as solid stone. Granting the possibility of so 
determining the relative dates of formation of the rocks, that 
the order of succession of the fossils in time may be ascertained 
in general terms, the question remains: What use, other than 
geological, can be made of the fossils? In dealing with this 
question, attention will be directed almost exclusively to the 
mammals, the group with which this book is concerned. 

As a preliminary to the discussion, something should be 
said of the ways in which mammals became entombed in the 
rocks in which we find them. In this connection it should be 
remembered that, however firm and solid those rocks may be 
now, they were originally layers of loose and uncompacted 
material, deposited by wind or water, and that each layer 
formed in its turn the surface of the earth, until buried by fresh 
accumulations upon it, it may be to enormous depths. 

One method of the entombing of land-mammals, which has 
frequently been of great importance, is burial in volcanic dust 
and so-called ash, which has been compacted into firm rock. 
During a great volcanic eruption enormous quantities of such 
finely divided material are ejected from the crater and are 


spread out over the surrounding country, it may be for dis- 
29 


30 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


tances of hundreds of miles. Thus will be buried the scattered 
bones, skeletons, carcasses, that happen to be lying on the sur- 
face ; and if the fine fragments are falling rapidly, many animals 
will be buried alive and their skeletons preserved intact. A 
modern instance of this is given by the numerous skeletons of 
men and domestic animals buried in the volcanic ash which 
overwhelmed Pompeii in 79 a.p. Pliny the Younger, who 
witnessed that first recorded eruption of Vesuvius, tells us in 
a letter written to Tacitus, that far away at Misenum, west of 
Naples, it was often necessary to rise and shake off the falling 
ashes, for fear of being buried in them. In the Santa Cruz 
formation of Patagonia (see p. 124), which has yielded such a 
wonderful number and variety of well-preserved fossils, the 
bones are all found in volcanic dust and ash compacted into 
a rock, which is usually quite soft, but may become locally 
very hard. The Bridger formation of Wyoming (p. 110) and 
the John Day of eastern Oregon (p. 116) are principally made 
up of volcanic deposits ; and no doubt there are several others 
among the Tertiary stages which were formed in the same 
way, but have not yet received the microscopic study necessary 
to determine this. 

Much information concerning the mammalian life of the 
Pleistocene, more especially in Europe and in Brazil (p. 211), 
has been derived from the exploration of caverns. Some of 
these caves were the dens of carnivorous beasts and contain 
multitudes of the bones of their victims, as well as those of 
the destroyers themselves. Others, such as the Port Ken- 
nedy Cave, on the Schuylkill River above Philadelphia, the 
Frankstown Cave in central Pennsylvania, the Conard Fissure 
in Arkansas, are hardly caverns in the ordinary sense of the 
word, but rather narrow fissures, into which bones and car- 
casses were washed by floods, or living animals fell from above 
and died without being able to escape. The bones are mostly 
buried in the earth which partially or completely fills many 
caverns and may be covered by a layer of stalagmite, derived 


METHODS — PALAXONTOLOGICAL 31 


from the solution and re-deposition of the limestone of the 
cavern-walls, by the agency of percolating waters. 

A mode of preservation which is unfortunately rare is ex- 
emplified by the asphaltic deposits near Los Angeles, at Rancho 
La Brea, which have been very fully described by Professor 
J. C. Merriam of the University of California. The asphalt 
has been formed by the oxidation and solidification of petro- 
leum, which has risen up through the Pleistocene rocks 
from the oil-bearing shales below. At one stage in the con- 
version of petroleum into asphalt, tar-pools of extremely viscid 
and adhesive character were, and still are, formed on the surface 
of the ground; and these pools were veritable traps for mam- 
mals and birds and for the beasts and birds of prey which came 
to devour the struggling victims. 

‘The manner in which tar or asphalt pools may catch un- 
suspecting animals of all kinds is abundantly illustrated at 
the present time in many places in California, but nowhere 
more strikingly than at Rancho La Brea itself, where animals 
of many kinds have frequently been so firmly entrapped that 
they died before being discovered, or if found alive were extri- 
cated only with the greatest difficulty. As seen at this locality, 
the tar issuing from springs or seepages is an exceedingly 
sticky, tenacious substance which is removed only with the 
greatest difficulty from the body of any animal with which it 
may come in contact. Small mammals, birds, or insects 
running into the soft tar are very quickly rendered helpless by 
the gummy mass, which binds their feet, and in their struggles 
soon reaches every part of the body. Around the borders of 
the pools the tar slowly hardens by the evaporation of the 
lighter constituents until it becomes as solid as an asphalt pave- 
ment. Between the hard and soft portions of the mass there 
is a very indefinite boundary, the location of which can often 
be determined only by experiment, and large mammals in many 
cases run into very tenacious material in this intermediate 
zone, from which they are unable to extricate themselves.” 


32 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


The foregoing account refers to what may actually be 
observed at the present time; in regard to the Pleistocene, 
Professor Merriam says: “In the natural accumulation of 
remains at the tar pools through accidental entangling of ani- 
mals of all kinds, it is to be presumed that a relatively large 
percentage of the individuals entombed would consist of young 
animals with insufficient experience to keep them away from 
the most dangerous places, or with insufficient strength to 
extricate themselves. There would also be a relatively large 
percentage of old, diseased, or maimed individuals that lacked 
strength to escape when once entangled. In the census of 
remains that have been obtained up to the present time the 
percentages of quite young, diseased, maimed, and very old 
individuals are certainly exceptionally large. ... In addi- 
tion to the natural accumulation of animal remains through 
the entangling of creatures of all kinds by accidental encoun- 
tering of the tar, it is apparent from a study of the collections 
obtained that some extraordinary influence must have brought 
carnivorous animals of all kinds into contact with the asphalt 
with relatively greater frequency than other kinds of animals. 
In all the collections that have been examined the number 
of carnivorous mammals and birds represented is much greater 
than that of the other groups. ... Whenever an animal of 
any kind is caught in the tar, its struggles and cries naturally 
attract the attention of carnivorous mammals and birds in 
the immediate vicinity, and the trapped creature acts as a 
most efficient lure to bring these predaceous animals into the 
soft tar with it. It is not improbable that a single small bird 
or mammal struggling in the tar might be the means of en- 
trapping several carnivores, which in turn would naturally 
serve to attract still others. ... In the first excavations 
earried on by the University of California a bed of bones was 
encountered in which the number of saber-tooth and wolf 
skulls together averaged twenty per cubic yard.” ! 

1 Memoirs of the University of California, Vol. I, pp. 209-211. 


METHODS — PALZ ONTOLOGICAL 33 


As the animals were thus entombed alive, it would be ex- 
pected that a large number of complete skeletons would be 
preserved, but this is not the case: ‘‘connected skeletons are 
not common.” This scattering and mingling of the bones 
were due partly to the trampling of the heavier animals in 
their struggles to escape, but, in more important degree, to 
the movements within the tar and asphalt. 

In arid and semi-arid regions great quantities of sand and 
dust are transported by the wind and deposited where the 
winds fail, or where vegetation entangles and holds the dust. 
Any bones, skeletons or carcasses which are lying on the 
surface will thus be buried, and even living animals may be 
suffocated and buried by the clouds of dust. An example of 
such wind-made accumulations is the Sheridan formation 
(Equus Beds, see p. 131), which covers vast areas of the Great 
Plains from Nebraska to Mexico and contains innumerable 
bones, especially of horses. In this formation in northwestern 
Kansas, Professor Williston found nine skeletons of the large 
peccary ({Platygonus leptorhinus), lying huddled together, with 
their heads all pointing in the same direction, and in the upper 
Miocene (p. 121) of South Dakota Mr. Gidley discovered six 
skeletons of three-toed horses ({Neohipparion whitneyt) crowded 
together, killed and buried probably by a sandstorm. Similar 
illustrations might be gathered from many other parts of the 
world. 

Swamps and bogs may, especially under certain conditions, 
become the burial places of great numbers of animals, which 
venture into them, become buried and are unable to extricate 
themselves. Especially is this true in times of great drought, 
when animals are not only crazed with thirst, but very much 
weakened as well, and so unable to climb out of the clinging 
mud. In an oft-quoted passage, Darwin gives a vivid 
description of the effects of a long drought in Argentina be- 
tween the years 1827 and 1830. ‘‘During this time so little 

D + Extinct. 


34 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


rain fell, that the vegetation, even to the thistles, failed; 
the brooks were dried up, and the whole country assumed the 
appearance of a dusty high road.” ‘I was informed by an 
eyewitness that the cattle in herds of thousands rushed into 
the Parana, and being exhausted by hunger they were unable 
to crawl up the muddy banks, and thus were drowned. The 
arm of the river which runs by San Pedro was so full of putrid 
carcasses, that the master of a vessel told me that the smell 
rendered it quite impassable. Without doubt several hundred 
thousand animals thus perished in the river; their bodies 
when putrid were seen floating down the stream; and many in 
all probability were deposited in the estuary of the Plata. All 
the small rivers became highly saline, and this caused the death 
of vast numbers in particular spots; for when an animal 
drinks of such water it does not recover. Azara describes the 
fury of the wild horses on a similar occasion, rushing into the 
marshes, those which arrived first being overwhelmed and 
crushed by. those which followed. He adds that more than 
once he has seen the carcasses of upwards of a thousand wild 
horses thus destroyed. .. . Subsequently to the drought of 
1827 to 1832, a very rainy season followed, which caused great 
floods. Hence it is almost certain that some thousands of 
the skeletons were buried by the deposits of the very next 
year.” ! 

In the arid and desolate regions of the interior of South 
Australia is a series of immense dry lakes, which only occasionally 
contain water and ordinarily ‘‘are shallow, mud-bottomed or 
salt-encrusted claypans only.” One of these, Lake Calla- 
bonna, is of great interest as having preserved in its soft mud 
many remains of ancient life, of creatures which were mired 
in the clay and destroyed, as has been described by Dr. E. C. 
Stirling. ‘There is, however, compensation for the unpromis- 
ing physical features of Lake Callabonna in the fact that its 
bed proves to be a veritable necropolis of gigantic extinct 

1Voyage of a Naturalist, Amer. ed., pp. 133-134. 


METHODS — PALZONTOLOGICAL 35 


marsupials and birds which have apparently died where they 
lie, literally, in hundreds. The facts that the bones of in- 
dividuals are often unbroken, close together, and, frequently, 
in their proper relative positions, the attitude of many of 
the bodies and the character of the matrix in which they are 
embedded, negative any theory that they have been carried 
thither by floods. The probability is, rather, that they met 
their deaths by being entombed in the effort to reach food or 
water, just as even now happens in dry seasons, to hundreds 
of cattle which, exhausted by thirst and starvation, are unable 
to extricate themselves from the boggy places that they have 
entered in pursuit either of water or of the little green herbage 
due to its presence. The accumulation of so many bodies 
in one locality points to the fact of their assemblage around 
one of the last remaining oases in the region of desiccation 
which succeeded an antecedent condition of plenteous rains 
and abundant waters.” 

It is a very general experience in collecting fossil mammals 
to find that they are not evenly or uniformly distributed 
through the beds, but rather occur in ‘“‘pockets,” where great 
numbers of individuals are crowded together, while between 
the “‘pockets’”’ are long stretches of barren ground. It is 
equally common to find the bones thickly distributed in cer- 
tain layers, or beds, and the layers above and below entirely 
wanting in fossils. The reasons for this mode of occurrence 
have been partially explained in the foregoing paragraphs, 
but the reason differs for each particular mode of entombment. 
The important part played by drought in causing such ac- 
cumulation of closely crowded bodies in swamps and mud- 
holes is indicated in the quotations from Darwin and Stirling ; 
but similar accumulations may take place on hard ground, 
as was observed in central Africa by Gregory. ‘‘Here and 
there around a water hole we found acres of ground white 
with the bones of rhinoceroses and zebra, gazelle and ante- 
lope, jackal and hyena. ... These animals had crowded 


36 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


around the dwindling pools and fought for the last drops of 
water.”’1 Even in normal seasons springs and water holes 
and the drinking places in streams are the lurking places 
of beasts of prey and crocodiles, so that great accumula- 
tions of bones are made around these spots. A succession 
of unusually severe winters frequently leads to great 
mortality among mammals, as happened in Patagonia in 
the winter of 1899, when enormous .numbers of Guanaco 
perished of starvation on the shore of Lake Argentine, 
where they came to drink. 

Bones which are exposed on the surface of the ground 
decay and crumble to pieces in the course of a very few years; 
and if they are to be preserved as fossils, it is necessary that 
they should be buried under sedimentary or volcanic deposits. 
Several such modes of burial have been described in the fore- 
going paragraphs, but there are other and equally important 
methods, which remain to be considered. 

The deposits made by rivers are often extremely rich in 
fossils, and most of the Tertiary formations of the Great Plains 
are now ascribed to the agency of rivers. The flood-plain of 
a stream, or that part of its basin which is periodically over- 
flowed, is gradually built up by the layers of clay and silt 
thrown down by the relatively still waters of the flooded 
area, and scattered bones, skeletons or carcasses that may have 
been lying on the ground before the freshet are buried in the 
deposits. Bones covered up in this manner frequently show 
the marks of teeth of rodents or carnivores which have gnawed 
them when lying exposed. Deposits made in the stream- 
channels, where the current was swiftest, are of coarser materials 
such as gravel and sand, and these often contain the skeletons 
of animals which were drowned and swept downward by the 
flooded stream. When the Bison (the mistakenly so-called 
Buffalo) still roamed in countless herds over the western plains, 
immense numbers of them were drowned in the upper Missouri 

1J. W. Gregory, The Great Rift Valley, p. 268. 


METHODS — PALHZONTOLOGICAL 37 


River by breaking through the ice, when they attempted to 
cross at times when the ice had not attained its winter thickness, 
or was weakened by melting in the spring. No doubt, the bed 
of that river contains innumerable bones of the Bison. Fre- 
quently, too, animals are caught in quicksands and, unable 
to escape, are buried in the soft mass; fossil skeletons which 
are preserved in sandstones in an erect or standing position 
are usually to be interpreted in this manner. 

The sedimentary accumulations formed in lakes and ponds 
sometimes yield fossil bones or skeletons in considerable 
numbers, which have, for the most part, been derived from the 
carcasses of animals carried into the lake by streams. A newly 
drowned mammal sinks to the bottom and, if sufficient sediment 
be quickly deposited upon it, it may be anchored there and 
fossilized as a complete skeleton. Otherwise, when distended by 
the gases of putrefaction, the body will rise and float on the 
surface, where it will be attacked and pulled about by croco- 
diles, fishes and other predaceous creatures. As the bones 
are loosened in the course of decomposition, they will drop 
to the bottom and be scattered, now here, now there, over a wide 
area. 

Land mammals are rarely found in marine rocks, or such 
deposits as were made on the sea-bottom; but the remains 
of marine mammals, whales, porpoises, dolphins, seals, etc. 
are often found in large numbers. In principle, the method 
of entombment is the same as in the case of lakes, but currents 
may drift to some bay or cove multitudes of carcasses of these 
marine mammals. At Antwerp, in Belgium, incredible quanti- 
ties of such remains have been exposed in excavations and in 
all probability were drifted by currents into a quiet and shal- 
low bay, which was subsequently converted into land. 

While the foregoing account by no means exhausts the 
various methods of accumulation and burial of the skeletons 
and scattered bones of mammals, it covers the more important 
of these methods sufficiently for a general understanding of 


38 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


the different processes. In whatever manner the preservation 
may have been effected, there is great difference in the rel- 
ative abundance and completeness among the fossils of the 
various kinds of mammals which were living at the same time 
and in the same area. It need hardly be said, that the more 
abundant any species was, the better was the chance of its 
being represented among the fossils; hence, gregarious species, 
living in large herds, were more likely to be preserved than 
those which led a solitary existence, or were individually rare. 
Most of the hoofed mammals are and apparently always have 
been gregarious, and are therefore much better represented 
among the fossils, and are, in consequence, better known than 
the beasts of prey, which, of necessity, were individually less 
numerous and. generally solitary in habits. Not only this, 
but large and medium-sized mammals, with strong and heavy 
bones, were better fitted to withstand the accidents of entomb- 
ment and subsequent preservation than small creatures with 
delicate and fragile skeletons. The mere dead weight of over- 
lying sediments often crushes and distorts the bones, and the 
movements of uplift, compression, folding and fracture, to which 
so many strata have been subjected, did still further damage 
to the fossils. The percolating waters, which for ages have 
traversed the porous rocks, often attack and dissolve the bones, 
completely destroying the minute ones and greatly injuring 
those which are massive and. strong. In consequence of all 
those accidents it frequently happens that only the teeth, 
the hardest and most resistant of animal structures, and it 
may be the dense and solid jaw-bones, are all that remain 
to testify of the former existence of some creature that long 
ago vanished from the earth. Very many fossil mammals are 
known exclusively from the teeth, and it is this fact which makes 
the exact study of teeth so peculiarly important to the palx- 
ontologist. 

In view of all these facts, it is not surprising that con- 
cerning the history of many mammalian groups we have but 


METHODS — PALHZONTOLOGICAL 39 


scanty information, or none at all, while in the case of others 
the story is wonderfully full and detailed. The latter are, 
very generally, the groups which were not only numerically 
abundant at: all stages of their history, but also had skeletons 
that were strong enough to resist destruction; while the. 
groups as to which there is little or no information are chiefly 
of small and fragile animals, or such as were always rare. 
For example, a great deal has been learned regarding the de- 
velopment of horses and rhinoceroses in North America, but 
the history of the tapirs is very unsatisfactorily known, be- 
cause, while horses and rhinoceroses were common, tapirs 
were solitary and rare. In Europe bats have been found in 
the Eocene, Oligocene and Miocene, and there is no reason 
to suppose that they were not equally ancient and equally 
abundant in America; but none have been found in the western 
hemisphere in any formation older than the Pleistocene. All 
things considered, the extraordinary fact is, not that so many 
forms have irretrievably perished, but that so much has been 
preserved, escaping all the chances of destruction. 

As to the degree of preservation in fossil mammals, we have 
to do almost entirely with bones and teeth. With very rare 
exceptions, and those all of late geological date, the viscera, 
muscles, skin, hair, horns, hoofs and claws have been com- 
pletely destroyed and have vanished without leaving a trace. 
In northern Siberia the gravel soil is permanently frozen to 
a depth of several hundred feet and contains the intact carcasses 
of elephants and rhinoceroses of Pleistocene date and notably 
different from any species of these animals now in existence. 
Sometimes such a carcass is disinterred from a bluff by the 
cutting action of a stream and is in a state of nearly complete 
preservation, with hide, hair and flesh almost as in an animal 
freshly killed. From these remains it has been learned that 
the {Mammoth was an elephant densely covered with hair and 
wool, just as he was depicted in the carvings and cave-paintings 


t Extinct. 


40 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


of Pleistocene Man in Europe, where {Mammoth bones have 
been abundantly found, and also that there were Siberian 
rhinoceroses similarly protected against the cold. tMammoth 
remains with hide and flesh, but much less complete, have like- 
wise been found in Alaska. 

In a cavern in southern Patagonia an expedition from the 
La Plata Museum discovered, with the remains of a gigantic, 
extinct tground-sloth, large pieces of the skin still covered 
with hair and affording most welcome information as to the 
colouration of these most curious animals. The skin had been 
preserved from decay by deep burial in dry dust. Mummies 
of Pleistocene rodents have been found in the dry caves of 
Portugal, whereas in the ordinary caves which are damp or 
wet, only bones are preserved. Unfortunately, as has been 
said, such instances of complete preservation are very rare, and 
none are known of mammals more ancient than those of the 
Pleistocene epoch. 

In general, it may be said that the higher the geological 
antiquity of a skeleton is, the greater is the chemical alteration 
which it has undergone. Bones of Pleistocene or later date 
have, as a rule, suffered little change beyond the loss of more 
or less of their animal matter, the amount of such loss depending 
chiefly upon exposure to the air. Bones which, for thousands 
or tens of thousands of years, have been buried in dense cave- 
earth, in an antiseptic peat-bog, or in asphalt, are often per- 
fectly sound and fresh when taken up. Skeletons of the ante- 
cedent (Tertiary) period are, on the other hand, very frequently 
petrified; that is to say, the original substance of the bones 
has been completely removed and replaced by some stony 
material, most commonly lime or flint. This substitution took 
place very gradually, molecule by molecule, so that not only 
is the form of the bone or tooth most accurately reproduced, 
but the internal, microscopic structure is perfectly retained 
and may be studied to as great advantage as in the case of 


modern animals. 
t Extinct. 


METHODS — PALZONTOLOGICAL 41 


While, save in the rarest instances, only the hard parts of 
fossil mammals remain to testify of their structure, very im- 
portant information as to the size, form and external character 
of the brain may be secured from ‘‘brain-casts,”’ which may 
be natural or artificial, The pressure of the mud, sand or 
other material, in which the fossil was embedded, filled up all 
openings in the skeleton and, as the brain decayed and dis- 
appeared, its place was taken by this material, which subse- 
quently hardened and solidified and quite accurately reproduces 
the external form and character of the brain. When a fossil 
skull is exposed and shattered by weathering, the natural 
brain-cast often remains intact, and a great many such speci- 
mens are in the collections. An artificial cast is made by saw- 
ing open the cranial cavity, cleaning out the stony matrix , 
which fills it and then pouring liquid gelatine or plaster of 
Paris into the cavity. These artificial casts are often quite 
as satisfactory as the natural ones. 

As has been shown above, the history of the mammals is 
recorded, save.in a very few instances, in terms of bones and 
teeth and, to the uninitiated, it might well seem that little 
could be accomplished with such materials. However, it is 
the task, and the perfectly feasible task, of paleontology to 
make these dry bones live. It is a current and exceedingly 
mischievous notion that the paleontologist can reconstruct 
a vanished animal from a single bone or tooth and, in spite of 
repeated slayings, this delusion still flourishes and meets one 
in modern literature at every turn. No doubt, much of the 
scepticism with which attempts to restore extinct animals 
are met by many intelligent people is traceable to the wide- 
spread belief that such off-hand and easy-going methods 
are used in the work. So far from being able to make a trust- 
worthy reconstruction from a few scattered bones, competent 
paleontologists have been sometimes led completely astray 
in associating the separated parts of the same skeleton. More 
than once it has happened that the dissociated skull and feet 


42 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


of one and the same animal have been assigned to entirely 
different groups, just because no one could have ventured, in 
advance of experience, to suppose that such a skull and teeth 
could belong to a creature with such feet. In all these cases 
(and they are few) the error has been finally corrected by 
the discovery of the skeleton with all its essential parts in 
their natural connection. 

While the number of complete skeletons of Tertiary mam- 
mals as yet collected is comparatively small, it is often possible 
to construct a nearly complete specimen from several imperfect 
ones, all of which can be positively shown to belong to the same 
species. Such composite skeletons are almost as useful as 
those in which all the parts pertain to a single individual, 
though in making the drawings it is not easy to avoid slight 
errors of proportion. It must not be supposed that no success- 
ful restoration of missing bones is practicable ; on the contrary, 
this can often be done very easily, but only when all the essential 
parts of the skeleton are known. 

Even if an unlimited number of perfect skeletons were 
available, of what use would they be? A skeleton is a very 
different looking object from a living animal, and how is it 
possible to infer the latter from the former? Do the many 
restorations of extinct mammals which this book owes to the 
skill of Mr. Horsfall and Mr. Knight deserve any other con- 
sideration than that due to pleasing, graceful or grotesque 
fancies, with no foundation of solid fact? 'To answer these 
questions, it is necessary first to consider the relations of the 
bony structure to the entire organism and then to discuss the 
principles in accordance with which the restorations have been 
made. 

The skeleton is far from being merely the mechanical frame- 
work of the animal. Such a frame-work it is, of course, but 
it is much more than that ; it is the living and growing expres- 
sion of the entire organism and is modified, not only by age, 
but by the conditions of the environment and accidental cir- 


METHODS — PALZONTOLOGICAL 43 


cumstances as well. The bones of the same individual differ 
very materially in early youth, maturity and old age; so long 
as the animal lives, its bones are perpetually changing, slowly 
it is true, but with ready response to needs. Not only that, 
but dislocated bones may and frequently do develop entirely 
new joints, and their internal structure is remodelled to meet 
the requirements of stresses differing in character or direction 
from those of normal, uninjured bones. The general form 
and proportions of any.mammal are determined chiefly by 
its muscular system and this may be directly and confidently 
inferred from its skeleton, for the muscles which are of im- 
portance in this connection are attached to the bones and leave 
their indelible and unmistakable mark upon them. In any 
good text-book of anatomy this extremely intimate relation 
of bone and muscle is made clear; and it is shown how each 
attachment of muscle, tendon and ligament is plainly indicated 
by rough lines, ridges, projections or depressions, which speak 
a language intelligible enough to those who have learned to 
interpret it. Given the skeleton, it is no very difficult 
task to reconstruct the muscular system in sufficient detail. 
Further, the teeth afford valuable information as to the food, 
habits and appearance of the animal, for the bulk of the viscera, 
a significant element in the general form, is principally con- 
ditioned by the character of the diet. 

Beasts of prey, which live by catching and devouring other 
animals, have a certain likeness to one another, even though 
they are in no wise related, except as all mammals are. The 
Thylacine, or so-called “Tasmanian Wolf” (Thylacynus 
cynocephalus), a marsupial and related to the opossums, is 
deceptively like the true wolves in appearance, although be- 
longing to an order (Marsupialia) almost as widely separated 
from that to which the wolves belong (Carnivora) as two 
mammalian groups well can be. This resemblance is as clearly 


indicated by the skeletons as by the living animals themselves, 
though the fundamental. differences of structure which dis- 


44 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


tinguish the marsupial from the carnivore are no less clearly 
displayed. Large herbivorous mammals too, though referable to 
very different orders, bear a strong resemblance to one another, 
the characteristic differences, so far as the living animal is 
concerned, appearing chiefly in the head. It was this general 
likeness that induced Cuvier to form his order, ‘‘Pachyder- 
mata,” which comprised elephants, rhinoceroses, hippopota- 
muses, tapirs, etc., animals that are now distributed into no 
less than three separate orders; aside from the head, all of 
these forms are quite distinctly similar in appearance. 

Of course, the external features, such as ears, tail, skin and 
hair, are most important factors in the general make-up of 
any mammal; and, as to these matters, the fossils leave us 
largely in the lurch, save in the all too rare cases, like the Si- 
berian {Mammoth, in which these external features are actually 
preserved. Two artists may so restore the same animal as 
to result in two very different pictures, and no one can posi- 
tively decide between them; just as two modern mammals, 
which are closely related and have very similar skeletons, may 
yet differ markedly in outward appearance, because of the 
different character of the skin, as do, for example, the Bornean 
and Indian rhinoceroses. Yet even in dealing with purely 
external features, we are not left altogether to conjecture. 
Ears of unusual size or form frequently leave some indication 
of this on the skull, and the presence or absence of a proboscis 
can nearly always be inferred with confidence from the char- 
acter of the bones of the nose and muzzle. The length and 
thickness of the tail may be generally directly deduced from 
the caudal vertebre, but whether it was close-haired and 
cylindrical, or bushy, or tufted at the end, or flat and trowel- 
shaped, as in the Beaver, is not determinable from the bones 
alone. 

Most uncertain of all the characters which determine 
outward appearance are the hair and the pattern of colouration ; 
the Horse and Zebra differ much more decidedly in the living 


METHODS — PALZONTOLOGICAL 45 


form than their skeletons would lead one to expect, as do also 
the Lion, the Tiger and the Leopard. The curious and ex- 
ceptional colour-pattern of the Okapi, that remarkable giraffe- 
like animal but lately discovered in the equatorial forests of 
western Africa, could never have been inferred from a study 
of the skeleton alone. However, even in the problem of colour- 
patterns there is more to go upon than sheer guess-work, for 
certain definite principles of animal colouration have been 
ascertained ; the great difficulty lies in the application of these 
principles to a particular case. It is quite certain that the 
naked, hairless skin is never primitive, but always a compara- 
tively late acquisition and, in many mammalian orders, is 
not found at all. Aside from a few domesticated animals, 
this type of skin occurs only in very large herbivorous mammals 
living in warm climates, such as elephants, rhinoceroses and 
hippopotamuses, in a few burrowers, and in marine mammals, 
like the walruses, whales, porpoises, etc. Useful hints as to the 
colouring of ancient and extinct forms may be gathered from 


—= 

72 BRUCE HORSPALL 

ims A Si i 
7 


Fic. 4. — Wild sow and pigs, showing the uniform colour of the adult and stripes of 
the young. 


46 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


a study of series of living animals, such as lizards and butter- 
flies, in which the development of a definite scheme of coloura- 
tion may be followed step by step. Young animals very fre- 
quently retain more or less distinct traces of the ancestral 
colouration, which disappear in the adult, for the develop- 
ment of the individual is, in some respects at least, an abbre- 
viated and condensed recapitulation of the history of the species. 
In many mammals which, in the adult condition, have a solid 
body-colour, the young are striped or spotted, a strong indi- 
cation that these mammals were derived from striped or spotted 
ancestors. Thus, the Wild Boar has a uniform body-colour 
in the full-grown stage, but the pigs are longitudinally striped ; 
many deer are spotted throughout life, as in the Fallow Deer, 
the Axis Deer of India and others, but the great majority of 
the species, including all the American forms, have uniform 
colouration, while the fawns are always spotted. Lion cubs 


Fic. 5.— Fawns of the Mule Deer (Odocoileus hemionus). Compare with Fig. 83, 
p. 167. (By permission of the N. Y. Zoélog. Society.) 


are also spotted and the adults have a uniform tawny colour, 
and many such examples might be given. 

The study of colouration among existing animals has led 
to the conclusion that in mammals the primitive colour- 


METHODS — PALZONTOLOGICAL 47 


pattern was that of stripes, either longitudinal or transverse 
and more probably the former. In the second stage these 
bands break up into spots, which still show the longitudinal 
arrangement and may be either light on a dark ground, or 
dark on a light ground. In a third stage the spots may again 
coalesce into stripes, the course of which is at right angles to 
that of the original stripes, or the spots may disappear, leaving 
a uniform body-colour, lighter or white on the belly. These 
changes of colour-pattern have. not proceeded at a uniform 
rate in the various mammalian groups, or even within the same 
group, for an all-important factor is the mode of life of the 
particular animal. In general, it may be said that the scheme 
of colour is such as to render 
its possessor inconspicuous, or 
even invisible, and many a 
creature that seems to be very 
conspicuous and striking in a 
museum case can hardly be 
seen at all when in its natu- 
ral surroundings. Thus, Arctic 
mammals and birds, in their — yy¢. ¢.—apirus terrestris, 3 days old. 
winter dress, are white; desert Compare with Fig. 137, p. 320. (By 

5 permission of W.S. Berridge, London.) 
animals are tawny or sandy- 
brown ; forest animals are frequently striped or spotted ; while 
those that live on open plains are more commonly of uniform 
colouration. There are exceptions to these rules, but they 
hold good for the most part. From careful comparative study 
of the teeth and skeletons a clew may be gained as to the 
habits of animals and from the habits something may be 
inferred as to the colouration. 

It would, however, be misleading to claim a greater au- 
thority for these attempts at restoring a long-vanished life 
than can fairly be ascribed to them. The general form and 
proportions of the head, neck, body, tail, limbs and feet may be 
deduced with a high degree of accuracy from the skeleton, 


48 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


while the external characters of skin, hair and colouration are 
largely conjectural, but not altogether imaginary. It cannot 
be doubted that among the extinct mammals were many which, 
owing to some uncommon growth of subcutaneous fat, or some 
unusual local development of hair, were much more curious and 
bizarre in appearance than we can venture to represent them. 
If, for example, the Camel, the Horse, the Lion and the Right 
Whale were extinct and known only from their skeletons, 
such restorations as we could make of them would assuredly 
go astray in some particulars. The Camel would be pictured 
without his hump, for there is nothing in the skeleton to suggest 
it; the forelock, mane and characteristic tail of the Horse and 
the Lion’s mane would certainly not be recognized ; while the 
immense development of blubber in the head of the Whale 
gives to it a very different appearance from that which the 
skull would seem to indicate. Such cases are, however, ex- 
ceptional and restorations made by competent hands from 
complete skeletons probably give a fair notion of the appearance 
of those animals when alive. 

It will thus be sufficiently plain that the work of restora- 
tion is beset with difficulties, but that there is no good ground 
for the uncritical scepticism which summarily rejects the re- 
sults as being purely fanciful, or for the equally uncritical 
credulity which unhesitatingly accepts them as fully and in- 
contestably accurate. It is altogether likely that one of the 
main sources of error consists in making the extinct animal 
too closely resemble some existing species which is selected as 
a model. 

Too much space has perhaps been devoted to the problem 
of restoring the external form of these extinct mammals, 
a problem which, after all, is of distinctly subordinate impor- 
tance. The most valuable results which may be gained 
from a study of these fossil mammals are the answers which 
they afford to the great questions of relationship, classification 
and genetic descent, and the light which they throw upon the 


METHODS — PALZONTOLOGICAL 49 


processes of evolution and the course of geographical arrange- 
ment. The bones and teeth afford admirable means of tracing 
the gradual steps of modification by which the modern 
mammals have arisen from very different ancestors and of 
following their wanderings from region to region and continent 
to continent. It is to these questions that most of the subse- 
quent chapters are devoted. 


CHAPTER III 
THE CLASSIFICATION OF THE MAMMALIA 


THE terminology and nomenclature of science form a great 
barrier, which only too often shuts out the educated layman 
from following the course of investigation and keeping abreast 
of the discoveries in which he may be particularly interested. 
No more frequent and heartfelt complaint is uttered than that 
which decries the ‘‘scientific jargon,” and one might be tempted 
to think that this jargon was a superfluous nuisance, delib- 
erately adopted to exclude the uninitiated and guard the 
secrets of the temple from the curious intruder. As a matter 
of fact, however, this terminology, though an unquestionable 
evil from one point of view, is an indispensable implement of 
investigation and description. Ordinary language has far 
too few words for the purpose and most of the words that 
might be used lack the all-important quality of precision. 
The vernacular names of animals and plants are notoriously 
inexact and, even when not inaccurately employed, are not 
sufficiently refined and destinctive for scientific use. This 
is pre-eminently true of the New World, where the European 
settlers gave the names of the creatures with which they had 
been familiar at home to the new animals which they found in 
the western hemisphere. Some of these names, such as deer, 
wolf, fox, bear, are accurate enough for ordinary purposes, 
while others are ludicrously wrong. The bird that we call the 
Robin is altogether different from his European namesake, and 
the great stag, or Wapiti, is commonly called ‘‘Elk,” a name 
which properly belongs to the Moose. In short, it is impossible 
to gain the necessary accuracy and abundance of vocabulary 

50 


CLASSIFICATION OF THE MAMMALIA 51 


without devising an artificial terminology, drawn chiefly from 
Greek and Latin. 

In dealing with fossils, the difficulty of nomenclature be- 
comes formidable indeed. ‘The larger and more conspicuous 
mammals of the modern world are more or less familiar to all 
educated people, and such names as rhinoceros, hippopotamus, 
elephant, kangaroo, will call up a definite and fairly accurate 
image of the animal in question. For the strange creatures 
that vanished from the earth ages before the appearance of 
Man there are no vernacular names and it serves no good pur- 
pose to coin such terms. To the layman names like Uinta- 
therium or Smilodon convey no idea whatever, and all that can 
be done is to attempt to give them a meaning by illustration 
and description, using the name merely as a peg upon which 
to hang the description. 

The system of zodlogical classification which is still in use 
was largely the invention of the Swedish naturalist Linneus, 
who published it shortly. after the middle of the eighteenth 
century. As devised by Linnzus, the scheme was intended 
to express ideal relationships, whereas now it is employed to 
express real genetic affinities, so far as these can be ascertained. 
The Linnzan system is an organized hierarchy of groups, 
arranged in ascending order of comprehensiveness. In this 
scheme, what may be regarded as the unit is the species, a 
concept around which many battles have been waged and 
concerning which there is still much difference of opinion and 
usage. Originally a term in logic, it first received a definite 
meaning in Zodlogy and Botany from John Ray (1628-1705) 
who applied it to indicate a’group of animals, or plants, with 
marked common characters and freely interbreeding. Linnzus, 
though not always consistent in his expressions on the subject, 
regarded species as objective realities, concrete and actual 
things, which it was the naturalist’s business to discover and 
name, and held that they were fixed entities which had been 
separately created. This belief in the fixity and objective 


52 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


reality of species was almost universally held, until the publica- 
tion of Darwin’s ‘‘Origin of Species’ (1859) converted the 
biological world to the evolutionary faith, which declares that 
the only objective reality among living things is the individual 
animal or plant. 

According to this modern conception, a species may be 
defined as signifying a ‘‘ grade or rank assigned by systematists 
to an assemblage of organic forms which they judge to be more 
closely interrelated by common descent than they are related to 
forms judged to be outside the species ”’ (P. Chalmers Mitchell). 
The technical name of a species, which is either in Latin, or in 
latinized form, is in two words, one of which designates the 
genus (see below) and the other the particular species of that 
genus, as, for example, Equus caballus, the species Horse, EF. 
przewalskii, the Asiatic Wild Horse, EH. asinus, the species 
Ass, etc. In order to identify a species, the genus to which 
it belongs must be stated, hence the term, binomial system 
of nomenclature, which Linneus introduced, becoming ¢ri- 
nomial when the name of a subspecies is added, a modern re- 
finement on the older method. A very large species (7.e. 
one which is represented by great numbers of individuals), 
extending over a very large area, is often divisible into groups 
of minor rank, as varieties, geographical races or subspecies. 
Taking the species as the unit in the scheme of classification, 
the varieties and subspecies may be considered as fractions. 

There is great difference of usage among writers on sys- 
tematic zodlogy in the manner of applying the generally ac- 
cepted concept of species, some making their groups very much 
more comprehensive than others, according as they are 
“‘lumpers”’ or ‘‘splitters,” to employ the slang phrase. The 
difficulty lies in the fact that there are no fixed and definite 
criteria, by which a given series of individuals can be surely 
distinguished as a variety, a species or a genus; it is a matter 
for the judgment and experience of the systematist himself. 
The individuals of a species may differ quite widely among 


CLASSIFICATION OF THE MAMMALIA 53 


themselves, provided that they are all connected by inter- 
gradations, and the more or less constant varieties or sub- 
species are to be distinguished from the individual variants, 
which are inconstant and fluctuating. No two specimens 
agree exactly in every particular, but if a very large suite of 
them be compared, it will be found that the great majority 
depart but little from the average or norm of the species, and 
the wider the departure from the norm, the fewer the indi- 
viduals which are so aberrant. Taking so easily measured a 
character as size, for example, and measuring several hundred 
or a thousand representatives of some species, we see that a 
large majority are of average size, a little more or a little less, 
while very large or very small individuals are rare in propor- 
tion to the amount by which they exceed or fall short of the 
norm. Subspecies or varieties are marked by differences 
which are relatively constant, but not of sufficient importance 
to entitle them to rank as species. 

A group of the second rank is called a genus, which may 
contain few or many species, or only asingle one. In the latter 
case the species is so isolated in character that it cannot prop- 
erly be included in the same genus with any other species. 
A large genus, one containing numerous species, is frequently 
divisible into several subgenera, each comprising a group of 
species which are more similar to one another than they are 
to the other species of the genus. 

The third of the main groups in ascending order is the 
family, which ordinarily consists of a number of genera united 
by the possession of certain common characters, which, at 
the same time, distinguish them from other genera, though 
a single isolated genus may require a separate family for its 
reception. Just as it is often convenient to divide a genus 
into subgenera, so families containing many genera are usually 
divisible into subfamilies, as indicative of closer relationships 
within the family. The name of the family is formed from 
that of the genus first described or best known, with the 


54 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


termination -ide, while that for the subfamily is ne. To 
take an example, all the genera of cats, living and extinct, are 
assembled in the family Felide (from the genus Felis) which 
falls naturally into two subfamilies. One of these, the Feline, 
includes the true cats, a very homogeneous group, both the 
existing and the extinct genera; the other subfamily, that of 
the highly interesting series of the ‘‘Sabre-tooth Tigers,” 
called the {Machairodontine, comprises only extinct forms. 

The fourth principal rank or grade is the order, distin- 
guished by some fundamental peculiarity of structure and 
usually including a large number of families. Some of the 
orders, however, contain but a single family, a single genus, 
or even, it may be, a single species, because that species is in 
important structural characters so unlike any other that it 
cannot properly be put into the same order with anything else. 
Such isolation invariably implies that the species or genus in 
question is the sole survivor of what was once an extensive 
series. As in the case of the family and the genus, it is often 
necessary: to recognize the degrees of closer and more remote 
affinity by the use of suborders. Existing Artiodactyla, or 
even-toed hoofed animals, an enormous assemblage, may con- 
veniently be divided into four suborders: (1) Suina, swine and 
the Hippopotamus; (2) Tylopoda, the ‘Camel and Llama; 
(3) Tragulina, ‘‘mouse-deer,”’ or chevrotains; (4) Pecora, or 
true ruminants, deer, giraffes, antelopes, sheep, goats, oxen, 
etc. In nearly all of the orders such subordinal divisions are 
desirable and it is frequently useful to employ still further 
subdivisions, like superfamilies, which are groups of allied 
families within the suborder, sections and the like. 

In the Linnzan scheme, the next group in ascending rank 
is the class, which includes all mammals whatsoever, but the 
advance of knowledge has made it necessary to interpolate 
several intermediate grades between the class and the order, 
which, in the descending scale, are subclass, infraclass, cohort, 

+ Extinct. 


CLASSIFICATION OF THE MAMMALIA 55 


superorder and others, while above the class comes the sub- 
kingdom of Vertebrata, or animals with internal skeletons, 
which includes mammals, birds, reptiles, amphibians and 
fishes. 

A word should be said as to the conventions of printing 
technical names. The names of all species are, in American 
practice, printed in small letters, but many Europeans write 
specific terms which are proper nouns or adjectives with a 
capital. Generic, family and all groups of higher rank are 
always written with a capital, unless used in vernacular form, 
e.g. Artiodactyla and artiodactyls. It is also a very general 
custom to give capitals to vernacular names of species, as the 
Mammoth, the Coyote, the Black Bear. Genus and species 
are almost invariably in italics, groups of higher rank in roman. 

Such a scheme of classification as is outlined above has a 
decidedly artificial air about it and yet it serves a highly use- 
ful purpose in enabling us to express in brief and condensed 
form what is known or surmised as to the mutual relationships 
of the great and diversified assemblage of mammals. The 
scheme has been compared to the organization of an army into 
company, battalion, regiment, brigade, division, army corps, 
etc., and there is a certain obvious likeness ; but the differences 
go deeper, for an army is an assemblage of similar units, 
mechanically grouped into bodies of equal size. A much closer 
analogy is the genealogical or family tree, which graphically 
expresses the relationships and ramifications of an ancient and 
wide-spread family, though even this analogy may easily be 
pushed too far. Blood-relationship is, in short, the under- 
lying principle of all schemes of classification which postulate 
the theory of evolution. 

The system of Linnzus, as expanded and improved by 
modern zoélogists, has proved itself to be admirably adapted 
to the study of the living world; but it is much more difficult 
to apply it to the fossils, for they introduce a third dimension, 
so to speak, for which the system was not designed. This 


56 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


third dimension is the successive modification in time of a 
genetically connected series. The cumulative effect of such 
modifications is so great that only very elastic definitions 
will include the earlier and later members of an unbroken series. 
In attempting to apply the Linnean system to the successive 
faunas (i.e. assemblages of animals) which have inhabited the 
earth, paleontologists have employed various devices. One 
such method is to classify each fauna without reference to 
those which precede and follow it, but this has the great draw- 
back of obscuring and ignoring the relationships, to express 
which is the very object of classification. Another and more 
logical method is to treat species and genera as though they 
belonged to the present order of things, for these groups, 
particularly species, were relatively short-lived, when regarded 
from the standpoint of geological time, and either became so 
modified as to require recognition as new species and genera, or 
died out without leaving descendants. Groups of higher rank, 
families, orders, etc., are treated as genetic series and include 
the principal line or stock and such side-branches as did not 
ramify too widely or depart too far from the main stem. Under 
the first arrangement, the horses, a long history of which has 
been deciphered, would be divided into several families ; under 
the second, they are all included in a single family. 

One of the most interesting results of palzontological 
study is the discovery that in many families, such as the horses, 
rhinoceroses and camels, there are distinct series which in- 
dependently passed through parallel courses of development, 
the series of each family keeping a remarkably even pace in 
the degree of progressive modification. Such a minor genetic 
series within a family is called a phylum, not a very happy 
selection, for the same term had been previously employed 
in a much wider sense, as equivalent to the subkingdom. In 
both uses of the term the underlying principle, that of genetic 
series, is the same ; the difference is in the comprehensiveness 
of meaning. 


CLASSIFICATION OF THE MAMMALIA 57 


It must be admitted that no method, yet devised, of apply- 
ing the Linnzan scheme to the fossils is altogether satisfactory, 
and indeed it is only the breaks and gaps in the paleontological 
record which makes possible any use of the scheme. Could 
we obtain approximately complete series of all the animals 
that have ever lived upon the earth, it would be necessary to 
invent some entirely new scheme of classification in order to 
express their mutual relationships. 

In the present state of knowledge, classification can be made 
only in a preliminary and tentative sort of way and no doubt 
differs widely from that which will eventually be reached. 
So far as the mammals are concerned, part of the problem would 
seem to be quite easy and part altogether uncertain. Some 
mammalian groups appear to be well defined and entirely 
natural assemblages of related forms, while others are plainly 
heterogeneous and artificial, yet there is no better way of 
dealing with them until their history has been ascertained. 
The mutual relations of the grand groups, or orders, are still 
very largely obscure. 

The class Mammalia is first of all divided into two sub- 
classes of very unequal size. Of these, the first, PROTO- 
THERIA, is represented in the modern world by few forms, 
the so-called Duck-billed Mole (Ornithorhynchus paradoxrus) 
and Spiny Anteaters (Hchidna) of Australia. They are 
the lowest and most primitive of the mammals and retain 
several structural characters of the lower vertebrates. Their 
most striking characteristic is that the young are not brought 
forth alive, but are hatched from eggs, as in the reptiles, birds 
and lower vertebrates generally. 

The second subclass, EUTHERIA, which includes all 
other mammals, is again divided into two very unequal groups 
or infraclasses. One of these, DrpELPHIA, contains but a single 
order, the Marsupialia, or pouched mammals, now in existence, 
and is also very primitive in many respects, though far more 
advanced than the Prototheria. The young, though born alive, 


58 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


are brought forth in a very immature state and, with the excep- 
tion of one genus (Perameles) the foetus is not, attached by 
a special structure, the placenta, to the womb of the mother. 
Like the Prototheria, the Marsupials, which were once spread 
all over the world, are at present almost entirely confined to 
Australia and the adjoining islands, the Opossums of North 
and South America, and one small genus (Cenolestes) in the 
latter continent being the exceptions to this rule of distribution. 
The second and vastly larger infraclass, the MoNoDELPHIA, 
is characterized by the placenta, a special growth, partly 
of foetal and partly of maternal origin, by means of which the 
unborn young are attached to the mother and nourished during 
the foetal period; they are born in a relatively mature state 
and are generally able to walk immediately after birth and 
resemble their parents in nearly all respects. 

The vast assemblage of placental mammals, which range 
over all the continents, are divided into numerous orders, most 
of which appear to be natural groups of truly related forms, 
while some are but doubtfully so and others again are clearly 
unnatural and arbitrary. As has already been pointed out, 
the mutual relationships of these orders, as expressed in 
groups of higher than ordinal rank, offer a much more difficult 
problem, chiefly because our knowledge of the history of mam- 
mals is most deficient just where that history is most important 
and significant, namely, in its earlier portion. In many in- 
stances, the evolution of genera and families may be followed 
out within the limits of the order in a very convincing way, 
but very rarely can the origin of an order be demonstrated. 
When the history began to be full and detailed,the orders had 
nearly all been established, and, until the steps of their diver- 
gence and differentiation can be followed out, their mutual 
relationships can be discussed only from the standpoint of 
their likenesses and differences. In the valuation of these, there 
is much room for difference of opinion, and such difference 
is not lacking. On the other hand, concerning the number 


CLASSIFICATION OF THE MAMMALIA 59 


and limits of the orders themselves there is very general 
agreement. 

In the following table only the major groups are included 
and those which are extinct are marked with a dagger (f). 
The scheme is almost identical with that given in Professor 
Osborn’s ‘‘ Age of Mammals,” the few points in which I should 
prefer a somewhat different arrangement being waived in the 
interests of uniformity and avoidance of confusion. A few 
changes are, however, made in matters which I regard as too 
important to ignore. 


I. Susctass PROTOTHERIA. Egg-laying Mammals. 
1. ORpDER f PROTODONTA. 
2. ORDER MONOTREMATA, e.g. the Duck-billed Mole and Spiny 
Anteaters. 
II. Susctass EUTHERIA. Viviparous Mammals. 
A. InrracLtass DIDELPHIA. Pouched Mammals. 
1. OnpER t TRICONODONTA. 
2. OrpER MARSUPIALIA. 
a. SUBORDER Polyprotodonta. Opossums, carnivorous and 
insectivorous Marsupials. 
b. SUBORDER  Diprotodonta. Herbivorous Marsupials; 
Kangaroos, etc. 
c. SuBoRDER f Allotheria. 
B. Inrractass MONODELPHIA. Placental Mammals. 
AA. Consort UNGUICULATA. Clawed Mammals. 
1. OrpER | TRITUBERCULATA. 
2. OrpER INSECTIVORA. Insect-eating Mammals. 
a. SUBORDER Lipotyphla, e.g. Moles, Hedgehogs, Shrews, etc. 
b. SuBorDER t Hyopsodonta. 
c. SuBORDER f Proglires. 
d. SUBORDER Menotyphla, e.g. Tree and Jumping Shrews. 
. ORvER ¢ TILLODONTIA. | 
. ORDER DERMOPTERA. The Flying Lemur. 
. ORDER CHIROPTERA. Bats. 
. ORDER CARNIVORA. Beasts of Prey. 
a. SuBORDER { Creodonta. Primitive Flesh-eaters. 
b. SuBORDER Fissipedia. Wolves, Bears, Weasels, Cats, etc. 
c. SUBORDER Pinnipedia. | Marine Carnivores — Seals and 
Walruses. 
7. ORDER RODENTIA. Gnawing Mammals. 
a. SUBORDER Duplicidentata, e.g. Hares, Rabbits, Pikas. 


O om 


60 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


BB. 


‘CC. 


b. SuBoRDER Simplicidentata, ¢.g. Squirrels, Marmots, 
Beavers, Rats, Mice, Porcupines, etc. 
8. OnpER {| THENIODONTIA. 
9. OnDER EDENTATA. 
a. SUBORDER Pilosa. Hairy Edentates, eg. Sloths, Ant- 
eaters, etc. 
b. SUBORDER Loricata. Armoured Edentates, e.g. Armadil- 
los, t Glyptodonts. 
10. OrpDER PHOLIDOTA. Scaly Anteaters or Pangolins. 
11. OnpER TUBULIDENTATA. The Aard Vark. - 
Conort PRIMATES. Mammals with nails. 
12. OnpDER PRIMATES. 
a. SUBORDER Lemuroidea. Lemurs. 
b. SuBORDER Anthropoidea. Monkeys, Apes, Man. 
Conort UNGULATA. Hoofed Mammals. 
13. OrpER f CONDYLARTHRA. 
14. OrpER | AMBLYPODA. 
15. ORDER ARTIODACTYLA. Even-toed Hoofed Mammals. 
a. SUBORDER f{ Artiodactyla Primitiva. 
b. SuBoRDER Suina. Swine, Peccary, Hippopotamus. 
c. SUBORDER Tylopoda. Camels, Llama, Guanaco. 
d. SuBoRDER Tragulina. Mouse-deer or Chevrotains. 
e. SUBORDER Pecora, e.g. Deer, Antelopes, Sheep, Oxen, etc. 
16. ORDER PERISSODACTYLA. Odd-toed Hoofed Mammals. 
a. SUBORDER Chelodactyla, e.g. Horses, Tapirs, Rhi- 
noceroses, etc. : 
b. SuBoRDER'f Ancylopoda. f Chalicotheres. 
17. OrDER PROBOSCIDEA. Elephants and } Mastodons. 
18. OrpDER | BARYTHERIA. 
19. OrpER | EMBRITHOPODA. 
20. Orper SIRENIA. Sea-cows and Dugongs. 
21. OrpER HYRACOIDEA. Conies. 
22. OrpER t TOXODONTIA, 
a. SUBORDER {| Toxodonta. 
b. SuBoRDER t+ Typotheria. 
c. SuBORDER f{ Entelonychia. 
d. Susorper f Pyrotheria. 
23. OrpER | ASTRAPOTHERIA. 
24. OrpER t LITOPTERNA. 


DD. Conort CETACEA. Whales, Dolphins, Porpoises. 


25. Onper t ZEUGLODONTIA. 

26. ORDER ODONTOCETI. Toothed Whales, Dolphins, 
Porpoises. 

27. ORDER MYSTACOCETI. Whalebone Whales. 


CHAPTER IV 
THE SKELETON AND TEETH OF MAMMALS 


WITH very rare exceptions, and those only of the latest 
geological period (Quaternary), the fossil remains of mammals 
consist only of bones and teeth. The evolutionary changes, 
so far as these are preserved, are recorded therefore in terms of 
dental and skeletal modifications. To render these changes 
intelligible, it is necessary to give some account of the mam- 
malian skeleton and teeth, with no more use of ‘technical 
language than is unavoidable; ordinary speech does not 
furnish a sufficient number of terms, nor are most of these 
sufficiently precise. With the aid of the figures, the reader 
may easily gain a knowledge of the skeleton which is quite 
adequate for the discussion of fossil series, which will follow 
in the subsequent chapters. 


I. Tue SKELETON 


I. The most obvious distinction of the skeletal parts is 
into axial and appendicular portions, the former comprising 
the skull, backbone or vertebral column, ribs and breastbone 
or sternum, and the latter including the limb-girdles, limbs 
and feet. In the axial skeleton only the ribs and certain bones 
of the skull are paired, but in the appendicular all the bones 
are in pairs, for the right and left sides respectively. 

The skull is a highly complex structure, made up of many 
parts, most of which are immovably fixed together, and per- 
forming many functions of supreme importance. In the first 
place, it affords secure lodgement and protection for the brain 
and higher organs of sense, those of smell, sight and hearing, 

61 


62 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


and second, it carries the teeth and, by its movable jaws, 
enables these to bite, to take in and masticate food. The 
portion of the skull which carries the brain, eyes and ears, is 
called the cranium, and the portion in front of this is the face, 
the boundary between the two being an oblique line drawn 
immediately in front of the eye-socket (Fig. 7). <A great 


Fic. 7.—Skull of Wolf (Canis-occidentalis). P.Mz., premaxillary. Mz., maxillary. 
Na., nasal. L., lachrymal.. Ma., malar or jugal. Fr., frontal. Pa., parietal. 
- 8q., squamosal. Zyg., zygomatic: process of squamosal. O.S., orbitosphenoid. 
Pl., palatine. M., mandible. cor., coronoid process of mandible. m.c., condyle 
‘of mandible. ang., angular process of mandible. p.g., postglenoid process of 
squamosal. Ty., tympanic (auditory bulla). mas., mastoid. p.oc., paroccipital 
process. con., occipital condyle. #z.0., exoccipital. S.O., supraoccipital. 


deal of the endless variety in the form of the skull of different 
mammals depends upon the differing proportions of cranium 
and face. In the human skull, for example, the cranium is 
enormously developed and forms a great dome, while the face 
is shortened almost to the limit of possibility ; the skull of the 
Horse, on the other hand, goes to nearly the opposite extreme 
of elongation of the facial and shortening of the cranial region. 
The posterior surface of the skull, or occiput, is made up of 
four bones, which in most adult mammals are fused into a 
single occipital bone. At the base of the occiput is a large 
opening, the foramen magnum, through which the spinal cord 
passes to its junction with the brain; and on each side of the 
opening is a large, smooth, oval. prominence, the occipital 
condyles, by means of which the skull is articulated with the 


SKELETON AND TEETH 63 


neck. The paroccipital processes are bony styles of varying 
length, which are given off, one on each side external to the 
condyles. The boundary of the occiput is marked by a ridge, 
the occipital crest, which varies greatly in prominence, but is 
very well marked in the more primitive forms and tends to 
disappear in the more highly specialized ones. The roof 
and much of the sides of the cranium are formed by two pairs 
of large bones, the parietals behind and the frontals in advance ; 
along the median line of the cranial roof, where the two parietals 
meet, is usually another ridge, the sagittal crest, which joins 
the occipital crest behind. The sagittal crest also varies 
greatly in prominence, being in some mammals very high and 
in others entirely absent, and, like the occipital crest, is a prim- 
itive character; as a rule, it is longest and highest in those 
mammals which have the smallest brain-capacity. As pointed 
out by Professor Leche, the development of the sagittal crest 
is conditioned by the relative proportions of the brain-case and 
the jaws. Powerful jaws and a small brain-case necessitate 
the presence of the crest, in order to provide sufficient surface 
of attachment for the temporal muscles, which are important 
in mastication, while with large brain-case and weak jaws the 
crest is superfluous. Though the brain-case proper may be 
quite small, yet it may have its surface enormously increased 
by great thickening of the cranial bones, as is true of elephants 
and rhinoceroses, and in them sufficient surface for attachment 
is afforded to the muscles without the development of a crest. 

The structure of these cranial bones, more particularly of 
the parietals, is subject to important changes; in most mam- 
mals they are of moderate thickness and have dense layers, 
or ‘‘tables,”’ forming the outer and inner surfaces and, between 
these, a layer of spongy bone. In many large mammals, 
however, especially those which have heavy horns or tusks, the 
cranial bones become enormously thick and the spongy layer 
is converted into a series of communicating chambers, or 
sinuses, the partitions between which serve as braces, thus 


64 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


making the bone very strong in proportion to its weight. 
Sinuses are very generally present in the frontals and communi- 
cate by small openings with the nasal passage, even in genera 


Fie. 8.—Skull of Wolf, top view. Fic. 9.—Skull of Wolf, view of base. 
' P.Mz., premaxillary. Na., nasal. P.Mz., premaxillary. Mz., palatine 
Ma., malar or jugal. L., lachrymal. process of maxillary. Pl., palatine. 
Fr., frontal. Sg., squamosal. Pa., Fr., frontal. Pt., parietal. Ma., 
parietal. §.O., supraoccipital. malar or jugal.- Sq., glenoid ‘cavity 


of squamosal. ; B.S., basisphenoid. 
of moderate size and with- faidiices tal axe, carnaval 
out horns or tusks. The process. con... occipital condyle. 
frontals form the roof of alae | 
the eye-sockets, or orbits, and usually there is a projection 
from each frontal, which marks the hinder border of the 
orbit and is therefore called the postorbital process. The roof 
of the facial region is made by the nasals, which are com- 


monly long and narrow bones, but vary greatly in form and 


SKELETON AND TEETH 65 


proportions in different mammals; in those which have a 
proboscis, like tapirs and elephants, or a much inflated snout, 
such as the Moose (Alce) or the Saiga Antelope (Saiga tatarica) 
the nasals are always very much shortened and otherwise 
modified in form. 

The anterior end of the skull is formed by a pair of rather 
small bones, the premazillaries, which carry the incisor teeth ; 
they bound the sides of the nasal opening, or anterior nares, 
reaching to the nasals, when the latter are of ordinary length ; 
they also form the front end of the hard or bony palate, which 
divides the nasal passage from the mouth. The mazillaries, 
or upper jaw-bones, make up nearly all of the facial region on 
each side and send inward to the median line from each side 
a bony plate which together constitute the greater part of the 
hard palate; the remainder of the upper teeth are implanted 
in the maxillaries. A varying proportion of the hinder part 
of the hard palate is formed by the palatines, which also en- 
close the posterior nares, the opening by which the nasal passage 
enters the back part of the mouth. The maxillary of each 
side extends back to the orbit, which it bounds anteriorly and 
in the antero-superior border of which is the usually small 
lachrymal. The inferior, and more or less of the anterior, 
border of the orbit is made by the cheek-bone (malar or jugal) 
which may or may not have a postorbital process extending 
up toward that of the frontal; when the two processes meet, 
the erbit is completely encircled by bone, but only in monkeys, 
apes and Man is there a bony plate given off from the inner 
side of the postorbital processes, which extends to the cranial 
wall and converts the orbit into a funnel-shaped cavity. For 
most of its length, the jugal projects freely outward from the 
side of the skull and extends posteriorly beneath a similar bar 
of bone, the zygomatic process of the squamosal. This process 
and the jugal together constitute the zygomatic arch, which on 
each side of the skull stands out more or less boldly, and the 
size and thickness of which are subject to great variation in 


F 


66 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


different mammals, the massiveness of the arch being pro- 
portional to the power of the jaws. One of the principal 
muscles of mastication (the masseter) is attached to the zygo- 
matic arch. 

The squamosal itself is a large plate, which makes up a great 
part of the side-wall of the cranium and articulates above with 
the frontal and parietal; it also supports the lower jaw, the 
articular surface for which is called the glenoid cavity. The 
lower jaw is held in place by the postglenoid process, which is 
a projection, usually a transverse ridge, behind the cavity. 
Back of the postglenoid process is the entrance to the middle 
ear, the auditory meatus, which may be merely an irregular hole, 
or a more or less elongated tube. The meatus is an opening 
into the tympanic, a bone which at birth is a mere ring and in 
some mammals remains permanently in that condition, but 
as a rule develops into a swollen, olive-shaped auditory bulla, 
which sometimes reaches enormous proportions, especially 
in nocturnal mammals. The labyrinth of the internal ear is 
contained in the periotic, a very dense bone which is con- 
cealed in the interior of the cranium, but in many mammals 
a portion of it, the mastoid, is exposed on the surface between 
the squamosal and occipital. 

The lower jaw-bone (inferior maxillary, or mandible) is the 
only freely movable element of the skull; it consists of two 
halves which meet anteriorly at the chin in a contact of greater 
or less length, called the symphysis. In nearly all. young 
mammals and in many adult forms the two halves of the lower 


jaw are separate and are held together at the symphysis only | 
by ligaments, while in others, as in Man, they are indistinguish- 


ably fused to form a single bone. Each half consists of two 
portions, a horizontal part or ramus and an ascending ramus 
or vertical part ; the former supports all of the lower teeth, and 
its length, depth and thickness are very largely conditioned by 
the number and size of those teeth. The ascending ramus is 
a broad, rather thin plate, divided at the upper end into two 


SKELETON AND TEETH 67 


portions, the hinder one of which terminates in the condyle, 
a rounded, usually semicylindrical projection, which fits into 
the glenoid cavity of the squamosal. The anterior portion 
of the ascending ramus ends above in the coronoid process, which 
serves for the insertion of the temporal muscle, the upper 
portion of which is attached to the walls of the cranium and 
thus, when the muscle is contracted, the jaws are firmly closed ; 
the coronoid process passes inside of the zygomatic arch. The 
lower jaw is therefore a lever of the third order, in which the 
power is applied between the weight (7.e. the food, the resistance 
of which is to be overcome) and the fulcrum, which is the 
condyle. At the postero-inferior end of the ascending ramus 
is the angle, the form of which is characteristically modified 
in the various mammalian orders and is thus employed for 
purposes of classification. 

The hyoid arch is a U-shaped series of small and slender 
bones, with an unpaired element closing the arch below; 
each vertical arm of the U is attached to the tympanic of its 
own side and the whole forms a flexible support for the tongue, 
but with no freely movable joint like that between the lower 
jaw and the squamosal. 

The mammalian skull in its primitive form may be thought 
of as a tube divided into two parts, of which the hinder one is 
the brain-chamber, or cranial cavity, and the forward one the 
nasal chamber or passage. With the growth of the brain and 
consequent enlargement of the cranium, this tubular character 
is lost ; and various modifications of the teeth, jaws and facial 
region, the development of horns and tusks, bring about the 
many changes which the skull has undergone. 

This brief sketch of the skull-structure is very incomplete, 
several of its elements having been altogether omitted and only 
those parts described which are needful in working out the 
history and descent of the various mammalian groups. 

The second portion of the axial skeleton is the backbone, 
or vertebral column, which is made up of a number of separate 


68 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


bones called vertebra. These are so articulated together as to 
permit the necessary amount of flexibility and yet retain the 
indispensable degree of strength. The function of the back- 
bone is a twofold one: (1) to afford a firm support to the body 
and give points of attachment to the limbs, and (2) to carry the 
spinal cord, or great central axis of the nervous system, in such 
a manner that it shall be protected against injury, a matter of 
absolutely vital necessity. 

While the vertebre differ greatly in form and appearance in 
the various regions of the neck, body and tail, in adaptation 
to the various degrees of mobility and strength which are 
required of them, yet they are all constituted upon the same 
easily recognizable plan. The principal mass of bone in each 
vertebra is the body, or centrum, which is typically a cylinder, 
or modification of that form, and the two ends of the cylinder 
are the faces, by which the successive vertebre are in contact 
with one another. In the living ariimal, however, the successive 
centra are not in actual contact, but are separated by disks of 
cartilage (gristle) which greatly add to the elasticity of the 
column. From the upper surface of the centrum arises an 
arch of bone, the neural arch, enclosing with the centrum the 
neural canal, through which runs the spinal cord. As already 
mentioned, the protection of the spinal cord is essential to the 
life of the animal, yet this protection must be combined with 
a certain flexibility, both lateral and vertical. Mere contact 
of the centra, even though these be held in place by ligaments, 
would not give the column strength to endure, without dis- 
location, the great muscular stresses which are put upon it. 
Additional means of articulation between the successive 
vertebre are therefore provided, and these vary in size, form 
and position in different regions of the backbone, in nice adjust- 
ment to the amount of motion and degree of strength needed 
at any particular part of the column. Of these additional 
means of articulation, which are called the zygapophyses, each 
vertebra has two pairs, an anterior and a posterior pair, placed 


SKELETON AND TEETH 69 


upon the neural arch. From the summit of the arch arises 
the neural spine, a more or less nearly straight rod or plate of 
bone, which may be enormously long or extremely short, 
massive or slender, in accordance with the muscular attach- 
ments which must be provided for. Finally, should be men- 
tioned the transverse processes, rod-like or 
plate-like projections of bone, which arise, 
one on each side of the vertebra, usually 
from the centrum, less commonly from the 
neural arch; these also differ greatly in form 
and size in the various regions of the column. ‘ 
Anatomists distinguish several other pro- eee ae ee 


cesses of the vertebra, but for our purpose 
it is not necessary to take these into con- 
sideration. 

Five different regions of the backbone 
may be distinguished, in each of which the 
vertebree are modified in a characteristic 


vertebra of Wolf 
from the front. cn., 
centrum. r., facet 
for the head of the 
rib. r’., facet for 
the tubercle of the 
rib. ér., transverse 
process. pr.z., ante- 
rior zygapophyses. 


way. There is (1) the cervical region, or 8?» neural spine. 


neck, the vertebre of which, among mammals (with only one 
or two exceptions) are always seven in number, however long 
or short the neck may be; the immoderately long neck of 
the Giraffe has no more and the almost invisible neck of 
the Whale has no less, and thus the elongation of the neck 
is accomplished by lengthening the individual vertebre and 
not by increasing their number. (2) Those vertebre to 
which ribs are attached are named dorsal or thoracic and 
can always be recognized by the pits or articular facets 
which receive the heads of the ribs. (3) Behind the dorsal 
is the lumbar region, or that of the loins, made up of a num- 
ber of vertebre which carry no ribs. The dorso-lumbars are 
known collectively as the trunk-vertebre and are generally 
quite constant in number for a given group of mammals, though 
often differently divided between the two regions in different 
members of the same group. In the Artiodactyla, for example, 


70 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


there are very constantly 19 trunk-vertebre, but the Hippo- 
potamus has 15 dorsals and 4 lumbars, the Reindeer (Rangifer) 
14.D., 5 L., the Ox (Bos taurus) 13 D., 6 L., the Camel (Camelus 
dromedarius) 12 D. and 7 L. (4) Next follows the sacrum, 
which consists of a varying number of coalesced vertebre. 
The number of sacral vertebre varies from 2 to 18, but is 
usually from 3 to 5. (5) Finally, there are the caudal vertebra, 
or those of the tail, which are extremely variable in number 
and size, depending upon the length and thickness of the tail. 

We must next consider briefly some of the structural features 
which characterize the vertebre of the different regions. 
(1) The length of the neck varies greatly in different mammals 
and, up to a certain point, flexibility increases with length, but, 
as the number of 7 cervicals is almost universally constant 
among mammals and the lengthening of the neck is accom- 
plished by an elongation of the individual vertebre, a point 
is eventually reached, where greater length is accompanied 
by a diminution of mobility. For instance, in the Giraffe 
the movements of the neck are rather stiff and awkward, in 
striking contrast to the graceful flexibility of the Swan’s neck, 
which has 23 vertebre, more than three times as many. 

The first two cervical ver- 
tebre are especially and pecul- 
iarly modified, in order to 
support the skull and give to 
Fig. 11.— Atlas of Wolf, anterior end and it the necessary degree of mo- 

neural canal,’ ma, neweal ach, ur, bility upon the neck. The first 
ee ota tte Peay Yertebra, or alla, is hardly 
artery. more than a ring of bone with 
a pair of oval, cuplike depres- 

sions (anterior cotyles) upon the anterior face (superior in 
Man) into which are fitted the occipital condyles of the skull. 
By the rolling of the condyles upon the atlas is effected 
the nodding movement of the head, upward and down- 
ward, but not from side to side; this latter movement is, 


‘SKELETON AND TEETH 71 


accomplished by the partial rotation of skull and atlas to- 
gether upon the second vertebra in a manner presently to be 
explained. On the hinder aspect are two articular surfaces 
(posterior cotyles) in shape like the anterior pair, but very much 
less concave, which are in contact with corresponding surfaces 
on the second vertebra. The neural arch of the atlas is broad 
and low and the neural canal is apparently much too large 
for the spinal cord, but, in fact, only a part of the circular 
opening belongs to the neural canal. In life, the opening is 
divided by a transverse ligament into an upper portion, the 
true neural canal, and a lower portion, which lodges a pro- 
jection from the second vertebra. The atlas usually has no 
neural spine and never a prominent one; the transverse 
processes are broad, wing-like plates and each is perforated by 
a small canal, which transmits the vertebral artery. 

The second vertebra, or axis, is a little more like the ordi- 
nary vertebra, having a definite and usually elongate centrum, 
on the anterior end of which are the two ar- 
ticular surfaces for the atlas. Between these 
is a prominent projection, the odontoid pro- 
cess, which fits into the ring of the atlas and 
has a special articulation with the lower bar Nh die aie le 
of that ring. In most mammals the odon- toid process. cot., an- 
toid process is a bluntly conical peg, varying fener, °ON 
merely in length and thickness, but in many neural spine. pt.z., 
long-necked forms the peg is converted into a eae agp eieclanreal 
semicylindrical spout, convex on the lower cess. 4’, anterior 

opening of canal for 
side and concave above. The neural spine of the vertebral artery. 
the axis is almost always a relatively large, fe _ ee ape 
hatchet-shaped plate, which is most developed 
in the carnivorous forms, and the transverse processes are com- 
monly slender rods. 

The five succeeding cervical vertebre are much alike, though 
each one has a certain individuality, by which its place in the 
series may readily be determined. The centrum has a convex 


72 


LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


anterior and concave posterior face, which in long-necked ani- 
mals form regular ‘‘ball and socket”’ joints; neural spines are 


Fie. 13.— Fifth 
cervical verte- 
bra of Wolf, left 
side. ¢r., trans- 
verse process. 
v.a"., posterior 
opening of 
canal for the 
vertebral ar- 
tery. pr.z.and 
ptl.z., anterior 
and posterior 
uy gapophyses. 
n.sp., neural 
spine. 


ribs. 


frequently wanting and, when present, are almost 
always short and slender; the zygapophyses are 


. very prominent and are carried on projections 


which extend before and behind the neural arch ; 
the transverse processes are long, thin plates and, 
except in the seventh cervical, are usually pierced 
by the canal for the vertebral artery, but in a 
few forms (e.g. the camels) this canal pierces the 
neural arch. 

(2) The dorsal or thoracic vertebre have more 
or less cylindrical centra, with nearly flat faces, 
and on the centra, for the most part at their ends, 
are the concave facets for the rib-heads. The 
transverse processes are short and rod-like and 
most of them articulate with the tubercles of the 


The zygapophyses are smaller than in the cervical region, 


less prominent and less oblique; the anterior pair, on the front | 
of the neural arch, face upward and the posterior pair down- 


ward. The neural spines are very much longer 
than those of the neck and those of the anterior 
-dorsals are often of relatively enormous length, 
diminishing toward the hinder part of the region. 

(3) The lumbar vertebre are almost always 
heavier and larger than those of the dorsal region; 
they carry no ribs and their neural spines and 
transverse processes are broad and plate-like and 
the latter are far larger and more prominent than 
those of the dorsals. As an especial degree of 
strength is frequently called for in the loins, to- 
gether with a greater flexibility than is needed 
in the dorsal region, the modes of articulation 
between the successive vertebrae are more com- 
plex, sometimes, as in the Edentata, most elabo- 


Fig. 14.— First 
dorsal vertebra of 
Wolf, left side. 
c., centrum. 7., 
anterior rib- 
facet. r’’., pos- 
terior rib-facet. 
tr., transverse 
process. opr.z. 
pt.z., anterior and 
posterior zyga- 
Ppophyses. n.sp., 
neural spine. 


SKELETON AND TEETH 73 


rately so. Taking the dorso- 
lumbars, or trunk-vertebre, as a 
single series, we may note that 
in a few mammals (e.g. the ele- Va 
phants) all the neural spines © 
have a backward slope but in Fic. 15. — Third lumbar vertebra of Wolf, 
are ij front end and left side. ¢r., transverse 
the great majority of forms process. en., centrum. pr.z. and pi.z., 
this backward inclination ceases *"*etor_and posterior zygapophyses. 
. n.sp., neural spine. 
near the hinder end of the dor- 
sal region, where there is one vertebra with erect spine, while 
behind this point the spines slope forward. 

(4) The sacral vertebre, varying from 2 to 13 in number, 
are fused together solidly into one piece, the combined centra 
forming a heavy mass and the neural canals a 
continuous tube, while the neural spines are 
united into a ridge. As a rule, only the first 
two vertebre of the sacrum are in contact with 
the hip-bones, to support which they have de- 

veloped special processes, the remainder of the 

pbs ae ae mass projecting freely backward. 
side. I, I, III, (5) The caudal vertebre vary greatly, in 
first, second and 4 ccordance with the length and thickness of the 


third sacral verte- 
bre. pl., surface tail, In an animal with well-developed tail 


co " several of the anterior caudals have the parts 
and processes of a typical vertebra, centrum, 
neural arch and spine, zygapophyses and transverse processes. 
Posteriorly, these gradually diminish, until only the centrum 
is left, with low knobs or ridges, which are 
the remnants of the various processes. A aa 6 e=3 
varying number of long, cylindrical centra, zs 
diminishing backward in length and diame- at ea 
ter, complete the caudal region and the ver- _rior and middle parts of 
tebral column. In some mammals, chevron a ee 
bones are attached to the under side of the 


anterior and middle caudals; these are forked, Y-shaped bones, 


74 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


which form a canal for the transmission of the great blood-ves- 
sels of the tail. 

The ribs, which are movably attached to the backbone, 
together with the dorsal vertebre and breast-bone, compose 
the thorax, or chest. The articulation with the vertebre is 
by means of a rounded head; in most cases the head has two 
distinct facets, the pit being formed half on 
the hinder border of one dorsal vertebra and 
half on the front border of the next suc- 
ceeding one, but posteriorly the pit is often 
shifted, so as to be on a single vertebra. A 
second articulation is by means of the tu- 
bercle, a smooth projecting facet on the con- 
vexity of the rib’s curvature and near the 
head; the tubercle articulates with the 
transverse process of its vertebra. Theribs, 
in general, are curved bars of bone, which 
in small mammals generally and in the 
ae clawed orders are slender and rod-like, while 

from anterior and im the hoofed mammals they are broader, 
middle parts of the thinner and more plate-like, especially the 
thorax. cp., head. t., . < 
tubercle. anterior ones. The number of pairs of ribs 
is most commonly 13, but ranges among 
existing mammals from 9 in certain whales to 24 in the Two-toed 
Sloth (Cholepus didactylus). The complex curvature of the 
ribs, outward and backward, is such that, when they are drawn 
forward (in Man upward) by muscular action, the cavity of 
the thorax is enlarged and air is drawn into the lungs, and 
when they are allowed to fall back, the cavity is diminished 
and the air expelled. 

Below, a varying number of the ribs are connected by the 
cartilages in which they terminate with the breast-bone 
(sternum) ; sometimes these cartilages are ossified and then 
form the sternal ribs, but there is always a flexible joint between 
the latter and the true ribs. In certain edentates, notably 


SKELETON AND TEETH 75 


the anteaters and the extinct + ground-sloths, these sternal ribs, 
at their lower ends, are provided with head and tubercle, for 
articulation with the sternum. 

The sternum, or breast-bone, is made up of a number of 
distinct segments, usually broad and flat, but often cylindrical, 
which may “unite, but far more commonly remain separate 
throughout life. The number, size and form of these segments 
often give useful characters in 
classification. The first seg- 
ment, or manubrium, has quite 
a different shape from the suc- 
ceeding ones and is consider- 
ably longer. 

II. The appendicular 
skeleton consists of the limb- 
girdles and the bones of the 
limbs and feet. The limb- 
girdles are the means of at- 
taching the movable limbs to 
the body, so as to combine 
the necessary mobility with 
strength. The anterior, or 
shoulder-girdle, has no direct 
articulation with the vertebral 
column, but is held in place by 
muscles; it is made up of 
the shoulder-blade and collar- 
bone, though very many mam- 
mals have lost the latter. 

The shoulder-blade, or Fic. 19.—Sternum and rib-cartilages of 

i Wolf, lower side. P.S., manubrium. 
scapula, is a broad, thin, plate- S., xiphisternum. 
like bone, which contracts be- 
low to a much narrower neck, ending in a concave articular 
surface, the glenoid cavity, for the head of the upper arm-bone, 
the two together making the shoulder-joint. On the outer side 


76 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


the blade is divided into two parts by a prominent ridge, 
the spine, which typically ends below in a more or less con- 


NB gl dheag 
Fig. 20. — Leftscapulaof Wolf. Fig. 21.— Left scapula of Horse. ~ 
gl., glenoid cavity. c., cora- This figure is much more reduced 1. 
coid. ac., acromion. sp. than Fig. 20. » gah 
spine. 


spicuous projection, the acromion, which may, however, be 
absent, its prominence being, generally speaking, correlated 
with the presence of the 
collar bone. A hook-like 
process, the coracoid, rises 
from the antero-internal 
side of the glenoid cavity 
and varies greatly in size 
in the different groups of 
mammals; though it usu- 
ally appears to be merely a 
Fic. 22. —Left scapula of Man in position of process of the scapula, with 
walking on allfours. Letters as in Fig. 20. ‘ Rep icey a te ee a ‘ 

which it is indistinguish- 
ably fused, yet its development shows it to be a separate ele- 
ment and in the lowest mammals (Prototheria), as in the rep- 


SKELETON AND TEETH 77 


tiles and lower vertebrates generally, it is a large and im- 
portant part of the shoulder-girdle and articulates with the 
sternum. . 

The collar-bone, or clavicle, is a complexly curved bar, 
which, when present and fully developed, extends from the 
forward end of the sternum to the acromion, the projecting 
lower end of the scapular spine, supporting and strengthening 
the shoulder-joint. In many 
mammalian orders, notably all 
existing hoofed animals, the z SOY 
clavicle has become superfluous Fie. 23. — Left clavicle of Man, front side. 
and is lost more or less com- 
pletely ; it may be said, in general, that the clavicle is devel- 
oped in proportion to the freedom of motion of the shoulder- 
joint and to the power of rotation of the hand upon the arm. 
In arboreal animals, such as monkeys, in which the hand 
rotates freely and the arm moves in any direction on the 
shoulder, the clavicle is large and fully developed, as it also is 
in Man. Many burrowing mammals (e.g. the moles) have 
very stout clavicles. 

The posterior, or pelvic, girdle is composed on each side of 
a very large, irregularly shaped bone, which is firmly attached 
to one or more of the coalesced vertebre which form the sacrum 
and thus affords a solid support to the hind leg. Each half 
of the pelvis, or hip- 
bone, is made up of 
three elements, called 
respectively the ilium, 
ischium and pubis, 
which are Separate in 

- the very young animal, 

Fic. 24.— Left hip-bone of Wolf. Jv., ilium. Is., . i ae - 
ischium. P., pubis. ac., acetabulum. indistinguishably fused 
in the adult. The three 
elements unite in a deep, hemispherical pit, the acetabulum, 
which receives the head of the thigh-bone, a perfect ex- 


78 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


ample of the ‘‘ball and socket joint.’”’ In the inferior median 
line the two pubes meet and may become coalesced, in a sym- 
physis, the length of which differs in various mammals. The 
pelvis and sacrum together form a short, wide tube, the diame- 
ter of which is normally greater in the female skeleton than in 
the male. 

The limbs are each divided into three segments, which 
in the anterior extremity are the arm, fore-arm and hand. 
(or fore foot) and in the posterior extremity are the thigh, leg 
and foot (or hind foot), and there is a general correspondence 
between the structure of these segments in the fore and hind 
legs, however great the superficial difference. The bones of 
the limbs, as distinguished from 
those of the feet, are the long bones 
and, except in a few very large and 
heavy mammals, are essentially 
hollow cylinders, thus affording 
the maximum strength for a given 
weight of bone; the cavity of a 
long bone contains the marrow 
and hence is called the medullary 
cavity. In the young mammal 
each of. the long bones consists of 
three parts, the shaft, which makes 
up much the greater part of the 
length, and at each end a bony 
cap, the epiphysis. Growth takes 
place by the intercalation of new 
material between the shaft and the 


is Fe ext opr 
Fia. 25.— Left humerus of Wolf, from 
the front and outer sides, the latter 


somewhat oblique. h., head. int.t., 
internal tuberosity. ezt.t., external 
tuberosity. be., bicipital groove. 
dt., deltoid ridge. sh., shaft. s., 
supinator ridge. int. epi. internal 
epicondyle. s.f. anconeal foramen. 
tr., trochlea. tr’., trochlea, posterior 
side. ext. epi. external epicondyle. 
a.f. anconeal fossa. 


epiphyses; when the three parts 
unite, growth ceases and the ani- 
mal is adult. 

The superior segment of the 
fore limb has a single bone, the 
humerus, the upper end of which 


SKELETON AND TEETH 


is the rounded, convex head, which fits into 
the glenoid cavity of the shoulder-blade, form- 
ing the joint of the shoulder; in front of 
the head are two prominent and sometimes 
very large projections for muscular attach- 
ment, the external and internal tuberosities, sep- 
arated by a groove, in which play the two ten- 
dons of the biceps muscle and is therefore called 
the bicipital groove. Inafew mammals, such as 
the Horse, Camel and Giraffe, 
the groove is divided into two 
by a median tubercle or ridge. 
From the external tuberosity 
there generally passes down 
the front face of the shaft a 
rough and sometimes very 
prominent ridge, the deltoid 
crest, to which is attached the 
powerful deltoid muscle. At 


of those bones. 


Fic. 26.— Left hu- 


merus of Horse, 
front side. i.¢., in- 
ternal tuberosity. 
ez.t., external tu- 
berosity. bc., outer 
part of bicipital 
groove. dt., del- 
toid ridge. s., su- 
pinator ridge. r., 
trochlea. 


the lower end of the humerus is the trochlea, 
an irregular half-cylinder, for articulation with 
the two bones of the fore-arm and vary- 
ing in form according to the relative sizes 
On each side of the troch- 
lea is frequently a rough prominence, the epr- 
condyle, and above the inner one is, in many 
mammals, a perforation, the epicondylar fora- 
men, for the passage of a nerve. 
up the shaft from the outer epicondyle is a 
rough crest, the supinator ridge, to which is 
attached one of the muscles that rotate the 
hand and is conspicuously developed in those 


Extending 


Fie. 27.—Left hu. Mammals which have the power of more or 
merus of Man, less free rotation and especially in burrow- 


front side. Let- 
ters as in Fig. 25. €fS. 


On the posterior face of the humerus, 


80 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


just above the trochlea, is a large, deep pit, the anconeal 
fossa. 

The two bones of the fore-arm, the radius and ulna, are, 
in most mammals, entirely separate from each other, but in 
certain of the more highly specialized hoofed animals are 
immovably codssified. Primitively, the two bones were of 


Fic. 28.— Left fore-arm bones of Wolf, Fre. 29.— Left fore-arm bones of Man, 
front side. #.,radius. U., ulna. ol., front side. Letters as in Fig. 28. The 
olecranon. h., head of radius. small object at the right of each figure is 

the head of the radius, seen from above. 


nearly equal size, but in most of the mammalian orders there 
is a more or less well-defined tendency for the radius to enlarge 
at the expense of the ulna. These bones are normally crossed, 
the radius being external at the upper end and passing in front 
of the ulna to the inner side of the arm. The radius varies 
considerably in form in accordance with the uses to which the 


SKELETON AND TEETH 81 


hand is put; if the capacity of rotation is re- 
tained, the upper end, or head, of the radius is 
small, circular or disk-like, covering little of the 
humeral trochlea, but when the head of the radius 
is broadened to cover the whole width of the 
humerus, then all power of rota- 
tion is lost. (Cf. Figs. 28 and 29.) 
As a rule, the radius broadens 
downward and covers two-thirds 
or more of the breadth of the 
wrist-bones. 

The ulna is longer than the 
radius, its upper end being ex- 
tended into a heavy process, the 
olecranon, or anconeal process, 
into which is inserted the tendon s 
of the great triceps muscle, the p,, 39.— Coss. 
contraction of which straightens hare aia . 
the arm ; this processis the bony Horse, front 
projection at the back of the el- eee eg een 
bow-joint. Below the olecranon _ the ulna iscon- 
is a semicircular articular con- ics oa Baas 
cavity, which embraces the hume- 
ral trochlea and its upper angle fits into the 
anconeal fossa of the humerus. The ulna con- 
tracts and grows more slender downwards and 
its lower end covers but one of-the wrist-bones. 
Fie. 31. —Left fore. While in the more primitive mammals, and in 

arm bones of the those which retain the power of rotating the 
Tapir (Tapirus . 
terrestris). R., ra-~ hand, the ulna has nearly or quite the same 
dius, V., wna. h-+ thickness as the radius, it is often much more 


head of radius. h’., 


sigmoid notch of slender and in the more highly specialized of 


Ina. ol., ole- : 
vreneu. WB. This the hoofed animals, such as the horses, camels 


figure ison amuch and true ruminants, the radius carries the en- 
larger scale than , ts 
Fig. 30. tire weight and the ulna has become very slen- 


G 


82 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


der, more or less of its middle portion is lost and the two ends 
are codssified with the radius, so that the fore-arm appears to 
have but a single bone. The reverse process of enlarging the 
ulna and reducing the radius is very rare and practically con- 
fined to the elephant, tribe. 

The fore foot, or hand, for which the term manus may be 
conveniently employed, is divisible into three parts, correspond- 
ing in ourselves to the wrist, back and palm of the hand, and 
the fingers. The bones of the wrist constitute the carpus, 


Fic. 32.— Left manus of Wolf, front Fic. 33.— Left manus of Man. S., sca 
side. SL., scapho-lunar. Py., pyram- phoid. L., lunar. Py., pyramidal (pisi- 
idal. Pis., pisiform. Tm., trape- form not shown). 7'm., trapezium. Td., 
,zium. Td., trapezoid. M., magnum. trapezoid. M.,magnum. Un., unciform. 
U., unciform. Mc.I-V, first to fifth Other letters as in Fig. 32. 


metacarpals. Ph.i, first phalanx. 
Ph.2, second phalanx. Ung., ungual 
phalanx. JI, first digit, or pollex. IJ-V, 
second to fifth digits. 


those of the back and palm the metacarpus, and those of the 
fingers the phalanges. . : 

The carpus consists primitively of nine distinct bones, 
though one of these, as will be shown later, is not a true carpal. 
These bones are of a rounded, subangular shape, closely ap- 


SKELETON AND TEETH 83 


pressed together, with very little movement between them, and 
are arranged in two transverse rows. The upper row con- 
tains four bones, which enumerating from the inner side are 
the scaphoid, lunar, pyramidal (or cuneiform) and pisiform. 
The scaphoid and lunar support the radius, while the ulna 
rests upon the pyramidal. The pisiform, though very con- 
stantly present, is not a true carpal, but an ossification in 
the tendon of one of the flexor muscles, which close the fingers ; 
it projects more or less prominently backward and articulates 
with the ulna and pyramidal. The second row is also made 
up of four bones, which, from within outward, are the trape- 
zium, trapezoid, magnum and unciform. The relations of the 
two rows vary much in different mammals and the arrange- 
ment may be serial of alternating; thus, the scaphoid rests 
upon the trapezium and trapezoid and usually covers part of 
the magnum; the lunar may rest upon the magnum only, 
but very much more frequently is equally supported by the 
magnum and unciform and the pyramidal by the latter only. 
The ninth carpal is the central, which, when present and dis- 
tinct, is a small bone, wedged in between the two rows. Few 
existing mammals have a separate central, which, though 
present in the embryo, has coalesced with the scaphoid in the 
great majority of forms. In the more advanced and differ- 
entiated mammals the number of carpals may be consider- 
ably reduced by the codssification of certain elements or 
the complete suppression and loss of others. In all existing 
Carnivora and a few other mammals the scaphoid and lunar 
are united in a compound element, the scapho-lunar (or, more 
accurately, the scapho-lunar-central); hoofed animals with 
a diminished number of toes generally lose the trapezium, 
and other combinations occur.’ The second row of carpals 
carries the metacarpals, and primitively the trapezium, trape- 
zoid and magnum are attached each to one metacarpal and 
the unciform has two. 

The metacarpus consists typically of five members, a num- 


84 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


ber which is never exceeded in any normal terrestrial mammal ; 
the members are numbered from the inner side, beginning with 
the thumb or pollez, from I to V. Many mammals have 
fewer than five metacarpals, which may number four, three, 
two or only one; the third is never lost, but any or all of the 
others may be suppressed, and functionless rudiments of them 
may long persist as splints or nodules. The metacarpals are 
elongate, relatively slender and of more or less cylindrical 
shape; but the form varies considerably in different groups, 
according to the way in which the hand is used. When em- 
ployed for grasping, as in many arboreal animals and pre- 
eminently in Man, the pollex is frequently opposable to the 
other fingers and enjoys much freedom of motion. In the 
camels and true ruminants the third and fourth metacarpals 
are codéssified to form a cannon-bone (see Fig. 43, p. 91), but the 
marrow cavities and the joints for the phalanges remain 
separate. 

The phalanges in land mammals never exceed three in each 
digit, except the pollex, which, when present and fully developed, 
has but two. The phalanges are usually slender in proportion 
to their length, but in very heavy hoofed animals they are short 
and massive. The terminal joint is the ungual phalanz, which 
carries the nail, claw, or hoof, its shape varying accordingly. 

The hind leg is constituted in very much the same manner 
as the fore, but with certain well-marked and constant dif- 
ferences. The thigh-bone, or femur, is usually the longest and 
stoutest of the limb-bones and in very large animals may be 
extremely massive. At the upper end is the hemispherical 
head, which is set upon a distinct neck and projects inward and 
upward, fitting into the acetabulum of the hip-bone. Nearly 
all land mammals have a small pit on the head of the femur, 
in which is inserted one end of the round ligament, while the 
other end is attached in a corresponding depression in the 
floor of the acetabulum. This ligament helps to hold the thigh- 
bone firmly in place and yet allows the necessary freedom of 


SKELETON AND TEETH 85 


movement. On the outer side of the upper end of the femur 
is a large, roughened protuberance, which often rises higher 


gt.tn 


datcons jE exact. con 
Sas : 


Fic. 34. — Left femur of Wolf, front side. Fie. 35.— Left femur of Horse. tr .3, 


h., head. gt.tr., great trochanter. tr. 2, third trochanter. Other letters as in 
second trochanter. int.con., internal Fig. 34, than which this drawing is 
condyle. 7.g., rotular groove. ect. very much more reduced. 


con., external condyle. 


than the head and is called the great trochanter; another, the 
second or lesser trochanter, is a small, more or less conical prom- 
inence on the inner side of the shaft, below the head. These 
two processes are well-nigh universal among land mammals ; 
and in a few of the orders occurs the third trochanter, which 
arises from the outer side of the shaft, usually at or above the 
middle of its length. Though comparatively rare in the 
modern world, the third trochanter is an important feature, 
and the early members of most, if not all, of the mammalian 
orders possessed it. The shaft of the femur is elongate and, 
except in certain very bulky mammals, of nearly cylindrical 
shape. The lower end of the bone is thick and heavy and bears 


86 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


on the posterior side two large, rounded prominences, the 
condyles, which articulate with the shin-bone to form the 
knee-joint. On the anterior side is a broad, shal- 

Q ) low groove, the rotular groove, in which glides 
the patella, or knee-cap. The patella is a large 

ossification, of varying shape, in the tendon com- 
mon to the four great extensor muscles of the 
thigh, the action of which is to straighten the leg. 
The lower leg, like the fore-arm, has two 

MG GF bones, which, however, are always parallel, never 
unteon. crossed, and have no power of rotation. Of 
prin oe Hg these, the inner one is the shin-bone, or tibia, 
side of lower end. which is always the larger and alone enters into 
aie aes the knee-joint. The external bone is the fibula, 
ee which is almost entirely suppressed in certain 
ular groove. highly specialized forms, such as the horses and 
Above, are two ruminants, the tibia carrying the whole weight. 


tacia. ne The upper end of the tibia is enlarged and ex- 
a internal tends over that of the fibula; it has two slightly 
concave surfaces for articulation with the con- 

dyles of the femur, the approximate edges of which are raised into 
a bifid spine. The upper part of the shaft is triangular, with one 
edge directed forward, and the superior end of this edge is rough- 
ened and thickened to form the cnemial crest, to which is at- 
tached the patellar ligament. The middle portion of the shaft is 
rounded and the lower end broad and usually divided by a ridge 
into two grooves or concavities for the ankle-bone ; from the in- 
ner side of this end projects downward a tongue-like process, the 
internal malleolus, which prevents inward dislocation of theankle. 
The fibula is relatively stoutest in the less advanced mam- 
mals and is usually straight and slender, with enlarged ends, 
the lower one forming the external malleolus, which serves to 
prevent outward dislocation of the ankle. In many forms 
the fibula is codssified with the tibia at both ends, and in the 
most highly specialized hoofed animals, such as the horses, 


SKELETON AND TEETH 


87 


camels and true ruminants, the bone has apparently disap- 
peared. The young animal, however, shows that the ends 
of the fibula have been retained and the shaft completely lost ; 
the upper end is in the adult firmly fused with the tibia and, 


Fic. 37. — Bones of left 
lower leg of Wolf, front 
side. T., tibia. F., 
fibula. sp. spine of 
tibia. cn. cnemial 
crest. i.m., internal 
malleolus. ¢m., ex- 
ternal malleolus. 


Fic. 38. — Bones of left 
lower leg of Horse 
(much more reduced). 
cn. cnemial crest. F., 
lower end of fibula, 
coéssified with tibia. 
Other letters as in 
Fig. 37. 


Fic. 39. — Bones of lower 
leg, left side, of Tapir. 
T., tibia. F., fibula. 
sp., spine of tibia. cn., 
cnemial crest. ¢.m., in- 
ternal malleolus. ¢.m., 
external malleolus. 
N.B. This figure is-on 
amuch larger scale than 
Fig. 38. 


in the horses, the lower end is also, but this remains separate 
in the ruminants and camels, forming the malleolar bone, 
which is wedged in between the tibia and the heel-bone. 
Because of its importance in holding the ankle-bone in place, 
this lower end of the fibula is never lost in any land mammal. 

The hind foot, or pes, like the manus, is clearly divisible 


88 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


into three parts, the bones of which are 
called respectively the tarsus, metatarsus 
and phalanges, and the correspondence in 
structure between manus and pes is close 
and obvious. The tarsus consists typi- 
cally of seven bones, which are tightly 
packed and rarely permit any movement 
between them. The upper row of the tar- 
sus consists of two bones, which are pe- 
culiarly modified to form the ankle-joint 
and heel; on the inner side is the ankle- 
bone, or astragalus, the shape of which is 
highly characteristic of the various mam- 
malian orders. The upper or posterior 
portion of the astragalus, 
according to the position 
of the foot, is a pulley 
which glides upon the 


PA 


a. 
Fia. 40. — Left pes of Wolf, 


front side. Cal., calca- 
neum, As., astragalus. 
N., navicular. 
boid. Cn.1,Cn.2, Cn. 3, 


internal; middle and ex- 


ternal cuneiforms. Mt.I, 


rudimentary first meta- 
tarsal. Mt. IJ-V, second 


to fifth metatarsals. 
Ph. 1, first phalanx. 
Ph. 2, second phalanx. 
Ung., ungual phalanx. 
I, rudimentary hallux. 
II-V, second to fifth 
digits. 


Ch., cu- 


lower end of the tibia 
and is held firmly in 
place by the internal and 
the external malleolus. 
Below the  pulley-like 
surface the astragalus 
usually contracts to a 
narrow neck, which ends 
in a flat or convex head. 
The astragalus is sup- 
ported behind (or be- 


neath) by the heel-bone, or calcanewm, which 
is elongate and extends well above (or behind) 
the remainder of the tarsus ; it frequently has 
a distinct articulation with the fibula, but more 
commonly is not in contact with that bone. 
The astragalus rests upon the navicular, which 


Fie. 41.— Left pes of 
Man, Note thelarge 
size of Mt. I, the met- 
atarsal of the first 
digit, or hallux. Let- 
ters as in Fig. 40, ex- 
cept Cb., cuboid. 


SKELETON AND TEETH 89 


is moulded to fit its head and corresponds in position to the cen- 
tral of the carpus, but, unlike that carpal, it is a very important 
element and is never suppressed or lost in any land mammal. 
The navicular, in turn, rests upon three bones of the second row, 
which are called respectively the internal, middle and external cu- 
neiform, which correspond to the trapezium, trapezoid and mag- 
num of the carpus and to which are attached the three inner met- 
atarsals, one to each. Finally, the cuboid, the external element 
of the second row, is a large bone, which supports the caleaneum 
and often part of the astragalus and to which the fourth and 
fifth metatarsals are attached ; it is the equivalent of the unci- 
form in the manus. The number of tarsals is more constant 
than that of the carpals, but some suppressions and coéssi- 
fications do occur. 

The long bones of the pes constitute the metatarsus, which 
is the counterpart of the metacarpus. There are never more 
than five metatarsals in any normal mammal, but there may be 
any number less than five, down to a single one. In form and 
size the metatarsals of any given mammal are usually so like 
the metacarpals, that it requires some experience to distinguish 
them, but when either manus or pes is especially adapted 
to some particular kind of work, there may be very decided 
differences between metatarsals and metacarpals. For example, 
the burrowing forefoot of the moles is very different from the 
hind foot, which has undergone but little modification, and 
even more striking is the difference between the wing of a bat 
and its foot. Many other instances of a less extreme diver- 
gence might be enumerated, but when manus and pes are used 
only for locomotion, as in nearly all hoofed animals and many 
other mammals, the metacarpals and metatarsals are very 
similar. When there is a difference in number, it is the general 
rule that there are fewer metatarsals; an instance of this is 
found in the tapirs, which have four toes in the front foot and 
three in the hind. Forms which have a cannon-bone in the 
manus have it also in the pes, and some, like the peccaries and 


90 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


the jumping rodents called jerboas, have it only in the pes. 
The first (or inner) metatarsal, that of the great toe, or halluz, 
is sometimes opposable to the others, as in the monkeys, apes 
and lemurs. 

The word metapodial is a useful general term which in- 
cludes both metacarpals and metatarsals. A metapodial 
with its phalanges is a digit, a term often employed because 
of the ambiguity which arises in the use of the words “‘fingers”’ 
and ‘‘toes,’”’ and is applicable to both fore and hind feet. 

Normally, the phalanges of the pes are so like those of the 
manus as to require no particular description ; and only when 
the two pairs of extremities are specialized for entirely different 
functions, is there any notable divergence between the pha- 
langes of manus and pes. 

Before leaving the subject of the skeleton, it will be well 
to explain the terms used in describing the gait and manner of 
using the feet. When the entire sole of the foot is in contact 
with the ground and weight is thrown upon the heel-bone, or 
calcaneum, the gait is said to 
be plantigrade and is exem- 
plified in Man, bears, raccoons 
and many other mammals. 
The Dog is digitigrade, that is 
to say, the feet in the stand- 


Fic. 42.— Left pes of Black Bear (Ursus 
americanus), showing the plantigrade gait. 
T., tibia. F., fibia. Cal., calcaneum. 
As., astragalus. WN., navicular. Cn. 3, 
external cuneiform. Cb., cuboid. Mt.V, 


ing position are nearly erect 
and the wrist and heel are 
raised high above the ground ; 
the weight is borne upon ball- 


fifth metatarsal. " 
like pads, one under the pha- 


langes of each functional digit and one under the metapo- 
dials. The digitigrade gait is found not only in all the dogs 
and cats, but in many other Carnivora and in the camels and 
llamas, as well. Transitions between the plantigrade and 
digitigrade gait are so numerous and gradual, that such terms as 
semi-plantigrade and semi-digitigrade are sometimes necessary. 


SKELETON AND TEETH 91 


An animal is said to be unguli- 
grade when the weight is carried 
entirely upon the hoofs and is 
used only of hoofed animals; ex- 
amples are the horses, pigs, deer, 
antelopes, oxen, etc. The so- 
called ‘‘knee”’ of a horse is really 
his wrist and the “hock” is the 
heel, so that the feet make nearly 
half the apparent length of the 
legs. Certain very large and 
massive animals, such as the rhi- 
noceroses and elephants, are un- 
guligrade in a modified sense; 
the foot is a heavy column, seem- 
ingly a part of the leg, and the 
weight is borne upon a great pad 
of elastic tissue, with the hoofs 
disposed around its periphery. A 
very peculiar mode of locomotion 
is exemplified by certain of the 
Edentata, in the forefoot of the 
existing Ant Bear (Myrmeco- 
phaga jubata) and in both ex- 
tremities of some of the later 
representatives of the extinct 
fground-sloths, or +Gravigrada. 
Here the weight is carried upon 
the outer edge of the foot, the 
palm and sole being turned in- 
ward. No term has been sug- 
gested for this very exceptional 


Fie. 43. — Left pes of Patagonian Deer 
(Hippocamelus bisulcus), showing the 
unguligrade gait. T., tibia. F.,lower 
end of fibula (malleolar bone). Cal., 
calcaneum. As.,astragalus. N.Cb., 
codssified cuboid and navicular. Mt. 
III, Mt. IV, cannon-bone, formed by 
the codssification of the third and 
fourth metatarsals. V., Rudimen- 
tary fifth digit. 


gait, which is a modified form of plantigradism. 


92 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


II. Tus Trrtu 


It was pointed out in Chapter II (p. 38) that very often 
the teeth are all that remains to us of extinct genera and species 
of mammals, and it may be further noted that the teeth are 
very characteristic and often suffice to fix the systematic position 
of a genus. Since, therefore, the teeth play such an uncom- 
monly important part as fossils and are so pre-eminently useful 
to the paleontologist, it is necessary to give some general 
account of them. 

Among the mammals the teeth display a very great variety 
of size and form in accordance with the manner in which they 
are used. Primarily, the function of the teeth is to seize and 
masticate food, and the kind of food habitually eaten by any 
animal is well indicated by the form of its teeth. The beasts 
of prey have teeth adapted for shearing flesh and crushing 
bones; plant-feeders have teeth fitted for cropping plants and 
triturating vegetable tissues; insect-eaters have teeth with 
numerous sharp-pointed cusps, or it may be, no teeth at all, 
swallowing without mastication the insects which they capture, 
etc. Among animals that have similar diet there is very 
great difference in the form and elaborateness of the grinding 
apparatus and it is often possible to follow out the steps of 
evolutionary change, by which, from simple beginnings, a high 
degree of complexity has been attained. In addition to the 
uses of the teeth as organs of mastication, they frequently 
serve as weapons of offence or defence. In the flesh-eaters 
which capture living prey they are formidable offensive 
weapons, and the fangs of the Lion or the Wolf are instances 
familiar to every:one; but the tusks of the elephants or the 
hippopotamuses have nothing to do with the taking of prey. 
Several Old World deer, which have no antlers or very small 
ones, possess scimitar-like upper tusks, with which they are 
able to defend themselves very effectually. 

In the lower vertebrates, such as reptiles and fishes, the 


SKELETON AND TEETH 93 


number of teeth is usually indefinite and they continue to 
be shed and replaced, as needed, throughout life; but in each 
species of mammal, aside from abnormalities, the number is 
fixed and constant. Mammalian teeth are very generally 
divisible into four categories: (1) 
the incisors, or front teeth, which 
in the upper jaw are inserted in 
the premaxillary bones, (2) the 
canines, or eye-teeth, which are 
lapel ris than one on each side Fig. 44. — Dentition of Wolf, left side. 

of each jaw, or four in all, (3) the 3, third incisor. C., canine. p.1, 
premolars, called in Man the bi- haa 4, fourth premolar. 

cuspids, the anterior grinding 

teeth which have predecessors in the milk-series and (4) the 
molars, the posterior grinding teeth which have no such pred- 
ecessors. 

It is customary and convenient to express the numbers and 
kinds of teeth of a given mammalian species by means of a 
“dental formula”; for example, in Man the formula is: 
13, c1, p32, m3, X 2 =32; the reason for the multiplication by 
two is that the figures deal only with one side of the mouth 
and must be doubled to give the sum total. Just because, 
however, the two sides are alike, it is usual to take the doubling 
for granted. Written out in full, the formula means that Man 
has two incisors, one canine, two premolars and three molars 
on each side of each jaw, the horizontal line indicating the 
division between upper and lower teeth. The number of teeth 
is frequently not the same in the upper and lower jaws; for 
instance, the formula for the Sheep is :7 $, c$, p $,m#, X 2 = 32; 
the total is the same as in Man, but the arrangement is entirely 
different. The meaning is that in the Sheep there are no upper 
incisors or canines, but three incisors and a canine are present 
in each half of the lower jaw, with three premolars and three 
molars on each side above and below. The Dog gives still 
another formula: 7 3, c+, p4, m, x2 = 42. What is called the 


94 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


typical formula for the higher terrestrial mammals above the 
grade of the marsupials and which is but rarely exceeded, is 
7%, cl, p¢, m3, X 2 = 44, though most existing mammals have 
fewer teeth than this. Compared with the typical formula, the 
Dog has lost but two teeth, the third upper molar on each 
side, while Man and the Sheep have each lost twelve. 

As every one knows from his own experience, mammals 
normally have two sets of teeth, the first, temporary, or milk- 
dentition, in the young animal, and the second, or permanent 
dentition, in the adult. The milk-dentition, when fully 
developed, consists of incisors, canines and premolars, which 
usually agree in number, though often not in form, with the 
permanent teeth which replace them in the adult. The milk- 
teeth are frequently more conservative than the permanent 
ones and retain ancestral characters which have disappeared 
in the adult series, thus affording welcome information as to 
lines of descent and steps of evolutionary change. While 
there can be little doubt that the development of more than 
one dentition, or set of teeth, is the primitive condition among 
mammals and was derived by inheritance from their lower 
vertebrate ancestors, in which there was an indefinite succession 
of teeth; yet there are many mammals in which the milk- 
dentition is greatly reduced or altogether lost. In some, the 
milk-teeth are shed and replaced before birth, in others only 
the germs of the milk-teeth are formed and never cut the gum, 
while in others again all traces of the temporary series have 
vanished. This complete loss of the milk-teeth, like the pres- 
ence of a great number of simple and similar teeth in the 
dolphins and porpoises, or the total absence of teeth, as in the 
anteaters and whalebone whales, is a secondary and derivative 
condition, never a primitive one. 

The structure of mammalian teeth varies greatly, from the 
simplest slender cones to enormous and highly complicated 
apparatus, and, in order to comprehend the significance of 
these differences, we must look a little more closely into the 


ie Bae 


SKELETON AND TEETH 


95 


materials of which the teeth are constructed and the manner 


in which those materials are combined. 
mammals and in many of the higher and 
more advanced ones (including Man) a tooth 
is composed of the crown, or portion which 
is exposed above the gum, and the roots,* one 
or more in number, by means of which the 
tooth is firmly inserted in the jaw-bone; the 
roots are at least partly formed before the 
tooth comes into use. Such a tooth is said 
to be short or low-crowned, or brachyodont. 
In many plant-feeders, such as_ horses, 
cattle, elephants, beavers, etc., the teeth 
continue to grow in height for a long time 


In all primitive 


Fic. 44a.— First upper 
molar, right side of 
Deer (Odocoileus). On 
the left, the masti- 
cating surface; heavy 
black line, enamel. 
On the right, external 
side, showing crown 
and roots. Brachyo- 
dont. 


and do not form roots until late in life, or perhaps not at all. 
Such teeth are said to be long- or high-crowned, or hypsodont, and 
in very many instances the development of brachyodont into 


Fig. 45.— First upper molar, left side, of a fos- 


sil horse (Equus sp.). 


side. 


showing two stages of wear. 


On the right, external 
On the left, the grinding surface, 
Heavy black 


line,enamel ; white, dentine ; shaded, cement. 
Hypsodont, roots not yet formed. 


hypsodont teeth may be fol- 
lowed through every step of 
the change. The advan- 
tage of the change is ob- 
vious in lengthening the 
animal’s life, especially in 
those which feed upon abra- 
sive substances, like grass, 
for the growth of the teeth 
long continues to make up 
for the loss through wear. 
Serious trouble has often 
been caused for captive el- 
ephants by giving them too 
soft food, so that the growth 
of the teeth is not properly 
balanced by abrasion. Still 
another category of teeth is 


96 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


the rootless, which are of simple form, like those of an armadillo, 
and grow throughout life, never forming roots. The chisel-like, 
or scalpriform incisors of the ro- 
dents do not cease to grow while 
the animal lives; they are kept 
of constant length by continual 
use, and the arrangement of 
harder and softer tissue is such 
that the sharp edge is main- 
Fic. 46. — Dentition of Beaver (Castor tained ; through accident or 
canadensis). m.8, last molar. p. 4, _ C ? 
last premolar. 7.,scalpriform incisors; Malformation it sometimes hap- 
a face black, dentine in vertical pens that the upper and lower 
teeth fail to meet, then the con- 
tinued growth causes them to form curved hoops in the mouth, 
locking the jaws and bringing death by starvation to the un- 
fortunate animal. 

The typical mammalian tooth is composed of three kinds 
of tissue, all differing in structure and hardness and called 
respectively (1) dentine, (2) enamel, (3) cement. (1) The 
dentine, or ivory, is the indispensable tissue of the tooth; the 
other kinds may be absent, but never the dentine. Chemically, 
it is like bone, but the microscope shows that its structure is 
quite different from that of true bone, being composed of an 
immense number of fine tubules, which radiate from the 
“‘pulp-cavity,”’ or chamber which contains the blood-vessels 
and nerves, these entering the tooth through the canals of the 
roots. The tubules of the dentine lodge excessively fine 
fibrillee of the nerve and that is why the cutting into a live 
tooth is so painful an operation. (2) The enamel, which is 
the hardest of all animal tissues, has a polished and shining 
appearance and is arranged in a mosaic of microscopic prisms, 
closely packed together, which in most mammals are solid, 
but in the marsupials, with some exceptions, are tubular. 
The enamel normally covers the entire crown of the tooth, 
but does not extend upon the roots, where its superior hardness 


SKELETON AND TEETH 97 


would be of no advantage. In several instances, always as 
a secondary specialization, the enamel does not cover the whole 
crown, but is arranged in vertical bands, it may be on one 
side only, or at intervals around the tooth. The scalpriform 
incisors of the rodents, already alluded to, have the enamel 
band on the front face of the tooth; the softer dentine behind 
wears away more rapidly, keep- 
ing the cutting surface bevelled, 
like the edge of a chisel, while 
the hard enamel forms the sharp 
edge. In some instances the en- 
amel is absent altogether and the 
teeth are composed entirely of é 

dentine, as in the elephant tusk. a rarer amen 
In all the Edentata, such as _ phas mazimus). Enamel, heavy 
sloths and armadillos, both liv- Healer Manley (Dement, 
ing and extinct, that have any 

teeth at all, the teeth have no enamel, but in some of the 
fossil forms the place of the missing enamel is taken by a 
harder dentine and thus the effect of differential hardness 
is secured. 

(3) The cement is simply bone, both chemically and in 
microscopic structure; it is not quite so hard as dentine, but 
it is less affected by the fluids of the mouth and the juices of 
the food. In the brachyodont or low-crowned tooth, such as 
a human molar, the cement merely forms a sheath over the 
roots and does not appear upon the crown, but in many 
hypsodont teeth, those of horses and elephants, for example, 
the cement completely encases the entire tooth in a thick layer, 
filling up all the depressions and irregularities of the enamel 
surface and making a freshly erupted and unworn tooth look 
like a shapeless lump. When the cement and the enamel 
covering are partially worn through, the masticating surface 
is made up of three distinct substances, each having a dif- 
ferent degree of hardness and thus, through unequal wear, 

H 


98 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


the grinding surface is always kept rough and therefore efficient. 
Not all hypsodont teeth have the cement covering, but in 
such teeth the differing degrees of hardness of enamel and 
dentine suffice to keep a rough surface, though not so 
effectively. 


CHAPTER V 


THE GEOGRAPHICAL DEVELOPMENT OF THE AMERICAS IN 
CENOZOIC TIMES 


I. Tertiary PrErRiop 


In the interior regions of western North America the transi- 
tion from the Mesozoic to the Cenozoic was so gradual that 
there is great difficulty in drawing the line between them and 
therefore, as might be expected, there is much difference of 
opinion as to just where that line should be drawn. From 
one point of view, the matter is of no great consequence ; but 
from another, it is of the utmost importance, for, unless the 
events in different continents can be approximately syn- 
chronized, it will often prove a hopeless undertaking to trace 
the course of migration of the various mammalian groups and 
determine their place of origin and primary home. Until 
a definitive answer can be given to the question as to when 
the Cenozoic era began, many significant points must be left 
in doubt, and much remains to be done in the geology of the 
Far West before that definitive solution can be reached. 


1. Paleocene Epoch 


-So far as North America is concerned, the best available 
evidence points to the conclusion that we should regard the 
Fort Union, Puerco and Torrejon as the most ancient of the 
Cenozoic formations (see Table, p. 17), though retaining so 
many features of Mesozoic life that a separate division of the 
Tertiary, the Paleocene epoch, is made for them. Such asepa- 
ration is not the common practice in this country, where it is 


more usual to employ the terms ‘‘ Lowest”’ or “‘ Basal” Eocene. 
99 


100 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


In my judgment, however, the balance of advantage is in favour 
of giving to this so-called Basal Eocene a rank equivalent to 
that of the four other universally recognized and admitted 
epochs of the Tertiary period. No marine rocks of Paleocene 
date have yet been found in North America, which indicates 
that the continent’ was at least as extensive as itis now. The 
very scanty dévelopment of deposits representing this epoch 
in Europe renders the comparison with the fossils of the Old 
World unsatisfactory and hence leads to uncertainty, when it 
is attempted to determine the land-connections of the time. 
During the Mesozoic era the shallow Bering Sea had repeatedly 
been elevated into a land joining North America with Asia 
and had as often been depressed, so as to separate the conti- 
nents and allow the waters of the Arctic Ocean to mingle with 
those of the Pacific. A like alternation of junction and separa- 
tion went on during the Tertiary and Quaternary periods and, 
by a comparison of the fossil mammals of Europe and America 
for any particular division of geological time, it is almost 
always feasible to say whether the two continents were con- 
nected, or altogether separated. This statement does not 
imply that the proportion of common elements in the two 
faunas during epochs of continental connection was a con- 
stant one at all times, for that was by no means true. Mere 
land-connections or separations are not the only factors which 
limit the spread of terrestrial animals; if they were, the com- 
munity of forms between North and South America would 
be much greater than it actually is. Climatic barriers are of 
almost equal importance in determining animal distribution, 
and changes of climate may greatly alter the conditions of 
migration between connected continents. As the connections 
between North America and the Old World were probably in 
high latitudes, where the seas are narrow, changes of climate 
produced a greater effect upon migration than they could have 
done had the land-bridges been in the tropical or warm tem- 
perate zones. That these vicissitudes of climate really did 


GEOGRAPHICAL DEVELOPMENT OF THE AMERICAS 101 


occur and are not mere guesses to bolster up a tottering hy- 
pothesis, there is abundant evidence to prove. 

In the Paleocene, or most ancient epoch of the Tertiary 
period, the geographical condition of North America was ap- 
proximately as follows: The continent had attained nearly 
its modern outlines and on the Atlantic and Pacific coasts 
probably extended farther seaward than it does to-day. Florida, 
however, and perhaps a narrow strip of the northern Gulf 
coast were still submerged, the Gulf of Mexico opening broadly 
into the Atlantic. It is very probable that the continent was 
connected with the Old World by a land occupying the site 
of Bering Sea and perhaps also by way of Greenland and the 
North Atlantic; and there is some evidence, though not al- 
together convincing, that it was also joined to South America. 
The great mountain ranges were largely what they now are, 
though subsequent upheavals greatly modified the Rocky 
Mountains, Sierra Nevada and the ranges of the Pacific coast, 
while the lofty St. Elias Alps of Alaska were not in existence. 
The region of high plateaus, between the Rockies and the 
Sierras, was much less elevated than it is now. The Appala- 
chians, which were of far more ancient date than the western 
ranges, had been worn down by ages of weathering and stream- 
erosion into a low-lying, almost featureless plain, with some 
scattered peaks rising from it here and there, of which the moun- 
tains of western North Carolina were the highest. In general, 
it may be said that while the average height of the continent 
above the sea-level may have been as great or greater than at 
present, yet the inequalities of surface appear to have been 
less marked, and both along the Atlantic coast and in the in- 
terior were vast stretches of plains. 

The Paleocene formations of the western interior are of 
non-marine or continental origin. In northwestern New 
Mexico is the typical area of the Puerco and Torrejon, a series of 
beds 800 to 1000 feet in thickness and for the most part quite 
barren of fossils, but there are two horizons, one near the top 


102 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


and the other near the bottom of the series, which have yielded 
a very considerable number of fossil mammals, and of these 
the lower is the Puerco, the upper the Torrejon. The Fort 
Union is quite different in character and is composed of great 
areas of sandstone and clay rocks, with a maximum thickness 
of 2000 feet, in eastern Wyoming, South Dakota, Montana 
and the adjoining parts of Canada. The modes of formation 
of these beds have not yet been fully determined; that they 
may have been partly laid down in shallow lakes is indicated 
by the masses of fresh-water shells in certain localities. In 
others are preserved multitudes of leaves, which have given a 
very full conception of the plants of the time, and great swamps 
and bogs have left the traces of their presence in beds of lignite, 
or imperfectly formed coal. Deposits made on the flood- 
plains of rivers and wind accumulations are probably also 
represented. ‘‘Vast stretches of subtropical and more hardy 
trees were interspersed with swamps where the vegetation was 
rank and accumulated rapidly enough to form great beds of 
lignite. Here were bogs in which bog iron was formed. Amid 
the glades of these forests there wandered swamp turtles, alli- 
gators, and large lizards of the characteristic genus Champ- 
sosaurus’’ (Osborn, p. 100). 

Fort Union mammals are relatively rare and most of those 
that have been found are very fragmentary; they are amply 
sufficient, however, to demonstrate the Paleocene date of the 
beds and to make it probable that they include both the Puerco 
and the Torrejon faunas. 

The climate, as shown by the plants, was much milder and 
more uniform than that of the Recent epoch, though some in- 
dication of climatic zones may already be noted. The vegeta- 
tion was essentially modern in character ; nearly all our modern 
types of forest-trees, such as willows, poplars, sycamores, oaks, 
elms, maples, walnuts and many others, were abundantly 
represented in the vast forests which would seem to have covered 
nearly the entire continent from ocean to ocean and extended 


GEOGRAPHICAL DEVELOPMENT OF THE AMERICAS 103 


north into Alaska and Greenland, where no such vegetation 
is possible under, present conditions. Numerous conifers were 
mingled with the deciduous trees, but we do not find ex- 
clusively coniferous forests. Palms, though not extending 
into Greenland, flourished magnificently far to the north of 
their present range. On the other hand, the Paleocene flora 
of England points to a merely temperate climate, while that 
of the succeeding Eocene was subtropical. 

South America. — Nothing is definitely known concerning 
the condition of Central America and the West Indies and very 
little as to South America. As no marine rocks of Paleocene 
date have been found in any of these regions, it may be inferred 
that all the existingland areas were then above the sea, and there 
is some evidence that South America was much more extended 
in certain directions than now. From the character and dis- 
tribution of modern plants, fresh-water fishes, land and fresh- 
water shells, there is strong reason to believe that in late 
Mesozoic times a land-bridge connected Brazil with equatorial 
Africa and this connection may have continued into the Pale- 
ocene, though it is only fair to observe that some highly com- 
petent authorities deny the reality of this bridge. There is 
also evidence, though incomplete, of a connection between 
South America and Australia by way of the Antarctic continent, 
and it is clear that that polar region could not have had the’ 
rigorous climate of the present time. In the upper part of 
the Cretaceous, the last of the Mesozoic periods, there was 
a possibility of migration, however indirect, between every 
continent and every other, for the huge land reptiles called 
Dinosaurs have been found in the non-marine Cretaceous 
rocks of every continent, which could not have been the case, 
had any of the great land areas been isolated. There is no 
known reason to assume that the land-bridges were essentially 
different in the Paleocene. 


104 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


2. Eocene Epoch 


North America. — The Eocene witnessed quite extensive 
geographical changes, though but little is known of it in Central 
or South America, or the West Indies. Along the Atlantic 
and Gulf coasts of the United States there was an extensive 
submergence of the coastal plain, the sea covering the southern 
half of New Jersey and extending thence to the southwestward 
in an ever broadening band, through the South Atlantic and 
Gulf states. Northern Florida was under water and the Gulf 
extended as a narrow sound, known as the “‘ Mississippi Em- 
bayment,” up the valley of that river to southern Illinois and 
westward into Texas. The Embayment was present in the, 
Cretaceous and again in the Eocene, but it is not known 
whether it persisted through the Paleocene; probably it did 
not, as the whole Atlantic coast region appears to have stood 
at a higher level then than now. While the condition of 
Mexico and Central America during the Eocene is not known 
in any save the vaguest manner, it is evident that there was 
then a broad communication between the Atlantic and the 
Pacific, completely severing North and South America, though 
the place of this transverse sea has not been fixed. On the 
Pacific side, a long, narrow arm of the sea occupied what is now 
the great valley of California, extending north into Oregon and 
Washington. It will be noted that in North America the 
Eocene sea was almost confined to the neighbourhood of the 
present coast-lines, nowhere penetrating very far inland, except 
in the Mississippi Embayment, and thus differing widely from 
the condition of Europe at that epoch, where much of what is 
now land was submerged. The greatly expanded Mediter- 
ranean covered most of southern Europe, where the great 
mountain ranges, the Pyrenees, Alps, etc., had not yet been 
formed. Very important, from the point of view of American 
geography, is the fact that Europe was completely separated 
from Asia by a narrow strait or sea, which ran down the eastern 


GEOGRAPHICAL DEVELOPMENT OF THE AMERICAS 105 


J 


1 
‘ 
i 
! 
i 
‘ 
1 
' 
t 
f 
i= 


Fic. 48. — Map of North America during the Eocene epoch. The present limits of the 


continent are shown in outline; white areas = land; horizontal lines = sea; dotted 
areas = non-marine deposits; black circles with white dots = active volcanoes. 


(After Schuchert.) 


106 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


side of the Ural Mountains from the Arctic Ocean and joined 
the enlarged Mediterranean. During the existence of this 
Ural Sea any land connection of North America with Europe 
must necessarily have been by means of a North Atlantic 
bridge, or by one across the Arctic Sea, since communication 
with Asia by way of Alaska would not have reached eastern 
Europe. 

Any such general statement of geographical conditions 
during the Eocene as the foregoing sketch, cannot but be to 
some extent misleading, because it brings together, as con- 
temporary, arrangements which were, in some cases at least, 
separated by considerable intervals of time and which were 
subject to continual change. Along nearly all coasts the posi- 
tion of the sea was quite different in the latter part of the epoch 
from what it had been in the earlier portion. On the north 
side of the Gulf of Mexico, for example, the sea retreated from 
time to time, and the successive divisions of the Eocene rocks 
are so arranged that the later ones are farther to the south. 
Limitations of space, however, forbid’ the attempt to follow 
out these minor changes. 

In the western interior are found extensive non-marine 
or continental deposits of Eocene date, which must be con- 
sidered more in detail, because of the highly important bearing 
which they have upon mammalian history. With the excep- 
tion of a few small areas in Colorado, these deposits are all 
situated in the plateau region west of the Rocky Mountains, 
and were made of the débris of older rocks washed down by 
rain and rivers and deposited in broad basins. Some of them 
are the sediments of shallow or temporary lakes, and one series, 
at least, is made up of volcanic ash and dust showered upon 
the land, or into water of no great depth. The oldest of these 
Eocene stages, known. as the Wasatch (see Table, p. 17) covers 
a very large region, though in a discontinuous manner; the 
principal area begins in New Mexico, where it lies over the 
Torrejon, of the Paleocene, and extends far to the north through. 


GEOGRAPHICAL DEVELOPMENT OF THE AMERICAS 107 


Fig. 49. — Bad Lands of the lower Eocene, Wasatch stage. Big Horn Basin, Wyo. 
(Photograph by Sinclair.) 


108 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


western Colorado and eastern Utah to the Uinta Mountains, 
around the eastern end of which it passes in a narrow band and 
then expands again over southwestern Wyoming. A second 
area is in the Big Horn Basin of northwestern Wyoming and 
southern Montana, and probably two small areas in southern 
Colorado are of the same date. The Wasatch beds are richly 
fossiliferous and have yielded a most interesting and important 
series of mammals, which were far more advanced than those 
of the Paleocene; and, at first sight, the student is tempted 
to believe that they must be of very much later date. A more 
critical examination shows that this appearance of a great 
lapse of time between the Paleocene and the Wasatch is decep- 
tive; the more advanced and characteristic of the Wasatch 
mammals were obviously not the descendants of ancéstors 
in the. North American Paleocene, but were altogether new- 
comers to this continent, immigrants from some region which 
cannot yet be identified. On the other hand, a considerable 
number of the old, indigenous types still persisted, and these, 
when compared with their Paleocene ancestors, are found not 
to have changed so much as to require a very great length of 
time, geologically speaking, for the degree of development 
involved. This is the earliest recorded one of the great waves 
of mammalian migration which invaded North America 
down almost to our own time. 

The same wave of migration extended to Europe, and that 
there was a broad and easy way of communication between 
that continent and North America is plain, for the similarity 
between the Wasatch mammals and those of the corresponding 
formation in France, the Sparnacian, is remarkably close. 
At no subsequent time were the mammalian faunas of North 
America and Europe so nearly identical as during the Wasatch- 
Sparnacian age, which is especially remarkable when the dis- 
crepancy is noted between the vast stretches of the Wasatch 
(150,000 square miles) and the very limited areas in France. 

If, as is probable, the Ural Sea was in existence at that time, 


GEOGRAPHICAL DEVELOPMENT OF THE AMERICAS 109 


the land-connection with Europe must have been across 
the North Atlantic, most likely from Greenland eastward. At 
the present time a land-bridge in such high latitudes would be 
of little service in bringing about a similarity of mammals in the 
two continents, for the severity of the Arctic climate would be 
as effective a barrier against the intermigration of all save the 
Arctic mammals as the ocean itself; but in the mild and genial 
Eocene climate the latitude of the bridge was of small conse- 
quence. 

The second of the Eocene stages, the Wind River — Green 
River, is found in two very different phases. The Wind River 
phase occupies the basin of that stream, north of the Wind 
River Mountains in central Wyoming, and in the Big Horn 
Basin of the same state it very extensively overlies the Wasatch, 
and in this phase the sediments are very like those of the latter, 
flood-plain and wind accumulations. A widely distant area 
of this stage occurs in the Huerfano Cafion in Colorado. The 
Wind River beds contain numerous mammals which were 
clearly sequential to those of the Wasatch, of which they were 
the more or less modified descendants. With two possible 
exceptions, there were no new immigrants and the connection 
with the Old World may have been already severed, as it as- 
suredly was in the succeeding age, the Bridger, though diver- 
gent development had not yet had time to produce the very 
striking differences in the mammals of North America from 
those of Europe, which characterized the Bridger. 

The Green River phase is a thick body of finely laminated 
‘paper shales,’ which seem to have been deposited in a very 
shallow lake and occupy some 5000 square miles of the Green 
River valley in southern Wyoming and northern Utah, where 
they overlie the Wasatch, just as do the Wind River beds in 
the Big Horn Basin. These fine-grained and thinly laminated 
shales have preserved, often in beautiful perfection, countless 
remains of plants, insects and fishes, but no traces of mammals, 
other than footprints, have been found. 


110 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


The third of the Eocene stages of the interior is the Bridger 
of southern Wyoming and northeastern Utah, where it lies 
upon the Green River shales, but overlaps these shales both 
eastward and westward, extending out upon the Wasatch. 
The Bridger beds are largely made up of volcanic ash and dust 
deposited partly upon the land and partly in shallow or tem- 
porary lakes. The frequency with which the remains of fishes, 
crocodiles and fresh-water shells are found indicates deposition . 
in water, and the large crystals of gypsum which are abundant 
in certain localities show that the water became salt, at least 
occasionally. From the immense mass of volcanic débris, it 
is evident that volcanic activity broke out at this time on a 
much greater scale than had been known in that region since 
the Cretaceous period. Two different horizons, or substages, 
are distinguishable in the Bridger, lower and upper, each of 
which has its distinct mammalian fauna, though the two are 
very closely allied. Their difference from the contemporary 
mammals of Europe is very great, hardly any genera being 
common to the two continents. So striking a difference in- 
dubitably points to a severance of the land-connection, a sever- 
ance which, as was shown above, probably took place during 
the Wind River stage, for its effects would not be immediately 
apparent; time would be required for the operation of diver- 
gent evolution, the fauna of each continent developing along 
its own lines, to make itself so strongly felt. Had the connec- 
tion never been renewed, North America, on the one hand, and 
Eurasia on the other, would to-day be utterly different from the 
zoological point of view, instead of containing, as they do, 
a great many identical or closely similar animals of all classes, 
a likeness due to subsequent migrations. 

The fourth and last of the stages referred to the Eocene 
is the Uinta, the geological position of which is the subject 
of much debate; almost as good reasons can be brought 
forward for placing it in the Oligocene as in the Eocene, so 
nearly is it on the boundary line between those two epochs. 


GEOGRAPHICAL DEVELOPMENT OF THE AMERICAS 111 


The Uinta is found in the Green River valley of northeasterri 
Utah and northwestern Colorado, where it lies upon the upper 
Bridger and is the latest of the important Tertiary formations 
to be found in the plateau region west of the Rocky Mountains. 
It is probable that the separation of North America from the 
Old World still continued, for, as a whole, the Uinta fauna 
is totally different from that of the upper Eocene of Europe. 
There were, however, a few doubtful forms, which may prove 
to be the outposts of a renewed invasion. 

The Eocene climate was decidedly warmer than the present 
one, and subtropical conditions extended over the whole United 
States and perhaps far into Canada. On the other hand, 
signs of increasing aridity in the western part of the continent 
are not wanting, and that must have resulted in a great shrink- 
age of the forests and increase of the open plains. The vegeta- 
tion was essentially the same as in the Paleocene, when it had 
already attained a modern character, the differences from the 
present being chiefly in regard to geographical distribution. 
Large palms were then flourishing in Wyoming and Idaho, 
and another indication of a warm climate is furnished by the 
large crocodiles which abounded in all of the Eocene stages. 

So far as North America was concerned, the Eocene epoch 
was brought to a close by extensive movements of the earth’s 
crust, which more or less affected the entire continent and were 
registered both on the sea-coasts and in the mountain ranges 
of the interior. Upheaval added a narrow belt of land along 
the Atlantic and Gulf coasts and the Mississippi Embayment 
was nearly closed. On the Pacific side the sea withdrew from 
the great valley of California and Oregon, and in the interior 
the plateau region was elevated by a great disturbance, which 
also increased the height of the western mountains. 

Our knowledge of Eocene land-mammals in North America 
is almost wholly derived from the formations of the western 
United States, but it may be inferred from the uniform climatic 
conditions that there were no very great geographical dif- 


112 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


ferences among the animals. This inference is confirmed by 
the discovery of a Bridger genus, very fragmentary but identi- 
fiable, in the marine Eocene of New Jersey. 

South America. — No Eocene rocks, marine or continental, 
are known in the West Indies or Central America, but the latter 
region has been so imperfectly explored that no great impor- 
tance can be attached to this fact. North and South America 
were separated completely, as is proved by the entire dis- 
similarity of their mammalian faunas, but the position of the 
transverse sea or strait cannot be determined. There is much 
reason to believe that the Greater Antilles were connected 
into a single large land, which has been called ‘‘Antillia”’ 
and may have been joined to the mainland of Central America. 
Certain marine rocks in Patagonia and Chili have been re- 
ferred to the Eocene by South American geologists, but the 
reference is almost certainly erroneous, the rocks in question 
being much more probably Miocene. The Andes, probably 
throughout their length and certainly in their southern half, 
stood at a much lower level than they do now, and, no doubt, 
were rising, either slowly and steadily, or periodically and more 
rapidly, throughout the whole Tertiary period. At all events, 
their present height in the south is due to movements in the 
Pliocene or later. Continental deposits of Eocene date have 
been discovered only in northern Patagonia (Casa Mayor) 
where they occupy depressions in the worn and eroded sur- 
faces of the Cretaceous rocks; the mode of their formation 
has not been carefully studied. 

There is great uncertainty as to the status of the land- 
bridge which, it is believed, in the Cretaceous period connected 
South America with Africa. Some of the evidence goes to 
show that the connection persisted throughout the Eocene 
epoch, but the testimony is that of fragmentary and therefore 
imperfectly understood fossils and is farfrom being unequivocal. 
The connection with Antarctica probably continued. 


GEOGRAPHICAL DEVELOPMENT OF THE AMERICAS 113 


3. Oligocene Epoch 


North America. — The Oligocene, or third of the Tertiary 
epochs, was a time of great significance in the history of the 
American mammals and of great geographical changes in the 
West Indian and Central American regions, but in North 
America proper the changes were not so widespread. On the 
Atlantic coast the marine Oligocene is but scantily displayed 
except in the Florida peninsula, where it is found in a thick- 
ness of some 2000 feet, but it is well developed along the north 
shore of the Gulf of Mexico, where the coast-line followed 
that of the Eocene, only a little farther to the south, marking 
the retreat of the sea at the end of the Eocene. The Gulf 
Stream entered the Atlantic over the site of northern Florida 
and flowed northward nearer the coast than it does to-day, 
in consequence of which warm-water conditions extended far 
to the north and West Indian shells flourished on the New 
Jersey coast. In the middle Oligocene part of northern Florida 
was elevated into an island and the water over much of the 
remainder of the peninsula became shallower, but this did 
not greatly alter the course of the Gulf Stream. The Pacific 
encroached upon the western shore of Oregon and British 
Columbia and very extensively upon that of Alaska, where 
strata no less than 10,000 feet thick are assigned to this 
epoch. 

In the western interior Oligocene formations are among 
the most important and widely spread of the continental 
Tertiaries and are divisible into two principal stages and each 
of these again into three substages. Of these, the older or 
White River stage covers a vast region in northeastern Colo- 
rado, western Nebraska, eastern Wyoming and southern 
South Dakota, with separate areas in the Black Hills, North 
Dakota and the Northwest Territory of Canada. The de- 
posits are believed to be chiefly of fluviatile origin, and many 
of the ancient stream-channels, some of great size, may still 


I 


a 


( 


“Sy e 


| 


k 
HW] 
a fl 
sae 3 N| | 


yy F.-Y 
es \ lod 
\ o Bal lll 
\ \ rt 
i X , im 4 f yaa Mall Mi ve 
ae . + i] 
aad Y i 1 a ryt 
Taree 
Th 
N 
penne 4 
J — 
ors PUD al 
Poe ae y 
as aca | 
L 
«| 
1! 
os 1 
a=! 
. wid r I filll 
oe ee ef ee 
ae eee MY PF, i md. / = 
We ; ue 


(After Schuchert.) 


LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


114 


™ @, 


4 


mit 


Map of North America in the upper Oligocene. Explanation‘as in Fig. 48. 


Fra. 50. 


GEOGRAPHICAL DEVELOPMENT OF THE AMERICAS 115 


be traced, filled with the consolidated sands and gravels of 
the old rivers. The country was very flat and the divides 
between the streams very low, so that in seasons of flood 
great regions were converted into shallow, temporary lakes, 
in which were deposited the finer silt and mud, but were dry 
for most of the year. The volcanic activity which had gone 
on so impressively in the Bridger Eocene was renewed in 
White River times, as is proved by thick beds of pure volcanic 
ash, which must have been carried long distances by the wind, 
for they occur far from any volcanic vent. 

The White River fauna is more completely known than 
that of any other Tertiary formation of this continent. The 
first discovery of these fossils was made more than 70 years 
ago and since then oft-repeated expeditions have brought to 
light an astonishing number and variety of mammals. Not 
only are these beds remarkable for the immense quantity of 
material which they have yielded, but also for its complete- 
ness and beauty of preservation, a most unusual number of 
skeletons having been obtained. The mammals demonstrate 
that the land-connection with the Old World had been re- 
established, for many European genera, which could not have 
been derived from an American ancestry, are found in the 
White River beds. At the same time, there was no such 
proportion of forms common to both continents as there had 
been in the Wasatch-Sparnacian stage of the lower Eocene, 
each having many genera and even families which did not 
extend their range into the other. The reason for this remark- 
able and, at first sight, inexplicable difference between the 
lower Eocene and the lower Oligocene is probably to be found 
in climatic changes, in consequence of which relatively fewer 
genera were able to take advantage of the reopened connection, 
which lay far to the north. The White River mammals, like 
those of the Recent epoch, are thus divisible into two groups 
or elements, one set indigenous and descended from ancestors 
which are found in the American Eocene, and the other com- 


A 


116 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


posed of late immigrants from the Old World. Migrants 
from North America likewise made their way to Europe. 

The upper continental Oligocene of the interior has re- 
ceived the peculiar appellation of the John Day, from the river 
of that name in eastern Oregon, a large part of which was 
buried to a depth of 3000 or 4000 feet in stratified volcanic 
ash and tuff. This great mass of finely divided volcanic 
material was derived from the craters of the Cascade Moun- 
tains to the westward; a long-continued series of eruptions 
would be needed to form such thick accumulations at such 
a distance from the sources of supply. The John Day evi- 
dently succeeded the White River very closely in time, but 
is marked by the disappearance of almost all the European 
migrants. This fact, together with the absence of any new 
immigrant genera, is evidence that the connection had again 
been broken and it was not renewed until after a considerable 
lapse of time. 

There are many reasons for believing that the Oligocene 
climate marked the beginning of the very long and gradual 
process of refrigeration which culminated in the glacial con- 
ditions of the Pleistocene epoch, but the change was slight 
and probably chiefly affected the far north. The climate, 
however, remained notably warmer than the present one of 
the same extra-tropical latitudes, as is abundantly proved by 
the fossils. The Atlantic coast,.as noted above, was bathed 
in warm waters, the plants of the Alaskan Oligocene point 
to temperate conditions and the vegetation of Europe was 
subtropical, palms growing in the north of Germany. The 
change which was distinctly to be noted in the Great Plains 
region of North America was probably due rather to the ele- 
vation.and increased altitude of the western interior than to 
general climatic alteration. Crocodiles are very rare indeed 
in the White River beds and those that have been found all 
belong to dwarf species, while none are known from the John 
Day. Unfortunately, hardly anything has been ascertained 


GEOGRAPHICAL DEVELOPMENT OF THE AMERICAS 117 


concerning the Oligocene vegetation of the region, but the 
reptiles indicate diminished warmth. 

South America. —Marine Oligocene strata have great 
extent around the Gulf of Mexico and the Caribbean Sea, and 
the distribution of these shows that Antillia was broken up 
by great submergences, the islands of the Greater Antilles 
being much smaller than they are to-day. The greater part 
of Central America and the Isthmus were under water, a 
broad sea, broken only by scattered islands, separating North 
and South America. Very little is known of the Oligocene in 
the latter continent save a non-marine formation in northern 
Patagonia, the Deseado stage (or Pyrotherium Beds), which, 
like the Eocene of the same region, occupies depressions in 
the worn and irregular surface of the Cretaceous rocks. The 
attribution of the Deseado to the Oligocene is open to some 
doubt, because of the entire absence in its mammalian fauna 
of any elements which are also found in the northern hemi- 
sphere. Hence, there are no means of direct comparison. 


4. Miocene Epoch 


North America. — The Atlantic and Gulf coasts, which 
had been raised in the Oligocene, were again depressed, almost 
restoring the Eocene coast-line, the chief differences being 
the presence of the Florida islands and the nearly complete 
closing of the Mississippi Embayment. There was a remark- 
able change in the marine fauna from that of Oligocene times ; 
a cool current flowed southward along the coast and entered 
the Gulf of Mexico through the strait between the Florida 
island and the mainland, bringing the northern animals with 
it and driving out the tropical forms. This complete faunal 
change, which might fairly be called a revolution, was the most 
sudden and striking in the Tertiary history of the continent. 

On the Pacific coast also there was a depression, which 
caused a renewed transgression of the sea. The Coast Range 
formed a chain of reefs and islands in the Miocene sea, which 


118 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


again filled the great valley of California, except in the northern 
part of what is now the Sacramento Valley, where there was 
an accumulation of continental deposits. The immense thick- 
ness (5000 to 7000 feet) of the California Miocene is largely 
made up of. volcanic material, which testifies to the great 
activity of the vents. In the Sierras, the height of which was 
increased in the upper Miocene, there was also a great display 
of vulcanism, recorded in the lava-flows and tuffs of the time. 
In the region of Lower California and northwestern Mexico 
considerable changes of the coast-line took place during the 
Miocene; in the earlier half of the epoch the Gulf of Cali- 
fornia was much shorter and narrower than it is to-day and 
the peninsula was broadly united with the mainland to the 
east as well as to the north. A wide submergence marked 
the upper Miocene, reducing the peninsula to a long, narrow 
island and enlarging the gulf considerably beyond its present 
limits, flooding an extensive area in northwestern Mexico and 
sending a small bay into southeastern California. There were 
great disturbances in the course of the epoch, for in the Santa 
Cruz Mountains near San Francisco the lower Miocene strata 
were crumpled into folds, before those of the upper Miocene 
were deposited upon them. British Columbia, Washington 
and Oregon were invaded by the sea, which extended up the 
valley of the Columbia River and its southern tributary, the 
Willamette, though here the beds are far thinner than those 
of California. Much of Alaska, both on the north and west 
coasts and in the valley of the Yukon, was submerged, and the 
land-connection with Asia appears to have been broken. This 
is made probable not only by the submergence of the Alaskan 
coast, but also by the fact that the marine animals of the Cali- 
fornia coasts and shoal waters, which could not migrate across 
the ocean, were quite unlike the contemporary forms of the 
eastern Asiatic shore, which would hardly have been the case, 
had a continuous coast-line united the two continents. On the 
other hand, there was a renewed connection with Europe, as 


119 


GEOGRAPHICAL DEVELOPMENT OF THE AMERICAS 


a 


BS 


FRSC SSS scale 2 


al 


Explanation as in Fig. 48. 


Fig. 51.— Map of North America in the upper Miocene. 


(Modified from Schuchert.) 


120 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


is shown by the appearance of Old World land-mammals, 
beginning scantily in the lower and becoming numerous in 
the middle Miocene. This connection, it will be remembered, 
had been interrupted during the upper Oligocene. Many 
students of the problem have maintained that the land-bridge 
was by way of the West Indies and the Mediterranean lands, 
but such a bridge would not account for the facts of mammalian 
distribution, which would seem to require its location in the 
far north. s 

Several distinct lines of evidence go to prove that the 
junction of the Americas dates from the Miocene, possibly 
from the beginning of it. The absence of Atlantic species 
from the Pacific Miocene is an indication that the passage 
from ocean to ocean had been closed, and this is confirmed by 
the geology of the Central American and Isthmian region. 
In the middle Miocene of Oregon and Nebraska have been 
found remains, which are unfortunately too incomplete for 
altogether convincing identification, but which can be inter- 
preted only as belonging to the extinct and most characteristi- 
cally South American group of edentates, the tground-sloths or 
{Gravigrada; if this reference is correct, the fact of the junc- 
tion cannot be questioned. 

Continental deposits of Miocene date, chiefly accumula- 
tions made by rivers and the wind, cover vast areas of the west- 
ern interior, though but rarely to any considerable depth. 
These have been divided into several stages and have received 
various names; the lower Miocene, known as the Arikaree, 
Harrison or Rosebud, overlies the White River in South Dakota, 
western Nebraska and eastern Wyoming, with smaller areas in 
Montana and Colorado. In the deposits of this stage there 
are no mammals of indisputably Old World type, though a few 
which I consider to be such are a probable indication of re- 
newed connection with Europe. The middle Miocene is 
found typically in central Montana, where it is called the 


t Extinct. 


GEOGRAPHICAL DEVELOPMENT OF THE AMERICAS 121 


Deep River (or Smith River) stage, but occurs also in numerous 
small, scattered and widely separated areas in Oregon, 
Wyoming, Colorado and Texas, with local names in these 
different states. It is most likely that these middle Miocene 
formations are not strictly contemporaneous in the geological 
sense, but rather form a closely connected and successive series. 
The mammals of the Deep River stage leave no doubt that the 
way of migration from the Old World was again open. 

The Loup Fork, or upper Miocene, itself susceptible of 
further subdivision, is by far the most extensive of the Miocene 
formations and covers much of the Great Plains region, in 
separate areas, from South Dakota far into Mexico. Perhaps 
also referable to the upper Miocene is a small, but very inter- 
esting formation, the Florissant, which is in the South Park 
of Colorado; it was made by very fine volcanic material 
showered into a small and shallow lake. The finely laminated 
papery shales of the Florissant have preserved countless 
plants and insects and many fishes, and these throw very 
welcome light upon the vegetation and climatic conditions 
of the epoch and afford an interesting contrast to the fauna 
and flora of the Green River shales of the lower or middle 
Eocene. That the Florissant shales are Miocene, no one 
questions, but: their isolated position and the fact that they 
have yielded no mammals make it somewhat doubtful whether 
they belong in the middle or later part of the epoch. 

In the western portion of the continent vulcanism was dis- 
played on a grand scale during the Miocene. Mention has 
already been made of the quantity of volcanic material in the 
marine Miocene of California and also in the lavas and tuffs 
of the Sierras. The magnificent cones, such as Mts. Hood 
and Tacoma, which are the glory of the Cascades, are believed 
to date from this time. In Idaho and eastern Oregon and. 
Washington are the immense lava-fields of the Columbia 
’ River, which are, partly at least, of Miocene date and were 
chiefly extruded through great fissures, the lava flooding the 


122 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


valleys and plains in a fiery sea of molten rock. In Oregon 
these lavas rest upon the upper Oligocene (John Day stage) 
and middle Miocene beds are deposited upon them, which 
fixes their date sufficiently. In the Yellowstone Park was 
piled up a huge mass of voleanic products, lava-flows and beds 
of ash and tuff, to a thickness of several thousand feet. The 
ash-beds have preserved the petrified forests, with their tree- 
trunks still standing one above another; one locality in the 
Park shows seven such forests, each’one killed and buried 
by a great discharge of ash and then a new forest established 
and growing upon the surface of the accumulation. In the 
tuffs are leaf-impressions which permit identification of the 
plants. ; 

In the latter part of the Miocene and at its close there were 
important crustal movements, which affected all the Pacific 
coast mountain ranges, though this epoch was.no such time of 
mountain making in America as it was in the Old World. 
The principal elevation of the Coast Range“in., California and 
Oregon was due to these movements, and the ‘Sierras and the 
plateaus of Utah and Arizona were increased’ in height. On 
the Atlantic side the Florida island was joined to the mainland 
and thus the present shape of the continent was almsést-exactly 


~ 


gained. pee 
The Miocene climate of North America, as indicated by 
the plants of Florissant, the Yellowstone Park and Oregon, was 
distinctly milder than at present, a southern vegetation of 
warm-temperate character extending to Montana and perhaps 
much farther north, but it was not so warm as it had been 
in the Eocene, and palms are not found in any of the localities 
mentioned, nor do crocodiles occur in any of the northern 
Miocene formations. In Europe the climate ef the early 
Miocene was considerably warmer than in North America, 
the vegetation of central and western Europe being very much 
like that of modern India. This difference between the two ~ 
sides of the Atlantic was probably due, in large part, to the 


GEOGRAPHICAL DEVELOPMENT OF THE AMERICAS 123 


manner in which Europe was broken and intersected by arms 
and gulfs of the warm southern sea. In the latter half of the 
epoch, however, the climate became colder, the subtropical 
flora giving way to a distinctly temperate one. . 

South America. — In Central America, where marine Oli- 
gocene beds are of great extent, no Miocene is known, and on 
the Isthmus Oligocene is the latest marine formation, except 
a narrow fringe of Pleistocene on the Caribbean coast. These 
facts and others already cited lead to the conclusion that in 
the Miocene the connection of the Americas was complete and 
that the Isthmus was considerably broader than at present, 
extending nearly to Jamaica. The condition of the Greater 
Antilles is but vaguely understood, but they were involved in 
the general elevation of the Caribbean region and were at 
least as large as they are now and may have been considerably 
larger, and Cuba was perhaps joined. to Central America, as 
Hayti probably was. 

In South America proper nearly the whole of Patagonia 
was submergéd- “by the transgression of a shallow, epiconti- 
nental sea,#n which were accumulated the beds of the Pata- 
gonian stage, containing an exceedingly rich and varied as- 
sembl ei marine fossils, an assemblage which has very little 
in common withthe contemporary formations of the northern 
hemisphere. It is this lack of elements common to the northern 
faunas which has led to the long debate concerning the geo- 
logical date of the Patagonian formation, the South American 
geologists very generally referring it to the Eocene. How- 
ever, the occurrence of genera of Cetaceans (whales and dol- 
phins), which are also found in the Miocene of Maryland and 
Virginia, is very strong evidence that the proper date of the 
Patagonian is Miocene. A continuous coast-line, or at least 
an unbroken continuity of shoal-water conditions, seems neces- 
sary to account for the similarity of the Patagonian fossils 
with those of New Zealand and Australia, and that this con- 
nection was by way of the Antarctic continent is indicated by 


124 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


the occurrence of similar fossils in the South Shetland Islands, 
an Antarctic group. On the Chilian coast the Navidad forma- 
tion, which is believed to be approximately contemporaneous 
with the Patagonian, has so different a fauna as to point to 
some kind of a barrier between the Atlantic and the Pacific, 
and this barrier, Dr. von Ihering holds, was the land-extension 
from South America to Antarctica. 

After some oscillations of retreat and advance, the sea with- 
drew from Patagonia, and the terrestrial accumulations of the 
Santa Cruz stage were formed. These beds are partly com- 
posed: of river-deposits, but chiefly of more or less consolidated 
volcanic ash or tuff, and have yielded a surprising number of 
beautifully preserved mammals. No other assemblage of 
South American Tertiary Mammalia is so well known and 
understood as the Santa Cruz fauna, and the very large number 
of all but complete skeletons which have been found strongly 
suggests that many of the animals were buried alive in the 
showers of volcanic ash. The Santa Cruz fauna is completely 
and radically different from any of the North American as- 
semblages, and at that time no immigrant from the north had 
penetrated so far as Patagonia. 

In the upper Miocene the Andes stood at a much lower 
level than they do now; fossil plants, some of them collected 
at a great height in the mountains, are the remains of a luxuri- 
ant and purely tropical flora nearly identical with the vegeta- 
tion of the modern forests of Bolivia and Brazil. Such a 
vegetation could not exist at the altitudes where the fossils 
occur and these demonstrate a great elevation of the mountains 
since those leaves were embedded. The same mild climatic 
conditions which prevailed in the northern hemisphere during 
the Miocene must also have characterized Patagonia, sub- 
tropical shells extending far to the south of their present 
range. 

Whatever may have been true of the land-bridge connecting 
South America with Africa during the early Tertiary epochs, 


GEOGRAPHICAL DEVELOPMENT OF THE AMERICAS 125 


it must have been submerged in the Miocene, otherwise there 
would not have been the open pathway for the Cetacea of 
Patagonia to reach the Atlantic coast of North America and 
vice versa. 
5. Pliocene Epoch 

North America. — The Pliocene of North America is not 
nearly so well displayed or so satisfactorily known as the pre- 
ceding Tertiary epochs, and only of comparatively late years 
has it been recognized at all upon the Atlantic coast. The 
Atlantic and Gulf shores had very nearly their present outlines, 
but with some notable differences. It would seem that the 
northeastern portion of the continent stood at a higher level 
than it does now, north Greenland being joined with the islands 
of the Arctic archipelago and Newfoundland with Labrador, 
the Gulf of St. Lawrence then being land. From Nova Scotia 
to southern New Jersey the coast-line was many miles to the 
east and south of its present position, but the sea encroached 
here and there upon the shores of Virginia, the Carolinas and 
Georgia, and southern Florida was mostly under water, as was 
also a narrow strip of the Gulf coast from Florida to Texas 
and along the east of Mexico. ‘On the Pacific side of the con- 
tinent the marine Pliocene is far thicker and more important 
than on the east coast and in California is largely made up of 
volcanic materials. Quite extensive disturbances in this 
region had marked the close of the Miocene, the strata of which 
in the Coast Range had been violently compressed and folded. 
An elevation of the land had caused the sea to withdraw from 
the central valley of California and had restored Lower Cali- 
fornia to its peninsular conditions, reducing the gulf to the 
narrow limits which it had had in the lower Miocene and ex- 
tending southern Mexico to the west and south. British 
Columbia and southeastern Alaska stood at higher than their 
present levels and the countless islands of that region were 
part of the mainland. Bering Strait was closed, for at least 
a great part of the epoch, and, as a continuous shore-line was 


LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


126 


Sw 


be-\_. 


prea d 


Fria. 52. — Map of North America during the Pliocene epoch, Bering Strait open. Ex- 


(Modified from Schuchert.) 


planation as in Fig. 48. 


GEOGRAPHICAL DEVELOPMENT OF THE AMERICAS 127 


thus formed and a way of migration opened, the marine fauna 
of California and Japan became closely similar. 

In the interior, the Pliocene continental formations and 
faunas followed so gradually upon those of the Miocene, that 
there is great doubt as to where the line between them should 
be drawn. These interior formations are mostly of small 
extent and are very widely scattered, and much remains to 
be learned regarding the mammals of the epoch. In northern 
Kansas are the Republican River beds, which are so doubtfully 
Pliocene, that they may almost equally well be called upper- 
most Miocene. Other lower Pliocene stages, representing 
various divisions of time, are the Alachua of northern Florida, 
the Snake Creek of western Nebraska, the Thousand Creek and 
Virgin Valley of northwestern Nevada and the Rattlesnake 
of Oregon. Probably middle Pliocene is the Blanco of north- 
western Texas, a valley cut in the middle and lower Miocene 
rocks and filled in with Pliocene deposits. Possibly upper 
Pliocene, or, it may be, lowest Pleistocene, are the Peace 
Creek of southwestern Florida and the so-called ‘‘ Loup River” 
(not Loup Fork) of western Nebraska. 

The volcanic activity of the Rocky Mountain and Pacific 
coast regions, which was so remarkable in the Miocene, con- 
tinued into and perhaps through the Pliocene. The great 
outflow of light-coloured lava which built up the central 
plateau of the Yellowstone Park is referred to the Pliocene, 
and some of the enormous fissure-eruptions which formed the 
vast Columbia River fields of black basaltic lava were probably 
Pliocene, as some were demonstrably Miocene. Both of these 
epochs were remarkable for volcanic activity in the western 
part of the continent. 

The Pliocene climate, as may be inferred from the plants 
and marine shells, was colder than that of the Miocene, and 
refrigeration was progressive, as is shown by the proportion of 
Arctic shells in the Pliocene beds of the east coast of England, 
rising from 5 per cent in the oldest to more than 60 per cent 


128 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


in the latest beds. In the Arctic regions the cold must have 
been severe, at least during the latter half of the epoch, for 
in the succeeding Pleistocene we find an Arctic fauna already 
fully adapted to the extreme severity of present day polar 
conditions and time was necessary for such an adaptation. 
In the western interior the climate was not only colder, but 
also drier than it had been in the Miocene, the desiccation 
which had begun in the latter epoch becoming progressively 
more and more marked. 

South America. -—'The Greater Antilles were larger than 
‘at present and Cuba was much extended, especially to the 
southeastward, and was probably connected with the main- 
land, not as one would naturally expect, with Yucatan, but 
with Central America; this island, it is most likely, was cut 
off from Hayti. The Isthmian region was considerably broader 
than it is now and afforded a more convenient highway of 
intermigration. Costa Rica was invaded by a Pliocene 
gulf, but it is not yet clear whether this persisted for the whole 
or only a part of the epoch. In the Argentine province of 
Entrerios is a formation, the Parand, which is most probably 
Pliocene, though it may be upper Miocene. This formation 
is largely marine and shows that the present Rio de la Plata 
was then a gulf from the Atlantic. A few northern hemisphere 
mammals in the Parand beds show that the migration had 
advanced far into South America. A large part of Patagonia 
was again submerged beneath the sea, which extended to the 
Andes in places, but just how general the submergence was, 
it is impossible to say, for the Cape Fairweather formation has 
been largely carried away by erosion and only fragments of 
it remain. Along the foothills of the Andes these beds are 
upturned and raised several thousand feet above the sea-level, 
a proof that the final upheaval of the southern mountains took 
place at some time later than the early Pliocene. Continental 
formations of Pliocene date are largely developed in Argentina ; 
the Araucanian stage is in two substages, one in the province 


GEOGRAPHICAL DEVELOPMENT OF THE AMERICAS 129 


of Catamarca, where the beds are much indurated and were 
involved in the Andean uplift, the other, of unconsolidated 
materials, is at Monte Hermoso near Bahia Blanca on the 
Atlantic coast. The very small proportion of northern ani- 
mals in the Araucanian beds is surprising, but not more so than 
the almost complete absence of South American types in the 
upper Miocene and lower Pliocene of the United States. Inter- 
migration between the two Americas would seem to have been 
a much slower and more difficult process than between North 
America and the Old World, and the reason for the difference 
is probably the greater climatic barriers involved in a migration 
along the lines of longitude. Upper Pliocene is found in the 
Tarija Valley of Bolivia and probably also in Ecuador, in both 
of which areas the proportion of northern animals was very 
greatly increased. 
II. QuaTERNARY PERIOD 


The Quaternary period was a time of remarkable geo- 
graphical and climatic changes, which had the profoundest 
and most far-reaching effects, partly by migration and partly 
by extinction, upon the distribution of animals and’ plants, 
effects which are naturally more obvious than those of earlier 
geological events, just because they were the latest. It is cus- 
tomary to divide the period into two epochs, (1) the Pleis- 
tocene or Glacial, and (2) the Recent, which continues to the 
present day. 

1. Pleistocene Epoch 

When Louis Agassiz first suggested (1840) the idea of a time, 
comparatively recent in the geological sense, when northern 
and central Europe was buried under immense sheets of 
slowly moving ice, like the ‘‘ice-cap”’ of modern Greenland, 
the conception was received with incredulity. Nearly thirty 
years passed before this startling theory gained the general 
acceptance of geologists, but now it is one of the common- 
places of the science, for no other hypothesis so well explains 


the complicated phenomena of Pleistocene geology. One great 
K 


130 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


obstacle to the acceptance of the glacial theory was the sup- 
posed fact that the Pleistocene glaciation was something quite 
unique in the history of the earth, a violent aberration in 
the development of climates. Now, however, we have every 
reason to believe that at least three other and very ancient 
periods had witnessed similar climatic changes and that ‘‘ice- 
ages’’ were recurrent phenomena. This is not the place to 
discuss or even to summarize the evidence which has convinced 
nearly all geologists of the reality of Pleistocene glacial con- 
ditions on a vast scale in Asia, Europe and, above all, in North 
America. The reader who may wish to examine this evidence 
will find an admirable presentation of it in Vol. III of the 
“Geology” of Professors Chamberlin and Salisbury. 

North America. — There has long been a difference of 
opinion among students of the Pleistocene as to whether the 
glaciation was single, or several times renewed. That there 
were many advances and retreats of the ice, is not denied; 
the question is, whether there were truly interglacial stages, 
when the ice altogether disappeared from the continent and 
the climate was greatly ameliorated. The present tendency 
among American and European geologists is decidedly in 
favour of accepting several distinct glacial stages (Chamberlin 
and Salisbury admit six of these) separated by interglacial 
stages, and for this there are very strong reasons. While it 
is out of the question to present the evidence for this conclusion 
here, one or two significant facts may be noted. On the north 
shore of Lake Ontario, near Toronto, are certain water-made 
deposits, which rest upon one sheet of glacial drift and are 
overlaid by another. The fossils of the aqueous sediments 
are in two series, upper and lower, of which the older and 
lower contains plants and insects indicative of a climate con- 
siderably warmer than that of the same region to-day and 
corresponding to the temperature of modern Virginia. In 
the upper and newer beds the fossils show the return of cold 
conditions, much like those of southern Labrador, and this 


GEOGRAPHICAL DEVELOPMENT OF THE AMERICAS 131 


was followed by the reéstablishment of the ice, as recorded 
in the upper sheet of drift. Even far to the north, on the 
Hudson’s Bay slope, an interglacial forest is embedded between 
two glacial drift-sheets. In Iowa and South Dakota numerous 
mammals of temperate character occur in interglacial beds. 

At the time of their greatest extension, the glaciers covered 
North America down to latitude 40° N., though the great 
terminal moraine, which marks the ice-front and has been 
traced across the continent from Nantucket to British 
Columbia, describes a very sinuous line. The ice was not a 
homogeneous sheet, moving southward as a whole, but flowed 
in all directions away from several, probably four, centres 
of accumulation and dispersal. At thesame time, the western 
mountain ranges had a far greater snow-supply than at present, 
and great glaciers flowed down all the valleys of the Rocky 
Mountains as far south as New Mexico and in the Sierras to 
southern California, while the Wasatch, Uinta and Cascade 
ranges and those of British Columbia and Alaska were heavily 
glaciated, but, strange to say, the lowlands of Alaska were 
free from ice. During the periods of greatest cold the rain- 
belt was displaced far to the south of its normal position, 
bringing a heavy precipitation to regions which are now ex- 
tremely arid. In the Great Basin were formed two very large 
lakes; on the east side, rising high upon the flanks of the 
Wasatch Mountains, was Lake Bonneville, the shrunken and 
pygmy remnant of which is the Salt Lake of Utah, and on the 
west side, in Nevada, was Lake Lahontan. Lake Bonneville, 
which was nearly two-thirds the size of Lake Superior, dis- 
charged northward into the Snake River, a tributary of the 
Columbia, but Lahontan had no outlet. Each of these lakes had 
two periods of expansion, with a time of complete desiccation 
between them. 

Over the Great Plains the principal Pleistocene formation 
is that known as the Sheridan, or, from the abundanee of 
horse-remains which are entombed in it, the Equus Beds. 


132 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


These beds extend as a mantle of wind-drifted and compacted 
dust from South Dakota to Texas and in places contain multi- 
tudes of fossil bones; they correspond to one of the early 
interglacial stages and in South Dakota pass underneath a 
glacial moraine. 

The upheaval which came at or near the end of the Pliocene 
had raised the continent, or at least its northeastern portion, 
to a height considerably greater than it has at present, and this 
must have facilitated the gathering of great masses of snow; 
but before the end of the Pleistocene a subsidence of the same 
region brought about important geographical changes. The 
depression, which lowered the coast at the mouth of the Hudson 
about 70 feet below its present level, increased northward to 
600 feet or more in the St. Lawrence Valley and allowed the 
sea to invade that valley and enter Lake Ontario. From this 
gulf ran two long, narrow bays, one far up the valley of the 
Ottawa and the other into the basin of Lake Champlain. The 
raised beaches, containing marine shells and the bones of whales, 
seals and walruses, give eloquent testimony of those vanished 
seas. The recovery from this depression and the rise of the 
continent to its present level inaugurated the Recent epoch. 

When the ice had finally disappeared, it left behind it 
great sheets of drift, which completely changed the surface 
of the country and revolutionized the systems of drainage by 
filling up the old valleys, only the largest streams being able 
to regain their former courses. Hundreds of buried valleys 
have been disclosed by the borings for oil and gas in the Middle 
West, and these, when mapped, show a system of drainage 
very different from that of modern times. Innumerable 
lakes, large and small, were formed in depressions and rock- 
basins and behind morainic dams, the contrast between the 
glaciated and non-glaciated regions in regard to the number 
of lakes in each being very striking. 

On the west coast events were quite different; marine 
Pleistocene beds in two stages are found in southern Cali- 


GEOGRAPHICAL DEVELOPMENT OF THE AMERICAS 133 


fornia. The upheavals late in the Pleistocene, or at its close, 
were far greater than on the Atlantic side, 4000 feet in south- 
eastern Alaska, 200 feet on the coast of Oregon and rising again 
to 3000 feet in southern California; all the western mountain 
ranges and plateaus were increased in height by these move- 
ments. The volcanoes continued to be very active, as may be 
seen from the lava-sheets and streams in Alaska, all the Pacific 
states, Arizona and New Mexico. 

South America.— No such vast ice-sheets were formed in 
the southern hemisphere as in the northern. Patagonia was 
the only part of South America to be extensively covered with 
ice and there traces of three glaciations have been observed, 
of which the first was the greatest and reached to the Atlantic 
coast, and there were great ice-masses on the coast of southern 
Chili. Mountain glaciers existed throughout the length of the 
Andes across the Equator to 11° N. lat., the elevation increas- 
ing northward to the tropics. The surface of the great Argentine 
plain of the Pampas between 30° and 40° S. lat. is covered 
with a vast mantle, largely of wind-accumulated dust, the Pam- 
pean, which is the sepulchre of an astonishing number of great 
and strange beasts. The Pampean formation corresponds 
in a general way to the Sheridan or Equus Beds of North 
America, but involves a much greater lapse of time, beginning 
earlier, possibly in the late Pliocene, and apparently lasting 
through the entire Pleistocene. While largely of zolian origin, 
the Pampean seems to be in part made of delta deposits 
laid down by rivers. One striking difference between the 
Pampean, on the one hand, and the Sheridan and the loess of 
the Mississippi Valley and of Europe, on the other, is that the 
former is in many places much more consolidated and stony, 
which gives it a false appearance of antiquity. Another and 
very rich source of Pleistocene mammals is found in the lime- 
stone caves of eastern Brazil, which have yielded an incredible 
quantity of such material, but not in such a remarkably per- 
fect state of preservation as the skeletons of the Pampean. 


134 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


Very little is known of the Pleistocene in the West Indies, 
though probably to this date should be assigned the notable 
oscillations of level which are recorded in the raised sea- 
terraces of Cuba and other islands. The Windward groups 
were joined, at least in part, to the continent and large extinct 
rodents reached Antigua, which would not be possible under 
present conditions. The Isthmus of Panama was 200 feet 
or more higher than it is now and correspondingly wider, but 
was depressed to a lower than the present level, and finally 
raised to the height it now has. Marine beds, of presumably 
Pleistocene date and certainly not older, extend from the 
Caribbean shore to Gatun, some seven miles, and are nowhere 
more than a few feet above sea-level. 


The question of Pleistocene climates is a very vexed one 
and is far from having received a definitive answer. Limita- 
tions of space forbid a discussion of the problem here and I 
shall therefore merely state the conclusions which seem best 
supported by the evidence so far available. Such immense 
accumulations of ice might be due either to greatly increased 
snow-fall, or to a general lowering of the temperature. The 
balance of testimony is in favour of the latter factor and no 
great refrigeration is required. Professor Penck has calcu- 
lated that a reduction of 6° or 7° in the average yearly tem- 
perature would restore glacial conditions in Europe. Even 
the tropics were affected by the change, as is shown not only 
by the glaciation of the Andes, but also by Mt. Kenya, which 
is almost on the Equator in eastern Africa and still has glaciers. 
The presumably Pleistocene ice covered the whole mountain 
like a cap, descending 5400 feet below the present glacier 
limit. It was pointed out above that the interglacial stages 
had greatly ameliorated climatic conditions and that, in some 
of them at least, the climate was warmer than it is to-day in 
the same localities. The cause of these astonishing fluctuations 
and of the climatic changes in general, to which Geology 
bears witness, still remains an altogether insoluble mystery. 


CHAPTER VI 
THE GEOGRAPHICAL DISTRIBUTION OF MAMMALS 


To every one who has paid the slightest attention to the 
subject, it is a familiar fact that different parts of the earth 
have different animals; school-children learn from their 
geographies that kangaroos are found in Australia, the Hippo- 
potamus in Africa, the Tiger in southern Asia, armadillos and 
llamas in South America. These examples are all taken 
from distant lands, yet the zodlogical difference between two 
given land-areas is by no means proportional to the distance 
between them. An Englishman landing in Japan finds him- 
self surrounded by animals and plants very like and often iden- 
tical with those which he left at home, while the narrow Strait 
of Lombok, east of Java, separates two profoundly different 
regions. In crossing Mexico from east to west, the traveller 
meets very different animals in closely adjacent areas; and, 
at first sight, the arrangement of animals appears to be so 
capricious as to admit of no formulation in general laws. 

/ in pre-Darwinian times, when it was the almost universal 
belief that each species had been separately created and was 
exactly fitted to the region which it inhabits, no explanation 
of the geographical arrangement of animals was possible,/but 
the acceptance of the theory of evolution demanded that such 
an explanation should be found. A failure to devise any ra- 
tional and satisfactory account of the geography of animal 
life would be a fatal weakness in the evolutionary theory, hence 
the facts of distribution were subjected to a renewed and search- 
ing analysis as one of the best means of critically testing the 


new doctrine. Not that the subject had received no attention 
135 


136 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


before the publication of Darwin’s book; on the contrary, it 
had attracted much interest as a study of facts, and this study 
was one of the principal avenues by which Darwin approached 
his great generalization. In his autobiographical fragment 
he tells us: ‘‘I had been deeply impressed by discovering in 
the Pampean formation great fossil animals covered with 
armour like that on the existing armadillos; secondly, by the 
manner in which closely allied animals replace one another in 
proceeding southward over the Continent; and third, by the 
South American character of most of the productions of the 
Galapagos archipelago and more especially by the manner in 
which they differ slightly in each island of the group.” 

Obviously, before attempting to explain the facts of the 
geographical distribution of mammals, we must first ascertain 
what those facts are. The following brief sketch of the terms 
used in describing geographical arrangement is summarized 
from Mr. Wallace’s “Island Life.” - 

Though with fluctuating boundaries and subject to slow 
secular changes, a mammalian species is limited to a fairly 
definite area, which may be of immense or very restricted 
extent, and throughout which it may be found in greater or 
less abundance. Many species, however, are not distributed 
continuously over the areas which they inhabit, but occur only 
in suitable stations adapted to their habits and mode of life. 
Thus, some will be found only where there are trees, others in 
the neighbourhood of. water, others only on open plains, etc. 
A specific area is then the whole extent of country within which 
the species may be found, while the stations are the limited 
districts contained in the area which are exactly suited to the 
habits of the species in question; these stations may be hun- 
dreds of miles apart, as in the case of mountain-tops, or they 
may be close together. A marsh-living species, for example, 
will occur in all the marshes throughout its area, whether these 
be many or few, near together or widely scattered; for such 
a species marshes are its stations. 


THE GEOGRAPHICAL DISTRIBUTION OF MAMMALS 137 


Generic areas differ in character according as the genus 
is large, that is, comprising many species, or small and having 
but few species, or, it may be, a single one. The species, as 
a rule, occupy each its own area, and the areas may be entirely 
distinct, or they may be contiguous and more or less extensively 
overlapping, though it seldom happens that two or more 
species of the same genus inhabit exactly the same area. Often 
some physical feature, such as a range of high mountains, a 
great river, the edge of a forest, plain or desert, exactly defines 
the limits of species of the same genus. The Amazon, for 
example, acts as such a boundary to many species. It was 
to this change of related species from one area to another that 
Darwin referred in the passage quoted above, saying that he 
had been deeply impressed ‘‘by the manner in which closely 
allied animals replace one another in proceeding southward 
over the Continent [7.e. South America].’’ On the other hand, 
the overlapping of areas may be very extensive, and one species 
of great range may cover the whole area of another and much 
more besides. 

A remarkable example of the widely separated areas of 
species belonging to the same genus is that of the tapirs. Of 
this genus there are two or three species in Central and South 
America and one inhabiting the Malay Peninsula and Borneo, 
almost as wide a separation as the size of the earth permits. 
Discontinuous distribution of this character can be explained 
in terms of the evolutionary theory only in one of two ways. 
Either (1) the American and Asiatic species developed inde- 
pendently of one another from different ancestors, or (2) the 
regions intervening between these widely separated areas once 
formed a continuous land, occupied by species of the genus 
which have become extinct. From all that we know concern- 
ing the operation of the evolutionary process, the first alterna- 
tive may be set aside as altogether improbable, and, even had 
we no information concerning the history of the tapirs and 
their former distribution, the second explanation would be 


138 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


chosen as incomparably the more likely. As a matter of 
fact, we have definite knowledge that tapirs once ranged all 
over Europe and North America and doubtless over northern 
Asia, as well, and, further, that North America was joined to 
Asia by a land occupying the place of the shallow Bering Sea, 
at a time when the tapirs were able to take advantage of this 
means of passing from one continent to the other. Such 
appears to be the invariable explanation of discontinuous dis- 
tribution, though we may not always be able to give so clear 
a proof of it. 

The genera of a family are distributed in much the same 
fashion as the species of a genus, but, as a rule, much more 
widely. While no genus of terrestrial mammals is cosmo- 
politan (7.e. universally distributed), at least as genera are de- 
fined and limited by most modern systematists, certain families 
are represented in every continent. If the extremely peculiar 
and isolated Australian continent be excepted, the number 
of such cosmopolitan families is considerable and wide separa- 
tion between the genera is frequent. Of the camel family, 
for instance, one genus, that of the true Camel (Camelus), 
is confined to the northern hemisphere and the Old World, 
the other (Lama), comprising the Llama, Guanaco, etc., is 
found only in the southern hemisphere and the New World. 
Less extreme instances of the discontinuous distribution of 
a family are common enough. 

The principles of distribution are the same when applied 
to families and orders. Most of the mammalian orders are 
very widely distributed and many are cosmopolitan, except 
for Australia, though some are confined to one or two conti- 
nents. The monotremes are limited to Australia and Tas- 
mania, the marsupials to Australia and the Americas, the 
edentates to the latter, the elephants and hyracoids to Africa 
and Asia. Carnivores and rodents, on the contrary, are found 
in every continent, even Australia. 

We have next to inquire what is the nature of the obstacles 


THE GEOGRAPHICAL DISTRIBUTION OF MAMMALS 139 


or barriers that prevent the indefinite spread of terrestrial 
mammals, so that the mammalian fauna of the whole earth, 
and even of a single continent, is not uniform, but highly 
variegated. The rate of multiplication of animals is so rapid 
that, under normal conditions, the animal population is always 
pressing hard upon the means of subsistence and every species 
that is increasing in numbers must constantly extend its range 
in search of food. Every species would increase indefinitely, 
if there were no countervailing checks. Were all the young 
to survive and breed in their turn, ‘‘even large and slow-breed- 
ing mammals, which only have one at a birth, but continue 
to breed from eight to ten successive years, may increase 
from a single pair to 10,000,000 in forty years ”’ (Wallace). 
Evidently, a species must spread from its place of origin until 
stopped by insuperable obstacles, the most obvious of which 
are wide seas. A few land mammals are not only excellent 
swimmers, but will cross straits without. hesitation, as the 
Guanaco has been seen to swim the Straits of Magellan ; for 
the great majority, however, a very few miles of sea form an 
impassable barrier. As was shown above, a broad or deep river 
is sufficient to limit many species, as the Santa Cruz River 
in Patagonia marks the southern boundary of the armadillos. 
Important geographical changes, such as the joining of 
lands that before were separate, or the dividing of continuous 
lands by transgressions and incursions of the sea, must neces- 
sarily have a profound effect upon the distribution of land 
mammals. Separated land-areas, however similar may have 
been their faunas at the time of separation, will, through the 
operation of the divergent evolutionary process, grow more 
unlike in proportion to the length of time that the separation 
continues. Regions which have been severed within a short 
time (in the geological. sense of a short time) are zodlogically 
very similar or even identical, while those that have long been 
isolated are correspondingly peculiar. Attention has already 
been called, in another connection, to the contrasted cases 


140 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


of such great continental islands as Great Britain, Java, 
Sumatra, etc., on the one hand, and Australia, on the other. 
The continental islands, which have but lately been detached 
from the neighbouring main lands, are hardly more peculiar 
zoologically than equal areas of the adjoining continents, 
while the long-continued isolation of Australia has made it 
the most peculiar region of the earth. Climatic changes, which, 
as we saw in Chapter I, have indubitably taken place many 
times, have also had a great effect in shifting the distribution 
of mammals, which in its present form is the outcome of a 
very long series of geographical and climatic changes, on the 
one hand, and of adaptive changes in the animals themselves, 
on the other. 

Of almost equal importance as a barrier is climate and 
especially temperature. Not that similar climates can pro- 
duce similar forms in separate areas. Regions of almost 
exactly similar climate in Australia, Africa and South America 
have totally different faunas, but, within continuous’ land-areas, 
the most effective of barriers is temperature. “This acts dif- 
ferently in the case of limiting the northward spread of south- 
ern forms and the southward spread of northern species. Dr. 
Merriam’s long study of this problem has led him to the con- 
clusion that southern species are bounded on the north by the 
temperature of the breeding season, in which the total quantity 
of heat must reach a certain minimum, while ‘animals and 
plants are restricted in southward distribution by the mean tem- 
perature of a brief period covering the hottest part of the year.” 
On the Pacific coast there is a remarkable mingling in the same 
areas of species which, east of the high mountains, are dis- 
tributed in sharply separated zones. This is explained by the 
mild and equable climate of the coastal belt, where the hottest 
season of the year does not reach the limiting maximum for 
the northern species, while the total quantity of heat in the 
breeding season is sufficient to enable southern species to 
thrive and maintain themselves. 


THE GEOGRAPHICAL DISTRIBUTION OF MAMMALS 141 


Dr. Merriam thus sums up the effects of climatic factors 
upon distribution: ‘‘Humidity and other secondary causes 
determine the presence or absence of particular species in 
particular localities within their appropriate zones, but tem- 
perature pre-determines the possibilities of distribution; it 
fixes the limits beyond which species cannot pass.” ‘‘Con- 
currently with these changes in vegetation from the south 
northward occur equally marked differences in the mammals, 
birds, reptiles, and insects. Among mammals the tapirs, 
monkeys, armadillos, nasuas, peccaries, and opossums of 
Central America and Mexico are replaced to the northward 
by wood-rats, marmots, chipmunks, foxes, rabbits, short- 
tailed field-mice of several genera, shrews, wild-cats, lynxes, 
short-tailed porcupines, elk, moose, reindeer, sables, fishers, 
wolverines, lemmings, musk-oxen, and polar bears.” 

Dr. J. A. Allen has reached closely similar conclusions. 
“Of strictly climatic influences, temperature is by far the most 
important, although moisture plays an influential part. Where 
a low temperature prevails life, both animal and vegetable, is 
represented by comparatively few forms; under a high tem- 
perature it is characterized by great diversity and luxuriance. 
Within the Arctic Circle the species of both animals and plants 
are not only few, but they are widely distributed, being for 
the most part everywhere the same. Under the tropics they 
are a hundred fold more numerous and of comparatively re- 
stricted distribution.”” ‘‘The influence of temperature is 
perhaps most strikingly displayed in the distribution of life 
upon the slopes of a high mountain, especially if situated near 
the tropics. While its base may be clothed with palms and 
luxuriant tropical vegetation, its summit may be snow-capped 
and barren. ... The animal life becomes likewise corre- 
spondingly changed, tropical forms of mammals, birds, and 
insects of the lower slopes gradually giving place to such as 
are characteristic of arctic latitudes.” ‘The effect of humidity 
upon plant life is thus obvious, but it is equally potent, though 


142 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


less evident, upon animal life. Many animals... are so 
fitted for a forest life, as regards both food and shelter, that 
their very existence depends upon such surroundings... . 
Thus moisture alone may determine the character of life over 
extensive regions.”’ 
ra While climate is thus the most important of the barriers 

which determine distribution in continuous land-areas, the 
absence of any particular species from a given region is no 
proof that the climate is unsuitable to that species. This is 
sufficiently shown by the manner in which animals introduced 
into a new country often run wild and multiply to an incredible 
extent, as the rabbits have done in Australia, the Mongoose 
in Jamaica, horses on our western plains, horses and cattle 
on the Pampas of Argentina, etc. - 

Topographical features, such as great mountain-ranges and 
plateaus, also limit many species, not only by the difficulty of 
crossing them, but also by the effect which they have upon 
temperature and moisture. For this reason long ranges of 
mountains and table-lands may carry a northern fauna very 
far to the south of its ordinary range, as do the mountain- 
systems of North America in a very conspicuous manner. 
The great Mexican plateau is zodélogically a part of North 
America, while the low coastal lands as far as southeastern 
Texas have Central American affinities. 

A different kind of obstacle to the spread of a species into 
a new area may be the pre-occupation of that area by another 
species. The pre-occupier may be one that plays so similar 
a part in the economy of nature as to leave no opportunity 
for the newcomer to establish itself. On the other hand, 
the obstructing form may be an active enemy and of a totally 
different character from the intruder, as in the case of the 
Tse-tse Fly in parts of Africa. The bite of the fly is fatal to 
horses and oxen, so that these mammals are unable to enter 
the fly-infested regions. Many times in the course of the 
Tertiary period various mammals reached North America 


THE GEOGRAPHICAL DISTRIBUTION OF MAMMALS 143 


from the south or from the Old World, which were unable to 
gain a permanent foothold and speedily died out. At this 
distance of time it is seldom, if ever, possible to explain why 
a species which succeeded in reaching this continent could 
not maintain itself, though the most probable assumption is 
that the forms already in possession of the land were an in- 
superable obstacle to the intruders. 

The rate of dispersal of a species into new areas may be 
fast or slow, according as the conditions are more or less favour- 
able. Newly introduced insect-pests, like the Gypsy and the 
Brown-tailed Moths in New England, often spread with por- 
tentous rapidity ; and introduced mammals have frequently 
taken possession of vast areas in a surprisingly short time. 
One of the most remarkable of these cases is cited by Darwin. 
“‘In the time of Sarmiento (1580) these Indians had bows and 
arrows, now long since disused ; they then also possessed some 
horses. This is a very curious fact, showing the extraor- 
dinarily rapid multiplication of horses in South America. 
The horse was first landed at Buenos Ayres in 1537 and the 
colony being then for a time deserted, the horse ran wild; in 
1580, only forty-three years afterwards, we hear of them at 
the Strait of Magellan !’’ (‘‘ Voyage of a Naturalist,” pp. 232- 
233.) In this example, something must be allowed for human 
agency, but even so, it is very surprising. 

In the case of lands newly raised above the sea and con- 
necting formerly separated areas, itisnecessary that they should 
first be taken possession of by vegetation, before they can 
become passable by animals, for the migration of mammals 
from continent to continent is an entirely distinct phenomenon 
from the annual migration of birds. The latter, though a fact 
familiar to every one, is an unexplained mystery, and it is some- 
what unfortunate that the same term should be used for the 
completely different process of the spread of mammals into 
newly opened land. This spread is purely unconscious and is 
due to the pressure of increasing numbers upon the means of 


144 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


subsistence, each new generation ranging farther and farther 
from the original home of the species and continuing so to 
extend until some insuperable obstacle is encountered. When 
a sea-barrier is removed by upheaval and the newly formed 
land rendered habitable for mammals through the invasion 
of plants, the interrupted process is resumed and an inter- 
change of species between the areas thus connected is brought 
about. The interchange is, however, always an incomplete 
one, certain forms not being able so to extend their range, 
because of climatic differences, pre-occupation or some such 
barrier. 

It is customary to give a graphic expression to the facts 
of animal distribution by dividing the land surface of the earth 
into districts which are characterized by their faunas. It is 
not possible to construct a geographical scheme which will 
be equally satisfactory for all classes of animals, because the 
geological date of most rapid development and diffusion was 
so different in the various classes. The geographical and 
climatic conditions which favoured a particular geographical 
arrangement of one class had been so completely altered that 
the class coming in later could not attain a similar distribution. 
For this reason, land mammals are chosen as affording the best 
criteria; their adaptability is such that they are found all 
over the earth, their dispersal is primarily dependent upon the 
arrangement and connections of the continental land-masses, 
modified by the topographical and climatic conditions, and 
they, with the birds, are the latest of the vertebrate classes to 
assume a dominating importance. Their history is the most 
fully known and falls within the best understood portion of the 
earth’s history, making it possible to follow their migrations 
with a precision which is seldom feasible for the other classes 
of animals, and thus to correlate the successive physical and 
organic changes. A particularly great advantage which mam- 
mals possess for this purpose is that the mutual relationships 
of the various kinds are better understood than in the case of 


THE GEOGRAPHICAL DISTRIBUTION OF MAMMALS 145 


most other groups of animals. It is true that we shall find a 
great many unsolved problems, upon which the most divergent 
opinions are held, but the main outlines of the scheme are quite 
generally agreed upon. 

Many plans for the zodlogical division of the continental 
areas have been proposed by various writers on the subject, 
some differing very radically from others. It would be useless 
and tedious to review even the more important of the many 
proposals and suggestions which have been made in the last 
half-century ; and we may, with advantage, adopt an eclectic 
scheme which has been slowly reached by successive approx- 
. imations to a satisfactory arrangement. 

Just as in political geography it is found necessary to rec- 
ognize divisions of different rank and scope, like nation, state, 
county, township, the facts of zodlogical geography require 
divisions of different orders of importance. Thus, in descend- 
ing order, the terms realm, region, subregion, province, etc. 
are commonly employed, but unfortunately they are often 
used loosely and even interchangeably ; yet it is desirable to 
attach a more or less precise significance to each and more 
terms are needed for an accurate expression of the many 
complex facts. 

The extreme zoological peculiarity of Australia is recognized 
by making that continent and its adjoining islands one of the 
great primary divisions, of which the other includes all the 
rest of the world; the former is characterized by its almost 
exclusively marsupial fauna, while the other continents are 
inhabited by the Monodelphia or placental mammals. Aside 
from Australia, by far the most isolated and peculiar region 
of the earth is South America, and this fact is expressed by 
constituting it into a realm, or division of the second order, and 
to this realm is given the name Neogea. The remaining con- 
tinents, North America, Europe, Asia and Africa, make up 
the other realm, Arctogea, in which there is an unmistakable 
-general likeness among the mammals. The three continents 


L 


146 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


of the Old World form a vast, connected land-mass, and the 
final separation of North America from this great complex 
is an event of geologically recent date. For reasons that will 
be made clear in the course of the history, the junction of the 
two Americas has had comparatively little effect upon the 
zodlogy of the northern continent, except in its tropical portion. 
It is obvious from a glance at the map, that the great zodlogical 
divisions are of very unequal size, but the arrangement is made 
on the basis of degrees of difference in the mammalian faunas. 
These degrees of difference are, in turn, an expression of length 
of separation or of the difficulty of communication between 
connected lands. 

The following table gives the major divisions of the earth 
apart from Australia: 


I. Neocaic Reatm. Neotropical Region.—South and Central America, 
lowlands of Mexico, the West Indies. 

1. Malagasy Region. — Madagascar. 

2. Ethiopian Region. — Africa south of the Sahara 


Desert. ; 
3. Oriental Region. — Southern peninsulas of Asia, 
II. Arcrocaic REALM. Malay Archipelago. 


4. Holarctic Region. —N. Africa, Europe, Asia, 

(except southern part), boreal N. America. 
5. Sonoran Region. — Remainder of N. America 
| (except lowlands of Mexico). 


North America, as is expressed by this scheme, is zodlog- 
ically composite; the northern half, including nearly all of 
Canada, belongs to the vast Holarctic Region, which also 
comprises Europe, Africa north of the Sahara and Asia north 
of the Himalaya Mountains. The remainder of the continent, 
exclusive of the Mexican coastal lowlands, is set off as the 
Sonoran Region. Inasmuch as we have here to do with 
broadly continuous land-areas, not demarcated by great physi- 
cal features, and as the genera and species of mammals differ 
greatly in regard to their ability to withstand a wide range 
of climatic variations, it is not to be expected that the boun- 


THE GEOGRAPHICAL DISTRIBUTION OF MAMMALS 147 


daries between the regions which make up North America 
should be very sharply drawn. It is not surprising, therefore, 
to find a transition zone, extending all across the continent, 
in which the Holarctic and Sonoran faunas mingle, or that 
Central America should, in considerable measure, be transi- 
tional to South America, though zoélogically a part of the latter. 


wi | \ we 


= nit pe 


ee J] 
i id ‘ 


Arctic zone 


Boreal zone or 
Canadian subregion 


Transition zone 


AAA Sonoran region 
YY). *0¥rvical region 


Fic. 53. — Zodlogical Divisions of North America. (After Merriam.) 


148 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


Dr. Merriam’s arrangement, which deals only with North 
America without reference to the Old World, divides the land 
into a series of transcontinental zones, which he calls the 
Arctic, Boreal, Upper and Lower Sonoran and Tropical. 
These zones have very irregular and sinuous boundaries, which 
follow lines of equal temperature (isothermal lines) during the 
breeding season, May, June and July, the tortuous boundaries 
being conditioned by topographical features, which deflect 
the isothermal lines. 


Fig. 54. — Polar Bear (Thalarctus maritimus). — By permission of the N.Y. Zodlog. Soc. 


The Arctic zone is part of a circumpolar area, which is very 
much the same in North America, Asia and Europe; and in any 
of these continents the fauna differs much more from that of 
the contiguous zone to the south than from the Arctic fauna 
of another continent. There are some local differences, but 
the characteristic mammals of this Arctic zone are the Polar 
Bear, Arctic Fox, Musk Ox, Barren-ground Caribou, Lemming, 


THE GEOGRAPHICAL DISTRIBUTION OF MAMMALS 149 


Fic. 55. — Musk Ox (Ovibes wardi) female; the males have much larger horns. 
— By permission of the N.Y. Zodlog. Soc. 


Fic. 56.— Arctic Fox (Vulpes lagopus) in winter dress. — By permission of the 
N.Y. Zodlog. Soc. 


150 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


Arctic Hare,anda marmot. Most, if not all, of these forms are 
of Old World origin. 

The American portion of the great Holarctic region is 
called by Mr. Lydekker, who uses Wallace’s term, the ‘‘Cana- 
dian subregion,” and by Dr. Merriam the ‘‘ Boreal region.”’ Not 
that there is any difference of principle involved in this varying 
nomenclature, for Dr. Merriam says: ‘‘It so happens that the 
Boreal element in America resembles that of Eurasia so closely 
that in the judgment of many eminent authorities the two 
constitute a single primary region — a view in which I heartily 
concur.”’ The Canadian or Boreal subregion of the Holarctic 
is the great belt of coniferous forest, which extends obliquely 
across North America from Alaska to New England; its 
frontier with the Arctic zone is the northern limit of trees and 


Fig. 57.— Arctic Fox in summer dress. — By permission of the N.Y. Zodlog. Soc. 


it is divided from the Transition zone approximately by the 
line of latitude 45° N., though with a sinuous course, and it 
is carried far to the south by the wooded heights of .the Appa- 
lachian, Rocky and Sierra Nevada Mountains, and along the 
Pacific coast, the mixed character of which has already been 
explained; it extends almost to San Francisco. The sub- 


THE GEOGRAPHICAL DISTRIBUTION OF MAMMALS 151 


region is further divisible into northern and southern belts, 
called the Hudsonian and Canadian faunas, the limit between 
them approximately following the isothermal line of 57° F. 
The mammals of this subregion are largely of Old World 
origin, many of them coming in with the great immigrations 
of the Pliocene and Pleistocene epochs; but there are also 
native American elements and even one genus of South American 
origin, the Short-tailed or Canada Porcupine (Erethizon). 

In considering the mammals of this subregion, it should be 
remembered that they are not uniformly distributed through- 
out even one subdivision, but in a scattering way and in ac- 
cordance with their habits and stations, and also in accordance 
with a gradual change to 
the south, following the 
changing temperature. The 
Muskrat will not be found 
far from water or the Por- 
cupine from woods. Espe- 
cially characteristic of the 
Canadian subregion are the 
Old World types of deer, 
none of which range farther 
south than the Transition 
zone. The Wapiti, errone- 
ously called the Elk (Cervus 
canadensis), is very closely 
allied to the European Stag 


(C. elaphus) and still more _ 


closely to the Stag of the 

bh ‘: P Fie. 58. — Canada Porcupine (Erethizon dorsa- 
Thian Shan in Central Asia tus). — By permission of the N.Y. Zodlog. 
(C. eustephanus). So great mon 
is the resemblance, that some naturalists would refer all three 
forms to a single species. The Moose (Alce americanus), which 
should be called the Elk, is so near to the Scandinavian Elk 
(A. machlis) that it is hardly distinguishable as a separate 


ae 


152 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


species, and the Woodland Caribou (Rangifer caribou) is the 
American representative of the Lapland Reindeer (R. tarandus). 
The so-called Rocky Mountain Goat (Oreamnos montanus), a 
peculiar and aberrant 
form of the Chamois 
subfamily of the Ante- 
lopes, is confined to the 
subregion. The Moun- 
tain Sheep (Ovis mon- 
tana, O. dalli) are rep- 
resented by three or 
four species, one of 


Fig. 59. — Woodchuck or Marmot (Marmota monaz). Which extends into the 
—By permission of the N.Y. Zodlog. Soc. 


Sonoran region, as does 
also the Bison, wrongly called Buffalo (Bison bison), which is 
nearly allied to the European B. bonasus. In Cesar’s time 
the European Bison (German, Wisent) ranged through Ger- 
many and is described in his account of the Hercynian Forest ; 
but the advance of civilization has almost exterminated it, 
only a few small herds being maintained by the most rigid 
protection in Russia 
and in the Carpathian 
Mountains. Of the Car- 
nivora, the weasels, mar- 
tens, Fisher, Mink and 
Ermine are Boreal, as 
are the Wolverene (Gulo) 
and the Grey Wolf (Ca- 
nis), the three last- | ,+ 
named extending also 
into the Arctic zone. Es- Fic. 60. — Mink (Lutreola vison).— By permission 
sentially Boreal, though SEEDS BOULDER 

reaching and entering the Sonoran, are the bears (Ursus), 
the red foxes (Vulpes), the otters (Lutra) and the Old World 
shrews (Sorex), while the Star-nose Mole (Condylura) and 


THE GEOGRAPHICAL DISTRIBUTION OF MAMMALS 153 


the mole-shrews (Urotrichus) do not extend south of the 
Transition zone. Probable intruders from the south into 
the Boreal subregion are the pumas, or ‘“ mountain lions,” 
which just enter the subregion, the Canada Lynx (Lynx 
rufus) and one species of skunks (Mephitis), the Raccoon 
(Procyon lotor), Badger (Taxidea americana) and the Ameri- 
can deer (Odocotleus). A large number of rodents are char- 
acteristically Boreal: marmots, or woodchucks (Marmota), the 
Sewellel (A plodontia rufa), lemmings (Myodes), Jumping Mouse 
(Zapus), the Canada Porcupine (Erethizon dorsatus) and the 
pikas, “‘ tailless or whistling hares’? (Ochotona). Boreal ro- 
dents that enter the Sonoran are the chipmunks (Tamias), 
beavers (Castor), meadow-mice (Microtus), the Muskrat (Fiber 
zibethicus). The white-footed mice (Sitomys) and the wood- 
rats (Neotoma) are southern rodents that reach or enter the 
Boreal. 

Between the Boreal subregion and the Sonoran region is 
the Transition zone, which follows all the complex windings of 
the boundary lines. It covers most of New England, New 
York, Pennsylvania and southern Ontario; passing through 
southern Michigan and Wisconsin, it bends northward over 
Minnesota and covers most of North Dakota, Manitoba and 
the plains of the Saskatchewan, then turns abruptly south- 
ward and includes eastern Montana and parts of South Dakota 
and Nebraska. Crossing Wyoming, it follows around the 
northern edge of the Great Basin to the plains of the Columbia. 
The three great mountain-systems carry the zone far to the 
south and arms of it extend along the Appalachians to northern 
Georgia, along the Rockies to New Mexico, and it follows the 
Sierras to southern California. ‘‘The Transition zone, as 
its name indicates, is a zone of overlapping Boreal and Sono- 
ran types. Many Boreal genera and species here reach the 
extreme southern limits of their distribution and many Sonoran 
genera and species their northern limits. But a single mam- 
malian genus (Synaptomys) [one of the field mice] is restricted 


% 


154 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


Fic, 61.— Upper figure, European Bison (Bison bonasus). Lower figure, American 
Bison (B. bison). — By permission of the N.Y. Zodlog. Soc. 


THE GEOGRAPHICAL DISTRIBUTION OF MAMMALS 155 


Fic. 63.— Wapiti or ‘‘ Elk”’ (Cervus canadensis).— By permission of the 
N.Y. Zodlog. Soc. 


156 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


Fic. 64.— Alaska Brown Bear (Ursus middendorfi).— By permission of the 
N.Y. Zodlog. Soc. 


Fic. 65.— Moose (Alce americanus). Young male with undeveloped antlers. 
— By permission of the N.Y. Zodiog. Soc. 


THE GEOGRAPHICAL DISTRIBUTION OF MAMMALS 157 


Fic. 67.— Woodland Caribou (Rangifer caribou). — By permission of the 
N.Y. Zodlog. Soc. 


158 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


Fic. 69.— Rocky Mountain ‘‘ Goat’ (Oreamnos montanus). — By permission of the 
N.Y. ZoGlog. Soc. 


THE GEOGRAPHICAL DISTRIBUTION OF MAMMALS 159 


Fic. 70.— Ermine (Mustela erminez). — By permiss'on of the N.Y. Zodlog. Soc. 


kc. 71. — Timber or Grey Wolf (Canis nubilis). — By permission of the 
N.Y. Zodlog. Soc. 


160 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


* Senet een 


Fic. 72.— Boreal Mammals. A. Black-footed Ferret (Mustela nigripes). B. Otter 
(Lutra canadensis). C. Jumping Mouse (Zapus hudsonius).— A and B by permis- 
sion of the N.Y. Zoélog. Soc. C, by permission of W.S. Berridge, London. 


THE GEOGRAPHICAL DISTRIBUTION OF MAMMALS 161 


to the Transition zone. . .. A number of species, however, 
seem to be nearly or quite confined to this zone’”’ (Merriam). 

The most characteristic portion of North America, zodélog- 
ically speaking, is the Sonoran region of Dr. Merriam, the 
Warm Temperate of Dr. Allen. It crosses the continent 
from ocean to ocean, its northern boundary following for most 
of the way the 43d parallel of latitude, but over the Great 


Fic. 73. — Opossum (Didelphis marsupialis). — By permission of the 
N.Y. Zodlog. Soc. 
Plains and Great Basin, on each side of the Rocky Mountains 
and the high plateaus, it extends to lat. 48°. On the south, 
it takes in the greater part of Mexico, covering all of the table- 
land of that country, the lowlands of which belong to the South 
American or Neotropical region. The Sonoran is invaded from 
the north by the long branches from the Boreal and Transition 
zones, which follow the three great mountain-systems in the 
manner already explained, and the Mexican plateau permits 
the similar invasion of Neotropical territory by the Sonoran 
fauna. Characteristic Sonoran genera, none of which extend 
into the Boreal, are the opossums (Didelphis), in the southern 
part a peccary (Tagassu) or ‘‘ Wild Texas Pig,” representative 
of a family of swine quite different from the true pigs of the Old 


M 


162 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


World, and an armadillo (Tatu). A very isolated form is 
the Prong-horned Antelope (Antilocapra americana); there 
are several species of the typically American deer (Odocoileus) 
which differ in important respects from those of the eastern 


Fic. 74. — Prong-horned Antelope (Antilocapra americana). — By permission of the 
N.Y. ZoGlog. Soc. 


hemisphere, and the Bison was very abundant until exterminated 
by Man. Bison, antelope and deer also reach or extend into 
the Boreal zone, but the former, or Wood Bison, is probably 
a different species from the plains animal. 

The grey foxes (Urocyon), Coyote (Canis latrans), large 
Timber Wolf (Canis occidentalis), the Caxomistle (Bassaris- 
cus), the Coati (Nasua), Raccoon (Procyon), Badger (Tazi- 


THE GEOGRAPHICAL DISTRIBUTION OF MAMMALS 163 


dea), three genera of skunks, pumas, several species of lynx 
and some bears (Ursus) represent the Carnivora, though one 
species each of raccoon, skunk, badger, puma and lynx range 


Fic. 75. — Kangaroo-Rat (Dipodomys philippii).— By permission 
of the N.Y. Zoélog. Soc. 


into the Boreal. The American types of shrews (Blarina) 
and moles (Scalops and Scapanus) are characteristic of the 
Sonoran, though partially shared with the Boreal. A great 


Fic. 76. — Thirteen-lined Sperrmophile (Spermophilus tredecimlineatus). 
— By permission of the N.Y. Zodlog. Soc. 


many peculiar rodents inhabit the Sonoran; cotton-rats (Sig- 
modon), pocket-gophers (Geomys, etc.), several genera of the 
beautiful little kangaroo-rats (Dipodomys, ete.); while the 


164 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


prairie-dogs (Cynomys), the white-footed mice (Sitomys), 
wood-rats (Neotoma) and one genus of pocket-gophers (Thom- 
omys) are chiefly Sonoran, but have Boreal representatives. 
The flying squirrels 
(Sciuropterus), true 
squirrels (Sciturus), 
ground-squirrels (Sper- 
mophilus), rabbits (Le- 
pus), wolves (Canis) 
and otters (Luira) have 
a very wide range 
through both the Bo- 
real and Sonoran, but 
have many more spe- 


cies in the latter region. 


Fic. 77. — Grey Squirrel (Sciurus carolinensis). The Sonoran region 
— By permission of the N.Y. Zodlog. Soc. 


may be divided into 
the upper and lower Sonoran zones, which are demarcated 
by temperature and are of transcontinental extent. Each of 
these zones may, in turn, be subdivided into arid and humid 
provinces, but our purpose does not necessitate entering into 
such refinements. 

The Neotropical, which is the only region of the Neogeic 
realm, comprises the West Indian islands, all of Central 
and South America and the lowlands of Mexico, extending 
a short distance into southeastern Texas. Of its four sub- 
regions, the most typical is (1) the Brazilian, which includes 
not only Brazil, but all of South America east of the Andes and 
as far south as Paraguay, and is a vast area of tropical forests. 
(2) The Chilian subregion takes in the west coast, the high 
Andes and the southern end of the continent, south of the 
Brazilian subregion ; it is a country chiefly of open plains and 
high mountains, and a few deserts, of which South America 
has less than any other continent, except Europe, which has 
none. (3) The Central American subregion reaches from the 


THE GEOGRAPHICAL DISTRIBUTION OF MAMMALS 165 


Fig. 78. — Grey Fox (Urocyon virginianus).— By permission of the N.Y. Zodlog. Soc. 


Fic. 79. — Prairie Wolf or Coyote (Canis latrans). — By permission of the 
N.Y. Zodlog. Soc. 


166 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


Fic. 81.— Virginia Deer (Odocoileus virginianus). — By permission of the 
N.Y. Zodlog. Soc. 


THE GEOGRAPHICAL DISTRIBUTION OF MAMMALS 167 


Fia. 82. —Skunk (Mephitis mephitis). —By permission of the 
N.Y. Zodlog. Soc. 


Fic. 83. — Mule Deer (Odocoileus hemionus). — By permission of the 
N.Y. Zodlog. Soc. 


168 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


Fic. 84.— Badger (Taxidea americana).— By permission of the N.Y. Zodlog. Soc. 


Fig. 85. — Puma or Mountain Lion (Felis concolor). — By permission of the 
N.Y. Zodlog. Soc. 


THE GEOGRAPHICAL DISTRIBUTION OF MAMMALS 169 


Fig. 86. — Lynx (Lynx rufus).— By permission of the N.Y. Zodlog. Soc. 


Fic. 87. — Prairie Dog (Cynomys ludovicianus).— By permission of the 
N.Y. Zodlog, Soc. 


170 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


= 


id P 


UO ) 


\ 
== 


Rg 1 
( 4 
% 


hy 


j 


i 


Me | 


Fic. 88.— Map of the Neotropical region. (After Wallace.) Mexico inaccurate ; 
of. Fig. 53, p. 147. 
Isthmus of Panama to Mexico, the lowlands of which are in- 
cluded and even a small portion of southeastern Texas. (4) 
The West Indian subregion includes all the islands of that 
archipelago, except Trinidad, which is a fragment of the con- 


THE GEOGRAPHICAL DISTRIBUTION OF MAMMALS 171 


tinent, detached at a comparatively recent date; the southern 
extremity of Florida also belongs to this subregion. 

The two subregions into which continental South America 
is divided are not altogether satisfactory and will doubtless 
require change when the distribution of South American 
mammals has been more accurately determined. 


Fic. 89.— Fox-like Wolf (Cerdocyon gracilis). — By permission of 
W.S. Berridge, London. 


‘Richness combined with isolation is the predominant 
feature of Neotropical Zodlogy, and no other region can 
approach it in the number of its peculiar family and generic 
types’ (Wallace). Just as North America has received many 
immigrants from the Old World, so it has sent many mi- 
grants into South America, materially changing the character 
of the Neotropical mammalian fauna, but these intruders may 
be readily identified and almost seem to be out of place in their 
new surroundings. Not all of these northern migrants were 


172 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


able to maintain their footing in the southern continent and 
several became extinct during and at the close of the Pleistocene 
epoch, as was even more markedly the case with the southern 
forms which invaded the northern continent. 


. 
Fic. 90.—Spectacled Bear (Tremarctos ornatus).— By permission of the 
N.Y. Zodlog. Soc. 


There are two families of monkeys in the forested areas 
of South America, both very different from those of the Old 
World. One of these families, the marmosets (Hapalide), dif- 
fers from all other monkeys in several particulars, most obvious 
of which are the long claws on the feet and the non-opposable 
thumb. The second family (Cebide#) comprises forms which 
are superficially much more like those of the eastern hemi- 
sphere, but many of them have prehensile tails, which are used 
as efficient grasping organs. 

Insectivora are entirely absent from the South American 


THE GEOGRAPHICAL DISTRIBUTION OF MAMMALS 173 


continent, but some shrews (Blarina) have entered Central 
America from the north and a very curious genus is represented 
by one species in Cuba (Solenodon cubanus) and another in 
Hayti (S. paradorus). These remarkable animals are, strange 


eee s EN 
SW 
ie 
ee 
be 
25 oo a 

eee ae dee 

ey : 
c oe. an Pes ~~ 

Fic. 91.— Solenodon cubanus.— By permission of the N.Y. Zodlog. Soc. 


to relate, most nearly allied to the tenrecs (Centetes) of Mada- 
gascar and by some authorities are placed in the same family. 

The Carnivora are quite numerous and varied and rather 
peculiar, but they all belong to northern families and are the 
more or less modified descendants of northern immigrants. 
The dogs (Canidz) belong to genera not represented else- 
where and form a considerable assemblage of interesting types. 
There are no true wolves or foxes, but several species of fox-like 


174 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


Fic. 92.— Argentine Skunk (Conepatus gibsont).— By permission of 
W.S. Berridge, London. 


wolves (Cerdocyon), with bushy tails, are common, especially in 
the plains regions. The Bush-Dog (Ictzcyon venaticus), a small, 
short-legged animal, is very peculiar. The musteline or weasel 


family (Mustelide) is rather scantily represented. There are 
no badgers and but few skunks (Spilogale and Conepatus) ; 


Fic. 93.— Little Skunk (Spilogale putorius).— By permission of 
W.S. Berridge, London. 


THE GEOGRAPHICAL DISTRIBUTION OF MAMMALS 175 


a wid 2 os. 


Fic. 94. — Tayra (Tayra tayra). — By permission of W. 8. Berridge, London. 


weasels are absent, but their place is taken by the Grison 
(Galera vittata) and Tayra (Tayra tayra) and in the far south 
Lyncodon patagonicus. These animals are peculiar in having 
a lighter colouration on the back than on the belly. There 
are two or three species of otter (Lutra). The raccoons 
(Procyon) have a very wide range in South America, as in the 


Fic. 95.— Kinkajou (Potos caudivolvulus), Central America. — By permission of 
W.S. Berridge, London. 


176 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


northern continent, and the curious, long-snouted coatis 
(Nasua), which just enter the Sonoran region, are typically 
Neotropical. The Spectacled Bear (Tremarctos ornatus) is the 
only member of the family that occurs in South America and 
is confined to the highlands of Peru and Chili. The cat family 
is quite numerously represented; the Jaguar (Felis onca), which 
ranges from Texas to Patagonia, is a large spotted cat, rivalling 


Fic. 96. — Ocelot (Felis pardalis). —By permission of the N.Y. Zodlog. Soc. 


the Leopard in size and ferocity; the Ocelot (F. pardalis, 
Arkansas to Paraguay) is smaller and streaked and blotched 
rather than spotted. The pumas differ little from those 
of North America, and there are many small cats, spotted, 
clouded and of solid colour, but no lynxes, which are essentially 
northern types. 

Hoofed animals are not numerously represented in South 
America. The only existing Perissodactyla of the western 
hemisphere are the tapirs (Tapirus) of Central and tropical 
South America, a very remarkable contrast to the ancient 
faunas, especially of the northern continent, as will be shown 
in the sequel. The Artiodactyla are more varied, though very 
scanty in comparison with those of the Old World ; even North 
America, which has but a poor representation of these animals, 


THE GEOGRAPHICAL DISTRIBUTION OF MAMMALS 177 


Fic, 97.— Jaguar (Felis onca). — By permission of the N.Y. Zodlog. Soc. 


Fig. 98.— Collared Peccary (Tagassu tajacu).— By permission of the 
N.Y. Zodélog. Soc. 


178 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


is much richer than the southern continent, where, indeed, 
all the hoofed animals are the descendants of comparatively 
recent immigrants from the north and none are truly autoch- 
thonous. Members of three different artiodactyl suborders 
occur in the Neotropical region; the peccaries (Tagassu) 
extend through Central and South America to Paraguay, 


Fic. 99.— Vicufia (Lama vicunia).— By permission of the N.Y. Zodlog. Soc. 


though also entering the Sonoran region in Texas. Most 
interesting are the members of the camel family, which are 
very distinct from the true Camel of Asia. Tierra del Fuego 
and the Patagonian plains support great herds of the Guanaco 
(Lama huanacus), which extends along the Andes to Ecuador 
and Peru, where it is associated with the Vicufia (L. vicunia), 
a smaller and more slenderly built species. The Vicufia does 
not range south of Bolivia. Just as the mountain systems of 
North America carry the Boreal and Transition faunas through 
. nearly the whole breadth of the Sonoran region, so the high 


THE GEOGRAPHICAL DISTRIBUTION OF MAMMALS 179 


Andes afford a pathway by which the mammals of the south 
temperate zone extend their range to the equator. 

The suborder Pecora of the Artiodactyla is represented in 
the Neotropical region only by the deer family (Cervide), of 
which there are several genera (or subgenera), all of them 
North American as distinguished from the Old World type, 


Fic. 100. — Florida Deer (Odocoileus virginianus osceola). -— By permission of the 
N.Y. Zodlog. Soc. 


but some are so peculiar that they must have had a relatively 
long South American ancestry. The Virginia Deer (Odo- 
coileus virginianus) of the northern United States is a com- 
paratively large animal, becoming much smaller in Florida 
and the Southwest. The type extends through Mexico and 
Central America to Guiana and Peru, the Neotropical forms 
being so small and having such weak antlers that they are 
referred to separate species. Another type is the Marsh Deer 


180 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


(Blastoceros paludosus) of eastern South America, which has 
short, stout antlers, each beam with two double bifurcations ; 
there are other species of the same genus, such as the Pampas 
Deer of Argentina (B. bezoarticus). In the Andes of Peru and 
Chili and the forests of western Patagonia are two species 
of a genus which bears the preposterous name of Hippocamelus 


Fic. 101. — Marsh Deer (Blastoceros paludosus), female. — By permission of the 
N.Y. Zodlog. Soc. 


and in which the antlers are simply forked. The vernacular 
name of these animals is ‘‘Huemul.”’ Peculiarly Neotropical 
are the little brockets, which hardly exceed a height of two 
feet at the shoulder, with simple spike-like antlers not more 
than three inches long; the genus, Mazama, has several species, 
one of which occurs as far north as the state of Puebla in Mexico. 
“The smallest of all deer is the Chilian pudu (Pudua pudu), 


THE GEOGRAPHICAL DISTRIBUTION OF MAMMALS 181 


a creature not much larger than a hare, with almost rudimen- 
tary antlers’? (Lydekker). Old World types of deer, such 
as the Wapiti, Moose and Caribou, of the Boreal and Transi- 
tion zones of North America, are entirely absent from the 
Neotropical region. 

South America has an astonishingly rich and varied assem- 
blage of rodents, both indigenous and immigrant, but the 


Fie. 102. — Wood Brocket (Mazama nemorivagus). — By permission of 
W.5S. Berridge, London. 


former are much the more important, varied and abundant. 
Of the four divisions of the order, all of which are represented, 
three are immigrants from the north and the fourth is autoch- 
thonous, but this far outnumbers the other three combined. 
The hares and rabbits have but very few species, one of which 
occurs in Brazil and is separated by a very wide interval from 
the one in Costa Rica, while the pikas are absent. Of the squir- 
rel division, only the true squirrels are found, and of these there 
are many species, the ground-squirrels, marmots, prairie-dogs 


182 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


and beavers all being lacking. In the same way the rat and 
mouse division is represented by a single family. The vesper 
or white-footed mice (Sitomys) have invaded the southern 
continent and a number of peculiar genera have arisen there, but 
all of northern ancestry, such as the groove-toothed mice 
(Rheithrodon) and the fish-eating rats (Ichthyomys). The 


Fic. 103. — Brazilian Tree Porcupine (Coendou prehensilis).— By permission of the 
N.Y. Zodlog. Soc. 
voles, or meadow-mice, the muskrats, jumping mice, kan- 
garoo-rats and pocket-gophers of the northern continent are 
all absent. While the immigrant suborders have thus but 
one family each in South America, the case is very different 
with the fourth or porcupine group, of which that continent 
is to-day, as it has been for ages past, the headquarters. No 
less than six families and twenty-nine genera are known, all 
of the genera and four of the families being restricted to the 
Neotropical region. Contrast this assemblage with the ex- 
treme scantiness of this group in North America, where but 
a@ single genus, the Short-tailed or Canada Porcupine (Ere- 


Fic. 104.— Neotropical rodents. A. Vizcacha (Viscaccia). B. Paca (Agouti paca). 
C. Rock Cavy (Cavia rupestris). D.Water-Hog, or Carpincho (Hydrocherus). 
D, by permission of the N.Y. Zodlog. Soc. A, B, C, by permission of W. 8. 
Berridge, London. 


(183) 


184 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


thizon) represents it, and that is a late immigrant from the 
south. 

It would lead us too far to attempt a description of this 
horde of curious and interesting rodents, so only a few of the 
more striking and characteristic forms can be mentioned. 
There are two genera of porcupines (Coendow and Chetomys), 
both arboreal, which belong in the same family as the North 
American Erethizon, but are distinguished by their long, 
prehensile tails, which they use, as monkeys and opossums 


Fie. 105. — Chinchilla (Chinchilla laniger). — By permission of W. 8. Berridge, London. 


do, for grasping and climbing. The very large family of the 
Octodontide has 17 Neotropical genera and four others are 
found in Africa. The Degu (Octodon) of Chili, Bolivia and 
Peru has the appearance of a large rat with tufted tail; the 
tuco-tucos (Ctenomys) are extremely abundant burrowers in 
Patagonia, where they honeycomb the ground over wide areas. 
The spiny rats (Hchimys and Loncheres) are so called from their 
appearance, not because they are related to the true rats; 
they have numerous horny spikes through the fur of the back. 
The Coypu (Myocastor) is a large, aquatic animal, remotely 
like the northern Muskrat, and the Hutias (Capromys and 


Pr 


THE GEOGRAPHICAL DISTRIBUTION OF MAMMALS 185 


Plagiodontia) are arboreal and found only in Cuba, Hayti and 
Jamaica. The chinchillas (Chinchilla and Lagidiwm) of the 
Andes and the Vizcacha (Viscaccia) of the Argentine plains 
have somewhat the appearance of hares, but with long and 
bushy tails. The cavies, to which the familiar, misnamed 
Guinea-Pig (Cavia porcellus) belongs, are a very characteristic 
family; besides the true cavies, it includes the Patagonian 
Mara (Dolichotis), a large, long-legged, long-eared, short- 
tailed creature, and the Water-Hog, or Carpincho (Hydro- 
cherus), an aquatic animal, as its name implies, and much the 


Fic. 106. — Hairy-rumped Agouti (Dasyprocta prymnolopha). — By permission of 
W.S. Berridge, London. 


largest of existing rodents; it occurs in the warmer regions, 
south to Argentina. The heavy Paca (Agouwti) and the 
slender-limbed Agouti (Dasyprocta) make up another family. 
Altogether, this assemblage of the porcupine-like suborder 
of rodents is a very remarkable one and in no other region 
of the earth is anything like it to be found. 

With the exception of one genus of armadillos, which has 
invaded Texas, the entire order of the Edentata is at present 
confined to the Neotropical region, the so-called edentates 
of the Old World now being removed to other orders. The 


186 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


Edentata, which were once far more varied and abundant than 
they now are, comprise three groups of animals so bizarre and 
strange that they seem more like fabulous creatures than 
actual, living mammals. One group, or suborder, is that of 
the sloths (Tardigrada), arboreal, shaggy animals, with short, 


Tie. 107. — Three-toed Sloth (Bradypus tridactylus). — By permission of the 
N.Y. Zodlog. Soc. 


almost monkey-like head and no tail; their very long legs 
and hook-like feet make them nearly helpless on the ground, 
but are very useful for hanging from the branches of the trees, 
in which the creatures live. Indeed, the sloths are the only 
mammals which habitually hang in a suspended position. 


THE GEOGRAPHICAL DISTRIBUTION OF MAMMALS 187 


Two genera of sloths inhabit the tropical forests, between which 
the most obvious difference is that in one (Bradypus) the fore- 
foot has three toes, and in the other (Cholepus) two. 

The suborder of the anteaters (Vermilingua) is more varied, 
and is the only one of the order to which the term ‘‘edentate”’ 


Fic. 108. — Two-toed Sloth (Cholepus didactylus). — By permission of 
W.S. Berridge, London. 


applies strictly, for they alone in the order are altogether 
toothless. The great Ant-Bear (Myrmecophaga jubata), which 
may reach a total length of seven feet, has an extravagantly 
long, slender and nearly cylindrical head, long, shaggy, black 
and white hair and an immense, bushy tail; the forefeet are 
armed with huge, sharp-pointed claws, which are used for 
tearing open ant-hills, and when occasion arises, as formidable 
weapons of defence, for the Ant-Bear can successfully repulse 
even the Jaguar. In walking, the claws are curved inward 
and the preposterous beast rests his weight upon the outside 
edges of the forefeet, while the hind feet apply the sole to the 
ground, as does a bear or raccoon. The Collared Anteater 
(Tamandua) is much smaller and mainly arboreal in habits. 
It has a short-haired, black body, with a white stripe down the 


188 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


Fic. 109. — Ant-Bear (Myrmecophaga jubata). — By permission of the N.Y. Zodlog. Soc. 


back, white neck and limbs, a colour-pattern which gives to 
the animal the appearance of wearing a close-fitting black 
jacket; the long tail, which has some cross bars, is short- 
haired, very different from the extremely bushy tail of the Ant- 
Bear. The little Two-toed Anteater (Cyclopes didactylus), 


Fic. 110.— Collared Anteater (Tamandua tetradactyla). — By permission of the 
N.Y. Zodlog. Soc. 


THE GEOGRAPHICAL DISTRIBUTION OF MAMMALS 189 


hardly larger than a rat, is exclusively arboreal and has a pre- 
hensile tail, like so many other South American mammals. 
Sloths and anteaters are forest animals and are not found west 
of the Andes or south of Paraguay. 

The third existing suborder of edentates is that of the arma- 
dillos (Dasypoda), which have a very complete armour of bony 
scutes, ossifications in the skin, covered with scales of horn. 
They are all more or less burrowers in habit and omnivorous 


Fig. 111. —Six-banded Armadillo (Dasypus sexcinctus).— By permission of the 
N.Y. Zodlog. Soc. 


in diet, eating roots, insects, worms, etc.; the extraordinary 
rapidity with which they burrow into the ground is almost 
their only way of escape from pursuit, but in one genus, T'oly- 
peutes, the animal can roll itself into a ball, completely pro- 
tected by mail all around. The armadillos are much more 
varied than the anteaters or sloths and have a wider geo- 
graphical range, extending from Texas to Patagonia. The 
head, which is long-snouted, is protected by a shield made up 
of numerous horn-covered platesof bone, and the tail is encased 
in a tubular sheath of more or less regular rings, each ring 
of bony plates and horny scales. The body-shield, or cara- 
pace, which covers the back and sides, consists of an anterior 
and posterior buckler, in which the plates are immovably 


190 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


attached to one another by their edges, and between the two 
is a series of movable, overlapping bands, the number of which 
varies in the different genera. In the little Pichiciago (Chlamy- 
dophorus truncatus) the head and back are covered with four- 
sided plates of horn, the bony scutes being small and thin and 
much reduced. The carapace has no bucklers, but about 20 
transverse rows of plates, and is attached along only the middle 
line of the back and beneath it the body is covered with silky, 


Fig. 112.— Nine-banded Armadillo (Tatu novemcinctus). — By permission of the 
N.Y. Zodlog. Soc. 

white fur; the rump is covered with a solid shield of bone, 
placed nearly vertically and covered with thin scales, and is 
notched below for the tail, altogether a most exceptional 
arrangement. Seven or more distinct genera of armadillos 
are found in the Neotropical region and they display a great 
range in size; the Giant Armadillo of Brazil (Priodontes) is 
a yard or more in length, while the little Zaédyus of Patagonia 
is smaller than a rabbit and, least of all, the Pichiciago is but 
five inches long. 

Two families of marsupials occur in South America. The 
opossums are much more numerous and varied than in North 
America; three genera and a large number of species, some 
not larger than mice, range through the forested parts of the 
continent. Of particular interest is the little Canolestes, 


THE GEOGRAPHICAL DISTRIBUTION OF MAMMALS 191 


which has two species, with two enlarged lower front teeth, 
the sole survivors of a group which is abundantly represented 
in the Tertiary deposits of Patagonia. 

The fauna of the Central American subregion is less rich 
and characteristic than that of the Brazilian and is, to a cer- 
tain extent, transitional to that of the Sonoran region of North 
America, several genera proper to the latter region extending 
into it, which are not known to pass the Isthmus of Panama, 
such as shrews, a fox and one of the pocket-mice. The West 
Indian islands are exceedingly poor in mammals, a great con- 

‘trast to the East Indian, or Malay, Archipelago; only a few 
rodents, insectivores and bats occur in them. 


CHAPTER VII 


THE SUCCESSIVE MAMMALIAN FAUNAS OF NORTH AND SOUTH 
AMERICA 


Tue natural method of telling a story is to begin at the 
beginning and go on to the end, but to deal in that manner with 
the many different assemblages of mammals which have in 
turn inhabited the western hemisphere has the great draw- 
back of beginning with a time when everything was utterly 
strange to the modern eye. Could the reader be carried back 
to the far distant days of the Paleocene epoch, he would find 
himself in a completely unfamiliar world ; and there is therefore 
a real practical advantage in reversing the story and starting 
with the end and thus proceeding gradually from the more 
to the less familiar. The foregoing chapter gave a sketch 
of the more striking and characteristic mammals which inhabit 
the Americas to-day, and we may now take a step backward 
to the epoch immediately preceding our own, the Pleistocene. 

As was shown in Chapter V, the Pleistocene was a time of 
many and great climatic vicissitudes, periods of cold, when the 
northern part of the continent was buried under great ice- 
sheets, alternating with far milder periods, when the climate 
was much as at present, or even warmer. These climatic 
changes necessitated many changes in the distribution of ani- 
mals and plants, increasing cold driving them southward, while 
the return of more genial conditions permitted the northward 
migration of southern forms. The effects of these changes of 
climate are still plainly visible in the geographical arrangement 
of living beings in the northern continents and many anomalies 


of distribution, otherwise inexplicable, are thus made clear. 
192 


SUCCESSIVE MAMMALIAN FAUNAS 193 


Attention was long ago directed to the fact that the tops of 
high mountains support a flora and fauna which, on the low- 
lands, will be found only hundreds, or even thousands, of miles 
to the northward. The plants which grow on the summits 
of the White Mountains of New Hampshire recur in Labrador, 
but not in the intervening area; the vegetation and animals 
of the high Alps are those of the Arctic regions, and many 
similar instances might be cited. Hooker and Darwin were 
the first to find a highly probable explanation of this curious 
phenomenon by referring it to the climatic changes of the Pleis- 
tocene epoch. During the last period of cold and glaciation, 
the northern plants and animals were driven far to the south 
and occupied the lowlands along the ice-front and well beyond 
it; when milder conditions gradually returned, the northern 
forms not only retreated northward, but also ascended the 
mountains, as the latter were freed from ice, and thus became 
cut off as isolated colonies. The general explanation of ‘‘dis- 
continuous distribution” (see p. 188) is thus always the same, 
viz., that the intervening regions were once occupied by the 
forms now so widely separated, which, for one reason or another, 
have vanished from the connecting areas. 


I. QuaTERNARY Faunas 


North America. — The Quaternary faunas of North America 
are extremely difficult to correlate and place in chronological 
order, because, for the most part, they are found in locally 
restricted areas, such as tar-pools, bogs, caverns and similar 
places. Professor Osborn has, however, succeeded in making 
an admirable arrangement, which, though it will doubtless 
be corrected and expanded by future research, represents 
a most important advance. Of the general problem he says: 
“The study of the mammals of the Quaternary has by no means 
progressed so far in America as in Europe; it will be many 
years before the faunistic succession can be worked out with 


such chronologic accuracy and precision as has at last been 
0) 


194 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


attained by European geologists and paleontologists.” Ac- 
cording to Osborn’s arrangement, there are three principal 
successive Pleistocene faunas, two of which appear to have 
coincided with interglacial stages, and the third with the last 
reéstablishment of glacial conditions on a grand scale. Re- 
garding the details of these faunas, there still remains much 
uncertainty, and consequently there will be no attempt made 
here to do more than discriminate between the general Pleis- 
tocene assemblage, on the one hand, and that of the last cold 
period, on the other. It must be emphasized that we are as 
yet unable to assert that all of the animals listed together were 
actually living at the same time. 

It is probable that the Pleistocene fossils already obtained 
give us a fairly adequate conception of the larger and more 
conspicuous mammals of the time, but no doubt represent 
very incompletely the small and fragile forms. With all its 
gaps, however, the record is very impressive; ‘‘the early and 
mid-Pleistocene life of North America is the grandest and 
most varied assemblage of the entire Cenozoic Period [i.e. 
era] of our continent”? (Osborn). There is the. further ad- 
vantage that the fossils have been gathered over a very great 
area, extending from ocean to ocean and from Alaska to Central 
America. Thus, their wide geographical range represents 
nearly all parts of the continent and gives us information con- 
cerning the mammals of the great forests, as well as of the great 
plains. 

Those divisions of the early and middle Pleistocene which 
enjoyed milder climatic conditions had an assemblage of mam- 
mals which, from one point of view, seems very modern, for 
most of the genera, and even many of the species, which now 
inhabit North America, date back to that time. From the 
geographical standpoint, however, this is a very strange fauna, 
for it contains so many animals now utterly foreign to North 
America, to find near relatives of which we should have to go 
to Asia or South America. Some of these animals which 


SUCCESSIVE MAMMALIAN FAUNAS 195 


Fie. 113. — Some of the more characteristic Pleistocene mammals, reduced to a uniform 
scale, with a pointer dog (in the frame) to show relative sizes. — 1. {Columbian 
Elephant (Elephas + columbi). 2. Giant ¢{Ground-Sloth (+Megalonyz jeffersoni). 
3. ¢Stag-Moose (}Cervalces scotti). 4. tAmerican Mastodon ({ Mastodon ameri- 
canus). 5. ¢ Giant Beaver (ft Castoroides ohioensis). 6. t Texas Horse (Equus f scotti). 
7. tSabre-tooth Tiger (¢ Smilodon californicus). 


196 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


now seem so exotic, such as the llamas, camels and horses, were 
yet truly indigenous and were derived from a long line of 
ancestors which dwelt in this continent, but are now scattered 
abroad and extinct in their original home, while others were 
migrants that for some unknown reason failed to maintain 
themselves. Others again are everywhere extinct. 

Most surprising, perhaps, in a North American landscape, 
is the presence of the Proboscidea, of which two very distinct 
kinds, the tmastodons and the trueelephants, are found together. 
Over nearly the whole of the United States and southern 
Canada, and even with sporadic occurrence in Alaska, ranged: 
the tAmerican Mastodon (} Mastodon americanus) which was 
rare in the plains, but very abundant in the forested regions, 
where it persisted till a very late period and was probably 
known to the early Indians. This animal, while nearly related 
to the true elephants, was yet quite different from them in 
appearance, as will be immediately seen on comparing 1 and 4, 
Fig. 113, p.195. The most obvious external difference was the 
comparative shortness of the legs in the tMastodon, which 
did not exceed and seldom attained a height of 9 ft. 6 in. 
at the shoulder; the head also was lower and more flattened. 
The teeth were very different from those of the elephants; 
the grinding teeth were much smaller and simpler, being low- 
crowned and rooted and having three or four high, transverse, 
enamel-covered crests, without cement. The tusks were 
elephant-like except that in the male there was a single small 
tusk in the lower jaw, which cannot have been visible exter- 
nally; this isa remnant of an earlier stage of development, 
when there were two large tusks in the lower as well as the 
upper jaw. The creature was covered with long, coarse, 
dun-coloured hair; such hair has been found with some of 
the skeletons. . 

Of true elephants, the North American Pleistocene had three 
species. Most interesting of these is the northern or Siberian 
tMammoth (Elephas tprimigenius), a late immigrant from 


SUCCESSIVE MAMMALIAN FAUNAS 197 


northern Asia, which came in by way of Alaska, where Bering 
Land (as we may call the raised bed of Bering Sea) connected 
it with Asia. The tMammoth was abundant in Alaska, 
British Columbia and all across the northern United States 
to the Atlantic coast. Hardly any fossil mammal is so well 
known as this, for the carcasses entombed in the frozen gravels 
of northern Siberia have preserved every detail of structure. It 
is thus definitely known that the {Mammoth was well adapted 
to a cold climate and was covered with a dense coat of wool 
beneath an outer coating of long, coarse hair, while the con- 
tents of the stomach and the partially masticated food found 
in the mouth show that the animal fed upon the same vegeta- 
tion as grows in northern Siberia to-day. The grinding teeth 
were very high,’ cement-covered, and composed of many thin 
plates of enamel, dentine and cement, and were closely similar 
to those of the existing Indian Elephant (LE. maximus). In size 
this is the smallest of the three Pleistocene species, 9 feet at 
the shoulder. The {Mammoth was not peculiar to Siberia 
and North America, but extended also into Europe, where it 
was familiar to Paleolithic Man, as is attested by the spirited 
and lifelike carvings and cave-paintings of that date. Thus, 
during some part of the Pleistocene, this species ranged around 
the entire northern hemisphere. 

Closely related to the {Mammoth and in some cases hardly 
distinguishable from it, is the t+tColumbian Elephant (£. 
tcolumbi) which, however, attained a considerably larger size, 
as much as 11 feet, rivalling the largest African elephants of 
the present time. The head was very high and had a curiously 
peaked appearance, and the tusks in old males curved inward, 
overlapping at the tips. From the likeness in teeth and 
skeleton to the {Mammoth, it may be inferred, though some- 
what doubtfully, that the {Columbian Elephant was clothed 
with hair, but not so heavily as the }Mammoth, which was 
a northern species, the Columbian form replacing it southward, 
and ranging over the whole United States, including Florida 


IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


LAND MAMMALS 


198 


. *A104STPT [RINYeN Jo 
uMasn]Al UBOTIIUTY oY} UI UOJs[aYs B WO] (2Qunjoo| spyda7r7) yuRYdel_ urIquMOD | oy} Jo UOTVeIOYSAY — “FIT ‘OT 


SUCCESSIVE MAMMALIAN FAUNAS - 199 


and even throughout the table-land of Mexico. The areas 
of the two species overlapped along the northernmost United 
States, but are elsewhere distinct. 

A third species was the huge tImperial Elephant (E. timpera- 
tor), the largest of American forms, to which Osborn’s calcula- 
tions give the almost incredible height of 13 ft. 6 in. This 
great creature was characterized not only by its enormous 
stature, but also by the proportionately very large size of its 
grinding teeth, and was a survivor from the preceding Pliocene 
epoch ; it is not known to have passed beyond the middle Pleis- 
tocene and was thus the first of the species to become extinct. 
In geographical range, the {Imperial Elephant was a western 
form, extending from the Pacific coast almost to the Mississippi 
River, east of which it has never been found, and from Ne- 
braska southward to the City of Mexico. The meaning of this 
distribution is probably that this elephant shunned the forests 
and was especially adapted to a life on the open plains. Over 
most of its area the winters were severe, and this fact makes 
it, likely that the animal was clothed with hair, but nothing is 
definitely known on this point. 

Many other hoofed animals, far more than now inhabit 
North America, are found in this Pleistocene fauna. The 
Perissodactyla were represented by horses and tapirs, but not 
by rhinoceroses; it might seem superfluous to say that there 
were no rhinoceroses, but, as a matter of fact, that family had 
a long and varied American history and became extinct only 
during or at the end of the Pliocene epoch. The horses were 
extremely numerous, both individually and specifically, and 
ranged, apparently in great herds, all over Mexico and the 
United States and even into Alaska. All the known species 
(at least ten in number) belong to the genus Equus, but the 
True Horse (£. caballus), to which all the domestic breeds are 
referred, is not represented. Thesmallest known member of the 
genus is the pygmy #.ttau of Mexico. LE.t{fraternus, likewise 
a very small species, is found especially in the southeast, but 


200 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


extended as far north as Pennsylvania and west to Nebraska. 
On the other hand, E.tgiganteus of Texas exceeded the 
heaviest modern draught-horses in size and was the largest of 
the American species; of other Texan forms, one (E.tscotti) 
resembled Burchell’s Zebra (H.burchelli) in the proportions 
of head and neck, body and limbs, while another (E.tsemi- 
plicatus) was more ass-like. The forest horse of the eastern 


Fic. 115. — A Horse (Equus fscotti) from the older Pleistocene of Texas. Restored 
from a skeleton in the American Museum of Natural History. 


states has been named E.fpectinatus, an animal of moderate 
size. The Great Plains must have been fairly covered with 
enormous herds of horses, the countless bones and teeth of 
which, entombed in the Sheridan formation, have given to it 
the name of ‘“‘Equus beds.’’ The most abundant of the plains 
species is E.tcomplicatus, a horse of about 14} hands in height 
(i.e. 4 feet 10 inches at the shoulder) which also ranged down 
the Mississippi Valley nearly or quite to the Gulf of Mexico. 
In California was E.toccidentalis, equalling E.tcomplicatus in 
size, but with much more simple teeth, and associated with 


SUCCESSIVE MAMMALIAN FAUNAS 201 


it the much larger E.fpacificus, which was inferior only to 
E.tgiganteus and therefore the second largest of the American 
Pleistocene horses. 

To one who knows nothing of the geological history of 
North America it would be natural to suppose that the Pleis- 
tocene horses must have been immigrants from the Old World, 
which failed to establish themselves permanently here, since 
they completely disappeared before the discovery of the con- 
tinent by Europeans. This would, however, be a mistaken 
inference, for. North America was for long ages the chief area 
of development of the equine family, which may here be 
traced in almost unbroken continuity from the lower Eocene 
to the Pliocene. On the other hand, it is quite possible that 
some of the species were immigrants. 

Tapirs, which are now confined to southern Asia, Central 
and South America, were not uncommon in the forested parts 
of eastern North America as far north as Pennsylvania, but 
they have not been found west of the Mississippi in the plains 
region. Two species are known, a larger and heavier one, 
Tapirusthaysiz, and a smaller one which seems to be identical 
with the living 7. terrestris of Central and South America. 
‘Like the horses, the tapirs had a long history of development 
in North America and may well have originated here, but 
they withdrew from the continent in the Pleistocene, probably 
yielding to the last of the glacial advances. 

There was likewise a much greater variety of Artiodactyla 
than North America can boast at the present day; some were 
autochthonous, but, for the most part, they were migrants. 
from the eastern hemisphere, where the great group of the true 
ruminants (Pecora) passed through the greater part of its 
development and where its headquarters still are. Indigenous 
were the peccaries, or American swine, which still occur from 
Texas south to Brazil. In Pleistocene time they ranged over 
nearly all of the United States, as far northward as Pennsylvania, 
and across the plains to the Pacific coast ; they were represented 


202 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


by two genera, now extinct, one of which (fPlatygonus) had 
crested grinding teeth and much longer legs than the modern 
peccaries. Anotherindigenous group, strangeas that may seem, 
is the suborder (Tylopoda) of the camels and llamas, both of 
which are represented in the North American Pleistocene, the 
descendants of a very long American ancestry. Some of 
these tylopodans were far larger than existing forms, and at 
least one species extended its range to Alaska. 

Of ultimately Old World origin, but through a considerable 
line of descent in America, were the typically American deer 
(Odocotleus) of which the Virginian and Black-tailed species 
are familiar modern instances. Whether or not the Old 
World types, the Caribou (Rangifer) and Wapiti (Cervus 
canadensis) had reached the western hemisphere, is a matter 
of some doubt; if present at all, they must have been com- 

paratively rare. The Moose (Alce americanus), on the other 
hand, had already appeared, but seems to have been confined 
to the western half of the continent, its presence in the east 
being questionable. The mistakenly named “Rocky Mountain 
Goat”? (Oreamnos montanus), which is an antelope of the 
chamois group, was an apparently late arrival in the Pleistocene, 
while the peculiar Prong-Buck (Antilocapra americana), which 
is very different from any of the Old World antelopes, was 
present in the early part of the epoch. The descent of this 
remarkable animal is still a problem, but not improbably it 
was derived from the “‘deer-antelopes” of the Miocene and 
Pliocene, the last of which occurred in the early Pleistocene. 
Mr. Gidley has announced the surprising discovery in Mary- 
land of a large antelope hardly distinguishable from the 
African Eland (Taurotragus). Other late arrivals from the 
Old World were several forms allied to the existing Musk Ox 
(Ovibos), at least two genera of which (}Preptoceras and +Eucera- 
therium) have been found in California. A surprising number 
of species of Bison occurred in the Pleistocene, no less than 
seven of which are recognized as distinct, ranging from Florida 


SUCCESSIVE MAMMALIAN FAUNAS 203 


to Alaska. It is not likely that all these species coexisted at 
the same time, but we cannot yet determine their order of 
succession, though the modern species, B. bison, was probably 
the latest to arise. Most of these species were much larger 


Fic. 116. — Restoration of tPreptoceras, a musk-ox like animal from the Californian 
Pleistocene. (From a skeleton in the museum of the University of California.) 


than B. bison, and some were gigantic, such as B.flatifrons, 
which had a spread of horns of 6 feet and is found through the 
Mississippi Valley, and B.tcrassicornis of Alaska. 

Preying upon this great assemblage of hoofed animals was 
a corresponding array of Carnivora, most of which were in- 
digenous and derived from American stocks, but there was a 
considerable migrant element also, such as the bears and 
badgers. Nearly all the modern kinds of flesh-eaters found 


204 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


in the North America of to-day were already here in the 
Pleistocene, minks, weasels, martens, skunks, otters, badgers, 
wolverenes, raccoons, foxes, wolves, coyotes, pumas, etc., etc., 
but there were several others which are either now extinct or no 
longer to be found in this continent. Of the extinct types much 
the most striking were the several species of tsabre-tooth tigers 
(tSmilodon, see Frontispiece) which have been found in the 
greater part of the United States and no doubt ranged over the 
whole. These were massive, short-tailed and rather short- 
legged, but very muscular and powerful, cat-like animals, in 
which the upper canine teeth were converted into great, 
recurved, scimitar-like tusks. These large beasts of prey, 
which about equalled the Leopard in height, but were far 
heavier, belonged to a group which, at one time or another, 
spread over nearly the whole world and persisted much later 
and attained a larger size and higher development in the 
western hemisphere than in the eastern. They had a very 
long American ancestry, from the lower Oligocene to the end 
of the Pleistocene, but the place of their origin is still un- 
known. In addition to the pumas and lynxes, there were 
some very large true felines (Felis tatrox and F.}imperialis), 
which closely resembled the Lion (F. leo) in size, appearance 
and structure, and have been found in California and the 
Mississippi Valley ; probably these great cats were immigrants, 
but they may represent a native development of Miocene and 
Pliocene stock; the history of the family is too imperfect for a 
decision of this question. 

Besides coyotes and wolves which are indistinguishable 
from existing species, there were some very large wolves, now 
extinct, of which the commonest and most widely distributed 
was Canis tdirus (also called C.tindianensis) so abundant in 
the asphalts of southern California. Bears were not so com- 
mon in the middle Pleistocene and have not been found in the 
older part of that epoch, though they probably had already 
reached North America from the Old World, where they orig- 


SUCCESSIVE MAMMALIAN FAUNAS 205: 


inated. Their absence from the older Pleistocene (Equus 
Beds) may be accounted for by the fact that those beds con- 
tain a fauna of the open plains, while bears are chiefly forest- 
living animals. An extinct type of the family is the group 
of species which constitute the tshort-faced bears (fArctotherium), 
very large and powerful creatures, with remarkably shortened 
jaws, which have been found from ocean to ocean. The smaller 
beasts of prey, badgers, weasels, etc., were, as intimated above, 
substantially the same as now. 

The rodents of the Pleistocene were very nearly in their 
. Modern stage of development, most of the genera and many 
of the species surviving to present times. Just what members 
of. the order were introduced from the Old World, the imperfect 
and fragmentary history will not permit us to say, but some 
interesting South American immigrants should be noted. One 
of these, the Capybara or so-called Water-Hog (Hydrocherus 
capybara), the largest of existing rodents, failed to gain a per- 
manent foothold, but another South American form, the Short- 
tailed or Canada Porcupine (Hrethizon dorsatus), common 
all over the United States in the Pleistocene, has maintained 
itself to the present day. One especially peculiar form, not 
derived from South America or the Old World, is the +Giant 
Beaver (tCastoroides), one species of which, tC. ohioensis, was 
as large as a Black Bear and occurred in the later Pleistocene, 
while a smaller species ({C.species indet.) is found in the more 
ancient deposits of the epoch. In almost all respects tCas- 
toroides was simply a gigantic beaver, but the grinding teeth 
were remarkably like those of the South American Capybara 
(Hydrocherus), so much so that it has been mistakenly re- 
ferred to the same family by some authorities. 

By far the strangest elements of the Pleistocene faunas. 
were the two suborders of gigantic edentates, the {Gravigrada, 
or tground-sloths, and the Glyptodontia, which might well be 
called giant armadillos, if that name were not already in use 
for a living Brazilian animal. Both suborders are completely 


206 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


extinct, but they long played a very conspicuous réle in South 
America, where they originated and whence the North American 
representatives migrated. The tground-sloths were great, 
unwieldy, herbivorous animals covered with long hair, and 
in one family ({Mylodontide) there was a close-set armour 
of pebble-like ossicles in the skin, not visible externally ; they 
walked upon the outer edges of the feet, somewhat as the Ant- 
Bear (Myrmecophaga) uses his fore paws, and must have been 
very slow-moving creatures. Their enormous claws may have 
served partly as weapons of defence and were doubtless 
used also to drag down branches of trees and to dig roots and 
tubers. Apparently, the latest of these curious animals to 
survive was the very large {Megalonyx, which, it is interesting 
to note, was first discovered and named by Thomas Jefferson. 
The animals of this genus were very abundant in the forests 
east of the Mississippi River and on the Pacific coast, much 
less common in the plains region, where they would seem to 
have been confined to the wooded river valleys. The still 
more gigantic t{Megatherium, which had a body as large as that 
of an elephant and much shorter, though more massive legs, 
was a southern animal and has not been found above South 
Carolina. {Mylodon, smaller and lighter than the preceding 
genera, would seem to have entered the continent earlier and to 
have become extinct sooner; it ranged across the continent, 
but was much commoner in the plains region and less so in the 
forested areas than {Megalonyz, being no doubt better adapted 
to subsisting upon the vegetation of the plains and less de- 
pendent upon trees for food. 

The +Glyptodonts were undoubtedly present in the North 
American Pleistocene, but the remains which have been col- 
lected so far are very fragmentary and quite insufficient to 
give us a definite conception of thenumber and variety of them. 
It will be better therefore to defer the description of these 
most curious creatures until the South American Pleistocene 
is dealt with, as they were incomparably more varied and 


SUCCESSIVE MAMMALIAN FAUNAS 207 


characteristic in that continent. In North America they have 
been found only in Mexico and the southern United States. 

The many and great climatic changes which took place in 
the Pleistocene led to very extensive migrations of mammals 
from one part of the continent to another, as the conditions of 
temperature and moisture changed. In Interglacial stages, 
when the climate was much ameliorated, southern species 
spread far to the north, as when the {Mastodon ranged into 
Alaska, and the Manatee, or Sea-Cow, of Florida waters, came 
up the coast to New Jersey, while the increasing eold of on- 
coming glaciation caused a reverse movement and drove 
northern and even Arctic forms far to the south. Thus, the 
Musk-Ox, the Caribou and the northern {Mammoth came 
south beyond the Ohio and the Potomac, and the Walrus was 
found on the South Atlantic coast. Itis these migrations which 
give such a mixed character to the Pleistocene faunas from the 
climatic point of view, as it is often very difficult to correlate 
or synchronize the fossiliferous deposits with the Glacial and 
Interglacial stages, though this has been definitely accomplished 
in several very important instances. 

The latest of the Pleistocene faunas is less completely 
known than those of the earlier and middle portions of the 
epoch, for but few localities have yet been discovered with 
any extensive series of fossils. As worked out by Osborn, 
this fauna coincided with the last Glacial stage and was a greatly 
reduced and impoverished assemblage as compared with those 
of the middle and lower Pleistocene, though it is not safe to 
argue that all the animals not found in this fauna were already 
extinct, for the known list is still far too short to be entirely 
representative. The American {Mastodon (tMastodon ameri- 
canus, see p.196) was still abundant in the forested regions and 
was apparently able to withstand severe winter temperatures, 
as certainly was the {Mammoth (Hlephas tprimigenius, see 
p. 196), which was so abundant in the coldest part of Siberia 
and which extended south to the Potomac, presumably at this 


208 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


time. Horses were still present in North America, though 
apparently in greatly diminished numbers and variety. Tapirs 
have not been found, though they may have lingered on in the 
southern regions. The typically North American genus of deer 
(Odocoileus) was, of course, well represented, and Old World 
types had a much more southerly distribution than at present. 
The Caribou (Rangifer caribou) came down into Pennsylvania 
and Ohio, the Moose (Alce americanus) into Kentucky and 
Kansas, and the Wapiti (Cervus canadensis) is reported as far 
south as Florida. A very remarkable animal is the Stag- 
Moose ({Cervalces scotti), the best preserved skeleton of which 
is that in the museum of Princeton University. This was 
found in a shell-marl beneath a peat-bog at Mt. Hermon, 
N. J., north of the great terminal moraine, and therefore most 
probably this particular individual dates from a time not 
earlier than the beginning of the final retreat of the ice. 

{Cervalces, as its name implies, was in some respects inter- 
mediate between the Stag (Cervus) and the Moose (Alce); 
in general proportions it most nearly resembled the latter, 
having a short neck, long body and very long legs; but the skull 
differed in many respects from that of the Moose, especially in 
parts which show that the great, inflated snout and pre- 
hensile upper lip had no such development in the extinct as in 
the living form. The antlers were unique among the known 
members of the deer family, resembling those of the Moose, 
though much less palmated and with the addition of great 
trumpet-shaped plates. The feet were large, almost as large 
as in the Caribou, and the whole structure indicates an animal 
well fitted to travel through deep snows and flourish in severe 
winters. 

Even more typically northern than the Caribou were the 
Musk-Oxen, of which two genera occurred in the late Pleistocene. 
One of these, tSymbos, is extinct and was characterized by its 
short horns; the other, Ovibos, is the genus to which the exist- 
ing species, O. moschatus and O. wardi, belong and is now con- 


209 


MAMMALIAN FAUNAS 


SUCCESSIVE 


“APISIOATU A) UOJOUTIG JO WNASNUL oY} UI UOJOTOYS V WOLF PaIOySar ‘2098 saajvasag| — "PTT “OT 


- Tres 
STW I/Sd0n aOANT lL 


Sai EE 


210 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


fined to the extreme north of the continent, the Arctic islands 
and Greenland. The remains of Musk-Oxen have been found 
mostly along the great terminal moraine which marks the 
front of the last ice-invasion, but they occurred also as far 
south as Oklahoma, and in Utah they ranged far to the south 
of the ice-front. Nothing could be more conclusive evidence 
of a climate much colder than the modern one than the presence 
of Caribou and Musk-Oxen in the United States and of the 
Walrus on the coast of Georgia. 

The smaller animals were much as they are now, differing 
only in range. The tsabre-tooth tigers, the last of a most 
interesting line, persisted in the south, and an extinct genus of 
skunks has been discovered in Arkansas, but otherwise the 
Carnivora were entirely modern in character. Unfortunately, 
these smaller animals are very incompletely known, much 
the richest aggregation which has yet been found being 
that collected by Mr. Brown in the Conard Fissure, Arkansas. 
From this collection Mr. Brown has described thirty-seven 
genera and fifty-one species of mammals, of which four genera 
and twenty-four species are extinct. That is to say, less than 
one-ninth of the genera and one-half of the species represent 
extinct forms. Contrast this with the middle Pleistocene 
assemblage found in the Port Kennedy cavern in eastern Penn- 
sylvania, of sixty-four species with at least forty extinct ones. 

The foregoing sketch, brief and imperfect as it necessarily 
is, makes it sufficiently plain that North America during the 
Pleistocene was far richer in mammalian life than it was when 
the continent was first settled by Europeans. When we make 
the proper allowance for the many forms which undoubtedly 
remain to be discovered and for those which may have vanished 
without leaving a trace behind them, the. contrast becomes 
all the more striking. Not only did Pleistocene North America 
have substantially all the mammals that it. now possesses, but 
it had many more. The lions and fsabre-tooth tigers, the 
gigantic tshort-faced bears, the tapirs and many varieties of 


SUCCESSIVE MAMMALIAN FAUNAS 211 


horses, large and small, the camels and llamas, many species 
of bisons, some of enormous proportions, several forms allied 
to the Musk-Ox, the elephants and ftmastodons, the tgiant 
beavers and South American water-hogs, the huge tground- 
sloths and {glyptodonts, have all disappeared, leaving a con- 
tinent, that, by contrast, is “zodélogically impoverished.” 
The Pleistocene fauna was strangely mixed in character, the 
free roads of migration bringing together Old World and South 
American types, and mingling them with indigenous forms 
in a cosmopolitan assemblage. 

Turning to South America, we find in the pampas of Argen- 
tina a wonderful museum of Pleistocene mammals, such as 
occurs nowhere else in the known world, and this is supple- 
mented by the very rich collections gathered from the caverns 
of Brazil and from deposits of Ecuador and Bolivia, and thus 
all the important regions of the continent, save the far south, 
are well represented. These faunas are far stranger than the 
corresponding ones of North America and differ more radically 
from those of modern times, since they include a much larger 
proportion of extinct types, and the extinctions have swept 
away not only species and genera, but families and orders as 
well. 

The South American Pleistocene assemblage of mammals 
is very clearly divisible into two elements: (1) the immigrants 
from the north, which reached the southern continent in suc- 
cessive waves of migration, that have left records of themselves 
as early as the older Pliocene, perhaps even the upper Miocene, 
and (2) the indigenous element, which had a very long history 
of development in South America. To the immigrant class be- 
longed all of the Carnivora, which therefore resembled their 
North American relatives, but were less varied in character. Of 
the bears, only the huge, tshort-faced kind (}Arctotherium, Fig. 
275, p. 549) are known, and it is not likely that true bears existed 
except in the Andes, as is also the case to-day. Of the cat 
family, the tsabre-tooth tigers ({Smilodon) were as common in 


212 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


South America as in North, and, while there were no lions, 
there were large cats nearly allied to the Jaguar and Puma, and 
smaller ones, like the Ocelot. The dogs were quite numerously 


Fic. 118.—-Some of the commoner Pampean mammals, reduced to a uniform scale, 
with a pointer dog (in the frame) to show the relative sizes. 1. + Dedicurus clavi- 
caudatus. 2. tGlyptodon clavipes, tglyptodonts. 3. + Macrauchenia patachonica, 
one of the ¢ Litopterna. 4. {Pampas Horse ({ Hippidion neogeum). 5. + Toxodon 
burmeisteri, a ttoxodont. 6. + Megatherium americanum. 7. t Mylodon robustus, 
+ ground-sloths. 


represented by species resembling closely the existing South: 


American fox-like wolves and the Bush-Dog (Icticyon) and, 
strange to say, by one which seems referable to the same 


SUCCESSIVE MAMMALIAN FAUNAS 213 


genus (Cyon) as the Dhole of India. The weasel family 
(Mustelidz) were less numerous and varied than in the northern 
continent, as they still are; coatis (Nasua) and raccoons 
(Procyon) were abundant and one species of the latter was much 
larger than any existing one; extinct species of skunk (Co- 
nepatus), tayra (Tayra) and otter (Lutra) were also present, 
but the badgers, minks, martens and wolverenes were not. 

The hoofed animals were represented by a great variety 
of forms, both immigrant and indigenous, of which the latter 
belonged to orders now entirely extinct. Horses were com- 
mon in all parts of the continent, where fossils of this epoch 
have been obtained, and are referable to two very distinct 
groups: (1) to the typical genus Hquus, of which three species 
have been described, all somewhat more primitive than the 
True Horse (#. caballus) and, like most of the Pleistocene 
species of North America, with a certain resemblance to the 
zebras and asses; (2) to an extinct group of four genera, the 
best known of which is tHippidion. The species of this genus 
(which has also been reported from North: America, though 
upon hardly sufficient evidence) had most exceptional characters 
in the skull, and the head was relatively large and clumsy, with 
narrow and very high facial region. The neck was com- 
paratively short, the limbs heavy and the feet short. These 
animals can hardly have been very swift runners. A very 
interesting member of this group is tHyperhippidium, a small 
horse found in the Andes, with remarkably short feet, well 
adapted for a mountain life. The only other perissodactyls 
were tapirs, which ranged down to the Argentine pampas, 
much farther south than now. 

The Artiodactyla were much more varied; there were 
peccaries, many species of llamas, which then extended into 
Brazil, and were not confined, as at present, to the colder 
portions of the continent. There were also numerous deer, 
all of the South American type, and two different antelopes 
have been reported, though that family has no representatives 


LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


214 


“soily souong 


‘umasn]] [BUOTFE NT JY} UI UOJaJaHS B WOT pa104sayYy 


*(wnaboau uoipiddiyy |) es1ox sedureg WY — ‘6IT ‘S17 


(64 i 
“pe yp vas OH goouer- dy 
he 
es 


SUCCESSIVE MAMMALIAN FAUNAS 215 


in the southern continent now. Several species of tmastodons 
have been found in Brazil, Argentina, Bolivia and elsewhere, 
but none of the true elephants. Why the fmastodons were 
able to make their way into South America, while the elephants 
were not, is one of the puzzling questions of mammalian dis- 
tribution to which no answer can be given. 

All the preceding types of hoofed animals, the horses, 
tapirs, peccaries, llamas, deer, antelopes and tmastodons were 
migrants from the north, and four of these, tapirs, peccaries, 
llamas and deer, were able to gain a permanent footing in 
South America and are more or less abundant there to-day, 
while the horses, antelopes and tmastodons failed to do so 
and died out. In addition to these, there were the indigenous 
types, which are now extinct and have never been found out- 
side of the Neotropical region. An extremely peculiar creature, 
{Macrauchenia, was the last surviving member of an order, the 
{Litopterna, which for ages played a very important réle in 
South America. {Macrauchenia was a large animal, somewhat 
larger and of much heavier build than a camel, to which it 
had a considerable, though entirely superficial, resemblance. 
The head was relatively small and must have had quite a long 
proboscis; the neck was very long, suggesting that the animal 
browsed upon trees, which is also indicated by the character 
of the teeth; the legs were long and stout, the feet short and 
each provided with three toes. Another curious creature was 
+Typotherium, from which is named the group of the {Typo- 
theria, which some authorities regard as a suborder, while 
others assign to it a full ordinal rank. 

The {Typotheres throughout the Tertiary period were 
among the most abundant and characteristic of the South 
American hoofed animals, and the genus +Typotherium was the 
last of a very long series and was an animal of moderate size, 
with chisel-shaped incisor teeth so like those of the rodents 
that the genus was long referred to that order. Finally, we 
have tToxodon, type of the order {Toxodontia, a ponderous 


*B7R1_q BT 
jo UINnasn]] 94} Ul UOJOYs B WIOIJ paIOysay “(VI9UWOYIDJDd vDIUWayonDLID Py) UIOJdOW]| Uvodueg VY — ‘OZI “OL 


LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


216 


SUCCESSIVE MAMMALIAN FAUNAS 217 


beast, as large as a rhinoceros, which, there is some reason to 
think, was largely aquatic in its habits. The first species of 
this extraordinary creature was found by Charles Darwin, 
who says of it: ‘‘Perhaps one of the strangest animals ever 
discovered ; in size it equalled an elephant or megatherium, 


Fic. 121.—A Pampean t Toxodont (¢Tozodon burmeisteri). Restored from a skeleton 
in the La Plata Museum. 


but the structure of its teeth, as Mr. Owen states, proves 
indisputably that it was intimately related to the Gnawers 
[v.e. Rodentia] . . . in many details it is allied to the Pachy- 
dermata: judging from the position of its eyes, ears, and 
nostrils, it was probably aquatic, like the Dugong and Manatee, 
to which it is also allied.””! Modern views concerning the 
relationships of | Toxodon are very different from those advanced 
by Darwin, but he gives a vivid picture of its diverse likenesses. 
Neither +Macrauchenia, tTypotherium nor {Toxodon has been 


1Voyage of a Naturalist, Am. ed., 1891, p. 82. 


218 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


found in the Brazilian caverns, but this is no doubt due to the 
accidents of preservation, for the latter animal ranged north 
to Nicaragua. 

The rodents likewise were partially of immigrant and par- 
tially of native stock. To the former belonged the few mice 
and rats and a meadow-mouse (Microtus), a group not repre- 
sented in present-day South America, and a rabbit. Very 
much more abundant and varied were the indigenous forms, all 
of which belonged to existing families and most of them to exist- 
ing genera ; the tree-porcupines, cavies, agoutis, spiny-rats, viz- 
cachas, capybaras, coypus, etc., were abundantly represented, 
for the most part by extinct species. 

The monkeys were of purely Neotropical type and several 
modern genera, such as Cebus and Callithrix, and one very 
large extinct genus, tProtopithecus, of the same family, have 
been found in the caverns of Brazil, but not in the pampas of 
Argentina, which would seem to have been a country of open 
plains. 

In the South America of to-day one of the most striking 
and peculiar elements of the fauna is that formed by the Eden- 
tata, the sloths, anteaters and armadillos, and this was even 
more true of the same region in Pleistocene times. Anteaters 
and sloths are very scantily represented, but this is merely 
an accident of preservation; armadillos, on the other hand, 
were very numerous both in Brazil and in Argentina, and, in 
addition to many modern genera, there were several which 
are no longer in existence, such as tChlamydotherium, which 
was a huge creature almost as large as a rhinoceros. Then 
there were the two extinct suborders of the tglyptodonts 
(tGlyptodontia) and the fground-sloths (tGravigrada) which 
were astonishingly abundant in Argentina and which, as was 
shown in a previous page (p. 205), were also well represented in 
North America. 

Few more fantastic-looking mammals than the tglyptodonts 
have ever been found; the short, deep head, with its. shield 


SUCCESSIVE MAMMALIAN FAUNAS 219 


of thick, bony plates, the huge carapace made up of innumerable 
plates of bone firmly united at their edges and without the 
movable bands of the armadillo carapace, the enormous tail- 
sheath, the short legs and massive feet with broad hoofs, 
must have given these animals rather the appearance of gigantic 
tortoises than of mammals. The fglyptodonts were especially 
numerous and varied in the Argentine pampas, and a stately 
array of them is mounted in the museums of La Plata and 
Buenos Aires; in length, they ranged from six to twelve feet, 
including the tail. The skeleton and carapace did not differ 
very greatly in appearance among the various genera, but there 
were great differences in the form and size of the bony sheath 
enclosing the tail. In the genus {Glyptodon the sheath was 
composed throughout of movable overlapping rings, with 
prominent spines on them; in fSclerocalyptus the hinder half 
of the sheath coalesced into a single piece, marked only by 
the elaborate ornamentation of the horny scales, while in 
{Dedicurus the end had a tremendous, club-like expansion, 
which must have been set with great horn-like spines. The 
tglyptodonts were ponderous, slow-moving and _ inoffensive 
plant-feeders, almost invulnerable to attack, and probably 
used their massive tails, which could be freely swung from side 
to side, as redoubtable weapons of defence, much as the alli- 
gator uses his tail. In comparison with the bewildering variety 
in South America, the few that made their way into North 
America were quite insignificant. 

Much the same statement applies to the tground-sloths, 
and though these ranged far more widely through the northern 
continent than did the tglyptodonts, they were but few in 
comparison with the multitude which inhabited alike the 
forests of Brazil and the plains of the south. Two of the three 
genera of tground-sloths which occur in the North American 
Pleistocene, +Megatherium and +tMylodon, are also found in 
South America; and though tMegalonyx has not yet been ob- 
tained there, the family of which it is a member was represented. 


LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


220 


“eyBIq wT Jo wnosny 
dq} Ul UOJOOYS B WOIJ poloysoy -(~unuvoWaWD wnisay]De PY 1) YQiOls-punoin| uvodurg ours y— ‘zz ‘pig 


SUCCESSIVE MAMMALIAN FAUNAS 221 


In size, these creatures varied from a tapir to an elephant, 
though all were much shorter-legged than any elephant; the 
extremely massive tail, which the larger forms had, served to 
support the huge body, when erected to tear down the branches 
and leaves upon which these strange creatures fed. 

Opossums were extremely numerous, especially in the 
Brazilian caves, where in half a cubic foot of earth 400 jaws 
were collected. 

The Pleistocene mammalian fauna of South America was 
a mixture of modern forms with ancient, vanished types similar 
to that which we found in North America. The fground- 
sloths and {glyptodonts, the flitopterns, ftoxodonts and 
{typotheres, the antelopes, horses and fmastodons have all 
disappeared from the continent, or vanished altogether from 
the face of the earth. 


IJ. Tertiary Faunas 
1. Pliocene 


North America. — No part of the Cenozoic history of North 
America is so imperfectly recorded and so unsatisfactorily 
known as that of the Pliocene, and the later portion of that 
epoch is especially obscure. If the Peace Creek formation 
of Florida is properly referred to the upper Pliocene, it would 
show that the mammals of that time were substantially the 
same as those of the early Pleistocene. 

The only fauna, as yet discovered, which can be referred 
to the middle Pliocene, is that of the Blanco beds of north- 
western Texas, which have yielded but a scanty list of mostly 
ill-preserved fossils. Obviously, these give us a very incom- 
plete picture of the life of that time. The great fground- 
sloths had already reached North America, and the genus 
+Megalonyx, so common in the forested areas of Pleistocene 
North America, was perhaps already in existence. The 
tglyptodonts were likewise represented by one genus ({Glyp- 


222 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


totherium) which was distinguished by the simple rings of 
the tail-sheath. No rodents have yet been found and only 
a few of the Carnivora, though a large cat, a musteline and 
a large {‘‘bear-dog”’ are known. There were no true elephants, 
but several species of tmastodons, all of which were different 
from those of the Pleistocene; and in some, grinding teeth, 
though still low-crowned, had become much larger and more 
complex, marking a stage of advance toward the elephan- 
tine dentition. Horses of primitive type, the feet having 
three functional toes instead of one, were relatively abundant. 
Very large llama-like animals were present, but nothing has 
been ascertained with regard to the deer and antelopes of the 
time, and the only other representative of the Artiodactyla 
yet recovered is a peccary, interesting as being a species of the 
genus ({Platygonus) which became so abundant and wide- 
spread in the Pleistocene. Scanty and incomplete as this 
fauna is, it suffices to show that the middle Pliocene mammals 
were much more primitive than those of the Pleistocene. 

The fauna of the Snake Creek formation in western 
Nebraska and that of the presumably somewhat later beds 
of northwestern Nevada, which are referable to the lower , 
Pliocene, may be considered together. The rodents, which 
are not very fully represented, were quite modern in character 
and belonged mostly to extinct species of modern genera, 
such as hares, pocket-gophers, beavers, forerunners of the 
tGiant Beaver, marmots, sewellels, ete. A remnant of a more 
ancient world, especially characteristic of the Miocene, is 
found in the remarkable burrowers, the horned tmylagaulids 
which have been extinct since the lower Pliocene. Carnivora 
were abundant, and members of all the families which inhabit 
North America to-day have been obtained; wolves, t‘‘bear- 
dogs,”’ t‘‘hyena-dogs”’ and forms like the Dhole of India were 
common. The terms }‘‘bear-dogs” and f‘‘hyena-dogs”’ are 
not to be understood as implying any relationships of these 
animals to bears or hyenas, but merely a certain superficial 


SUCCESSIVE MAMMALIAN FAUNAS 223 


resemblance; these were very large members of the dog family 
(Canide), now extinct. Mustelines, large and small, are 
found, and possibly some bears had already made their way 
from the Old World, but this is still uncertain. fSabre-tooth 
tigers and true cats, some as large as lions and one species 
fairly gigantic, were likewise characteristic of the time. There 


Fic. 123. — tHorned Gopher (tEpigaulus hatcheri), lower Pliocene, Nebraska. 
Restored from a skeleton in the U.S. National Museum. 


was a great wealth of horses, though the modern genus Equus 
was not among them; all the genera are now extinct and all 
were three-toed. Several distinct phyla were represented, 
some progressive and advancing toward the modern forms, 
others conservative and stationary. Browsing horses with 
low-crowned teeth, grazing horses with prismatic, cement- 
covered teeth, heavier and lighter, larger and smaller, must 
have covered the plains and thronged the woods. Ancestral 
tapirs were present, though far less common. A family which 


224 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


seems to be utterly exotic to North America, that of the rhinoc- 
eroses, was present, and of these there were three or four series, 
mostly without horns, or with a very small horn on the tip 
of the snout. The extremely aberrant perissodactyls (tAncylo- 
poda), in which the hoofs were converted into great claws, 
perhaps persisted, but the evidence is not conclusive. 

The Artiodactyla were, for the most part, totally different 
from those of modern times, though several forms were an- 
cestral to some now living. Peccaries more primitive than 
the living genus were the only representatives of the swine- 
like suborder; ancestral camels and llamas were among the 
commonest of the hoofed animals and an extinct phylum, that 
of the {‘‘giraffe-camels” ({Alticamelus) continued over from 
the Miocene. The giraffe-camels are so called, not because 
of any actual relationships with the giraffes, but on account of 
certain likenesses in the proportions of the animals compared. 
{Alticamelus was a very large, camel-like creature, with remark- 
ably elongate neck and limbs and comparatively small head, 
which no doubt resembled the giraffes in browsing upon trees 
which were above the reach of the ordinary camels and llamas 
of the time. It was the terminal member of a series, or phylum, 
which branched off from the main stock in Oligocene times and 
pursued a course of development which was independent of 
the principal series, but curiously parallel with it. 

The deer of the lower Pliocene were little, graceful creatures 
({Blastomeryx) which had no antlers, but the males were armed 
with sabre-like upper canine tusks, so that they must have 
resembled the Musk-Deer of Tibet, but were smaller and more 
slender. The remarkable group of t‘‘deer-antelopes,” now 
extinct, was represented by {Merycodus, a dainty little creature, 
less than two feet high at the shoulder, which had the antlers 
and general appearance of a small deer, but the high-crowned 
grinding teeth which most antelopes have. True antelopes 
of two different lines were also present, though they are as yet 
known from little more than the bony horn-cores; of these, 


SUCCESSIVE MAMMALIAN FAUNAS 225 


one is the flat-horned and the other the twisted-horned or 
strepsicerine type, such as is illustrated by the Eland and Kudu 
of modern Africa. The latter may, however, be related to 
the peculiarly North American Prong-Buck (Antilocapra) 
and not to the strepsicerine antelopes of the Old World. The 
last survivors of an exclusively North American family, the 
toreodonts, which were wonderfully numerous and varied 
from the upper Eocene onward, are found here. 

The tmastodons (tGomphotherium) of this formation had 
well-developed tusks in the lower as well as in the upper jaw, 
and in one species the chin-region or symphysis of the lower 
jaw was greatly prolonged, an ancient feature. 

That the South American edentates had already reached 
the northern continent is sufficiently proved by remains of 
fground-sloths, which are, however, too incomplete to permit 
identification of the genus. {Glyptodonts have not yet been 
found, but this fact does not demonstrate that they had not 
accompanied the fground-sloths in their migration, for at no 
time did they range so far north as Nebraska or northwestern 
Nevada, and the only mammal-bearing formation of lower 
Pliocene date known in the south, the Alachua Clay of Florida, 
has yielded too scanty a list of fossils to make its negative 
evidence at all conclusive on this point. 

The mammals of the middle and especially of the lower 
Pliocene were much stranger and more primitive than might 
be inferred from the foregoing brief account. Except several 
of the Rodentia and perhaps one or two of the Carnivora, the 
genera are all extinct and such familiar terms as horses, rhinoc- 
eroses, camels, etc., can be employed only in a very compre- 
hensive sense, as equivalent to families. 

The Pliocene of South America is involved in some obscurity ; 
not that there is any question as to the formations, or their 
order of succession, but there is much doubt as to the limits 
of the epoch both above and below. The latest Pliocene 
fauna, that of the Tarija Valley in Bolivia, was essentially the 

Q 


226 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


same as that of the Pleistocene and contained a similarly large 
proportion of migrant elements from the north, but it was evi- 
dently older and many of the species were different. The two 
divisions of the Araucanian fauna, contained in the beds of 
Catamarca and Monte Hermoso respectively, are very much 
alike and need not be given separate consideration. In one 
respect these presumably upper Pliocene faunas formed a very 
strong contrast to the mammalian assemblage of the Pleistocene, 
and that is in the quite insignificant part taken-by the migrants 
from North America. Of the Carnivora there were but two 
representatives, one referable to the raccoon family and one 
to the dogs, while a hare and a small member of the Artio- 
dactyla, of indeterminate family, complete the list of northern 
forms, though this list will doubtless be extended by future 
discovery. The peccaries, deer, antelopes, tapirs, horses, 
tmastodons, cats, weasels, otters, squirrels, mice, etc. had not 
reached the southern continent, or were still so rare that 
remains of them have not been found. This rarity and relative 
insignificance of the northern forms gave a very different aspect 
to the fauna. 

On the other hand, the indigenous South American groups 
were very fully represented. Many kinds of opossums and 
a few large carnivorous types, much like the so-called Tas- 
manian Wolf (Thylacynus), were the remnants of a much 
larger assemblage of marsupials which inhabited South 
America in the Miocene. Of the Edentata, there were great 
abundance and variety, many large tglyptodonts and some 
gigantic armadillos, as well as numerous examples of normal 
size; the tground-sloths, though somewhat smaller than those 
of the Pleistocene, were mostly of gigantic size, and true or 
arboreal sloths (Tardigrada) have been reported. The very 
numerous rodents, with the exception of the intrusive hare, 
all belonged to typically South American families. Some of 
the rodents were gigantic and one ({Megamys), a member of 
the Chinchilla family, was equal to a rhinoceros in size and 


SUCCESSIVE MAMMALIAN FAUNAS 227 


the largest known representative of the order. Especially 
characteristic was the abundance of the cavy family (Caviide). 

The hoofed animals, with the single known exception of 
the immigrant artiodactyl, all belonged to the autochthonous 
orders, all of which are extinct at the present time. Fore- 
runners of the extraordinary genus }Macrauchenia, which was 
one of the most conspicuous elements of Pleistocene life, were 
quite common in the Pliocene and differed from the Pampean 
genus chiefly in their smaller size and less advanced specializa- 
tion. We find here also the last survivors of another family of 
the fLitopterna, the tproterotheres ({Proterotheriide), which 
imitated the horses in such a surprising manner that some 
authorities believe them to have been actually related to those 
perissodactyls. The Monte Hermoso genus (+E pitherium) had 
feet which were wonderfully, though but superficially, like those 
of the three-toed horses. The tToxodonta were numerous and 
most of them were large, ponderous animals; one genus (t7'ri- 
godon) had the interesting peculiarity of a single median horn 
on the forehead, much like that of a rhinoceros. Horned spe- 
cies were always rare among the indigenous groups of South 
American ungulates, and all that have been discovered so far 
belonged to the ftoxodonts. The remaining group, that of the 
+Typotheria, was also well represented, both by larger and by 
very small forms, some no larger than a rabbit (tPachyru- 
khos). 

The presumably lower Pliocene (perhaps upper Miocene) 
fauna of the Parand4 formation is as yet known only from very 
fragmentary material. Representatives of the dogs, raccoons 
and bears have been reported, but the identifications are doubt- 
ful; at all events, these would seem to have been the most 
ancient of the northern immigrants. A considerable number 
of marsupials, both opossums and large predaceous types, 
have been found. The rodents were very numerous, all 
belonging to South American families and some of them very 
large. The edentates were gigantic tground-sloths and tglyp- 


228 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


todonts, with numerous armadillos of ordinary size. The 
hoofed animals all belonged to the indigenous South American 
orders, the predominant place being taken by the {toxodonts, 


Fic. 124. — Head of Horned tToxodont (tTrigodon gaudryi). Pliocene of Monte Her- 
moso. Restored from a skull in the Ameghino collection. 


some of which were large. There were many ftypotheres, 
both of the larger and smaller kinds. The jLitopterna were 
represented both by the horse-like tproterotheres and the long- 
necked tmacrauchenids, the latter smaller and less specialized 
than those of the Pampean. 


SUCCESSIVE MAMMALIAN FAUNAS 229 


2. Miocene 


North America. — Upper Miocene beds cover extensive 
areas of the Great Plains region and are scattered from Mon- 
tana far into Mexico. The rich fauna is an outgrowth and 
development of that of the middle Miocene, with but few im- 
migrant additions and, on the other hand, passes so gradually 
into that of the lower Pliocene, that any line of separation 
between them is very difficult to draw. The rodents, numerous 
as they are among the fossils, are almost certainly very incom- 
pletely represented in the collections; the families are almost 
all still in existence, but nearly every genus is extinct, and thus 
the vernacular names used to designate them must be under- 
stood in a broad sense. Hares, mice, pocket-gophers, squirrels, 
marmots, beavers and the extraordinary tmylagaulids were 
all abundant. 

In even more strongly marked sense must the broad mean- 
ing for the vernacular names of the other mammals be em- 
phasized, for we have to deal almost exclusively with extinct 
genera, which differed much from their modern descendants. 
Many of the Carnivora have been obtained; there were 
numerous dogs, some rivalling the largest of existing bears in 
size, true felines and ftsabre-tooth tigers, which were smaller 
and lighter animals than the great beasts of the Pleistocene ; 
weasels, martens, otters and raccoons, but no bears. The bears, 
a family of Old World origin, are not certainly known in America 
before the Pleistocene, but had probably reached this continent 
in the Pliocene. . 

As is so very generally true, the commonest and _ best- 
preserved of the fossils are those of the hoofed animals. The 
fmastodons were of the four-tusked kind ({Gomphotherium or 
+Trilophodon), the skull and teeth of which differed so markedly 
from those of the true elephants. The relatively small, low- 
crowned and simple grinding teeth were common to all the 
tmastodons, but the tusks were different from those of the 


230 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


larger members of the group. The upper tusks were compar- 
atively short and nearly straight and retained a band of enamel, 
while the lower tusks were still shorter, chisel-shaped and so 
worn as to prove that they were regularly used, no doubt in 
cropping leaves; the shortness of these lower tusks was com- 
pensated for by the great elongation of the lower jaw. The 


R- BRUCE NORJFALL_ 
2 O'R ~ 


Fig. 125.—tTeleoceras fossiger, a short-legged rhinoceros, with small nasal horn; 
lower Pliocene and upper Miocene of Nebraska. Restored from a skeleton in 
the American Museum of Natural History. 

head was proportionately broad and low and, for Proboscidea, 
these were small animals, not more than five or six feet high 
at the shoulder. The body, limbs and feet had already at- 
tained substantially their modern grade of structure, advance 
among the Proboscidea being chiefly restricted to the teeth 
and skull. 

Four families of Perissodactyla were represented in the 
upper Miocene. The rhinoceroses, which were very abun- 
dant, were present in considerable variety ; some were hornless, 
others had a single small horn on the end of the nose. Among 
these rhinoceroses there was much difference in bodily pro- 


SUCCESSIVE MAMMALIAN FAUNAS 231 


portions, some being extremely heavy, with very short legs 
and feet, and these were the commonest, while others had 
longer legs and less massive bodies. Tapirs, on the contrary, 
would seem to have been scantily represented; at least, they 
are rare among the fossils. The extraordinary, aberrant 
tchalicotheres, perissodactyls with claws instead of hoofs, 
still persisted, but are far better known from the lower Miocene, 
in connection with which they will be described. The domi- 
nant perissodactyl family was that of the horses, of which 
no less than five genera are already known. There were 
some with very low-crowned teeth, which must have fed 
principally by browsing upon leaves and such soft diet; but 
the grazing kinds, which had high-crowned, cement-covered 
and very complex grinding teeth, had come to the fore. Still 
retaining three toes in each foot, with the middle toe so en- 
larged as to bear nearly the entire weight, save in snow or 
soft ground, these eminently cursorial animals, which had 
the slender limbs of a deer, must have roamed the plains in 
great herds. 

Still commoner were the Artiodactyla. Many species 
of grazing camels, which were the predominant artiodactyl 
family in North America during upper Miocene times, were 
the ancestors both of the true camels of the Old World and the 
South Americanllamas. }Giraffe-camels havenot yet been found 
and no doubt they were much less abundant than in the middle 
Miocene, but that they had not completely disappeared is 
shown by their recurrence in the Pliocene. As compared with 
earlier ages, the toreodonts had begun a rapid decline and had 
lost notably both in numbers and variety, but one most curious 
beast ({Pronomotherium, Fig. 197, p. 375) marked the final step 
in the development of the short-faced, proboscis-bearing series, 
which may be traced back to its beginnings in the Oligocene. 
In this wonderful creature the skull was so short and deep as 
to suggest that of a gorilla or some other great ape. No other 
artiodactyls even approximate these later proboscis-bearing 


232 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


toreodonts in the altogether exceptional formof theskull. Graz- 
ing toreodonts ({Merychyus), of moderate and small size with 
high-crowned teeth, were evidently quite common on the upper 
Miocene plains. The thornless deer and f‘‘deer-antelopes” 


Fic. 126. —tProcamelus elrodi, a large camel from the upper Miocene. Restored from 
specimens in the Carnegie Museum. 


differed but little from those of the lower Pliocene. Peccaries 
were fairly abundant. 

The upper Miocene fauna was especially characterized by 
the large number of mammals, belonging to several different 
orders, which had acquired the high-crowned, persistently 
growing pattern of grinding teeth. Many of the horses, 
camels, ruminants and rodents displayed this structure, and, 


SUCCESSIVE MAMMALIAN FAUNAS 233 


as was first pointed out by Kowalevsky, the explanation is 
probably to be found in the spread of grassy plains at the ex- 
pense of the forests. On account of the silica which they 
contain, the grasses are very abrasive and rapidly wear the 
teeth down. In adaptation to this new source of abundant 
and nutritious food, many kinds of mammals developed a form 
of tooth which was fitted to compensate by growth for the 
loss through abrasion. 

The middle Miocene, small areas of whichoccur in Montana, 
eastern Oregon and northeastern Colorado, has received various 
local names, the typical one being the Deep River of Montana. 
Very probably, these scattered areas are not strictly contem- 
poraneous, but form a closely connected series. That a land- 
connection with the eastern hemisphere existed, is made clear 
by the appearance of several unmistakably Old World types 
of animals and the beginnings of migration from South America 
are perhaps also to be noted, though this cannot be positively 
stated. The evidence for the South American connection 
is the finding in the middle Miocene of Oregon of what are 
believed to be the earliest remains of tground-sloths yet dis- 
covered in North America, but the material is too scanty for 
altogether certain determination. . 

The smaller animals are not very well represented in the 
middle Miocene faunas, as conditions appear to have been 
unfavourable to their preservation; something is known of 
them, nevertheless. The very curious extinct family of rodents 
known as the tMylagaulide, the presence of which was noted 
in the upper Miocene and lower Pliocene, first appeared here. 
These tmylagaulids, which were distantly related to the modern 
Sewellel (Aplodontia rufa), were characterized by the great 
enlargement and complication of one of the grinding teeth 
in each jaw and the consequent reduction of the others. One 
genus of this family, asin the Pliocene, had the peculiarity, 
unique among rodents, of developing a large horn upon the nose, 
like a miniature rhinoceros. Among the Carnivora, we find a 


234 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


great variety of dogs, large and small, all belonging to extinct 
genera, as indeed is true of the other carnivores also. True 
felines have been found, but as yet, none of the fsabre-tooth 
series ; the abundance of the latter, however, in both preceding 
and succeeding formations, is sufficient proof that the discovery 
of them in the middle Miocene is merely a question of time. 
Mustelines were present, and especially noteworthy is the 
appearance of the first American otters, immigrants from the 
Old World. 

Of the hoofed animals, the most interesting are the Pro- 
boscidea, the most ancient of which that are definitely deter- 
minable in America occur in this horizon. The place of origin 
and ancestry of these animals were long exasperating puzzles. 
Appearing suddenly in the Miocene of Europe and North 
America, in which regions nothing was known that could, 
with any plausibility, be regarded as ancestral to them, they 
might as well have dropped from the moon, for all that could 
be told concerning their history. The exploration of the 
Eocene and Oligocene beds of Egypt has dispelled the mystery 
and shown that Africa was the original home of the group, 
whence they gradually spread to every continent except 
Australia. Little is known of these earliest American pro- 
boscideans, but they were doubtless small tmastodons of the 
four-tusked type. 

Among the Perissodactyla, the rhinoceroses were perhaps the 
most conspicuous; the native American stocks of this family 
appear to have mostly died out and to have been replaced by 
two or more phyla of immigrants from the Old World, some 
of which were hornless, others had a small horn on the tip of 
the nose and others again had a second and smaller horn on the 
forehead. Tapirs, though unquestionably present, are rare as 
fossils and not well known. Several distinct phyla of horses 
may be distinguished, which were like small ponies in size, 
but of more slender form; they were all three-toed, but there 
were marked differences among them with regard to the degree 


SUCCESSIVE MAMMALIAN FAUNAS 235 


to which the middle toe (the third of the original five) had been 
enlarged to carry the whole weight and the lateral toes (second 
and fourth) reduced to mere ‘‘dew-claws.’’ While browsing 
horses, with low-crowned teeth, still persisted in large numbers, 
we find also the extremely interesting beginnings of the highly 
complex, cement-covered and high-crowned teeth of the graz- 
ing kinds. The clawed {chalicotheres were present, though 
very little is known about them because of the fragmentary 
character of the remains. 

The Artiodactyla were much more varied and abundant, 
though they did not rival the great assemblage of these ani- 
mals found in the European Miocene. Of the peccaries little 
more can be said than that they were present in these faunas. 
The toreodonts were very numerous, both individually and 
generically ; two stages of the proboscis-bearing kind are found 
here together, the older, long-faced genus (+Promerycocherus) 
surviving from the Oligocene, while the newer Miocene type was 
short-faced and had a moderate proboscis (see Fig. 196, p. 373). 
Others had more the proportions of peccaries and still others 
were very small and presumably aquatic in habits. Camels 
abounded, both the grazing kinds which were ancestral to 
the modern forms of South America and Asia, and the great, 
browsing fgiraffe-camels. The thornless deer and the antlered 
tdeer-antelopes were much like those of the Upper Miocene, 
slender and graceful little creatures, and there were also con- 
siderably larger ruminants ({Dromomeryzx) with straight, simple 
and non-deciduous horns, which may be called antelopes. 

The line of division between the lower Miocene and the 
uppermost Oligocene is a very obscure and difficult one to 
draw. Personally, I prefer to begin the Miocene with the 
widespread formation of the Great Plains, which has been 
variously named Arikaree, Harrison, Rosebud, etc., but this 
is a moot point. Concerning the lower part of these beds 
Osborn says: ‘‘They may be either: (1) Upper Oligocene or 
(2) transitional from Oligocene to Miocene, or (3) of pure 


236 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


Fia, 127.— Gigantic tgiraffe-camel (tAlticamelus altus) from the middle Miocene 
of Colorado. Restored from specimens in the American Museum of Natural 
History. 


SUCCESSIVE MAMMALIAN FAUNAS 237 


Lower Miocene age.” The upper division is referred to the 
Miocene without question by any one, but for the purposes of 
this rapid sketch it will be best to treat the two faunas to- 
gether. This many-named formation, for which the term 
Arikaree is here employed, as having priority, is found over 
extensive areas of South Dakota, northern Nebraska and 


Big R-BRUCE HORsFA 
“es ’ ates nS a oe 


Fic. 128.— Most ancient American Antelope (tDromomeryx antilopina), middle 
Miocene. Restored from specimens in the Carnegie Museum and Princeton 
University. 

central Wyoming. The fauna was almost entirely a develop- 

ment from that of the North American Oligocene, with very 

little admixture of foreign elements, so that the land com- 
munication with the eastern hemisphere must have been 
difficult. In this, as in most of the Miocene formations, the 
smaller mammals are not fairly represented, and it is evident 
that much remains to be learned with regard to them; this is 
especially true of the upper division of this stage. 

The rodents, which were fairly numerous, were directly 
continuous with those of the upper Oligocene and included 
forms which were more or less distantly connected with the 


' 238 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


modern hares, squirrels, beavers, sewellels, pocket-gophers and 
kangaroo-rats. A few Insectivora of doubtful reference have 
been found. Among the Carnivora there was also consider- 
able variety: dogs, large and small, were abundant, but all 
of them were decidedly primitive from the modern standpoint ; 
the cats were represented both by the true felines, which 
were probably immigrants, and by the fsabre-tooth series. 
There were several large and powerful mustelines, or members 
of the weasel family, which were likewise immigrants, one 
of which resembles in many ways the modern Wolverene 
(Gulo). Very interesting is the beginning of the raccoon 
family (Procyonide) or, at least, what is believed to be such, 
which arose from a branch of the dogs; this most ancient of 
the raccoons was ¢Phlaocyon, a small and slender animal. 
The earliest traces of the Proboscidea in America have 
been reported from this formation, but the fragmentary speci- 
mens are inconclusive. The Perissodactyla are among the 
commonest fossils. The rhinoceroses belonged to native stocks, 
including both the horned and hornless forms. The horned 
genus ({Diceratherium) differed from all other rhinoceroses 
in having a transverse pair of horns on the nose, and the species 
of the lower Miocene were quite small and light; the hornless 
genus (tCenopus) was a larger and heavier animal. Tapirs 
are rare as fossils and consequently not well known. While 
there were several kinds of horses, they all agreed in having 
short-crowned and relatively simple grinding teeth and three- 
toed feet ; they were smaller and of lighter, more slender build 
than those of the middle Miocene. The wonderful aberrant 
perissodactyls with clawed feet, the tchalicotheres (suborder 
+Ancylopoda), appear to have been more abundant in the 
Arikaree than at any other time in North America, though 
their history in this continent extends from the middle Eocene 
to the lower Pliocene. +Moropus, the lower Miocene genus, 
was as grotesque a creature as could well be imagined and, in 
advance of experience, no one ever did imagine such a beast. 


SUCCESSIVE MAMMALIAN FAUNAS 239 


With rather small and somewhat horse-like head, long neck, 
long fore limbs and shorter hind limbs, these extraordinary 
animals united short, three-toed feet, which were armed with 
enormous claws. The long persistence (to the Pleistocene of 
Asia) and wide geographical range of the tchalicotheres are 
sufficient evidence that their very unusual structure must 


Fic. 129.—The small, tpaired-horned rhinoceros (tDiceratherium cooki) of the lower 
Miocene. Restored from a skeleton in the Carnegie Museum, Pittsburgh. 


have been advantageous to them, but the problem of their 
habits and mode of life is still unsolved. From the character 
of the teeth, the long neck and fore limbs, it may, however, 
be inferred that they fed chiefly upon the leaves of trees. 
Even more numerous and varied were the Artiodactyla. 
Peccaries of a primitive sort were common, and we find the 
last of the series of {‘‘giant pigs,’ which had been a very con- 
spicuous group throughout the Oligocene. The lower Miocene 
genus, tDinohyus, was a monstrous beast, six feet or more in 
height, with formidable canine tusks and a very long head 
made grotesque by bony excrescences upon the skull and jaws. 
For a pig, the legs were very long and the feet slender, having 


LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


240 


aIBouIeD oY} UI UOJIJEYsS & WIZ poI0j}seYy 


“qaings}}ig ‘umesny 
‘QUDIOTT JOMOT OY} JO (snzDJa sndosopy4) s1ayZooYeYyoL YW — ‘Ol ‘PIA 


ee 


= cg 3 Ge 
nr va sus 230 


SUCCESSIVE MAMMALIAN FAUNAS 241 


but two toes. The foreodonts were present in great num- 
bers, both small and large forms; except for bodily stature 
and modifications of the head, they all looked very much alike ; 
{Merycocherus, with its incipient proboscis, here made its 
first appearance. The last representatives of a family (fHyper- 
tragulide) of small and graceful artiodactyls are found in this 
formation. One of these ({Syndyoceras, see Fig. 215, p. 403), 
an animal considerably larger than the existing Musk-Deer, was 
in its way even more bizarre-looking than the fchalicotheres ; 
with an antelope-like head, it had four horns, one pair over 
the eyes, curving inward, and a shorter pair, with outward 
curvature, on the muzzle. Another genus (tHypertragulus) 
was very much smaller and very slender. 

The camels were beginning to diversify and give rise to 
several phyla. One of the genera ({Protomeryx), which did 
not much exceed a sheep in size, probably represented the main 
stock, which led to the camels and llamas of to-day. A second 
({Stenomylus) was a still smaller animal, with remarkably long 
and slender legs, and might be called a ‘“‘gazelle-camel,”’ 
while a third (tOxydactylus, see Fig. 209, p.392), which was larger 
and apparently the beginning of the tgiraffe-camels, was note- 
worthy for its long neck. All of these lower Miocene camels 
had deer-like hoofs, the characteristic pad or cushion which gives 
such an exceptional appearance to the feet of modern llamas 
and camels not being fully developed till a later period. A very 
important new element in the North American fauna was the 
appearance of the first deer ({Blastomeryx), which came in the 
latter part of the Arikaree stage and were the forerunners of 
a renewed immigration from the Old World, which had been 
broken off during the upper Oligocene. This, however, is a 
disputed point; Professor Osborn and Dr. Matthew believe 
that these animals were truly indigenous and derived from a 
long line of American ancestry. The same genus continued 
through the middle Miocene, as we have already seen, and 
therefore no further description of it is called for. 


R 


242 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


The limits of the South American Miocene are very doubtful. 
The Parand formation, here regarded as lower Pliocene, may 
prove to be more properly referable to the upper Miocene. 
No other upper Miocene is known. 

To the earlier, probably middle, Miocene may be referred 
the wonderful Santa Cruz fauna of Patagonia. It is extremely 


f ” er ae a 
2A TRBROCE HONSFALL. 1 
0 haa 


Fig. 131.— The tgazelle-camel (tStenomylus hitchcockt) of the lower Miocene. 
Restored from skeletons in the Carnegie Museum, Pittsburgh. 


difficult to convey to the reader any adequate conception of 
this great assemblage of mammals, because most of them 
belonged to orders which have altogether vanished from the 
earth and are only remotely like the forms with which we are 
familiar in the northern hemisphere. To one who knows only 
these northern animals, it seems like entering another world 
when he begins the study of the Santa Cruz fossils. If any 
North American mammals had then entered South America, 
which is not probable, they had not extended their range as 
far as Patagonia. Marvellously rich and varied as the Santa 


243 


SUCCESSIVE MAMMALIAN FAUNAS 


snoadsepeld ‘snowwobnjnd snufonphiyjorg| 6 


‘YO[S-punois} ‘sdao1wbuo) sdoypdoy| “9 


“quUOpOL ‘nyDADIxa DIpLMo0T | *E 


OATS 04 ‘a[ZuvJOeI OY} UTYIIM ‘Bop JeqUIod uJepou v ‘sTeMUTEUA ZNID BUY 94} Jo SezIs aATFeIBdUIOD oY} oyeI}SN]II 0} WBIdBIC — ‘ZET “DLT 


wun 


‘aray}0d 44). 


“‘quopojydAya| ‘sypusnp snioydojdoyowyndolg | *y 


“quopoxo}| ‘snyooiuquér UoposaAT] “TT ‘W49zdozI]) ‘wn10}j01108 uopososy,7 4 “OT 


*yeidneieur 


‘aleyjodeiyse| ‘ B wunuayodnysy} "g ‘udaydozI]] ‘wnynosnurm wniiayo0yT} “2 


‘apoysny wmuioyodhjoig, ‘% ‘yetdnsreu snosoepaid ‘snzn.yjsn) syoisoppjp| “T 


‘O][ipeuire ‘wnjynjassay wnriayjobag, “F 


‘9peos O44 


244 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


Cruz fauna was, it did not contain everything that we should 
expect to find in it; several recent families of undoubtedly 
indigenous South American origin have left no ancestors in 
the early Miocene formations. For this, there are several 
obvious reasons. In part, these gaps in the history are merely 
due to the accidents of collecting and some of them will almost 
certainly be filled by future exploration. Other absentees will 
probably never be found, because the Santa Cruz beds are 
known only in the very far south, and the Miocene climate of 
the region, though much milder and more genial than the 
present one, must have been unsuitable for many tropical 
animals. Again, the Patagonia of that time appears to have 
been a country of open plains, with few trees, and hence ar- 
boreal forms were rare. 

While great numbers of large, flightless birds, some of them 
of enormous size, were entombed in the volcanic ash and 
dust which were spread over such wide areas and to such 
great depths, the extreme scarcity of reptiles is surprising; a 
few remains of lizards have been found, but no snakes, croc- 
odiles, or tortoises, and we have no information as to the 
plant-life of the region at that time. The mammals were al- 
most all of small or moderate size ; only one or two species were 
really large. 

One very striking and characteristic feature of the Santa 
Cruz fauna is the great abundance of marsupials which it 
contained and which resembled more or less those of modern 
Australia. There were no true Carnivora and their places 
were taken by a variety of carnivorous marsupials, some of 
which (e.g. tProthylacynus) were as large as wolves and were 
closely similar to the so-called Tasmanian Wolf (Thylacynus). 
Another genus ({Borhyena) had a short, bullet head, not un- 
like a small Puma in appearance and, besides, there were many 
smaller beasts of prey, in size like badgers and minks. Opos- 
sums were common and there were many very small herbivorous 
marsupials, which resembled, though perhaps but superficially, 


SUCCESSIVE MAMMALIAN FAUNAS 245 


the Australian phalangers. At the present day South America 
contains no Insectivora, but in the Santa Cruz there was one 
family (fNecrolestide) of this order which bore considerable 
resemblance to the “‘golden moles” of South Africa. An 
extraordinary variety of rodents inhabited Patagonia in Santa 
Cruz times, all of them belonging to the Hystricomorpha, or 
porcupine suborder, and all referable to existing South Ameri- 
can families. There were none of the northern forms of ro- 
dents, neither rats, mice, squirrels, marmots, hares, nor 
rabbits, but a very numerous assembly of tree-porcupines, 
cavies, chinchillas, coypus and the like. The genera, though 
closely allied to existing ones, are all extinct, and the animals 
were very generally smaller than their modern descendants. 
A few small monkeys of unmistakably Neotropical type have 
been found, but like other arboreal and forest-living animals, 
they are very rare among the fossils. 

The Edentata were more abundant and diversified than at 
any other time in South American history of which the record 
is preserved. Two of the modern subdivisions of this order 
have not been certainly identified in the Santa Cruz collections, 
the arboreal sloths and the anteaters, and though they may be 
found there at any time, it will only be as stragglers from the 
warmer forested regions to the north, where these forms had 
doubtless long been present. Unfortunately, however, nothing 
is directly known concerning the life of those regions in Miocene 
times. On the other hand, three groups of edentates, two of 
them now extinct, were very copiously represented in the Santa 
Cruz formation, the armadillos, tglyptodonts and tground 
sloths. Of the many armadillos, some quite large, others 
very small, only a few can be regarded as directly ancestral 
to those now in existence; the truly ancestral forms were 
probably then living in the forests of Brazil and northern 
Argentina, in the same areas as the ancestral tree-sloths and 
anteaters. In comparison with the giants of the Pliocene 
and Pleistocene, the Santa Cruz tglyptodonts were all small, 


246 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


the carapace rarely exceeding two feet in length, and, what 
it is particularly interesting to note, they departed much less 
widely from the armadillo type than did their gigantic suc- 
cessors. The tground-sloths were present in actually bewild- 
ering variety and they also were very small as compared with 
the huge animals of the Pleistocene, none of them exceeding 
the Black Bear in height or length, though proportionally 
much more massive, and many were no bigger than foxes. 
They had small heads, long bodies, heavy tails and short, 
thick legs; their teeth show that they were plant-feeders, but 
their feet were armed with long, sharp and formidable claws. 
Among this great host of Santa Cruz tground-sloths may 
readily be noted the probable ancestors of the gigantic creatures 
which were such characteristic elements of the Pliocene and 
Pleistocene faunas. 

There was an extraordinarily rich and varied assemblage of 
hoofed animals, all utterly different from those of the northern 
hemisphere and belonging to groups which have never been 
found outside of South and Central America. Of these groups 
there were five, which by different writers are variously re- 
garded as orders or suborders, a matter of very secondary im- 
portance. Individually, the commonest of the hoofed mam- 
mals were the tToxodonta, which ranged in size from a sheep 
to a tapir, heavily built and clumsy creatures, with absurdly 
small, three-toed feet ; in some of the species there was a smal} 
median horn on the forehead. As with the tglyptodonts and 
tground-sloths, the contrast in size between the Santa Cruz 
ancestors andthe Pleistocene descendants was very striking. 
A very numerous and varied group was that of the {Typotheria, 
all small animals, some no larger than rabbits, others the size 
of small foxes. It requires a decided effort to think of these 
ttypotheres as being really hoofed animals at all, as their 
whole appearance must have been much more like that of 
rodents, yet their structure clearly demonstrates their near 
relationship to the ttoxodonts. Still a third group of the same 


SUCCESSIVE MAMMALIAN FAUNAS 247 


series, the tEntelonychia, is of great interest, for, as in the 
tchalicotheres of the northern hemisphere, the hoofs had been 
transformed into claws and their five-toed feet had a truly 
grotesque appearance, not diminished by the long and power- 
ful limbs and relatively small head. 

This is the third example of that paradoxical creature, a 
‘“‘hoofed animal” with claws instead of hoofs, and in each of 
the three instances, there is every reason to believe, the trans- 
formation proceeded independently. Among the _perisso- 
dactyls the jchalicotheres (p. 238) underwent this change; 
in North America the tAgriocheride, a family of artiodactyls, 
had a very similar history, while in South America the tEntel- 
onychia arose from the same stock as the ftoxodonts, with 
which they were nearly allied. They were among the largest 
animals of Santa Cruz times and ranged in size from an ox 
to a rhinoceros. 

There was a fourth group, the tAstrapotheria, concerning 
which our knowledge is tantalizingly incomplete, some species 
of which were the largest of known Santa Cruz mammals, 
while others were much smaller. They had short, domed heads, 
with a considerable proboscis, and were armed with formidable 
tusks, which were the enlarged canine teeth, the only known 
instance of large canine tusks among the indigenous South 
American hoofed animals. The limbs were long and not very 
massive, the feet short, five-toed and somewhat elephantine 
in appearance. These bizarre animals would seem to have 
held a rather isolated position among the South American 
ungulates, and though they may be traced back to the most 
ancient mammal-bearing beds of that continent, their relation- 
ships are still obscure; much more complete material must be 
obtained before this problem can be definitely solved. Both 
the ftAstrapotheria and the +Entelonychia died out shortly 
after the end of the Santa Cruz. 

From many points of view the most interesting members of 
the Santa Cruz fauna were the {Litopterna, an order which also 


248 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


went back to the earliest South American Tertiary. In the 
Miocene and Pliocene the order was represented by two very 
distinct families, the {Macrauchenide and {Proterotheriide, 
which were superficially very unlike. In the Santa Cruz beds 
is found a genus ({7'heosodon) which was apparently the di- 
rect ancestor of the Pampean tMacrauchenia. The Miocene 
genus was a much smaller animal and had hardly more than 
an incipient proboscis, but otherwise was very like its Pam- 
pean successor; it was somewhat larger and heavier than a 
Llama and probably bore some resemblance to that animal in 
appearance. The long, narrow head, with its prehensile 
upper lip, must have had an almost reptilian likeness from the 
numerous uniform and sharp-pointed teeth with which the 
front of the jaws was supplied ; the neck was elongate, the body 
short and rather slender and the legs long, ending in three 
nearly equal toes. 

The fproterotheres, on the other hand, were almost the 
only Santa Cruz ungulates which had nothing ovtré or grotesque 
about them to the eye of one habituated to the faunas of the 
northern hemisphere. They were small, graceful animals, 
very like the Miocene horses of the north in their proportions, 
though having much shorter necks and shorter, heavier heads. 
In some genera of this family (e.g. |Diadiaphorus, tProtero- 
therium) the feet were three-toed and most surprisingly horse- 
like in shape, but one genus (tThoatherium) was absolutely 
single-toed, more completely monodactyl than any horse. 
The horse-likenesses ran all through the skeleton and are so 
numerous and so striking that several writers have not hesitated 
to incorporate the {Litopterna with the Perissodactyla, but 
this I believe to be an.error. If the tproterotheres were not 
perissodactyls, as I am convinced they were not, they afford 
one of the most remarkable examples of convergent evolution 
among mammals yet made known. 


SUCCESSIVE MAMMALIAN FAUNAS 249 


3. Oligocene 


North America.— The John Day formation of eastern Oregon 
represents the upper Oligocene and has yielded a very extensive 
series of mammals, though with some obvious gaps that remain 
to be filled by future work. The land-connection with the 
Old World which had existed in the lower Oligocene and was 
restored in the lower, or at latest in the middle, Miocene, was 
interrupted in John Day times, and so the mammals assumed 
a purely indigenous character. 

No opossums or other marsupials have been found, and 
nothing is known of the Insectivora. Of the Carnivora, there 
were but three families, and one of these, the mustelines, was 
represented but scantily by a few small species. Cats of the 
tsabre-tooth subfamily were common and one species was 
quite large, almost equalling the Jaguar in length ; but most of 
the species were small, much smaller than the Pleistocene 
members of the group. True cats are not definitely known 
to have been present, but there were two genera ({Nimravus 
and tArchelurus) which have been called the ‘‘false tsabre- 
tooths,” which may prove to be referable to that series. The 
dogs, on the other hand, were remarkably numerous and 
diversified, more so than ever before or since; none of them 
was very large, the largest but little exceeding the Timber 
Wolf in size, and some were extremely small; but the number 
of distinct genera and species and the differences among them 
are quite remarkable. Both long and short-faced forms 
and early stages of the {‘‘bear-dogs,”’ and }‘‘hyena-dogs,”’ 
and ancestral forms of the wolves and dholes may be distin- 
guished, a truly wonderful assemblage. The rodents also 
were numerous and varied, including ancient and extinct 
genera of the beavers, squirrels, mice, pocket-gophers and 
hares and the earliest distinguishable ancestors of the sewellels 
(Aplodontiide). 

The remainder of the known John Day fauna was composed 


250 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


of artiodactyls and perissodactyls. The latter had suffered 
serious losses as compared with the preceding or White River 
stage. Up to and through White River times the perisso- 
dactyls had held their own in actual diversity, though the 
rise of the artiodactyls had put an end to the dominant position 
which they had maintained in the Eocene. With the John 
Day the actual decline may be said to have begun. The 
rhinoceroses were represented chiefly by the tdiceratheres, 
with a transverse pair of horns, some species of which were much 
larger than those of the lower Miocene. Hornless rhinoceroses 
have not yet been certainly found, though there is every rea- 
son to believe that they then existed, as they unquestionably 
did both before and after. Tapirs occurred but rarely and 
the horses were individually abundant, though in no great 
diversity ; they were smaller and lighter than the horses of 
the lower Miocene. Enough has been found to demonstrate 
the presence of the clawed tchalicotheres, but not to show how 
they differed from their immediate successors. 

In the number of individuals, species, genera and families, 
the artiodactyls of the John Day much exceeded the perisso- 
dactyls. The peccaries were numerous, but smaller and more 
primitive than those of the succeeding age, as were also the 
fgiant pigs, or tentelodonts, but the latter were very large. 
The peculiarly North American family of the toreodonts was 
very numerously represented, and one genus ({Promeryco- 
cherus), comprising animals not unlike the Wild Boar in size 
and shape, was the probable beginning of the series of proboscis- 
bearing foreodonts, which led to such grotesque forms in the 
middle and upper Miocene. A family closely allied to the 
toreodonts, and by many writers included in the latter, is the 
very remarkable group of the tAgriochceride, which was dis- 
tinguished by the long, stout and cat-like tail and by the 
possession of claws instead of hoofs. The family is not known 
to have existed later than the John Day and no trace of it 
has been found in the succeeding formations. The camels 


SUCCESSIVE MAMMALIAN FAUNAS 251 


seem to be all comprised in a single genus ({Protomeryx) which 
was the same as that found in the lower Miocene. A very 
small and dainty little creature (+Hypertragulus) belonged to 
another family, the relationships of which are not clear. 

To the middle and lower Oligocene is referred the great 
White River formation of South Dakota, Nebraska, Wyoming, 
etc., which is divisible into three clearly marked substages. 
The White River contains the best-known fauna of all of the 
North American Tertiaries, for collecting in these beds has 
been carried on for more than sixty years, and a greater number 
of complete and nearly complete skeletons has been secured 
than from any of the other formations. It is plainly evident 
that a land-connection existed with the Old World, which was 
interrupted in the John Day, as is shown by the intermigration 
of characteristic forms ; but some barrier, presumably climatic, 
prevented any complete interchange of mammals, and very 
many genera and even families remained confined to one con- 
tinent or the other. 

The aspect of the White River fauna changes in accordance 
with the direction from which it is approached. If one comes 
to the study of it from the Eocene, it displays a very modern 
aspect, given by the almost complete disappearance of the 
archaic groups of mammals and by the great multiplication 
of genera and species belonging to the progressive orders. 
These genera, it is true, are all extinct, but many of them stood 
in an ancestral relationship to modern forms. On the other 
hand, if approached from the Miocene side, the White River 
mammals seem to be very ancient and primitive and very 
different from anything that now lives. We speak of horses 
and rhinoceroses, dogs and cats, in this fauna, but those terms 
can be employed only in a very wide and elastic sense to desig- 
nate animals more or less distantly allied to those of the present 
day. 

Several species of opossums, some of them very small, were 
the only marsupials in North America then, as they are now. 


Fie. 1383.—1. tArcheotherium. 2. Ancestral camel (tPoébrotherium). 3. tMerycoido- 
don. 4. tAgriocherus. 5. Ancestral horse (tMesohippus). 6. tHoplophoneus. 
7. tBothriodon. 8. tHyenodon. 9. tCursorial rhinoceros (tHyracodon). 10. tPro- 
toceras. 11. Hornless rhinoceros (tCenopus). 


(252) 


SUCCESSIVE MAMMALIAN FAUNAS 253 


There was quite a variety of Insectivora; some were survivals 
of a family that was abundant in the Eocene, others, like the 
hedgehogs, moles and shrews, were probably immigrants. 
Here we find the last of a group (order or suborder) of ancient 
and primitive flesh-eaters, the tCreodonta, that had played a 
great réle in the Eocene and Paleocene of North America and 


WY 


Fic. 134. — White River ttitanothere (tT%tanotherium robustum) reduced to the same 
scale as Fig. 133. 


Europe. In White River times but a single family ({Hyzno- 
dontide), with two genera, remained of the Eocene host. One 
_ of these genera (tHemipsalodon), a very large beast of prey, 
which was almost identical with the Old World genus {Pterodon, 
was confined to the lower substage of the White River beds in 
the Northwest Territory of Canada; the other, tHyenodon, 
which was also an Old World form, was represented abundantly 
in the United States by many species. In size, these species 
ranged from a small fox to a large wolf, but they all had dis- 
proportionately large heads, and small, weak feet, with blunt 
claws, so that they must have been very curious-looking 
creatures and were probably carrion-feeders rather than active 
catchers of prey. The White River members of the family 


254 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


were migrants from the eastern hemisphere, for, though small’ 
and primitive representatives of it occurred in the North 
American Eocene, as well as in the corresponding formations 
of Europe, the family appears to have died out in America 
and to have been renewed by the Oligocene migration. 

Coincident with this decline of the tereodonts and, no doubt, 
causally connected with it, was the rise of the true Carnivora, 
which for the first time were numerous and were divisible into 
three distinct families. Small and primitive representatives 
of the wolves ({Daphenus) and possibly also of the foxes 
(tCynodictis) were quite common, and there were a few species 
of the musteline family, evidently immigrants and the most 
ancient yet found in America. There were several species of 
the tsabre-tooth cats (tDinictis and tHoplophoneus) all of 
which, except in the uppermost substage, were quite small, 
few of them exceeding the Canada Lynx in size. A much 
larger animal ({Husmilus, also European) appeared in the 
latter part of the stage. None of the true cats, or feline sub- 
family, has been obtained. Nothing is yet known of the time 
and place of origin of the {sabre-tooth series, for they ap- 
peared at approximately the same date in Europe and America, 
and in neither continent have any possible ancestors been found 
in preceding formations. The problem is like that of the 
Proboscidea (see p. 2384), but Egypt has given no help in the 
case of the tsabre-tooths, and, by a process of elimination, 
we reach the conclusion that these strange creatures probably 
arose somewhere in Asia and sent out migrants eastward and 
westward. 

The Rodentia were fairly abundant and present a strange 
mixture of ancient and comparatively modern types. One 
very common genus ({Ischyromys), which was the last rem- 
nant of a family almost limited to the North American 
Eocene, was associated with the earliest American mice, 
arboreal and ground squirrels, beavers and rabbits; some, if 
not all, of these were immigrants. 


SUCCESSIVE MAMMALIAN FAUNAS 255 


The hoofed mammals were present in fairly bewildering 
variety, but were restricted to the two orders of the Perisso- 
dactyla and Artiodactyla. The Perissodactyla, while they 
no longer had the relatively dominant position which they 
held in the middle Eocene (see p. 270), had suffered no actual 
loss; and no less than seven families of them, or six by another 
scheme of classification, had members in the North America 
of White River times, a very notable difference from the 
present order of things, when there are but three families in 
the entire world, none of which enters North America. The 
Eocene family of the {titanotheres became extinct at the end 
of the lower substage of the White River, but in that substage 
there was a marvellous abundance of these huge beasts, some 
of which were of almost elephantine stature and bulk. The 
pair of great bony, horn-like protuberances on the nose varied 
much in size and form in the different species, short to very 
long, triangular, cylindrical, flattened and shovel-shaped, 
and gave these ungainly creatures somewhat the appearance 
of strange and very large rhinoceroses. The jftitanotheres 
were a typically North American family, but sent migrants 
to the Old World, at least two species reaching southeastern 
Europe. Rhinoceroses too were extremely numerous and 
diversified throughout the stage and are very plainly divisible 
into three strongly contrasted series, which are sometimes 
regarded as three subdivisions of the same family and some- 
times put into two separate families. One of these series, the 
thyracodonts (tHyracodon), was composed of small, long- 
necked and long-legged, slender and lightly built, cursorial 
animals, but with short, heavy heads, which gave them a 
somewhat clumsy look; having neither horns nor tusks, they 
were entirely defenceless and depended for their safety upon 
speed alone. The second series, or tamynodonts ({Met- 
amynodon), formed the very antithesis of the first, — large, 
heavy, short-necked, and short-legged and probably amphibi- 
ous in manner of life, they were armed with formidable 


256 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


tusks; and their skulls were so curiously modified as to bear a 
distinct resemblance to the skull of a huge carnivore. The 
tamynodonts migrated to the Old World and occur in the 
Oligocene of France, but the thyracodonts would seem never 
to have left North America. The third series, that of the true 
rhinoceroses, comprised several genera at different levels in 


Fic. 135. —tHornless rhinoceros (tCenopus tridactylus) of the White River stage. 
Restored from a skeleton in the American Museum. 


the White River beds (tTrigonias, tCenopus, etc.) ; they were 
of uncertain origin and it has not yet been determined whether 
they were immigrants or of native stock. Many species have 
been found, varying much in size, up to that of a modern tapir, 
and not unlike one in proportions, for they were of lighter build 
and had relatively longer legs than any existing rhinoceros. 
The species of the lower and middle substages were all horn- 
less, but in the uppermost substage we find skulls with a pair of 
nasal horns in an incipient stage of development. This was the 
beginning of the tpaired-horned rhinoceroses ({Diceratherium) 
which so flourished in the John Day and the lower Miocene. 


SUCCESSIVE MAMMALIAN FAUNAS 257 


Of the horses there was no great variety and all the species 
so far discovered are included in a single genus (+Mesohippus), 
though there was a decided increment in the size of the suc- 
cessive species from the earlier to the later portion of the stage. 
Looked at superficially, it seems absurd to call these little 
creatures ‘‘horses’’ at all and the term can be justified only as 
implying that they were ancestral members of the family. 
The largest of the White River species hardly exceeded a sheep 
in size and all of them had comparatively short necks, long 
and slender legs and three-toed feet. The low-crowned grind- 
ing teeth show that they were browsers, not grazers. . The 
abundant Eocene family of the tLophiodontide made its last 
appearance in the White River, where it was scantily repre- 
sented by slender, long-legged animals ({Colodon), with feet 
singularly like those of the contemporary horses, except that 
there were four toes in the front foot. Tapirs ({Protapirus) 
were very much less common than rhinoceroses or horges and 
were hardly half as large as the existing species of the family 
and of relatively far more slender form; the development 
of the proboscis had already begun. Lastly, the presence of 
the clawed fchalicotheres has been reported from the lower 
Oligocene of, Canada, but the material is too fragmentary for 
generic reference. 

Though the number of artiodactyl families yet identified 
among the White River fossils is no larger than that of the 
perissodactyl families, the artiodactyls greatly preponderated 
in individual abundance. The peccaries, which were fairly 
common, resembled those of the John Day, but were consider- 
ably smaller. Of the camels, there were two series, one of 
which ({tHotylopus), lately described by Dr. Matthew, is of yet 
unknown significance, while the other (tPoébrotherium) was 
apparently the ancestor common to all the subsequent phyla 
of camels and Ilamas. This extremely interesting genus had 
species which ranged in size from a gazelle to a sheep, had two 
toes in each foot, a moderately elongate neck and teeth which 

Ss 


258 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


were beginning to assume the high-crowned character. From 
this it may be inferred that those animals were, partly at least, 
of grazing habit, which was rare among White River ungulates, 
most of which fed upon leaves and soft and succulent plants. 
An extinct family, the tHypertragulide, were a greatly diver- 
sified group of dainty little creatures, one of which (tHypisodus) 
was no larger than a rabbit and had high-crowned teeth. 
The other genera ({Leptomeryx, tHypertragulus) must have 
resembled in form and proportions the tiny little chevrotains 
or “‘mouse-deer” of the East Indian islands. Late in the 
age arose a larger form of this family, nearly equalling the 
Musk-Deer in size, the extraordinary genus {Protoceras, which 
was, especially the males, a grotesque object. The males had 
a pair of upper canine tusks and two pairs of prominent long 
protuberances on the skull. This, or some similar form, must 
have been the ancestor of the still more bizarre {Syndyoceras 
of the lower Miocene. 

The foreodonts were by far the commonest of White 
River mammals, and evidently they roamed the woods and 
plains in great herds. There were several species, larger and 
smaller, of the abundant genus ({Merycoidodon) but the largest 
did not surpass a modern peccary in size and was somewhat 
like that animal in appearance, but had a shorter head and 
much longer tail. In the upper substage appeared a very 
peculiar genus of this family (}Leptauchenia), animals with 
short, deep, almost monkey-like heads, and presumably 
aquatic in habits. The tagriocherids were very much less 
common; they may be described roughly as toreodonts with 
very long, cat-like tails and clawed feet. 

All of the foregoing artiodactyl families were exclusively 
North American in Oligocene distribution; even the camels 
did not reach Asia till the Pliocene, and the other families 
never invaded the Old World at all. There were, however, 
two additional families, which also occurred in the eastern 
hemisphere, whence one of them, and possibly the other, was 


SUCCESSIVE MAMMALIAN FAUNAS 259 


derived. The unquestionably Old World family, that of the 
tanthracotheres, was represented in the White River by two 
genera ({Bothriodon and tAnthracotherium), which were short- 
legged, long-snouted, swine-like animals, which have no near 
relations in the modern world. The other family, the tgiant 


Aropeny Bruce Honsrar__ 


oF 


Fie. 136. — tMerycoidodon culbertsoni, the most abundant of White River toreodonts. 
Restored from a skeleton in the American Museum of Natural History. 
pigs, which we have already met with in the lower Miocene 
and upper Oligocene, is of doubtful origin, and nothing has yet 
been found in the preceding formations of either North America 
or Europe which can be regarded as ancestral to them. The 
White River genus (tArchewotherium) was very like the John 
Day and Arikaree genera, but most of the species were much 
smaller and some were not so large as a domestic pig. In the 
uppermost beds, however, are found huge species, which 
rivalled those of the subsequent formations. That these 
strange animals were rooters and diggers and therefore pig-like 
in habits is indicated by the manner in which the teeth are worn. 


IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


LAND MAMMALS 


260 


‘AYISIOATULE) WOJOUTIG JO UMeSnNUT 
ay} Ul UOJIJOYS B UIOLJ PoLOJSAY ‘aBVYS IOAN 9FTY AA JOMOT OY} UTOI; (SuaNUL WnIdayjowYoLY 4) Bid yuery| — “pel “Ong 


SUCCESSIVE MAMMALIAN FAUNAS 261 


South America. — The older continental Tertiary forma- 
tions of South America cannot be correlated with those of North 
America or Europe, because they have nothing in common. 
Difficult as it is to give a correct and adequate conception of 
the Tertiary mammalian life of the northern hemisphere to 
one who has not made a study of it, it is far more difficult in 
the case of South America. The stock of adjectives, such as 
“peculiar,” “bizarre,” ‘grotesque’ and the like, already 
overworked in dealing with northern forms, is quite hopelessly 
inadequate where everything is strange. In addition to this, 
we are seriously handicapped in treating of the Oligocene and 
Eocene of South America by very incomplete knowledge. 
Many fossils have been collected and named, but the great 
majority of these are known only from teeth; a few skulls 
and limb-bones have been described, but no skeletons, and 
therefore much is very uncertain regarding these faunas. 

The Deseado formation (Pyrotherium Beds) has been 
variously referred by different writers from the upper Creta- 
ceous to the lower Miocene, but its most probable correlation 
is with the Oligocene. Though most of the mammalian groups 
are the same as those of the Santa Cruz, the proportions of the 
various orders in the two faunas are very different, but, to 
some extent, the difference is probably illusory and due to the 
conditions of fossilization, for, as a rule, the small mammals 
are much less frequent and well preserved in the older beds. 
As in the Santa Cruz, the marsupials were the only predaceous 
mammals, and some of them attained gigantic size; but no 
such variety of these beasts of prey has been found in these 
beds as occurred in the middle Miocene. In addition, there 
were numerous small herbivorous marsupials. One of the 
most striking differences from the Santa Cruz fauna was in 
the very much smaller number of Edentata, which, instead of 
being extremely common, are quite rare among the fossils. 
No doubt there was a real and substantial difference in this 
respect, but it was probably not so great as it seems, and the 


262 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


same three suborders are found in both formations. One of 
the few tground-sloths that have been obtained was very 
large ({Octodontheriwm crassidens), a much larger animal than 
any species of the suborder that is known from the Santa Cruz. 
The j{glyptodonts were also rare, and only two genera and 
species have been described from very scanty remains. Arma- 
dillos, on the other hand, were much more common, and no less 
than eleven genera have been named, three of which occurred 
also in the Santa Cruz. Among these was the remarkable 
genus }Peltephilus, in which the anterior two pairs of plates of 
the head shield were modified into horn-like spines. 

Equally striking was the remarkable diminution of the 
Rodentia, as compared with those of the Santa Cruz, though, 
of course, this is an inaccurate mode of stating the truth, 
occasioned by the fact that we are following the history in 
reverse order. It would be preferable to say that the rodents 
underwent a remarkable expansion in the Santa Cruz. These 
rodents of the Deseado stage are the most ancient yet dis- 
covered in South America and represent only two families, 
both belonging to the Hystricomorpha, or porcupine group. 
If, as Dr. Schlosser and other European paleontologists main- 
tain, the Hystricomorpha were all derived from a family of 
the European Eocene, this would necessitate a land-connection 
between South America and the Old World independent of 
North America, for the latter continent had no hystricomorph 
rodents until the connection between the two Americas was 
established. 

The great bulk of the Deseado fauna is made up, so far as 
individual abundance is concerned, of hoofed animals belong- 
ing to the typically South American groups. The tToxodonta 
were represented partly by genera which were the direct 
ancestors of the common Santa Cruz genera ({Pronesodon, 
+Proadinotherium), and, more numerously, by a very peculiar 
family, the tNotohippide, which had highly complex, cement- 
covered grinding teeth. Still a third family of this suborder, 


SUCCESSIVE MAMMALIAN FAUNAS 263 


the {Leontiniide, was highly characteristic of the Deseado 
fauna and is not known from the Santa Cruz. These were 
large animals, with a small horn on the tip of the nose and low- 
crowned, comparatively simple grinding teeth. Even more 
abundant were the {Typotheria, small forms which were 


Fic. 138. — Horned {toxodont ({Leontinia gaudryi), Deseado stage. Restored from a 
skull in the Ameghino collection. 


ancestral to the Santa Cruz genera, larger ones which died 
out without leaving successors and one quite large animal ({Hu- 
trachytherus) which seems to have been the ancestor of the 
Pliocene and Pleistocene tTypotherium. This series is not 
known to have been represented in the Santa Cruz and may 
have withdrawn from Patagonia at the end of the Deseado stage. 

The {tEntelonychia, those strange toxodont-like animals 
with claws instead of hoofs, were much more numerous and 
varied than they were afterward in the Santa Cruz, when they 


264 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


were on the verge of extinction, and included both very small 
and very large species. The {Pyrotheria, a suborder which 
is not met with in the Santa Cruz or later formations, likewise 
included some very large forms. The typical genus, {Pyro- 
therium, included large, relatively short-legged and very mas- 
sive animals; the upper incisors formed two pairs of short, 
downwardly directed tusks, and in the lower jaw was a single 
pair of horizontally directed tusks; the grinding teeth were 
low-crowned and had each two simple, transverse crests. 
These grinding teeth and the lower tusks so resemble those of 
the ancestral Proboscidea in the Oligocene of Egypt, that 
the tpyrotheres have actually been regarded as the beginnings 
of the tmastodons and elephants, but this is undoubtedly an 
error. The tAstrapotheria, another group which became ex- 
tinct at or soon after the end of the Santa Cruz, were rel- 
atively abundant in the Deseado and counted some very large 
species. Finally, the {Litopterna were represented by the 
same two families as continued through the Pliocene and one of 
them far into the Pleistocene. The horse-like tproterotheres 
were present, but not enough of them has been obtained to 
show whether or not they were in a notably less advanced 
stage of development than those of the Santa Cruz. The 
tmacrauchenids were quite similar to those of the latter for- 
mation, though considerably smaller. In addition, there 
were a few genera, survivals from earlier times, which were not 
referable to either of these families. 

The large number of genera, especially among the {toxo- 
donts and jftypotheres, which had high-crowned, cement- 
covered teeth, may be taken as an indication that grazing 
habits had already begun to be prevalent. 

Of this wonderful assemblage of hoofed animals, divisible 
into six separate groups, whether of ordinal or subordinal 
rank, not a trace remains to-day. Not only are all the species, 
genera and families extinct, but the suborders and orders also. 
Further, this was a very strictly autochthonous fauna, so far 


SUCCESSIVE MAMMALIAN FAUNAS 265 


as the hoofed animals were concerned, and no member of any 
of the six groups has ever been found outside of the Neotropical 
region. 

4, Eocene 

North America. — In the western interior of North America 
the Oligocene followed so gradually upon the Eocene, that there 
is great difficulty in demarcating them and much difference 
of opinion and practice obtains as to where the boundary line 
should be drawn. Not to depart too widely from the scheme . 
used by Professor Osborn, the Uinta stage is here treated as 
uppermost Eocene, though this is a debatable procedure. 
For several reasons, the extraordinarily interesting and sig- 
nificant Uinta fauna is far less completely known than that of 
the preceding Bridger and succeeding White River stages. For 
one thing, it has been much less thoroughly explored, and it 
may be confidently expected that future exploration will 
greatly enlarge our knowledge. 

The smaller mammals of the Uinta are particularly ill- 
known. No Insectivora have yet been found, though this 
gap will assuredly be filled; rodents are scanty in the collec-_ 
tions and include only two families, one the ftischyromyids, 
which were still common in the White River, the other of 
doubtful position, but not improbably to be considered as the 
beginning of the pocket-gophers (Geomyide#). The archaic 
flesh-eaters, or tCreodonta, were represented by two fami- 
lies, one comprising smaller animals with somewhat cat-like, 
shearing teeth (fOxyenide), the other, very large beasts 
with crushing teeth ({Mesonychide), neither of which con- 
tinued into the White River. As compared with the middle 
and lower Eocene, the tcreodonts had greatly diminished and, 
to replace them, the true Carnivora were beginning to come 
in. As yet, however, only small and very primitive dog-like 
forms are known and no trace of tsabre-tooths or mustelines 
has been found. Indeed, it is very doubtful whether mem- 
bers of these families ever will be found in the Uinta, for their 


266 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


presence in the succeeding White River was probably due to 
immigration. 

The Perissodactyla were the preponderant type of hoofed 
animals, and ancestral forms of most of the White River genera 
have already been identified. The ftitanotheres ({Diplacodon, 
{Protitanotheritum) were much smaller and lighter than those 
of the lower White River and had much shorter horns. The 
thyracodonts, the lightly built, cursorial rhinoceroses, were 
represented by a genus ({tTriplopus) which was smaller and 
more slender than the White River form (tHyracodon) and 
its teeth were of distinctly more primitive character. The 
heavy, massive and presumably aquatic tamynodonts (tAmyn- 
odon). were likewise smaller and less specialized than their 
descendants of the Oligocene. No member of the true rhinoc- 
eros series has yet been identified in the Uinta, but there is 
some reason to think that they were nevertheless present. 
Tapirs are distinctly indicated by certain fossils, but they are 
still too incompletely known to make possible any statement 
as to their degree of development. The horses (tEpihippus), 
like the other families mentioned, were much smaller and dis- 
tinctly more primitive than their successors in the Oligocene. 

The Artiodactyla were, for the first time in the history of 
North America, as numerous and as varied as the perisso- 
dactyls and, with the exception of the peccaries and tanthra- 
cotheres, representatives of all the White River families are 
known. The finding of the peccaries is merely a question of 
further exploration, but the fanthracotheres were migrants 
from the Old World, and there is no likelihood that they will 
be discovered in the Uinta at any future time. Fairly large, 
pig-like animals, probably referable to the tgiant-pigs or fen- 
telodonts, occurred, but nothing has yet been found which can 
be considered as the direct ancestor of the White River genus. 
As was true of the perissodactyls, the Uinta artiodactyls were 
nearly all much smaller and more primitive than their Oligocene 
descendants and the differences are most interesting from the 


SUCCESSIVE MAMMALIAN FAUNAS 267 


evolutionary point of view. The ancestral camel ({Protylopus) 
was a little creature no bigger than a fox-terrier, though the 
thypertragulids ({Leptotragulus) were as large as +Leptomeryx 
and tHypertragulus of the White River. The most ancient 
known members of the foreodonts (}Protoreodon) and the 
tagriocherids ({Protagriocherus) are found in the Uinta. 

The middle Eocene fauna, Bridger stage, though it passed 
upward very gradually into that of the Uinta, was yet, on the 
whole, very different from the latter. It was exclusively indig- 
enous and so radically distinct from the mammals of corre- 
sponding date in Europe as to preclude the possibility of a land- 
bridge with that continent. In the lower Eocene, as will be 
shown in a subsequent page, the communication between the 
two continents was broadly open and the faunas of the two 
continents were much more closely similar than they have 
ever been since. It is really remarkable to see with what com- 
parative rapidity the two regions, when severed, developed 
different mammals under the operation of divergent evolution. . 
Had the separation continued throughout the Tertiary and 
Quaternary periods, North America would now have been as 
peculiar zodlogically as South America is, a result which has 
been prevented by the repeated renewal of the connection. 

The characteristic features of the Bridger mammalian fauna 
were chiefly due to the great expansion and diversification of 
certain families, which began their career at an earlier stage, 
and to the disappearance of many archaic groups which had 
marked the more ancient faunas. Other archaic groups, 
however, survived and even flourished in the Bridger, and of 
these it is particularly difficult to convey a correct notion to 
the reader, because they were so utterly unlike anything that 
now lives. One of these orders, the tTzniodontia, which had 
so many points of resemblance to the fground-sloths that 
several writers have not hesitated to include them in the 
Edentata, survived only into the older Bridger, but the equally 
problematical }Tillodontia then reached their culmination, 


268 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


though they were not very numerous. Though not at all 
related to that group, the {tillodonts looked like huge rodents, 
with their chisel-like incisor teeth. There was a remarkable 
assemblage of Insectivora, more numerous and varied than in 
any subsequent formation, no less than six families being known. 
One of these somewhat doubtfully represented the moles and 
two others modern Asiatic groups. The very unexpected 
discovery of an armadillo in the Bridger has been reported, 
but the propriety of referring this animal to the armadillos, 
or even to the edentates, has not yet been proved, and it would 
therefore be premature to discuss its significance. The only 
marsupials were opossums. 

So far as our information extends, there were no true Car- 
nivora in the Bridger, all the beasts of prey of the time belonging 
to the archaic {Creodonta, which then reached their maximum 
development in numbers and diversity. One family (tOxy- 
eenidz) included large and powerful flesh-eaters, with cat-like 

. dentition and short, rounded, lion-like heads, long bodies and 
tails and short, heavy limbs, giving them the proportions 
of otters. Another (the tHyznodontide) comprised small, 
long-headed, fox-like and weasel-like animals, which doubtless 
preyed upon small mammals and birds. A _ third family 
(tMesonychide) was made up of moderate-sized, long-jawed 
creatures, which must have resembled, rather remotely, short- 
legged and long-tailed wolves and hyenas. Their habits and 
mode of life are somewhat problematical, for their grinding 
teeth were blunt, not adapted to the shearing of flesh, and their 
claws were broad, almost hoof-like. Such creatures could 
hardly have subsisted by the pursuit of living prey and were 
probably carrion-feeders and more or less omnivorous. The 
{Miacide, a family which connected the fcreodonts and true 
carnivores and might almost. equally well be placed in either 
group, were externally much like the small thysenodonts, but 
were more efficiently equipped for the capture and devouring 
of prey. 


SUCCESSIVE MAMMALIAN FAUNAS 269 


Of the archaic and extinct orders of hoofed animals, the 
only one which persisted from earlier times into the Bridger 
and greatly flourished there was the tAmblypoda, one family 
of which (fUintatheriide) was preéminently characteristic 
of middle Eocene life, becoming very rare and then dying out 
in the upper Eocene. The jfuintatheres of the Bridger under- 
went considerable modification in size and appearance within 


A Bivee Horsraci 


ts — ee 


Fic. 139. — A mesonychid tereodont ({Dromocyon velor) of the Bridger stage. 
Restored from a skeleton in the Museum of Yale University. 
the limits of the stage, the larger and stranger species appearing 
toward the end of the time. Most of these great creatures 
may fairly be called gigantic, for they equalled the largest 
modern rhinoceroses and smaller elephants in size. The body, 
limbs and feet were so elephantine in character that they 
were once believed to be ancestral Proboscidea, but the teeth 
and the fantastic skull were so radically different that this 
belief was long ago abandoned. The upper canine teeth were 
converted, in the males, into formidable spear-like or scimitar- 
like tusks, protected by great flange-shaped expansions of the 


270 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


lower jaw; bony knobs on the end of the nose probably sup- 
ported a pair of dermal horns like those of a rhinoceros and, 
in addition, a pair of high, cylindrical, horn-like, bony pro- 
tuberances arose above the eyes and another, more massive 
pair, near the back of the head. It would be difficult to imagine 
more extraordinary creatures than the fuintatheres, which 
were the largest land-mammals of their time. The family 
was entirely confined to North America, no trace of them having 
been found in any other continent. 

While the backward and archaic orders, most of which have 
left no descendants in the modern world, had thus a stately 
representation in Bridger times, they were outnumbered in 
genera, species and individuals by the progressive orders, 
which are still in more or less flourishing existence. The 
Primates, whether lemurs or monkeys, were numerous, and 
this, so far as is definitely known, was their last appearance 
in extra-tropical North America. They may at any time be 
found in the Uinta, but there is small probability that they 
will ever turn up in the White River or later formations. 
The many rodents all belonged to the tischyromyids, an extinct 
family which, there is much reason to believe, was ancestral 
to many families of the squirrel-like suborder of Sciuromorpha. 
Most of them were species of a single genus (fParamys) and 
varied in size from a mouse to a beaver, or even larger. 

The Perissodactyla may be said, in one sense, to have 
reached their culmination in the Bridger; not that many of 
them, such as the horses and rhinoceroses, did not advance 
far beyond their state of development in the Eocene, but at no 
subsequent time did the order as a whole possess such domi- 
nating importance. There were five or six families of peris- 
sodactyls in the Bridger, and their remains are much the most 
abundant fossils found there. Individually, the commonest 
perissodactyls of the time were the {titanotheres, of which 
there were several genera and many species, differing chiefly 
in size and proportions, though the largest hardly exceeded 


SUCCESSIVE MAMMALIAN FAUNAS 271 


Fig. 140.— Some characteristic mammals of the Bridger Eocene reduced to a uniform 
scale, with « pointer dog, in frame, for comparison. 1. Primitive rhinoceros 
(tHyrachyus eximius). 2.t¢Tritemnodon agilis. 3. tPatriofelis ferox, and 4, tDro- 
mocyon velox, tcreodonts. 5. Primitive rodent ({Paramys delicatior). 6. tUintathe- 
rium alticeps. 7. fTitanothere (tMesatirhinus superior). 


a modern tapir in stature and was not dissimilar in appearance. 
These Bridger {titanotheres were considerably smaller than 
those of the Uinta and therefore very much more so than the 
White River forms; it was not till the latter stage that the 
family lived up to its name of “titanic beasts.”’ By far the 


272 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


commonest of the genera in the middle and lower Bridger was 

+Paleosyops, which was hornless, while in the upper part of 

the beds are found genera (e.g. |Manteoceras and f{Dolicho- 

rhinus) in which the horns were just beginning to appear. 

Another extinct family, the tLophiodontide, which was very 

abundant in the European Eocene, formed a very subordinate - 
element in: this fauna and included a number of small tapiroid 

genera (e.g. tHelaletes). 

The horses ({Orohippus) were very small and primitive 
creatures, no bigger than a fox, with four toes in the front foot 
and three in the hind. So completely different in appearance 
and proportions were these little animals from any of the 
modern horses, that it requires an effort of the imagination 
to think of them as belonging to the same family, and it is only 
by employing the family to designate a genetic series that such 
a classification can be justified. The thyracodonts, or cursorial 
rhinoceroses, were very abundantly represented by a number 
of small and medium-sized animals (tHyrachyus) which had 
less specialized teeth, shorter neck and limbs than their upper 
Eocene and Oligocene successors, and four toes in the front 
foot; one genus (fColonoceras) had a pair of nasal horns, 
but would seem to have died out without leaving descendants. 
In the upper part of the beds is found the Uinta genus. {T'riplo- 
pus, with three-toed fore foot ; and in the same division occurs 
another Uinta genus, tAmynodon, the most ancient known 
species of the supposedly aquatic rhinoceroses. True rhi- 
noceroses, that is animals which were directly ancestral to the 
modern members of the family, have not been identified and 
may not have been present in North America; that is still 
an open question. Tapirs, all of them quite small, were rel- 
atively common, but are still very incompletely known. The 
earliest known members of the clawed tchalicotheres were of 
Bridger date. 

It is worth remarking that, except a single genus in the 
upper and later portion of the stage (tTriplopus), all of the 


SUCCESSIVE MAMMALIAN FAUNAS 273 


Bridger perissodactyls had four toes in the front foot and three 
in the hind, while in the White River beds above the lowest 
substage the number three in both fore and hind feet was 
almost equally universal. 

One of the most radical and striking differences between 
the Uinta and Bridger faunas was the rarity of Artiodactyla 
in the latter, which is in almost equally strong contrast with 
their abundance in the middle Eocene of Europe. Most 
significant of these rare Bridger artiodactyls were the little 
creatures (tHomacodon), hardly so large as a domestic cat, 
which may fairly be regarded as a very early stage, if not the 
actual beginning, of the great camel family, which was destined 
to play so conspicuous a part in the life of America, North 
and South. Small pig-like animals ({Helohyus) which were 
no doubt ancestral to the peccaries, were fairly common and 
there were, in addition, relatively large animals (tAchenodon) 
allied, but not ancestral, to the tgiant-pigs of the Oligocene ; 
some of these were considerably larger than a full-grown Wild 
Boar (Sus scrofa). 

Among all the many hoofed mammals of the Uinta and 
Bridger there was not a single one that had the high-crowned, 
persistently growing teeth of the grazers ; all of them must have 
had browsing habits and have fed upon such soft vegetable 
tissue as did not rapidly abrade the teeth. The same state- 
ment applies, 4 fortiori, to the stages antecedent to the Bridger 
and therefore to the entire Eocene and Paleocene. From these 
facts it may be inferred that the grasses had not yet taken 
possession of wide areas. Concerning the Bridger fauna, 
Professor Osborn, who has done so much to elucidate it, says: 
“On the whole, it is a very imposing, diversified and well- 
balanced fauna, with an equal distribution of arboreal, cur- 
sorial, aquatic, fossorial, carnivorous and herbivorous types.” 

The lower Eocene is divisible into two stages, in descending 
order, the Wind River and Wasatch, both extensively exposed 


in central Wyoming. As would be expected from its strati- 
T 


274 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


graphical position, the Wind River fauna was largely transi- 
tional between that of the Bridger above and that of the 
Wasatch below. Unfortunately, the fossils are far less numer- 
ous than those of the Bridger and not so well preserved, and 
therefore give us a less adequate conception of the life of that 
time. The archaic, non-progressive orders were strongly 
represented, but already the progressive groups were in a numer- 
ical majority of species; most of these archaic orders may be 
most advantageously described in connection with the Wasatch. 
Opossums were almost certainly present, though the available 
specimens are too fragmentary for assured determination. 
The ftillodonts, fteniodonts and insectivores differed little 
from the Wasatch representatives of these orders, except that 
the Bridger {teniodont, {Stylinodon, which had rootless, 
persistently growing teeth, was associated with the Wasatch 
genus {Calamodon. On the other hand, the primitive flesh- 
eaters, or tcreodonts, which were referable to Wasatch families, 
were less numerous and varied and formed a mixture of Bridger 
and Wasatch genera. The tOxyznide, the family with cat- 
like teeth and head, had both the smaller Wasatch genus 
tOxyena and the very large Bridger }Patriofelis. Of the 
blunt-toothed +Mesonychide, one very large animal ({Pachy- 
ena) survived from the Wasatch. The small forms of the 
family tHyzenodontide were common, and there were numerous 
species of the progressive family tMiacide. 

Among the hoofed animals there were two of the antique 
orders which became extinct before the end of the Eocene, 
indeed, one of these groups, the +Condylarthra, made its 
last appearance in the Wind River. This extremely primitive 
group, which, in a sense, connected the hoofed with the clawed 
mammals, will be described under the more ancient faunas. 
The other order, the fAmblypoda, was represented by two 
very different families, one of which, the fuintatheres, was 
so flourishing in the Bridger, where it formed the most char- 
acteristic and by far the most striking element of the fauna. 


SUCCESSIVE MAMMALIAN FAUNAS 275 


The Wind River genus ({Bathyopsis) was a very much smaller 
animal than any of the Bridger forms and its horn-like pro- 
tuberances were in an incipient state, while in various other 
respects it was decidedly more primitive than its successors. 
The second family was represented by the genus tCoryphodon, 
which did not survive into the Bridger, but was especially 
characteristic of the Wasatch fauna, with which it will be 
described. 

Turning now to the progressive orders, we note that the 
rodents, lemurs and monkeys were very similar to those of 
the Bridger and belonged to the same families, but were 
decidedly less numerous. This difference, however, may be 
rather apparent than real and due to the much more favourable 
conditions for the preservation of small mammals in the middle 
Eocene. Among the Perissodactyla, the horses were inter- 
mediate in size and structure between those of the Bridger 
and those of the Wasatch, but were decidedly nearer to the latter. 
The {lophiodonts, so far as known, were represented by a single 
genus ({Heptodon) which also occurred in the Wasatch. The 
modest beginnings of the ftitanotheres, the family which be- 
came so very conspicuous in the middle and upper Eocene 
and lowest Oligocene, may be noted in the Wind River fauna, 
in which there were two genera. One of these ({Kotitanops), 
the very probable ancestor of all the subsequent genera, was 
quite small, about two-thirds the size of a modern tapir, while 
the other (tLambdotherium) was a much smaller, lighter and 
more slender animal and apparently belonged to an abortive, 
short-lived phylum. Then, too, the first of the thyracodonts, 
or cursorial rhinoceroses, made their appearance here in the 
genus tHyrachyus, which was afterward so common in the 
Bridger. 

No Artiodactyla have yet been found in the Wind River, 
though there can be little doubt that they then inhabited North 
America, as they did both before and afterward. 

The Wind River fauna was of so much less peculiar and 


276 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


isolated character than that of the Bridger as to suggest 
a connection with the eastern hemisphere, a suggestion which 
is strengthened by the unheralded appearance of the {titano- 
theres and thyracodonts, of which no forerunners have been 
found in the Wasatch. 

The lowest and most ancient of the Eocene faunas is that 
of the Wasatch formation, which is extensively developed 
in central and southern Wyoming, Utah and New Mexico. 
The fauna of this stage is plainly divisible into two groups: 
(1) those types which were the descendants of American 
Paleocene mammals and were therefore indigenous, and 
(2) the immigrants from other continents. The indigenous 
mammals, which almost all belonged to orders now extinct, 
few of which survived later than the Eocene, must have given 
a very bizarre appearance to the assemblage, especially as 
they were more numerous, varied and, for the most part, 
larger and more conspicuous than the newcomers. Marsupials 
have not yet been found, but the occurrence of opossums in the 
Bridger and probably in the Wind River gives some reason to 
believe that they were in North America during Wasatch 
times also. The ftTzniodontia, which bore a certain resem- 
blance to South American edentates, had one pair of incisor. 
teeth above and below enlarged and chisel-shaped, somewhat 
like those of rodents. The tTillodontia were much smaller than 
those of the Bridger, and their incisors were only beginning to 
take on the chisel-like form. Insectivora were quite abundant, 
and three, or perhaps four, families were represented in the 
Wasatch; some of these resembled the modern aquatic in- 
sectivores of the west African rivers and others were more 
like European hedgehogs. 

The flesh-eaters all belonged to the tCreodonta, and, 
though rather less diversified than those of the Bridger, were 
yet relatively abundant. In size, they ranged from little 
creatures not larger than a weasel up to truly enormous beasts, 
and differed, no doubt, largely in habits and manner of life. 


SUCCESSIVE MAMMALIAN FAUNAS 277 


For the most part, the families were the same as those of the 
Bridger fcreodonts, but the genera all were different. The 
foxyzenids ({Oxyena) were much smaller and lighter than the 
large and massive representatives found in the middle Eocene, 
and their teeth were not so cat-like. Another group of pre- 
daceous animals ({Paleonictis) which also inhabited Europe, 
but did not survive the lower Eocene in either continent, 
had short, broad and very cat-like heads. The tmesonychids 
were far larger than those of the Bridger, a departure from the 
ordinary rule, and the several species of the common Wasatch 
genus ({Pachyena) had grotesquely large heads. A family 
(tArctocyonide), of very extensive geographical range and 
great antiquity, had its last representatives here in a very 
curious animal (fAnacodon) which had the flat-crowned, 
tuberculated grinding teeth of the bears and the enlarged, 
scimitar-like upper canines of the tsabre-tooth cats. Such a 
combination seems utterly incongruous and no one would 
have ventured to predict it. The progressive family of tere- 
odonts (fMiacide) was already quite numerously repre- 
sented, but only by small forms, which must have preyed 
upon small mammals, birds and lizards. 

Two archaic orders of hoofed mammals were fairly numer- 
ous. One, the {Condylarthra, comprised quite small, five- 
toed animals, with long tails and short feet and extremely 
primitive in structure. A genus (}+Phenacodus) of this order 
was long regarded as being ancestral to most of the higher 
orders of ungulates, but this belief has proved to be untenable. 
More numerous were the tAmblypoda, one genus of which 
(tCoryphodon), though persisting into the Wind River, was 
especially characteristic of the Wasatch. The tcoryphodonts 
were the largest of lower Eocene mammals, and some of the 
species equalled a tapir or small rhinoceros in length and height, 
but had heavier limbs; as the skeleton conclusively shows, 
these must have been heavy, clumsy and exceptionally ugly 
brutes, with formidable tusks, large head, but relatively more 


LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


278 


“AI04STPT [VINYBN JO UNesny] UBITOUTY oY} UI UOJZO[OHS B 
WIJ palo}soyY “BIYWIE[APUOD| oy} Jo oATVE}UOSeIdeI YO}BEE MA UMOUY 480q oY} ‘snamwrid snpoopusyg| — “TPT “PW 


wl €F-6 1 
sav HOH s0nda le 


Si enna 
sae ee 


SUCCESSIVE MAMMALIAN FAUNAS 279 


slender body, short and massive limbs and elephantine feet. 
In appearance, these strange beasts were not altogether unlike 
the Hippopotamus and were perhaps more or less amphibious 
in habits. The other family of ,Amblypoda, the tuintatheres, 


TR - Broce HOnsFan 
ay a 


Fic. 142. — The commonest of Wasatch ungulates, the tamblypod, tCoryphodon testis. 
Restored from a skeleton in the American Museum of Natural History. 

have not yet been registered from the Wasatch, but they will 

undoubtedly be found there, as they were unquestionably 

present at that time. 

All of the preceding groups were of the archaic, non- 
progressive type and have long been extinct. With the sole 
exception of one ftcreodont family (fMiacide#) and perhaps 
some of the insectivores, they have no descendants or repre- 
sentatives in the modern world. All of them appear to have 
been indigenous and derived from North American ancestors, 
though it is possible that a few were immigrants. We now 
turn to the orders which were more significant of the future, 
because they had within them the potency of a far higher 
development. These progressive groups were all immigrants, 
coming to North America from some region which cannot yet 


280 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


be positively identified, but most probably was Asia. From 
the same region and at a corresponding period of time Europe 
received many of the same forms, and so many genera were at 
that time common to the latter continent and North America that 
a broad and easy way of intermigration must have been open. 

One of these immigrant orders, the Rodentia, the most 
ancient known members of which were these species from the 
North American Wasatch, was represented by the same family 
(fIschyromyide) and some of the same genera ({Paramys, 
{Sciuravus) as throve also in the Bridger stage. 

There were two orders of hoofed mammals, which were 
newcomers to the western world, Perissodactyla and Arti- 
odactyla. Of the former was a genus ({tHohippus) of the most 
ancient American horses. These most interesting little ani- 
mals, no larger than small foxes and domestic cats, would 
hardly be called horses, were it not for the long series of gradual 
and successive modifications which led from +tHohippus up 
to the modern horses. The graceful little creatures had a short 
neck, curved back, and relatively short, slender limbs, with 
four functional toes in the front foot and three in the hind ; and, 
though they differed from existing horses in almost every detail 
of teeth and skeleton, there was something unmistakably equine 
about them. From the abundance of their remains it may be 
inferred that herds of them swarmed in the forests and glades 
of Wasatch times. The second perissodactyl family, the 
{Lophiodontide, which comprised considerably larger animals, 
never attained to importance in America, but flourished and 
became greatly diversified in Europe. What are believed to 
be the most ancient tapirs yet discovered ({Systemodon) were 
individually very common in the Wasatch. This tapir was no 
larger than a Coyote, had no proboscis and was so little like 
a tapir in outward appearance that an observer might well 
be pardoned for overlooking the relationship; even the skel- 
eton is of so indifferent a character that the reference of this 
genus to the tapirs cannot be positively made. 


SUCCESSIVE MAMMALIAN FAUNAS 281 


Of equal significance for the future was the arrival of the 
Artiodactyla, of which there were members of three families 
in the Wasatch, though individually they were much less 
common than the horses. These were geologically the oldest 
known artiodactyls, Europe having yielded none of this date, 
and are still too imperfectly known to justify any very positive 
statements about them. One genus, however (fT rigono- 
lestes), tiny little creatures, like rabbits in size, would seem to 
represent the beginnings of the great ruminant tribe, now so 
very important a factor in the life of the world. A second 
genus ({Hohyus), considerably larger, is very doubtfully refer- 
able to the pigs; while a third (tParahyus), still larger, was 
the first in the short-faced series of the fentelodonts, which 
persisted in ever increasing size through the whole Eocene, 
but could hardly have been ancestral to the true fentelodonts, 
or fgiant-pigs, of the Oligocene, the place and time of whose 
origin are unknown. 

Another immigrant order of great interest, since we our- 
selves belong to it, the Primates, made its first appearance in 
North America in the Wasatch, but was not destined to long 
life or great importance in this continent, where it did not 
survive the Eocene. Several different kinds of small, lemur- 
like and monkey-like creatures dwelt in the tree-tops of the 
Wasatch forests. One genus (tAnaptomorphus) had a remark- 
able likeness to the modern Tarsier (Tarsius spectrum) of the 
Malay peninsula and islands. 

South America. — The Eocene of South America, referred 
by some writers to the upper Cretaceous, is very incompletely 
and unsatisfactorily known. The Casa Mayor formation 
(or Notostylops Beds), which has yielded a great variety of 
mammals, for the most part very fragmentary, probably 
contains not one but several successive faunas which have 
not yet been fully discriminated, and that of the next succeed- 
ing Astraponotus Beds is still but a scanty list. This list, 
however, includes the most ancient tglyptodonts yet discovered 


282 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


and the most ancient tastrapotheres in the narrow sense of the 
term. The Astraponotus Beds may be either Eocene or 
Oligocene in date. 

Taking the Casa Mayor faunas as a whole, they were a very 
numerous and diversified assemblage of small mammals, 
without a single large one among them. There were no 
monkeys or rodents; otherwise, the orders were in almost 
all cases the same as those which made up the Santa Cruz 
fauna. The marsupials were represented by the opossums 
and by several of the carnivorous kinds, the only beasts of 
prey that South America had until the migrations from the 
north brought in the true Carnivora, late in the Miocene or 
very early in the Pliocene. There were also numerous small 
marsupials of peculiar type, of which the last living survivor 
is Cenolestes, of Ecuador. Throughout the stage, armadillos 
were present in considerable variety, but are known only 
from the bony plates of the carapace, and therefore little can 
be determined as to their relationships to the modern families. 
Only a single and very problematical genus of the tground- 
sloths,. which afterwards throve so mightily in the Miocene 
and Pliocene, has been obtained and that in the later portion 
of the stage. 

The orders of hoofed mammals were represented by. many 
small animals, most of which are known only from the teeth, 
which show these Casa Mayor genera to have been far more 
primitive and less specialized than their descendants in the 
Deseado and Santa Cruz stages. All of them had the low- 
crowned grinding teeth of the browsers, and no grazers were 
then in existence, so far as is known. No ftoxodonts, in the 
more restricted sense of that term, have been found, but the 
two allied suborders of the +Typotheria and tEntelonychia 
were numerously represented. Of the former there were two 
families and of the latter three, which is more than in the 
Deseado or Santa Cruz formations. One of the families of 
the tEntelonychia (tNotostylopidx) consisted of very small, 


SUCCESSIVE MAMMALIAN FAUNAS 283 


rodent-like animals, with a pair of chisel-shaped incisors in 
upper and lower jaw, and a second family ({Homalodonto- 
theriide) contained genera which would seem to have been 
directly ancestral to those of the Santa Cruz, but were very 
much smaller than their successors. The very large and 
massive }Pyrotheria of the Deseado stage were represented 
by small animals, in which the grinding teeth had two pairs 
of conical tubercles, not yet united into transverse crests. Two 
families of the fastrapotheres, in the broad sense, were far 
smaller than their Oligocene and Miocene descendants. To 
the tLitopterna are referred a number of genera, in which the 
grinding teeth were tuberculated and had very imperfectly 
developed crests, so as strongly to suggest the teeth of the 
tCondylarthra. However, until something is ascertained re- 
garding the skeleton, especially the feet, of these animals, their 
relationships will remain more or less doubtful. 

It will be observed that these Casa Mayor faunas not only 
were made up exclusively of small animals, but also that 
they already were typically and characteristically ‘South 
American and bore the stamp which remained essentially 
the same until the successive waves of migration from the 
north so greatly modified the composition of the Neotropical 
fauna. The absence of rodents and monkeys and the com- 
parative unimportance of the Edentata gave a somewhat 
different character to these ancient faunas from those of the 
Santa Cruz and later formations. 


5. Paleocene 


North America. — A very important discovery is one lately 
made by American Museum parties of a formation intermediate 
between the Wasatch and Torrejon. The interesting fauna 
of these beds has not yet been described, but it may be re- 
marked that it contained none of the immigrant orders. 

The vegetation of the Paleocene was already very mod- 
ern in character, and nearly all of the common forest-trees 


284 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


were represented by species which differed but slightly from 
those of the present. The grasses were already in existence, 
but, there is good reason to believe, they had not attained 
to much importance and-did not cover the plains and open 
spaces as they did in the Miocene and still continue to do. 
As the grasses afford the principal food-supply of so many 
grazing animals, the matter of their abundance and extension 
is a very significant one in the history of mammalian develop- 
ment, and, as we have already learned, eventually led to wide- 
spread and profound modifications ‘of structure, especially of 
the teeth. While there is thus nothing very strange about 
the plant-world of Paleocene times, the higher animal life was 
almost totally different from that of modern times and made 
up a most curious and bizarre assemblage, from which nearly 
all the familiar Recent types were absent. The reptiles had 
been greatly impoverished by the world-wide and, as yet, un- 
explained destruction which overtook them at the end of the 
Mesozoic era, but it is possible that in both North and South 
America a few of the huge Dinosaurs survived the decimation 
of the class. Very characteristic of the Paleocene in North 
America and Europe were large, lizard-like reptiles, allied to 
the New Zealand Tuatara, while crocodiles and tortoises 
abounded; snakes were present, but do not appear to have 
been very common. 

It is the mammals which were the strangest element of 
Paleocene life, and our imaginary observer would find no 
creature that he had ever seen before. The difference from 
modern mammalian life was not merely one of species, genera ° 
or even families, but of orders, for only one, or at most two, 
of the orders now living were then to be found in North America, 
and both of these (marsupials and insectivores) were primitive 
and archaic groups, which seem like belated survivals in the 
modern world. There were no rodents, or true carnivores, no 
lemurs, monkeys, artiodactyls, perissodactyls or proboscideans. 

In the Torrejon, or upper Paleocene, there were many 


SUCCESSIVE MAMMALIAN FAUNAS 285 


herbivorous marsupials, with very complex grinding teeth and 
chisel-like incisors, but no carnivorous or insectivorous mem- 
bers of the order have been found. Insectivora were present. 
Of the fereodonts, or primitive flesh-eaters, there were no 
less than five families; the bear-like fArctocyonide, which 
died out in the Wasatch, were quite numerous, and the 
problematical tMesonychide were much smaller and more 


R- Ruck. HlonsrAL eed 


Cie ee 


Fig. 143. —The Torrejon forerunner (tPantolambda bathmodon) of *Coryphodon. 
Restored from a skeleton in the American Museum of Natural History. 


primitive mammals than those of the Eocene. Passing over 
two families which did not survive the Torrejon, we may note 
the first of the tMiacide, the progressive family which led 
eventually to the true Carnivora. The hoofed animals all 
belonged to the archaic {Condylarthra and tAmblypoda ; 
of the former there were many genera and species referable 
to three families, one of which contained the forerunners of 
the Wasatch {Phenacodus. The genus {Pantolambda of the 
Amblypoda may well have been ancestral to both the fcory- 
phodonts and the fuintatheres of the Eocene. 


286 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


The Puerco fauna was much like that of the Torrejon, but 
even less advanced and diversified. The herbivorous marsu- 
pials were more abundant, and some of them (}+Polymastodon) 
larger than those of the Torrejon; Insectivora may have 
been present, but this is doubtful. The fcreodonts, so far 
as they have been discovered, were less numerous, varied and 
specialized than those of the Torrejon and included but one 


Fic. 144. — Head of an fallotherian marsupial ({Polymastodon tadensis) from the 
Puerco stage. Restored from a skull in the American Museum of Natural 
History. 

of the families which passed over into the Eocene. The 
+Condylarthra were much less common and the tAmblypoda 
but doubtfully represented, but the edentate-like }Tzniodontia 
were conspicuous. 

Not only were the Paleocene faunas radically different 
from the mammals of our time, but they could not have been 
ancestral to the latter, being hardly more than an advanced 
and diversified Mesozoic assemblage. It is true that some 
of its elements, such as the tCondylarthra, tAmblypoda and 
{tCreodonta, developed greatly and played an important part 


SUCCESSIVE MAMMALIAN FAUNAS 287 


in the life of the Eocene, but of these only a few fcreodonts 
continued into the Oligocene and all became extinct without 
leaving any descendants behind them.‘ Another curious fact 
concerning the Paleocene mammalian faunas is that they were 
made up entirely of small and very small animals; not a single 
mammal as large as a sheep has yet been found in these beds, 
and the same is true of Europe. 

That a land-connection with the Old World existed during 
the Paleocene epoch, is indicated by the similarity of the faunas 
of North America and Europe. 


CHAPTER VIII 
HISTORY OF THE PERISSODACTYLA 


In attempting to trace the evolutionary history of the various 
mammalian groups, it is necessary to bear in mind the inevitable 
limitations of work of this kind. Speaking of plants, Dr. 
D. H. Scott says: ‘‘Our ideas of the course of descent must of 
necessity be diagrammatic; the process, as it actually went 
on, during ages of inconceivable duration, was doubtless in- 
finitely too complex for the mind to grasp, even were the whole 
evidence lying open before us. Wesee an illustration, on a small 
scale, of the complexity of the problem, in the case of domesti- 
cated forms, evolved under the influence of man. Though 
we know that our cultivated plants, for instance, have been 
developed from wild species within the human period, and 
often within quite recent years, yet nothing is more difficult 
than to trace, in any given instance, the true history of a field- 
crop or garden plant, or even, in many cases, to fix its origin 
with certainty.””! With some mammalian groups the task, 
though difficult enough, is not so hopeless, because of more 
complete records, yet in dealing with mammals a very trouble- 
some complication is introduced by the existence within the 
families, and even within the genera, of two or more parallel 
phyla, or genetic series. Without complete and perfect mate- 
rial it is impossible to make sure that we are not confusing 
the different phyla with one another and placing in one series 
species and genera that properly belong in a different one. 
Thus, Osborn distinguishes no less than seven such phyla 


1D. H. Scott, Studies in Fossil Botany, London, 1900, pp. 524-525. 
288 


HISTORY OF THE PERISSODACTYLA 


289 


among the true rhirioceroses of the Old and New Worlds, 
which long followed parallel, but quite independent, courses 


of development, and five phyla 
among the American horses. While 
these phyla add so much to the dif- 
ficulty of working out the genealogi- 
cal series, it is possible to simplify 
the problem and treat it in a broad 
and comprehensive manner that 
will sufficiently establish the essen- 
tial steps of change. 

In external appearance and gen- 
eral proportions the different fami- 
lies of existing perissodactyls.have 
very little in common; that tapirs 
and rhinoceroses should be related 
is not surprising, but the horses 
would seem to be as far removed 
from both of the former as possible. 
Why, then, should they be included 
in the same order? A study of the 
skeleton, however, reveals the com- 
munity of structure which obtains 
between the three families, a com- 
munity which removes them widely 
from all other hoofed mammals. In 
all existing perissodactyls, though 
not in most of the Eocene genera, all 
the premolars, except the first, have 
the size and pattern of the molars. 
The foramina of the skull, or per- 


Fic. 145.— Left manus of Tapir 
(Tapirus terrestris). S., scaph- 
oid. LZ., lunar. Py., pyramidal. 
Pis., pisiform. Td., trapezoid. 
M., magnum. Un., unciform. 
The metacarpals are erroneously 
numbered. Me. I., second met- 
acarpal. Mc. II., third do. 
Me. III., fourth do. Me. IV., 
fifth do. Ph. 1, first phalanx. 
Ph. 2, second do. Ung., un- 
gual phalanx. 


forations by which blood-vessels and nerves enter and leave the 
cranium, are arranged in a way characteristic of the order and 


different from that seen in other hoofed mammals. 
The number of digits in each 


always has the third trochanter. 
U 


The femur 


290 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


foot is usually odd, 1, 3 or 5, but four- 
toed forms occur, as the tapirs, which 
have four toes in the front foot, three 
in the hind; the important character 
is that the median plane of the foot 
bisects the third digit, which is sym- 
metrical. The third and fourth, each 
asymmetrical, together form a sym- 
metrical pair. Especially ‘character- 
istic is the form of the astragalus and 
calcaneum (ankle and heel bones) ; the 
astragalus has but a single, deeply 
grooved and pulley-like surface, that 
for the.tibia, the lower end is nearly 
flat and rests almost entirely upon the 
navicular, covering but little of the cu- 
boid (see Figs. 146, 148). The cal- 
’ caneum does not articulate with the 
<Y) fibula and its lower end is broad and 
covers most of the cuboid. 

While the foregoing list includes 
the most important of the structural 
features which are common to all 
perissodactyls and differentiate them 


Fic. 146.—Left pes of Tapir. ? 
Cal., calcaneum. As., astrag- {rom other hoofed animals, there are 


alus. N., navicular. Cn. 1, many others which it is needless to 
Cn. 2, Cn. 3, first, second and 


third cuneiforms. Mr. II, lI, enumerate. 
IV, second, third and fourth = The subjoined table gives the 


metatarsals. te eaigk 
families and principal genera of the 


American Perissodactyla; extinct groups are marked f. 


Suborder CHELODACTYLA. Normal Perissodactyls 


I. Equipz. Horses. 
{ Eohippus, low. Eoc. tOrohippus, mid. Hoc. tEpihippus, up. Hoe. 
+Mesohippus, low. Oligo. {tMiohippus, up. Oligo. fAnchithe- 
rium, up. Oligo. + Parahippus, low. Mioc. to low. Plioc. Des- 


HISTORY OF THE PERISSODACTYLA 291 


matippus, mid. Mioc. ft Hypohippus, mid. Mioc. to low. Plioc. 
{Merychippus, mid. Mioc. to low. Plioc. Protohippus, up. Mioc. 
}Pliohippus, up. Mioc. and low. Plioc. + Neohipparion, up. Mioc. 
and low. Plioc. {Hipparion, Plioc. t Hippidion, Pleist., S. Amer. 
{tHypernippidium, Pleist.,S.Am. Equus, Pleist., N. and S. Amer. 
II. ¢Trranotuerps#. fTitanotheres. 
{Lambdotherium, low. Eoc. {fHotitanops, low. Eoc. ft Paleosyops, 
mid. Eoc. t{Telmatherium, mid. Eoc. f{Dolichorhinus, up. Eoc. 
tDiplacodon, up. Eoe. f Titanotherium, low. Oligo. 
IIIf. Tarra. Tapirs. 
{Systemodon, low. Eoc. fIsectolophus, mid. and up. Eoc. fPro- 
tapirus, Oligo. +Tapiravus, mid. Mioc. Tapirus, Pleist., N. Amer., 
Pleist. and Recent, S. Amer. 
IV. tLopaiopontipx. tLophidonts. 
| Heptodon, low. Eoc. f Helaletes, mid. Eoc. tColodon, low. Oligo. 
V. Rarnocerotip#. True Rhinoceroses. ‘ 
tTrigonias, low. Oligo. +Cenopus, Oligo. and low. Mioc. +Dice- 
ratherium, up. Oligo. and low. Mioc. }Aphelops, mid. -Mioc. to 
low. Plioc. {Teleoceras, mid. Mioc. to low. Plioc. 
VI. tHyracopontipa. tHyracodonts and fAmynodonts, cursorial and 
aquatic Rhinoceroses. 
| Hyrachyus, low. and mid. Eoc. t{Triplopus, mid. and up. Eoc. 
{Colonoceras, mid. Eoc. + Hyracodon, low. Oligo. tAmynodon up. 
Eoc. t{Metamynodon, low. Oligo. 


Suborder fANCYLOPODA. fClawed Perissodactyls 
VII. ¢ CHanicotaermps. Chalicotheres. 
{Moropus, up. Oligo. and low. Mioc. ?{Schizotherium, low. Oligo. 
{Homoropus, mid. Eoc. 

The earliest perissodactyls of which we have any knowl- 
edge are found in the older part of the lower Eocene (Wa- 
satch stage) of Europe and North America, into which they 
must have migrated from some other region yet unknown, 
for no probable ancestors of the group are found in the Paleo- 
cene of either continent. 


I. SuBorpER CHELODACTYLA. NoRMAL PERISSODACTYLA. 


1. Equide. Horses 


In order to make intelligible the evolutionary changes which 
have led up to the modern horses, it will be necessary to say 
something concerning the dental and skeletal features which 


292 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


characterize these animals. Using the term horses in a 
broad sense to include all the existing members of the family 
Equide, true horses, asses, zebras and quaggas, we find a greater 
uniformity in the skeleton and teeth than would be expected 


Fic. 147.— Asiatic Wild Horse (Equus przewalskit). — By permission of the 
N.Y. Zoolog. Soc. 


from the external appearance. The differences in appearance 
are, however, largely due to colouring, growth of mane and- 
tail and the size of the ears, which leave no record in the skeleton. 

The teeth (Figs. 45, p. 95; 154, p. 306) are extremely high- 
crowned, or hypsodont, and do not form roots till an advanced 
age; the incisors have a deep, enamel-lined pit, the ‘“‘mark”’ in 
the centre of the grinding surface; the first premolar in each 
jaw is very small and of no functional importance; the other 
premolars have the same pattern as the molars, which is 
excessively complex in the arrangement of the enamel ridges 
and the areas of dentine and cement. 

The skull (Fig. 154, p. 306) is long, especially the facial por- 
tion, the eye-socket (orbit) being shifted behind the teeth, which 


HISTORY OF THE PERISSODACTYLA 293 


otherwise, on account of their great height, would press upon 
the eye itself; the orbit is completely encircled in bone. The 
lower jaw is deep vertically and the ascending ramus (see p. 66) 
‘very high, on account of the hypsodont character of the teeth, 
which thus necessitates a remodelling of the skull in several 
respects. The neck is long, each of its seven vertebre being 
elongate; except in the atlas and axis, the anterior face of 
each centrum is strongly convex and the posterior of all except 
the atlas is deeply concave; the odontoid process of the axis 
(see p. 71) is spout-shaped, concave on the upper and convex 
on the lower side, lodging and protecting the spinal cord. The 
spines of the anterior dorsal vertebre are very high, making 
a low hump at the withers between the shoulder-blades; the 
trunk-vertebre are so arranged as to make the back almost 
straight and horizontal. The limbs and especially the feet 
are very long. z The two bones of the fore-arm, the ulna and 
radius, are codssified into a single piece (Fig. 30, p. 81), but 
the limits of each are still plainly to be seen, especially in a 
young animal; and it is evident that the ulna is greatly re- 
duced in size and has lost its middle portion, while all the 
weight is borne by the radius. Similarly, in the hind leg the 
enlarged tibia, or shinbone, alone supports the weight; and 
only the two ends of the fibula are preserved (Fig. 38, p. 87), 
and these are indistinguishably fused with the tibia in the 
adult animal, but may be made out in the colt. The thigh- 
bone has a very characteristic shape, which is difficult to de- 
scribe without an undue use of technical terms, but the unusual 
prominence of the great trochanter (Fig. 35, p. 85) and of the 
rotular groove is an important factor in producing this ap- 
pearance. 

The very long and slender feet are so raised from the ground 
that the animal walks upon the very tips of the toes, the 
wrist being what horsemen call the ‘‘knee” and the heel is the 
‘“‘hock,”’ and the gait is thoroughly unguligrade. Each foot 
has but a single functional toe, the third or middle one of the 


294 


Fie. 148. — Left pes of 
Horse. Cal., cal- 
eaneum. As., as- 
tragalus. N., navic- 
ular. Cn. 3, third 
cuneiform. Mi. III, 
functional (third) 
metatarsal. Mt. II 
and Mt. IV, splints. 


lateral dislocation. 
mals this keel is merely a projec- 
tion from the lower articular sur- 
face and is confined to the pos- 
terior side, so as not to be visible 
The terminal or un- 
gual phalanx is much enlarged to 
carry the great weight which it sup- 


from the front. 


LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


primitive five-toed foot ; and, as this toe has 
to carry the whole weight supported by its 
leg, it is necessarily much larger than in ani- 
mals which distribute the weight among sev- 
eral digits. The horses are therefore said to 
be monodactyl, or single-toed, but the term 
is not strictly accurate, for on each side of 
the functional digit is a rudimentary or ves- 
tigial one, the 2d and 4th of the original five. 
These rudimentary digits, which are not visi- 
ble externally, have no phalanges and are 
merely ‘‘splint-bones,’”’ metapodials (see p. 
90) which have very slender shafts and end 
below in blunt 
points. The sin- 
gle functional 
metapodial has 
encircling its 
lower articular 
end a prominent 
ridge or keel, 
which fits into 
a corresponding 
groove on the up- 
per end of the 
first phalanx and 
serves to prevent 

In most mam- 


Fic. 149.— Left manus of Horse, 
front side; to the right, rear view 
of themetacarpus. 3., scaphoid. 
L., lunar. Py., pyramidal. Pis., 
pisiform. Td., trapezoid. M, 
magnum. U., unciform. Mc. II, 
Mc. IV, rudimentary second and 
fourth metacarpals, or splints. 


HISTORY OF THE PERISSODACTYLA 295 


ports and is enclosed in the characteristic hoof, unlike that of 
any other mammal. 

In brief, the whole structure of the horses is pre-eminently 
adapted to swift running; they are admirable ‘‘cursorial 
machines,’ as they have been called, and every part of the 
skeleton has been modified and specialized to that end; the 
narrow, rigid hoofs fit them for walking on firm ground and 
they speedily are made helpless in quicksand or bog. Did we 
know nothing of their mode of life, we might confidently infer 
from their teeth that the horses were grazers, feeding prin- 
cipally upon grass. A long-legged, grazing animal must needs 
have a neck of sufficient length to enable the mouth to reach 
the ground easily, unless a long proboscis is developed ; and so 
we shall find in the history of the horses that the elongation 
of the head and neck kept pace with the lengthening of the 
legs and feet. 

Though it can hardly be doubted that the horses passed 
through most of their development in North America, yet the 
immediate ancestry of all the existing species must be sought 
in the Old World, none of the many Pleistocene species of the 
western hemisphere having left any descendants. In North 
America all of the known Pleistocene forms belonged to the 
genus Equus, but the True Horse, EF. caballus, was not among 
them. The more abundant and important of these species 
have been sufficiently described in Chapter VII (p. 199); it 
need only be recalled that there were ten or more distinct 
forms, ranging in size from the great E. tgiganteus of Texas 
to the minute E. ttau of Mexico, while the plains and forests 
were the feeding grounds of moderate-sized species, about 
14 hands high. 

In the latest Pliocene, and no doubt earlier, species of the 
modern genus Equus had already come into existence; and in 
association with these, at least in Florida, were the last. sur- 
vivors of the three-toed horses which were so characteristic of 
the early Pliocene and the Miocene. However, little is known 


296 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


about those earliest recorded American species of Equus, for 
the material so far obtained is very fragmentary. In the ab- 
sence of any richly fossiliferous beds of the upper Pliocene 
generally, there is a painfully felt hiatus in the genealogy of 
the horses ; and it is impossible to say, from present knowledge, 
whether all of the many species of horses which inhabited 
North America in the Pleistocene were autochthonous, derived 
from a purely American ancestry, or how large a proportion of 
them were migrants from the Old World, coming in when so 
many of the Pleistocene immigrants of other groups arrived. 
It is even possible, though not in the least likely, that all of the 
native American stocks became extinct in the upper Pliocene 
and that the Pleistocene species were all immigrants from the 
eastern hemisphere, or the slightly modified descendants of 

‘such immigrants; but, on the other hand, it is altogether prob- 
able that some of these numerous species were intruders. Un- 
fortunately we are in no position yet to distinguish the native 
from the foreign stocks. 

' In themiddle Pliocene, which also has preserved but a meagre 
and scanty record of its mammalian life, we again meet with 
horses in relative abundance, but of a far.more primitive type. 
They are still incompletely known, but it is clear that they 
belonged to three parallel series, or phyla, of three-toed grazing 
horses, with teeth which, though high-crowned, had: not at- 
tained to the extreme degree of hypsodontism seen in the 
species of Hquus and had a somewhat less complex pattern 
of the grinding surface, though distinctly foreshadowing the 
modern degree of complication. One of the genera (}Plio- 
hippus) was not improbably the ancestor of a very peculiar 
horse ({Hippidion) of the South American Pleistocene. These 
middle Pliocene genera were much smaller animals than the 
Pleistocene horses, aside from the pygmy species of the latter, 
of light and more deer-like proportions, and with three func- 
tional toes or digits. The median digit (3d of the original 
five) was much the largest and carried most of the weight, on 


HISTORY OF THE PERISSODACTYLA 297 


hard ground practically all of it; the lateral digits (2d and 
4th) which in existing horses are represented by the rudimen- 
tary metapodials, or ‘‘splints,” though much more slender 
than the median digit, yet had the complete number of parts 
and each carried a small hoof. Mere ‘‘dew-claws”’ as these 
lateral toes were, they may have been of service in helping to 
support the weight in mud or snow. In all parts of the skele- 
ton there are little details which show that these species of the 
middle Pliocene were not so advanced and differentiated as are 
their modern successors, but it would be.unprofitable to enumer- 
ate these details, which are of interest only to the anatomist. 

In the lower Pliocene the horses were very much more 
numerous and varied than in the middle portion of the epoch. 
The same three genera of grazing animals, represented by less 
advanced and modernized species, are found ; and, in addition, 
there was an interesting survival ({Merychippus) from the 
middle Miocene of an intermediate type, together with several 
species of browsing horses ({Parahippus and +Hypohippus). 
In these browsing forms the teeth were all low-crowned and 
early formed their roots, and the crowns were either without 
cement or with merely a thin film of it in the depressions of the 
grinding surface. The pattern of the grinding surface is so 
very much simpler than in the high-crowned, prismatic teeth 
of the grazers that it requires close analysis to detect the 
fundamental identity of plan. Such teeth imply that their 
possessors must have fed habitually upon a softer and less 
abrasive diet than grass, probably the leaves and soft shoots 
of trees and bushes and other succulent vegetable substances, 
very much in the fashion of existing deer, and must therefore 
have been chiefly inhabitants of the woods and groves and 
thickets along streams, as the grazing species were of the 
plains and open spaces. ‘‘This assemblage of the progressive 
and conservative types of horses was certainly one of the most 


distinctive features of Lower Pliocene time in North America ”’ 
(Osborn). 


298 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


In the upper Miocene very much the same conditions pre- 
vailed and, for the most part, the same genera of horses, with 
different and somewhat less advanced species, were found as 
in the lower Pliocene, so that no particular account of them is 


T-BRUCE HORS PAL fa 
i Seach * 9yf3 - 


Fig. 150. — Three-toed, grazing horse ({ Neohipparion whitney?) of the upper Miocene. 
Restored from skeletons in the American Museum of Natural History. 


needed. In the middle Miocene, however, there was a change, 
the typically grazing horses being very rare or absent and those 
with intermediate forms of teeth taking their place. Evi- 
dently, it was about this time that the horses with more plastic 
organization and capable of readjustment to radically different 
conditions began to take to the grazing habit, while other 
phyla, less capable of advance, retained the ancient, low- 
crowned type of grinding teeth and, after persisting, as we have 
seen, into the lower Pliocene, became extinct before the middle 
of that epoch. It is of great interest to observe that in the 
genus ({Merychippus) iritermediate between the browsing and 
grazing types, the milk-teeth retained the older and more prim- 
itive character of low crowns without covering of cement, 


HISTORY OF THE PERISSODACTYLA 299 


while the permanent grinders had much higher, cement-covered 
and complex crowns. In the lower Miocene, the variety of 
horses was much diminished and all had the low-crowned, 
cement-free, browsing type of teeth. Reversing the statement, 
we see that in the middle and still more in the upper Miocene 


Fic. 151. —Skeleton of t Neohipparion whitneyi, American Museum. 


the primitive and more or less distinctly homogeneous phylum 
branched out into several series, like a tree, some of the branches 
continuing and further subdividing through the Pliocene and 
Pleistocene, while others, less progressive and less adaptable, 
underwent but little change and had died out before the middle 
Pliocene. 

The Oligocene horses deserve more particular attention, 
for they were almost the half-way stage of development in the 
long backward ascent to the earliest known members of the 
family in the lower Eocene. We may pass over the John Day 
horses (tMiohippus), which were somewhat larger than those 
of the White River, but otherwise very like them, merely noting 
the presence of a slightly different genus (fAnchitherium) 


300 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


which was the probable ancestor of tHypohippus and the other 
non-progressive types of the Miocene and Pliocene. The genus 
({Mesohippus) which characterizes the White River, or lower 
Oligocene, was a group of species of different sizes, becoming 
smaller as we go back in time, the commonest one being con- 
siderably smaller than a sheep and differing more or less in all 


Fic. 152. —The small, browsing, three-toed, short-necked horse (t+ Mesohippus bairdt) 
of the middle White River. Restored from a skeleton in the American Museum. 
its parts from the horses of the upper Miocene and all subse- 
quent formations. The teeth were very low-crowned and 
fitted only for the mastication of soft vegetable tissue ; but it is 
of particular interest to observe the beginnings of the ‘‘mark”’ 
in the upper incisors in the form of a low enamel-ridge arising 
behind the cutting edge of the tooth ; the lower incisors still had 
the simple chisel-like crowns of the more ancient genera; all 
the premolars, except the first, had already acquired the 

molar-pattern. 

The skull resembled that of a very small modern horse, 
but with many differences of detail, the most obvious of which 
is the shallowness of the jaws, for depth was not needed to 


HISTORY OF THE PERISSODACTYLA 301 


carry the very low-crowned teeth, and, for the same reason, the 
ascending ramus of the lower jaw was short. The face was 
relatively short and the eye-socket, which was incompletely 
surrounded by bone, was directly above the hindmost teeth ; 
the cranium was proportionately large and capacious and the 
brain, as is shown by the cast, was richly convoluted. The 
neck was relatively far shorter than in the Miocene genera, 
the ball-and-socket joints between its successive vertebra 
were less elaborated and the odontoid process of the axis was 
in the first stage of assuming the spout-like form, being semi- 
cylindrical, with convex lower and flat upper surface. The 
trunk was proportionately long and the back sloped forward, 
owing to the greater length of the hind legs. The limbs and 
feet were elongate and very slender, but the fore-arm bones 
are only partially codssified, and the ulna, though greatly 
attenuated, was still complete. The same is true of the bones 
of the lower leg; the shaft of the fibula was hardly more than 
a thread of bone, but its full length was preserved. In the 
fore foot there were three functional digits, the median one 
enlarged and supporting most of the weight, but its hoof was 
much thinner and flatter than in the corresponding digit in the 
Miocene and subsequent genera; the lateral digits touched the 
ground and were not entirely functionless and, in addition, 
there was a small splint, the rudiment of the fifth digit. The 
hind foot was three-toed, without splint. 

The little Uinta horse ({Epihippus) is still very incompletely 
known, but gives us one point at least of greater primitiveness 
than the White River genus in that only the last two premolars 
had taken on the molar-pattern, the forward two being smaller 
and simpler. The known species of the Uinta genus was very 
much smaller than any of the White River forms and even 
smaller than some of those of the preceding Bridger formation ; 
but it should be remembered that the Uinta has been but par- 
tially explored and much remains to be learned regarding its 
fauna. 


302 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


The Bridger horses are fortunately much better known. 
There are several species of the genus tOrohippus, which form. 
a connected and progressive series ; and, though much smaller 
than the smallest and oldest of the White River forms, they were 
somewhat larger than the known representative of the Uinta, 
tEpthippus, but distinctly more primitive in all other respects. 
The incisors were simple cutting teeth, with no trace of even 
an incipient ‘‘mark,’”’ and only one premolar in each jaw, the 
hindmost one, had taken on the molar-pattern. The orbit 
was farther forward in the skull and less enclosed behind than 
in {Mesohippus, the cranium narrower and less capacious; 
the neck was even shorter and the odontoid process of the 
axis still retained the primitive peg-like form. The limbs and 
feet were conspicuously shorter in proportion than those of 
the White River genus; the ulna and fibula were stouter and 
less reduced and entirely separate from the radius and tibia 
respectively. The front foot had four functional toes; the 
fifth digit, which in {Mesohippus had been reduced to a splint, 
was completely developed in the Bridger horses, but the hind 
foot was three-toed. 

. Passing over, for lack of space, the transitional forms of 
the Wind River, we come finally to the most ancient known 
horses, the Wasatch species comprised in the genus }Hohippus, 
the ‘‘Dawn Horse,” as its name signifies; these were little 
creatures ranging in size from a cat to a small fox. Despite 
an unmistakably equine look in the skeletons of these di- 
minutive animals, it is only the long intermediate series of 
species and genera, together forming a closely linked chain, 
which we have traced back from the Pleistocene to the lower 
Eocene, that leads us to regard {Hohippus as the ancestral 
type of the horses. Were only the two ends of the chain 
known, he would be a daring ‘speculator who should venture 
to connect them. In these little Wasatch horses we have 
the evidence of,a still more ancient form with five fully 
developed toes in each foot, since the front foot had four 


HISTORY OF THE PERISSODACTYLA 303 


functional digits and indication of a splint, and _ splints, 
as the whole history of the long series teaches, always are 
found to be functional digits in the ancestor ; the hind foot had 
three toes and perhaps two splints. This preceding form 
is hardly to be looked for in America or Europe; it will be 
found, if ever, in the region whence the great migration came. 


TEBRUCE HORSFALL 
3) = 


_ 


Fic. 153. — The ‘‘Dawn Horse " (tEohippus) of the lower Eocene. Restored from a 
skeleton in the American Museum. 


In all other respects, as well, tHohippus was what we should 
expect the forerunner of the Wind River and Bridger horses to 
be. The premolars were all smaller and simpler than the 
molars and the latter in the upper jaw are particularly interest- 
ing, for they had no crests and ridges of enamel, but four prin- 
cipal conical cusps, arranged in two transverse pairs, and be- 
tween the cusps of each pair was a tiny cuspule no bigger than 
the head of a pin. These cuspules were the first step in the for- 
mation of the transverse crests, which were destined to assume 
such importance in the subsequent members of the series. The 


304 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


neck was very short, the body long, with curved or arched back, 
the limbs and feet short, and the hind limb much longer than 
the fore, making the relative proportions of the various parts of 
the skeleton very different from what they afterwards became. 

Reviewing this marvellous history of steady and long-con- 
tinued change, beginning with the most ancient genus, }Hohip- 
pus, the following modifications may be noted : 

(1) There was a nearly constant, if somewhat fluctuating, 
increase in size, leading by slow gradations from the diminutive 
horses of the lower Eocene to the great animals of the Pleis- 
tocene. 

(2) The molar teeth, originally made up of conical cusps, 
changed to a highly complex pattern of crests and ridges, and 
the premolars, one by one, assumed the size and pattern of the 
molars; the low-crowned, rooted and cement-free teeth, fitted 
only for browsing, became very high-crowned, prismatic and 
cement-covered, admirably adapted to grazing. Beginning 
in the upper incisors of the White River tMesohippus, the 
“mark” became established as an enamel-lined pit, growing in 
depth as the teeth increased their length. 

(3) The face grew relatively longer, the eye-socket being 
shifted behind the teeth and becoming completely encircled 
in bone, and the jaws were greatly increased in depth to ac- 
commodate the very long teeth. 

(4) The short neck was greatly elongated and the individual 
vertebre modified so as to give flexibility with no loss of’ 
strength. The primitive peg-like odontoid process of the 
axis became first semicylindrical and then spout-shaped. 

(5) The arched back was straightened and the neural spines, 
especially of the anterior dorsals, elongated. 

(6) The limbs grew relatively much longer ; the bones of the 
fore-arm and lower leg were fused together, the one on the inner 
side (radius and tibia) enlarging to carry the entire weight 
and the external one (ulna and fibula) becoming more or less 
atrophied. 


HISTORY OF THE PERISSODACTYLA 305 


Fic. 154.— Series of horse skulls in ascending geological order. A., } Eohippus, lower 
Eocene (after Cope). B., t Mesohippus, lower and middle Oligocene. C., + Proto- 
hippus, upper Miocene (after Cope). D., Equus. 

+ x 


* 


306 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


(7) The feet were much elongated and the median (3d) 
digit of each gradually enlarged until it carried the whole 


Fic. 155. — Right manus and left pes of Fra. 156. — Right manus and left pes of 
Equus. + Protohippus. 


weight, at the same time modifying the shape of the hoof so as 
to fit it to be the sole support of the body. The other toes 
gradually dwindled and became functionless, though often 
retained as splints. The first digit (pollex and hallux) was first 


HISTORY OF THE PERISSODACTYLA 307 


lost, then the fifth, then the second and fourth were reduced 
to dew-claws and finally to splints. Thus the pentadactyl 
horses of the lower Eocene 
were transformed into the 
monodactyl species of the 
Pliocene and Pleistocene. 

In South America the 
story of the horses was a brief 
one, for they were among the 
immigrants from the north 
and did not reach the south- 
ern continent till the Plio- 
cene, probably late in that 
epoch, for none of the three- 
toed genera have been found 
in South America. So far 


Fie. 157. — Right Fig. 158. — Right 
as known, these southern manus and left pes manus and pes of 


: { tMesohippus. Eohippus. 
equines were small and me- % “Pus imeneane 


dium sized animals, with large heads, relatively short feet 
and somewhat ass-like proportions. There were two well- 
defined groups of these animals: (1) species of the genus 
Equus, which thus, at one time or another, inhabited every 
one of the continents, Australia excepted; (2) three gen- 
era peculiar to South America and developed there from 
northern ancestors, probably }Pliohippus. Two of these 
genera (t{Hippidion and {Onohippidium) displayed curious 
modifications of the nasal bones, which were extremely slender 
and attached to the skull only at their hinder ends, instead 
of being, as is normally the case, supported for nearly their 
whole length by lateral articulation with other bones. What 
can have been the significance and function of these excessively 
slender, splint-like nasals, it is difficult to conjecture. The 
third genus (tHyperhippidium) was a small mountain-horse, 
with extremely short feet, which were well adapted to climbing. 

This is the merest outline sketch of a most wonderful series 


308 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


of gradual and progressive modifications, a sketch that might 
readily be expanded into a volume, were all the details filled 
in. While each set of organs, teeth, skull, neck, body, limbs 
and feet, might appear to advance independently of the others, 


COMIN 


IN 
r 


Fig. 159. ——Skeleton of a Pampean horse (t Hippidion neogeum), National Museum, 
Buenos Aires. For restoration, see Fig. 119, p. 214. Note the splint-like nasal bones 
attached only at the hinder end. 


in reality there was no such independence, for at every stage of 
the progression all the parts must have been so codérdinated 
into a harmonious whole, that the animal could thrive and 
hold its own in the stress of competition. Could we but dis- 
cover all the. facts of environment, on the one hand, and or- 
ganization, on the other, we should doubtless learn that the 
little {Hohippus was as exquisitely fitted to its place in the 
Wasatch world, as are the horses, asses and zebras of the 
present day to theirs. It was the response to changing needs, 
whether of food, climate, disease or competition, that was 
the main factor of development. 


2. tTitanotheriide. +Titanotheres 


This family, all of whose members vanished from the earth 
ages ago, was a comparatively short-lived group and nearly 
the whole of its recorded history was enacted in North America ; 


309 


HISTORY OF THE PERISSODACTYLA 


-WoUury 


ay} Ul 049] 


“£1098 [BINYe NY JO uNasnyA, UBd 
YS BUMIOI; poroysoy “Du YRY sopeur (wnpsnqgos wnrsayjounjrF, |) atoyJOUeyNT} | JOATY 9 AA — ‘OOL “PT 


310 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


only a few belated stragglers reached the eastern hemisphere, 
though the family may, nevertheless, have originated there. 

In the lowest of the three substages of the White River 
Oligocene the most conspicuous and abundant fossils are 
the {titanotheres, the latest members of which were huge 
animals of almost elephantine proportions. They belonged to 
four parallel, or rather slightly divergent, phyla, differing in 
the development of the horns, in the shape of the head and in 
the relative length and massiveness of the limbs. The teeth 
were all low-crowned, or brachyodont, the canines much too 
small to have been of any service as weapons and the incisors 
had curious little, button-shaped crowns, which can have had 
little or no functional importance, since they show hardly 
any wear, even in old animals. With such front teeth, a 
prehensile lip and long tongue would seem to have been neces- 
sary for gathering and taking in food. 

The {titanotheres were one of two perissodactyl families in 
which the premolars never became so large and complex as 
the molars. The upper molars had a longitudinal outer wall, 


Fia. 161. —Second upper molar, left side, of tTitanotherium. A., masticating surface; 
B., outer side of crown. 


composed of two deeply concave cusps, and two internal 
conical cusps, but no transverse ridges; the lower molars 
were composed of two crescents, one behind the other, a 
pattern which was very widely distributed among the early 
and primitive artiodactyls and perissodactyls. 

The so-called “horns” were not strictly such, but a pair 


HISTORY OF THE PERISSODACTYLA 311 


of bony protuberances from the front of the skull and, from 
their shape, could hardly have been sheathed in horn. The 
long, immensely broad and massive head resembled that of 
some fantastic rhinoceros, as did also the body and limbs. 
The brain was quite absurdly small, the cavity for it, lost in 
the huge skull, would hardly contain the fist of an ordinary 
man; these great beasts must have been incredibly dull and 
stupid, surpassing even the modern rhinoceroses in this respect. 
As is generally true in mammals which have horns, antlers, 


Fic. 162. —Skull of + Titanothertum elatum. American Museum. 


or similar weapons borne upon the skull, or very large tusks, 
the bones of the brain-case were made enormously thick and 
yet lightened by an intricate system of communicating cavities 
or ‘‘sinuses,”’ separated by many bony braces and supports 
connecting the inner and outer denser layers, which form the 
surfaces of the bones. In this way the skull is made strong 
enough without any proportionate increase of weight to endure 
the severe shock of impact, when the horns or tusks are made 
use of. The principle is the same as the engineer employs 
in designing a steel truss-bridge. The upper profile of the head 
was deeply concave, just as it is in those rhinoceroses which 
are armed with nasal horns. 


312 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


The neck was of moderate length and the body, as indicated 
by the long, arched ribs and the greatly expanded hip-bones, 
was extremely bulky and massive. The spines of the anterior 
dorsal vertebree were excessively long, forming a great hump 
at the withers. The limbs and feet were columnar, like those 
of an elephant; the feet were supported on a great pad, 
while the hoofs were mere excrescences on the periphery of the 
foot. The bones of the fore-arm were entirely separate and 
the ulna was very stout; in the lower leg also the bones were 
not codssified, but the fibula was but moderately heavy. 
This is a sharp contrast to the arrangement found in the horses 
and in those hoofed animals generally which are swift runners 
and have slender, elongate limbs and feet, such as deer, ante- 
lopes, camels, etc. Heavy, slow-moving animals, like elephants, 
tapirs, rhinoceroses, etc., almost always have separate fore- 
arm and leg-bones and generally a heavy ulna. The number of 
digits was four in the front foot and three in the hind. The 
genera differed in the proportions of limbs and feet, one 
having them longer and less ponderous than’ another, and, 
no doubt, the former was of swifter gait. 

At a certain level in the White River beds the ;titanotheres 
abruptly cease, disappearing with what seems like startling 
suddenness. In all probability, however, the extinction was 
more gradual and its apparent abruptness was due, partly at 
least, to the break in the deposition of the beds, which is very 
obvious. Such a break, or “‘unconformity,” as geologists 
call it, almost always implies an unrecorded lapse of time, which 
may have been very long. However it came about, gradually 
or suddenly, the extinction of these great animals is difficult 
to explain; no Carnivora of the time could have been formi- 
dable enemies and they had no rivals in their own walk of life. 
Their stupidity may have been a factor, but it seems more 
likely that the onset of some new infectious disease, perhaps 
imported by incoming migrants from the eastern hemisphere, 
gave the coup de grace. In the lower substage, beneath the 


HISTORY OF THE PERISSODACTYLA 313 


unconformity, where the remains of {titanotheres are so abun- 
dant, successive changes may be observed. The species with 
great ‘‘horns,” rounded, flattened or triangular, are confined 
to the upper levels; in the middle section other species, some- 
what smaller and with shorter ‘‘horns,” are found, while in 
the bottom levels the animals are much smaller and have still 
smaller ‘‘horns.”’ 

The Uinta {titanotheres were much more numerous and 
varied than those of the White River; in the upper part of 
these beds are found two genera (tDiplacodon and +Protitan- 
othertum) which already had quite prominent bony protuber- 
ances on the nose; their canines were large enough to be of 
value as weapons and the incisors were well developed and 
functional. Evidently, there was a change here in the manner 
of feeding, the front teeth were used for cropping and browsing, 
a function which in the White River members of the family 
must have been largely taken over by the lips and tongue, while 
the growth of the horn-like protuberances on the skull rendered 
the canines superfluous as weapons. This latter change is one 
which recurs frequently in different phyla of the hoofed animals, 
in which the earlier and more primitive members had canine 
tusks, and the later, more advanced representatives developed 
horns, the tusks diminishing as the horns increased. While this 
rule is a general one, it is not entirely without exceptions. 

In the lower Uinta and in the Bridger the {titanotheres 
were extremely abundant and numerically they are the com- 
monest of all fossils in those beds; no less than five series or 
phyla may be distinguished, three of them being added in the 
upper Bridger. The differences between the phyla, however, 
principally concern the forms of the teeth and the shape of 
the skull; in some the head was short and broad, in others 
long and narrow, and in others again of medium proportions ; 
some had broad and extremely low-crowned grinding teeth, 
which in others were higher and more erect. But these are 
matters of minor detail, useful as they are in pointing the way 


314 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


to a proper arrangement of the various species; in essentials, 
the forms all agreed and constituted several series of closely 


TR-BiVCe pPloRsFAL 
MAT 9 Bla sat 


Fie. 163.— ¢ Titanothere ({ Mesatirhinus superior) with long, narrow head; Bridger 
stage. Restored from a skeleton in the American Museum. 


allied genera. Comparing these Bridger animals with the 
great jtitanotheres of the lower White River, the first and 
most obvious difference that strikes the observer is the very 
‘much smaller size of the more ancient types. 
With some variation in this respect, hardly 
any of the Bridger species exceeded a modern 
tapir in stature and very much resembled one 
in proportions. The canine teeth were tusks 
pb as large as those of a bear and must have been 
Fic. 164.— Second very effective weapons; the molar-pattern was 
upper molar, right 
side of a Bridger identical with that found in the great Oligocene 
a beasts, but the premolars were simpler and 
relatively smaller. 
The skull had a straight upper profile, though in several 
of the phyla small bony protuberances were developed over 


RZ UY) y 


HISTORY OF THE PERISSODACTYLA 315 


the eyes, and must clearly be regarded as incipient stages of 
the ‘‘horns’”’ which were subsequently to become so long and 
prominent. Instead of being broad on top as it was in the 
White River genera, the cranium carried a high ridge of bone, 
the sagittal crest, which served for the attachment on each 
side of the great temporal muscle, one of the most important 
of the muscles of mastication. The trunk was less massive 
and the limbs were lighter than in the Oligocene genera, but 
the number of digits was the same, four in the front foot and 
three in the hind, and the hoofs were much better developed, 
serving actually to carry the weight and not being mere ex- 
crescences upon the periphery of a pad. Aside from the pro- 
boscis, which lends such a characteristic appearance to the 
existing tapirs, the {titanotheres of the Bridger must have 
looked much like tapirs, and in early days, when the mutual 
relationships had not been satisfactorily determined, they were 
frequently described as “‘tapiroid.”” The term is unobjection- 
able in so far as it is understood that a merely superficial like- 
ness is implied, not any real relationship other than that which 
unites all the perissodactyl families. 

As noted above, the phyla of the {titanotheres were much 
more numerous in the later than in the earlier part of the 
Bridger stage, when they were reduced to two. In the still 
older Wind River stage these two united into one. The Wind 
River animals ({Hotitanops) were similar, but much smaller, 
and occurred in incomparably less variety and abundance. 
Indeed, one of the most striking differences between the Wind 
River and the Bridger faunas consists in the great increase and 
diversification of the ttitanotheres in the latter. There was, 
it is true, a second phylum of the family in the Wind River, 
represented by the genus tLambdotherium, but this was a short- 
lived series, which left no descendants in the Bridger or sub- 
sequent formations. These were the smallest known members 
of the family and were light, slender-limbed animals, a very 
notable difference from the others. 


316 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


With the Wind River the history of the {titanotheres breaks 
off short, and from present information, can be carried no 
farther back. Possibly, there was a Wasatch ancestor, which 
only awaits discovery, but it seems more likely that these 
earliest known genera were belated immigrants from the same 
as yet unknown region, whence came the modernized and pro- 
gressive elements of the Wasatch fauna. Except for its ob- 
scure beginning, the family was pre-eminently characteristic 
of North America, and only two representatives of it have been 
found outside of that continent, one in Hungary and one in 
Bulgaria. No doubt others will yet be found in Asia. 

Both in its resemblances and its differences, as compared 
with the far longer and more complex story of the horses, the 
history of the {titanotheres has instructive bearings upon 
evolutionary theory. 

(1) Starting with two phyla, one of which speedily died 
out, the other ramified into four or five, which continued until 
the disastrous end, pursuing a nearly parallel course of develop- 
ment. 

(2) There was a great increase in size and especially in bulk 
and massiveness from species no bigger than a sheep in the 
Wind River stage to those which rivalled small elephants in 
the lower White River. 

(3) The teeth underwent comparatively little change; the 
incisors dwindled and lost functional importance and the ca- 
nines were reduced, horn-like growths taking their place as 
weapons; the premolars grew larger and more complicated, 
but never attained the full size and complexity of the molars, 
as they did in other perissodactyl families. 

(4) Horn-like, bony protuberances appeared first as small 
humps and knobs over the eyes and steadily enlarged, at the 
same time shifting their position forward, until they finally 
attained great size and were on the nose. 

(5) The skull was modified so as to support these weapons 
and endure the shock of impact when they were put to’ use, 


HISTORY OF THE PERISSODACTYLA 317 


(a) by making the upper profile strongly concave from before 
backward ; (b) by greatly widening the top of the cranium, 
where in the older and more primitive genera the high and 
thin sagittal crest was placed ; (c) by immensely increas- 
ing the thickness of the cranial bones and at the same time 
hollowing them by means 
of an intricate system of 


Fic. 165.— Series of heads of + titanotheres in ascending geological order. A., ¢ Pal- 
e@osyops, lower Bridger. B., t Manteoceras, upper Bridger. C., t Diplacodon, Uinta. 
D., t Titanotherium, extreme development of horns, White River. From models in 
the American Museum and Princeton University. 


cavities ; in this way sufficient strength was secured without un- 
due increase in weight. 

(6) The growth of the brain did not keep pace with the 
increase in the size and weight of the body and head, and this 
deficiency may have been. a factor in determining the early 
extinction of the family. 

(7) To support the huge head, stout ligaments and power- 
ful muscles were needed in the neck and trunk and these in 
turn required large bony surfaces for their attachment. To 
meet this need, the spines of the anterior trunk-vertebre were 


318 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


very much lengthened, so as to form a hump at the shoulders, 
and this elongation of the spines went on in proportion to the 
growing weight of the head. 

(8) The limb-bones increased in thickness until they be- 
came extremely massive, to carry the immense weight of the 
body, and they eventually lost the marrow-cavities, which were 
filled up with spongy bone, a great gain in strength. As is 
generally, though not universally, true of the large and heavy 
mammals, there was no coéssification between the limb-bones 
and no great increase in their proportionate length. The 
thigh-bone, or femur, lost the cylindrical shape of the shaft, 
becoming flattened and very broad, and acquiring something 
of the appearance of the same bone in the elephants. 

(9) There was no loss or codssification of elements in 
wrist (carpus) or ankle (tarsus) and no reduction of digits within 
the limits of the family. In the latest, largest and most special- 
ized genera, as well as in the earliest, smallest and most prim- 
itive, there were four toes in the front foot and three in the 
hind. We have the most cogent reasons for assuming that all 
mammals were derived from ancestors which had five toes in 
each foot, neither more nor less. If this be true, then the most 


Fia. 166.—Right manus of ¢ titanotheres. A., t Titanotherium, White River (after 
Marsh). B., t Paleosyops, Bridger, Princeton University Museum. 


HISTORY OF THE PERISSODACTYLA 319 


ancient known jtitanotheres, which were small and light, had 
already suffered the loss of the first digit in the fore foot and of 
the first and fifth digits in the hind foot, but there reduction 
ceased. With the growing body-weight, long, narrow and slen- 
der feet would have been a detriment, whereas in swift-running 
animals, like horses and deer, long and very slender feet are a 
great advantage. The contrast is both striking and instructive, 
showing the importance of a short, broad, polydactyl and pillar- 
like foot to very large and heavy mammals, all of which have 
feet of this character. 

(10) The hoofs, as shown by the terminal bones (ungual 
phalanges) which formed their bony cores, were reduced in 
size until they became mere nail-like excrescences around the 
border of the massive foot. 


3,4. Tapiride and tLophiodontide. Tapirs and tLophiodonts 


The history of the tapir family is not at all satisfactorily 
known, partly because tapirs are comparatively rare as fossils 
in all of the Tertiary formations, and still more for the reason 
that the specimens so far collected are so fragmentary, not a 
single half-complete skeleton among them. Had these animals 
actually been as rare in North America as the fossils would seem 
to indicate, they could not possibly have maintained them- 
selves for so long a time, throughout nearly the whole of the 
Tertiary and Quaternary periods. For some reason, probably 
because they have always been forest-haunting animals, their 
_ habits must have kept them in places remote from the areas 
where the accumulation of sediments was in progress, and thus 
only occasional stragglers were buried and preserved. 

The rarity and incompleteness of the material render it 
impossible to give any such full account of the tapirs as is 
practicable for the horses and ftitanotheres, but the cir- 
cumstance is less unfortunate in the case of the tapirs than in 
that of many other families. This is because these creatures 


320 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


have been so conservative and unprogressive, that they have 
undergone comparatively little change since their earliest re- 
corded appearance. They have been aptly termed “living 
fossils” and seem like belated survivors from some older world, 
out of place in the modern order of things. Attention has 
already been directed (p. 137) to the remarkable geographical 
distribution of the tapirs at the present time; Central and 
South America, southeastern Asia and the adjoining islands. 


Fic. 167.— American Tapir (Tapirus terrestris). By permission of W. 8S. Berridge, 
London. 


The tapirs are all of moderate size, going back to very small 
forms at the beginning of their history and never at any period 
developing into large animals. The only striking and un- 
usual feature about any of the existing members of the family 
is the long proboscis, a flexible, dependent snout, and, were 
they all extinct and nothing known of them but the skull, 
this proboscis could have been confidently predicated of them 
from the great shortening of the nasal bones. Small tusks, 
not showing when the mouth is closed, are formed in an ex- 


HISTORY OF THE PERISSODACTYLA 321 


ceptional way by the enlarged external upper incisor and the 
lower canine, the upper canine being much reduced and without 
function. The grinding teeth have very low crowns, pre- 
molars (except the first) and molars are all alike and of a very 
simple pattern, which has been independently repeated in 
several different orders of herbivorous mammals; in both 
upper and lower teeth, there are two elevated, straight, trans- 
verse crests. 

Except for the modification of the skull which is conditioned 
by the development of the proboscis, the skeleton might be- 
long to any one of several 
Eocene or Oligocene fami- 
lies, and it is this general- 
ized, indifferent character 
which has led to the dub- 
bing of many early peris- 
sodactyls as ‘‘tapiroids.’’ 
The limbs are short and 
moderately heavy, the 
bones of the fore-arm and 
lower leg all separate and rye. 168. —Skull of American Tapir, right side. 
the number of toes is four 
in the front foot and three in the hind. The toes end in well- 
formed separate hoofs, but behind them is a pad, which carries 
most of the weight. The body is covered with smooth, short 
hair, which in the American species is ofa uniform dark brown, 
but in the Asiatic species the head, neck and limbs are black and 
the body is white. In both, however, the young have longitudi- 
nal, light-coloured stripes and spots on a dark ground (see Fig. 6, 
p. 47) indicating what the colour-pattern of the ancestral 
forms must have been. As might be inferred with certainty 
from the low-crowned teeth, the tapirs are browsing, not graz- 
ing, animals, feeding upon leaves and shoots and other soft 
vegetable tissues. They are shy and solitary in habit and live 


usually in thick forests and near water, which they frequently 
Y 


322 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


enter, both for bathing and as a place of refuge when pur- 
sued. Under modern conditions, the only perissodactyls of 
the western hemisphere are the tapirs of the Neotropical re- 
gion, North America proper, which for ages was the principal 
home of the order, not having a single representative now. 

In the Pleistocene, tapirs were apparently more abundant 
than in any of the Tertiary epochs, but this was probably due 
to the fact that the Pleistocene of the forested regions is far more 
fully recorded than is any Tertiary stage. One species, which 
was hardly distinguishable from the Recent Central American 
form, was common in the forested region east of the Mississippi 
and in California, and a second species (Tapirus thaysit) was 
larger and heavier than the other. Except in Texas, none have 
been found in the Great Plains area, nor are they likely to be, 
for that region, then as now, appears to have been devoid of 
forests. No doubt, these Pleistocene species had substantially 
the same habits as the existing ones, but they were adapted to 
a colder climate and a different vegetation, for, except the 
Pinchaque Tapir (7'. roulini) of the high Andes, all the modern 
species are tropical in distribution. 

Concerning the Pliocene and Miocene tapirs, but meagre 
information has been obtained. Enough material has been 
gathered by the collectors to demonstrate the continuous pres- 
ence of the family in North America throughout those epochs, 
but the broken and fragmentary specimens are insufficient to 
show what the structural changes were. It should be remem- 
bered, however, that it is only in the region of the Great Plains 
and the Great Basin of Nevada that any considerable quantity 
of Miocene and Pliocene mammals have been found, and in those 
regions tapirs probably never were common. If the Peace Creek 
formation of Florida is properly classified as latest Pliocene, 
then at that time the American tapirs were essentially what 
they are to-day, for the Florida species is hardly separable from 
the modern T’. terrestris. 

Not till we reach the lower Oligocene, or White River beds, 


HISTORY OF THE PERISSODACTYLA 323 


do we get material which permits the making of definite state- 
ments regarding the course of developmental changes. The 
White River genus, + Protapirus, which is also found in the 
middle Oligocene of Europe, was a much smaller animal than 
any of the known Pleistocene or Recent species, barely more 
than half the size, in fact. The teeth show that the small 


Fig. 169. — Skull of White River tapir ({Protapirus validus), left side. Princeton Uni- 
versity Museum. N.B. This figure is much less reduced than Fig. 168. 


tusks were canines, both above and below, and that the curious 
substitution of the external upper incisor for the canine had not 
yet taken place. The grinding teeth were identical in pattern 
with those of the existing genus, but not all the premolars had 
yet acquired the form and size of the molars. In the skull 
the nasal bones had begun to shorten, but the change had not 
yet made much progress, and the proboscis must have been in 
merely an incipient stage of development. What little is 
known of the skeleton other than the skull was like that of the 
modern genus, but the bones were much smaller and propor- 
tionately lighter. 

The Eocene tapirs are still very imperfectly known; all 
that can be said of them is that they become successively 
smaller as they are traced backward in time, and that in them 
the premolar teeth were all smaller and simpler than the 


324 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


molars. The Wasatch genus ({Systemodon) is the most ancient 
member of the series yet discovered. Dating from the Eocene 
immigration, the tapirs are to be regarded as a North American 


Fic. 170. — Head of the White River tapir ({ Protapirus validus). Restored from a skull 
in the museum of Princeton University. 


family, for there is here a complete continuity from the lower 
Eocene to the Pleistocene, while in Europe they first appeared, 
probably by migration from North America, in the middle 
Oligocene. 

In South America the history of the tapirs is even shorter 
and less eventful than that of the horses; the latter, as we 
have seen, reached the southern continent in the Pliocene 
and there gave rise to a number of peculiar and characteristic 
genera, but the tapirs have been found only in the Pleistocene 
of Argentina and Brazil and only the modern genus is repre- 
sented. 

Wofully broken and incomplete as the developmental his- 
tory of the tapirs still is, the fragments are nevertheless suffi- 
cient to show a mode of evolution differing in certain important 


HISTORY OF THE PERISSODACTYLA 325 


respects from that followed by the horses or ftitanotheres. 
Certain features are common to all three groups, such as the in- 
crease in size and in proportionate stoutness from stage to stage 


Fic. 171. — Upper teeth, left side, of tapirs, showing comparative sizes. A, | Prota- 
pirus validus, White River Oligocene. B, Tapirus terrestris, modern. 13, external 
incisor. c, canine. m1, first molar. 


and the gradual enlargement and complication of the pre- 
molar teeth. On the other hand, the tapirs have been very 
conservative, and they underwent far less radical changes 
than did either of the other families. Aside from the pro- 
boscis and the modifications of the skull which the develop- 
ment of that organ necessitated, these animals remain to-day 
very nearly what they were in Oligocene times. This, then, 
‘is an example of development practically restricted to a few 
organs, while all the other parts of the structure changed but 
little. 

The extinct flophiodonts, like the tapirs, of which they would 
seem to have been near relatives, are known only from incom- 
plete material, and comparatively little has been learned regard- 
ing their history. While they were abundant and varied in 
Europe, during the Eocene epoch, they never were a striking 
or prominent element among the mammals of North America, 
where they persisted one stage later, and they did not reach 
South America. In North America they are found from the 
Wasatch to the White River. 


326 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


The White River genus (fColodon), which is fairly well 
known, might almost be described as combining the characters 
of horses and tapirs; but such an expression is not to be inter- 
preted as meaning that this genus is in any sense a connecting 
link or transition between the two families, but merely that 
in certain important respects its course of development ran 
parallel with that followed by the horses. The teeth were 
very tapir-like, especially those of the lower jaw, which, 
indeed, are hardly distinguishable from those of a tapir, and 
the premolars had the molar-pattern. The limbs were very 
light and slender and the feet long and narrow; the fore foot 
retained a small fifth digit ; the feet, especially the hinder one, 
had a resemblance to those of the contemporary horses (}Meso- 
hippus), though the median digit was not so much enlarged, 
nor the lateral ones so far reduced. It is highly probable that, 
had this family persisted till the Pleistocene, instead of dying 
out in the lower Oligocene, it would have eventually terminated 
in monodactyl forms. 

The flophiodonts of the Eocene are represented by very 
fragmentary material; so far as that material goes, it does 
not show much change from the White River genus, except 
that the premolar teeth were smaller and simpler, the limbs and 
feet retaining the same characteristics of length and slender- 
ness. The Wasatch genus ({tHeptodon) had a similar light- 
ness of limb and narrowness of feet, these characters thus ap- 
pearing at the very beginning of the family history, so far 
as their North American career is concerned. 


5. Rhinocerotide. True Rhinoceroses 


The history of the great group of rhinoceroses and rhinoc- 
eros-like animals is a very long and complicated one, inferior 
in its completeness only to that of the horses. The com- 
plexity of the story arises from the large number of phyla 
into which the families are divisible, and, despite the great 


HISTORY OF THE PERISSODACTYLA 327 


wealth of material and the admirable preservation of much 
of it, it is extremely difficult to find a clew through the mazes 
of this labyrinthine genealogy. From the standpoint of the 
existing geographical distribution of animals, few mammals 
could seem more foreign and exotic to North American life 
than do the rhinoceroses, and yet for a very long time that 
continent was one of the chief areas of their development, 
so far, at least, as that development can be followed. It is 
even probable, though not clearly demonstrable, that the 
family originated here and subsequently spread to the Old 
World, but not to South America, where no member of it 
has ever been found. The later history of the rhinoceroses ran 
its course in the Old World entirely, and the highest speciali- 
zations within the family are to be found there; in North 
America these animals are not known to have persisted beyond 
the lower Pliocene, and if they did survive, it was only as a few 
stragglers in out of the way places. 

The modern rhinoceroses are restricted to Africa, southern 
Asia and some of the larger Malay islands, Borneo, Sumatra 
and Java, and within these wide geographical limits are to be 
found the terminal representatives of at least three separate 
and quite distinct phyla, the African, Indian and Sumatran 
genera respectively (Opsiceros, Rhinoceros, Dicerorhinus). It 
will be advisable to begin the study of this peculiarly interesting 
family with a brief examination of its modern members, even 
though none of these are found in the western hemisphere. 

All the existing rhinoceroses are large and massive animals, 
ranging from four feet to six feet six inches in height at the 
shoulder, and all have solid dermal horns, except in most 
females of the Javan species! (R. sondaicus). The Indian 
and Javan species have a single horn on the nose, while those 
of Africa and Sumatra have, in addition to the nasal horn, a 
second one on the forehead. The horns, thus, do not form a 


1 The names, Javan and Sumatran rhinoceroses, are somewhat misleading, 
since both of these species are also found on the mainland of India. 


328 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


transverse pair, but are placed in the median line of the head, 
one behind the other; it should also be noted that these horns 
are solid, dermal structures, made up of agglutinated fibres 
or hairs and not having a bony core formed by outgrowths of 


F —, , 
Fic. 172. —Skull of the Javan Rhinoceros (R. sondaicus). Note the single upper inci- 
sor, and the rough surface on the nasal bones for the attachment of the single horn. 


the skull, as do the horns of most ruminants, such as oxen, 
sheep and antelopes, which are therefore called ‘‘hollow- 
horned”’ (Cavicornia). The skull, however, betrays the pres- 
ence of horns by the extremely rough areas which serve for 
their attachment and thus the presence or absence of these 
weapons may be readily determined in the case of an extinct 
species of which only the skeleton remains. The skin is very 
thick and coarse, typically ‘‘pachydermatous,” and is quite 
naked in most of the species ; but in the Sumatran form there 
is a sparse coat of hair, which is quite thick in the young 
animal. In the Indian Rhinoceros unicornis the enormously 
thick skin has conspicuous and regularly arranged folds, which 
make the creature look as though encased in armour ; the ears 
and tail are tufted with hair. In the African and Sumatran 
genera the folds are obscurely marked and not definitely 
arranged, giving the body a smoother appearance. All the 
existing species, except one, are browsers and feed upon leaves 


HISTORY OF THE PERISSODACTYLA 329 


and twigs, and they frequent forests and marshes where their 
food is abundant. Not that these and other browsing animals 
do not occasionally eat grass, but it is not their principal diet. 
The exception noted is the largest of all the living species, the 
Broad-Lipped Rhinoceros (erroneously called ‘‘White’’) of 
Africa, Opsiceros simus, which is strictly a grazing animal and 
therefore frequents more open country than the other African 
species, O. bicornis. 

There are considerable differences in proportions and 
general appearance among the various species, but they all 
have short necks, very long and massive bodies, short and heavy 
limbs and short, columnar feet, which look much like those 
of elephants, but have only three toes each. In all but two 
of the living species the upper lip is prehensile and characteristi- 
cally pointed and can be used to pick up very small objects, 
like the ‘‘finger” on an elephant’s trunk; in the Sumatran 
species (Dicerorhinus sumatrensis) the lip, though pointed, is 
horny and inflexible, while in the African O. simus it is broad 
and straight-edged. 

The teeth of the modern rhinoceroses are extremely char- 
acteristic and may always be recognized at a glance. In the 
African genus (Opsiceros) there are no front teeth, all the incisors 
and canines being lost; the other genera have on each side 
a single large and trenchant upper incisor, in shape like a broad, 
obliquely edged chisel, which shears against a still larger 
elongate and tusk-like lower incisor, that is procumbent and 
points directly forward. The Indian Rhinoceros (R. unicornis) 
is said to use its tusks as weapons in very much the same fashion 
as the Wild-Boar. Between the large lower tusks there is a 
pair of very small incisors, which can have little or no functional 
value ; the third lower incisor has been suppressed, as have also 
the canines of both jaws. The dental formula then is: 74 or ¢, 
ct, pt, m%,xX2=28 or 34 (see p. 93). The premolars, 
except the first, though somewhat smaller than the molars, 
have essentially the same pattern. The upper molars have 


330 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


moderately high crowns, yet they are purely brachyodont, 
except in the grazing, broad-lipped African species (O. simus), 
in which they may fairly be called hypsodont. The external 
wall of the tooth is broad and nearly smooth, not divided into 
cusps, as it is in the horses and tapirs, and the two transverse 
crests, which in the tapirs are directly transverse, are very 
oblique. In all the existing species additional complications 
are given by the short spurs, which project inward from the 
outer wall or from the transverse crests. The lower molars 
are formed each of two crescents, one behind the other, but 
their arms or horns are angulate, not curved as they are in 
other perissodactyls which have crescentic lower teeth. 

The upper surface of the skull is very concave in the antero- 
posterior direction and very broad over the cranium, where 
there is no sagittal crest. The nasal bones are immensely 
thick and strongly arched, with the convexity upward; both 
this arching of the nasals and the fore-and-aft concavity of the 
skull are devices for giving a strong and solid attachment to 
the great nasal horn, for the attachment of which these bones 
have an extremely rough surface, and in the two-horned species, 
a second roughened area on the forehead marks the place 
of attachment of the frontal horn. The bones of the cranium 
are very thick, but lightened by the many chambers which 
traverse them. The articulation of the lower jaw with the 
skull is in some respects unique among mammals; the post- 
‘ glenoid process is a long spike, which fits inside of a bony 
lump (the postcotyloid process) behind the condyle of the lower 
jaw, and the posterior margin of the latter is greatly thickened. 
The neck is short and stout, the trunk very long, broad and 
deep, the long and strongly arched ribs and the widely ex- 
panded hip-bones providing space for the great mass of viscera. 
The bones of the limbs are short and very massive ; the humerus 
has a very prominent deltoid ridge and the femur an unusually 
large third trochanter; the bones of the fore-arm and lower 
leg are separate, as in the massive ungulates generally. The 


HISTORY OF THE PERISSODACTYLA 331 


foot-bones are likewise extremely short and heavy, and the 
number of digits is three in each foot. Each of the five or 
more existing species has its skeletal pecu- 
liarities, every portion of the bony structure 
showing characteristic features ; but these 
are only minor modifications of the general 
plan and may be neglected in any compre- 
hensive account of the living representa- 
tives of the family. 

In order to find any American members 
of this family, it is necessary to go back 
to the lower Pliocene, where a great abun- 
dance of them is encountered, representing, 
according to Osborn’s view, four or five 
phyla; and just as in the case of the 
horses of the same formation, they were Fis. 173.— Left manus 

‘ of Indian Rhinoceros 
an assemblage curiously made up of pro- @. unicornis). 
gressive and old-fashioned, conservative . 
genera, — some were persistent native stocks, others the de- 
scendants of immigrants from the Old World, which reached 
America in the middle Miocene. There was great variety of 
form, size and proportions among these animals, North America 
at that time having a larger number of genera and species than 
Africa and Asia combined have now. Some were quite small, 
some large, though none equalled the larger modern species. 
Some of the genera had relatively long legs, but in one genus, 
| Teleoceras (Fig. 125, p. 230), an Old World type, they were most 
grotesquely short, the belly almost touching the ground, as in 
a hippopotamus. Most of these rhinoceroses were hornless, 
but +Teleoceras had a small horn on the very tip of the nose. 
In consequence of the lack of horns, the nasal bones were thin 
and weak, in marked contrast to the massive, convex nasals 
of the modern species, and, for the same reason, the upper 
profile of the skull was nearly straight. Except for minor 
details, the dentition was in very nearly the modern stage 


332 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


of development; there was a single trenchant upper incisor 
on each side, a procumbent lower tusk and between the tusks 
a pair of small incisors; the other incisors and the canines 
were already lost. One genus (tPeraceras) had lost all the 
upper front teeth. The grinding teeth had the same character 
as in the existing species, but were somewhat simpler, owing 
to less development of the accessory spurs. In the more pro- 
gressive types the teeth were rather high-crowned, though in 
none were they actually hypsodont; while the persistent 
ancient genera had teeth with much lower crowns. 

Aside from the differences in the skull, which are obviously 
to be correlated with the absence or very small size of the 
horn, the skeleton in these Pliocene genera differed but little 
from the type common to the existing rhinoceroses, and in 
all the species the feet were three-toed. In short, the denti- 
tion and skeleton, except the skull, had already attained to 
substantially the modern conditions. While the Old World at 
that time had both horned and hornless rhinoceroses in abun- 
dance, none of the genera with large and fully developed horns 
ever migrated to the western hemisphere. This is the more 
remarkable in that the great {Woolly Rhinoceros (Opsiceros 
tantiquitatis) of the Pleistocene, which had two very large 
horns, inhabited Siberia with the {Mammoth (Elephas tprim- 
genius). The latter-extended its range through Alaska and 
the northern United States, but the rhinoceros, for some 
unknown reason, did not accompany it in its eastward 
wanderings. 

The rhinoceroses of the upper Miocene did not differ suffi- 
ciently from those of the lower Pliocene to call for particular 
attention. Needless to say, there were differences between 
the species of the two epochs, but in such a sketch as this only 
the broader and more obvious changes can be taken into account. 
Even in the middle Miocene the only feature which calls for 
notice was the first appearance in North America of the Old 
World genus }Teleoceras, which became so abundant in the 


HISTORY OF THE PERISSODACTYLA 333 


upper Miocene and lower Pliocene. The middle Miocene 
species (7’. medicornutus) would seem to have been descended 
from {T7. aurelianensis of the lower Miocene of France; the 
two species agreed not only in having a small horn on the tip 
of the nose, but also in the presence of a still smaller one on 
the forehead. 

In the lower Miocene but two phyla of rhinoceroses have 
been found, both of which were the comparatively little changed 
descendantsof Oligocene ancestors ; and there was thus a notable 
difference from the rhinoceroses of the middle Miocene and sub- 
sequent stages, which were decidedly more modern in character. 
One of these phyla was constituted by those rhinoceroses 
(tDiceratherium, Fig. 129, p.239) whichhad a transversely placed 
pair of horns on the nose, not one behind the other, as in all 
of the subsequent two-horned species, of which North America 
had .but the one middle Miocene form ({T7. medicornutus) 
mentioned above. The lower Miocene ‘species of tDicera- 
thertum was a very small animal, and smaller than any mem- 
ber of the family from later formations. The tdiceratheres 
originated in North America, and the stages of their develop- 
ment may be clearly made out ; they also migrated to the east- 
ern hemisphere and have been found in France, though it is 
possible that the genus was not truly monophyletic and arose 
independently in both hemispheres. 

The second phylum is that of the hornless forms (tCenopus) 
which were so abundantly represented in the Oligocene and 
persisted with little change into the Pliocene. 

In the upper Oligocene, or John Day, the fdiceratheres 
are the only rhinoceroses certainly yet obtained, and of these 
there were several species, large and small. The hornless 
forms may have been present in Oregon, but this has not been 
clearly demonstrated. That they continued to exist some- 
where during that stage is hardly open to question, for they 
reappeared in the lower Miocene. 

From the White River, or lower Oligocene, many well- 


‘ 2 
334 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


preserved rhinoceroses, including complete skeletons, have been 
gathered in the various collections and display very interesting 
differences in the three substages of the White River beds. 
In the uppermost substage is found the apparent beginning 
of the jdicerathere phylum, though it may be traced back 
to the middle substage; the nasal bones had become much 
thickened so as to serve as a support for the horns, and these 
are indicated by a small, but very rough, area on the outer 
side of each nasal. Comparing this White River species with 
those of the upper Oligocene and lower Miocene, two dif- 
ferences may be observed: in the later species the horn- 
supports were well defined bony knobs or prominences, and 
these knobs were close to the anterior ends of the nasals ; while 
in the White River animal the places for the attachment of 
the horns were mere roughened areas, and these were well 
behind the tips of the nasals. This is not an infrequent sort 
of change, that horns should shift their position forward 
or that the portion of the nasals in front of the horns should 
be shortened. Parallel changes occurred among the ftitan- 
otheres. : 

In the middle White River all the rhinoceroses were horn- 
less, but the same two phyla may be distinguished ; the actual 
starting point of the fdiceratheres had no indication of the nasal 
horns, but may be identified as such by their close resemblance 
in other respects to the species of the upper substage in which 
the incipient horns appeared. Much commoner were the mem- 
bers of the typical hornless line (see Fig. 135, p. 256), which, 
though true and unmistakable rhinoceroses, were yet far re- 
moved in many details of structure from the progressive genera 
of the middle and upper Miocene. There are several species in 
this phylum, which constitute a series of diminishing size al- 
most in proportion to their increasing antiquity. The dentition 
was already thoroughly and characteristically rhinoceros-like, 
but a more primitive feature was the presence of a second 
upper incisor, a small tooth placed behind the trenchant one, 


HISTORY OF THE PERISSODACTYLA 335 


making the incisor formula }; the third incisor and the canines 
of both jaws were already lost. The assumption of the molar- 


Fic. 174. —Skull of thornless rhinoceros (t Cenopus tridactylus) ; middle White River 
stage. (After Osborn.) 


pattern by the premolars varied much in degree of complete- 
_ hess in the different species ; the upper molars, while having all 
\ the essentials of the rhinocerotic-plan of struc- 
\ ture, had a much less complex appearance 
\ than in the Recent genera, because of the ab- 
‘sence of the accessory spurs; and all the 
grinding teeth were very low-crowned, in 
strong contrast to the high-crowned (yet not 
properly hypsodont) teeth of the middle Mio- Eaeneit a acer 
cene and subsequent genera. of t Cenopus, show- 
As already mentioned, there was much set boe nepSHCBUE 
variation in size among the species, but 
none was as large as those of the Miocene and Pliocene 
genera, not to mention the enormous animals of the Pleis- 
tocene and Recent epochs in the Old World. The com- 
moner species of the middle White River substage (tCeno- 
pus occidentalis) was an animal nearly equalling in size the 
American Tapir (7. terrestris) and quite like that species in 


336 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


its proportions, the limbs being relatively longer and less heavy 
and the feet narrower than in the rhinoceroses of the subse- 
quent geological epochs. The skull, being hornless, had thin, 
pointed and nearly flat nasal bones, an almost straight and 
horizontal upper profile, and a short and low, but distinct, 
sagittal crest; the cranial bones were quite thin, there being 
no extensive development of sinuses within them: The artic- 
ulation of the lower jaw with the skull was only beginning to 
take on the characteristic peculiarities seen in the later genera, 
and the hinder margin of the lower jaw was not much thickened. 
Thus, many of the features which distinguish the skull in all 
Recent and Pleistocene and most Pliocene, and upper and mid- 
dle Miocene rhinoceroses were entirely lacking in tCenopus, 
yet no anatomist could doubt that the White River animal 
was a genuine rhinoceros. 

The neck was short, but not very heavy, the trunk elongate, 
but not massive, the ribs not being inordinately long nor 
strongly arched, and the hip-bones so little expanded that 
they were tapiroid rather than rhinocerotic in appearance. 
The limb-bones were relatively much more slender than in any 
existing species, and, although every one of them was char- 
acteristically that of a rhinoceros, yet the comparative light- 
ness of body and slenderness of limb gave to these bones a cer- 
tain resemblance to those of tapirs. The feet, which were 
moderately elongate and rather narrow, were three-toed, as in 
all subsequent North American species and in all existing 
members of the family. 

The most ancient and primitive representative of the true 
rhinoceroses so far discovered occurs in the lowest division of 
the White River beds and is of particular interest as throwing 
light upon the origin of the family. The genus (t7'rigonias) 
differed from that (tCenopus) which was so abundant in the 
middle White River substage in several highly significant 
particulars, though on a merely casual inspection one might 
easily be misled into thinking that the two animals were nearly 

Z 


ry 


HISTORY OF THE PERISSODACTYLA 337 


identical, for ¢Trigonias was an undoubted rhinoceros. Such 
an identification, however, would be a great mistake, for the 


Fie. 176. —Skull of ¢ Trigonias osborni, lower White River. (After Hatcher.) 


differences, though not striking, are very important. In the 
upper jaw the first or anterior incisor had already assumed the 
characteristic trenchant, chisel-like shape, but two other 
incisors were present also, thus bringing the number up to 
the original three, common to all early perissodactyls; even 
more interesting is the presence of a small upper canine. The 
lower jaw likewise had ~__ 
three incisors on each 
side, the first and third 
small, the second en- 
larged and tusk-like, but 
the canine had already 
been suppressed, and 
thus the dental formula Fic. 177. — Anterior end of right upper jaw ot 
was: i8, ci, Pi; ms 4 2S t Trigonias osborni (after Lucas). cy canine. 
42, or 14 more than the ‘ a Ri ag incisor. «2, middle incisor. 71, 
formula of the existing 
African species. The premolars were smaller and less complex 
than the molars. 

From this ancient genus may readily be inferred the steps 

Zz 


338 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


by which the peculiar characters of the anterior teeth in the 
true rhinoceroses were attained. The first stage was undoubt- 
edly an animal in 
which, as in all 
other Eocene peris- 
sodactyls, there 
were three well-de- 
veloped incisors on 
each side of both 
jaws, 12 in all, and 
moderately promi- 
nent canine tusks; 
all these teeth were 
erect. The second 
stage was the en- 
largement of .the 


first upper and sec- 


Fic. 178.— Anterior end of left upper jaw of tCenopus,A, ond lower incisors 
adult; B, immature animal (after Osborn). JI1, first . ? 
incisor; I 2, second incisor; C, canine. the latter becoming 


less erect and begin- 
ning to assume the recumbent position; at the same time the 
other incisors and the canines were reduced in size and were so 
little. used that they lost their functional importance. The 
third stage, in which the first and second lower incisors were 
horizontal and pointed directly forward, and the first upper and 
-second lower teeth were still further enlarged, the non-func- 
tional teeth reduced in size and the lower canine suppressed, 
was realized in the genus {7rigonias. There were thus but 
two hypothetical stages between this lower White Region genus 
and the tapir-like forms of the middle Eocene, so far, at least, 
as the anterior teeth are concerned. 

The skeleton of {7rigonias was, on the whole, very much 
like that of the succeeding genus, tCenopus, of the middle 
substage of the White River, but with the important exception 
that the front foot had four digits instead of three. The 


HISTORY OF THE PERISSODACTYLA 339 


pollex, or first of the original five, almost always the first to 
disappear, had been suppressed, the third or median digit was 
already the largest of the series, both in length and breadth ; 
the second and fourth, some- 
what shorter together made a 
symmetrical pair, while the 
fifth, though much the most 
slender of all, was still func- 
tional and had retained all of 
its parts. In the hind foot 
the digits had been reduced 
to three. This arrangement, 
four toes in the manus and 
three in the pes, is the same as 
is found in the existing tapirs 
and in the Eocene perissodac- 
tyls generally, with only two or 
three known exceptions. In 
the Oligocene, on the other 
hand, all the genera except the 
{titanotheres, tapirs, tlophiodonts and famynodonts were tri- 
dactyl both before and behind. 

With tTrigonias the definitely known history of the true 
rhinoceroses breaks off abruptly, and it is possible that that 
genus was an immigrant, though it is perhaps more likely that 
its ancestors existed in the upper and middle Eocene (Uinta 
and Bridger stages) of North America. Some fragmentary 
specimens from the Uinta beds, too imperfect for any definitive 
identification, are an encouragement to hope that the fore- 
runner and direct ancestor of +Trigonias may yet be dis- 
covered in that formation. It is also quite possible that one of 
the larger species of the genus tHyrachyus, so abundant in the 
Bridger and going back to the Wind River, may take its 
place in the same series. 


Fig. 179.— Left manus of ¢ Trigonias os- 
borni. (After Hatcher.) 


340 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


6. {Hyracodontide. {Cursorial and +Aquatic Rhinoceroses 


The luxuriant diversification of the rhinoceros-stem was 
not exhausted by the many phyla of what we have called the 
true rhinoceroses. Two other series, very distinctly marked 
and rather distantly connected with the first, are yet to be 
considered. These two series, the thyracodonts (in the narrow 
sense) and the famynodonts, ran courses which, in certain 
respects, were singularly alike; both were of North American 
origin and one, the fhyracodonts, was entirely confined to 
that continent, while the other sent out late migrants, which 
entered Europe, no doubt through Asia, and both ended their 
careers before the close of the White River time. Their history 
was thus a brief one when compared with that of the true 
rhinoceroses, three phyla of which persist to the present day, 
though their geographical range is greatly restricted in com- 
parison with what it was in the Miocene and Pliocene, when 
they ranged over every continent except Australia and South 
America. 

Just how to classify these three series of rhinoceroses and 
rhinoceros-like animals, so as most accurately to express their 
mutual relationships, is a question that has received several 
answers. One method suggested is to include them all in a 
single family and to make a subfamily for each of the three 
well-distinguished series; this is the arrangement which 
personally I should prefer. A second plan is to accord family 
rank to each of the three groups; while the most elaborate 
scheme, that of Professor Osborn, is as follows: for the rhi- 
noceroses, in the broader sense, he makes two families, the 
Rhinocerotide and the tHyracodontide, and divides the former 
into four subfamilies, which include all of the true rhinoceroses, 
living and extinct, of the Old and New Worlds, and the latter 
into two subfamilies, the {Hyracodontine and tAmynodontine. 
It is not a matter of very great moment as to which of these 
three schemes is followed, and I shall therefore adopt the one 


HISTORY OF THE PERISSODACTYLA 341 


proposed by Professor Osborn, in order to avoid, so far as 
possible, the confusing effect of different methods of classi- 
fication. 

As before mentioned, the subfamily of the thyracodonts 
(tHyracodontine) became extinct in White River times, during 


Fig. 180.— ¢ Cursorial rhinoceros (+ Hyracodon nebrascensis), White River stage. Re- 
stored from a skeleton in the Museum of Princeton University. 


most of which it was represented by the single genus ft Hyra- 
codon, whence are derived the names for the family and sub- 
family. The series was purely North American, and no mem- 
ber of it has ever been found in any other continent. The 
species of tHyracodon were altogether different in appearance 
and proportions from the true rhinoceroses, being lightly 
built, slender, cursorial creatures, suggestive rather of horses 
than of rhinoceroses, to which they bore much the same rela- 
tion as the slender-limbed, narrow-footed tlophiodonts did to 
the tapirs (see p. 326); in size, they were somewhat taller and 
considerably heavier than a sheep. 

The low-crowned grinding teeth had the unmistakable 
rhinoceros-pattern, and between them and the teeth of the 


342 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


contemporary {Cenopus the difference was merely one of 
size, except for one small, but not insignificant feature. The 
last upper molar had not perfectly acquired the triangular 
form characteristic of all the true rhinoceroses, caused by the 
complete fusion of the outer wall with the posterior crest, but 
the wall projected a little behind the crest, as in perissodactyls 
generally. Premolars (except the first) and molars were alike 
in structure and of nearly the same size. While the grinding 
teeth were thus hardly to be distinguished from those of the 
true rhinoceroses, the anterior teeth, incisors and canines, 
were totally different; they were very small and had simple, 
pointed and slightly recurved crowns, and were all very much 
alike in size and form. Thus, there were in the front of the 
mouth eight small, hook-like teeth, above and below, which 
were obviously quite useless as weapons; and as the skull 
had no horn,.the animal was defenceless, and must have de- 
pended entirely upon “speed for its safety from the attacks of 
the larger and more powerful beasts of prey. ; 

The skull was short, deep and thick, and the head must 
have been heavy and clumsy, quite out of keeping with the 
body and limbs. The neck was surprisingly long, longer in- 
deed proportionately than in the contemporary genus of horses 
({Mesohippus), but the neck-vertebre were relatively stout 
and strong, as was required for the muscles to move and control 
the heavy head. The body was rather elongate, but not deep 
or massive, and the limbs were proportionately much longer 
than in any of the known rhinoceroses. The limb-bones, one 
and all, despite their length and slenderness, bore an unques- 
tionable likeness to those of the true rhinoceroses. In this 
elongation of the limbs the fore-arm and thigh were the parts 
most affected, and the slenderness, though in notable contrast 
to the proportions both of the true rhinoceroses and the tamyno- 
donts, was yet much less marked than in the middle Eocene 
representatives of the thyracodonts themselves. The feet 
were long and narrow, approximating, though not actually 


HISTORY OF THE PERISSODACTYLA 343 


attaining the proportions of the feet in the White River horses 
(t{Mesohippus). There were three digits in each foot, and the 
median toe (third of the original five) was so much enlarged 
and the lateral toes (second and fourth) so reduced, though 
still functional, as strongly to suggest a monodactyl foot as the 
outcome of this course of development, had not the early 
extinction of the subfamily put an end to it. It is interesting 
to reflect that, had the flophiodonts and fthyracodonts con- 
tinued their existence to the present time and had persisted in 
advancing along their particular lines of specialization, we 
should, in all probability, have had monodactyl tapirs and 
rhinoceroses, as well as horses. 

As in the case of so many other mammalian series, the 
thyracodonts of the but partially explored Uinta formation 
are still very imper- 
fectly known.  Al- 
most all that can be 
positively stated 
about them is that 
they were smaller 
than their White 
River successors and 
that the assumption 
of the molar-pattern 
by the premolars was 
incomplete. In the 
upper Bridger beds 
also not very much 
is known regarding 
the then representa- 


tives of the series, Fic. 181.— Left manus of } cursorial rhinoceroses. <A, 
* t Triplopus cubitalis (after Cope), upper Bridger. B, 

({Trip lop us) ° So t Hyracodon nebrascensis, White River. 

much is clear, how- 


ever, that they were still smaller and lighter animals, that 
the limbs were very light, and that the number of digits in 


344 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


the fore foot had already been reduced to three, the only known 
Bridger perissodacty] of which this is true, all the others having 
four digits in the manus and three in the pes. 

Inthe middle and lower Bridger, and even in the Wind River, 
occurs a genus ({Hyrachyus) which contained a large number 
of species, ranging in size from a full-grown modern tapir to 
creatures no larger than foxes. It is among these smaller 
species that the most ancient member of the thyracodont 
line is to be sought, though it is not yet practicable to select 
any particular one. tHyrachyus, indeed, may very possibly 
have contained among its many species the ancestors of all 
three lines of the rhinoceroses and rhinoceros-like animals, 
and thus formed the starting point from which they developed 


Fic. 182.— Primitive } cursorial rhinoceros (+ Hyrachyus eximius), lower Bridger. Re- 
stored from a skeleton in the American Museum of Natural History. 


in diverging series. It is always a very significant fact when 
two or more groups approach one another the more closely, 
the farther back in time they are traced, because that can only 
be interpreted to mean that ultimately they converged into 


HISTORY OF THE PERISSODACTYLA 345 


a common term, even though that common ancestor should 
elude discovery. 

{tHyrachyus may be described as a generalized, relatively 
undifferentiated perissodactyl, from which almost any other 
family of the order, except the horses and the ftitanotheres, 
might have been derived. The incisors, present in undi- 
minished number, were well developed and functional, but not 
large, and the canines were moderately enlarged, forming 
small tusks. The premolars were all smaller and less complex 
than the molars, which had a strong resemblance to those 
. of the tapirs; in the lower jaw they were identical with the 
latter, but in the upper jaw there was more than a suggestion 
of likeness to the rhinoceroses. The skull was long, narrow 


Fie. 183. —Skull of t Hyrachyus. (After Osborn.) 


and low, hornless, and with thin, slender nasals and straight, 
horizontal upper contour. The neck was short, the body 
very long and the limbs of medium length and weight ; though 
relatively stouter than in }7riplopus of the upper Bridger and 
Uinta beds, they cannot be called heavy. The feet were not 
especially elongate and rather slender; the manus had four 
toes and the pes three. 

A brief and short-lived branch of this stock existed in the 


346 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


Bridger stage, but was not, so far as is known, represented 
in any of the subsequent stages, and was made up of a single 
genus ({Colonoceras) which had a small pair of dermal horns 
upon the nasal bones. In other respects, it was like tHyra- 
chyus. It is surprising to find that the horned series should 
have so speedily died out, while the defenceless forms not only 
persisted, but actually became more defenceless through the 
reduction of the canine tusks. A priori, one would have ex- 
pected the opposite result, but the key to the enigma is 
probably to be found in the more perfect adaptation of the 
surviving kinds to swift running. 

The second subdivision ({Amynodontine) of this family 
contains a series of animals which developed in a very divergent 
fashion and went to quite the opposite extreme from the 
cursorial thyracodonts, resembling the latter (aside from the 
fundamental characteristics common to all rhinoceroses, .in 
the broadest sense of that term) only in the pattern of the molar 
teeth and in the absence of horns. The terminal member of 
the famynodont series was a White River genus (tMetamyno- 
don) of which the remains have been found almost exclusively 
in the consolidated and cemented sands filling the old river- 
channels of the middle substage of the White River beds. 
This fact, together with certain structural features of the skull 
and skeleton, leads at once to the suggestion that these ani- 
mals were chiefly aquatic in their habits and somewhat like 
hippopotamuses in mode of life. tMetamynodon was quite 
a large animal, the heaviest and most massive creature of its 
time, after the disappearance of the giant {titanotheres, but 
was low and short-legged. 

The true rhinoceroses, save those which, like the existing 
African species, have lost all the front teeth, all agree in the 
peculiar differentiation of the incisors, which was fully de- 
scribed in the preceding section of this chapter. The thyra- 
codonts had a second scheme, the incisors and canines being 
all similar in shape, small, pointed and recurved, while still 


HISTORY OF THE PERISSODACTYLA 


‘MNIsNA] UBOLIOUTY oY} Ul UO}I] YS B WOIJ pI10zsoyY “IJOATY OTTY MA 9} JO (svosfrunjd uopouhwnja py |) sorsoourys oyenbe| Atposoddng —'FRT “oly 


ae ; 


348 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


a third mode of development was exemplified by the tamyno- 
donts, in which the canines became large and formidable tusks, 
a very notable difference from all other rhinoceroses whatever. 

In {Metamynodon the incisors were not enlarged, but were 
unreduced and functional; the upper canine was a short, 
heavy tusk, obliquely truncated by the abrasion of the lower 
tusk, which was very large. Another striking difference from 
all the other groups of rhinoceroses was the reduction of the 
premolar teeth, which, instead of equalling the molars in size, 
were much smaller and were diminished to three in the upper, 
two in the lower jaw. The molars were of the characteristic 
rhinoceros-pattern, but were very narrow, especially the inferior 
ones, in which the enamel did not surround the whole crown, as 
it normally does, but was lacking along vertical bands, where 
the dentine formed the surface. The skull was extremely pecul- 
iar and, with its very long and high sagittal crest and immensely 
expanded and heavy zygomatic arches, had a surprising like- 
ness to the skull of some great beast of prey. The face was 
very. much shortened and the skull depressed, so that the 
head was remarkably low, broad and flat, proportions which 
did not recur in any other group of rhinoceroses. The neck 
was short, the body very long and very massive, as is shown 
by the long and strongly arched ribs. ‘The limbs were short 
and stout and the feet quite primitive in character, the front 
foot retaining four fully developed and functional digits. 
No other perissodactyls of the middle White River beds, 
except the tlophiodonts and tapirs, had more than three digits 
in the manus, and thus }Metamyodon was a belated exception 
to the general rule. 

The Uinta member of this series was tA mynodon, a similar 
but smaller and lighter animal. The canine tusks were of 
more moderate size and none of the premolars had been lost, 
but were considerably smaller than the molars, and the last 
two had assumed the molar-pattern. The face was not conspic- 
uously shortened and the zygomatic arches of the skull were 


HISTORY OF THE PERISSODACTYLA 349 


not so heavy or so widely expanded as in the White River 
genus, and the skeleton was less massive. 

The genus tAmynodon is also represented in the upper 
Bridger-beds, but by a species different from that of the Uinta 
stage. This more ancient species was a smaller animal than 
its upper Eocene successor and had less enlarged canine tusks, 
but it already possessed the typical rhinoceros molar teeth, the 
only Bridger mammal of which this is true. Beyond this 
species the line, as at present understood, cannot be traced, 
though probably some species of tHyrachyus, or an allied 
genus, will prove to be the ancestor sought ; but the connecting 
link has not yet been brought to light. 

The history of the rhinoceroses and rhinoceros-like animals, 
of which a very much simplified sketch has just been given, 
is a highly complex one, much more so than that of the horses, 
{titanotheres, or tapirs, and is less fully recorded, the earlier 
chapters of the story being still missing. However, in the 
progress of discovery these chapters will almost certainly 
be recovered, and it is already possible to draw close inferences 
as to what they will reveal. The complexity of the history 
is chiefly due to the fact that, as compared with the other 
perissodactyl groups, the rhinoceros stem ramified more widely 
and gave rise to more divergent and diversified forms. At one 
extreme, we find huge, massive, slow-moving types; and, at 
the other, light, slender, cursorial creatures, almost horse-like 
in appearance, with intermediate forms of moderate size. 
Some were long and others short legged, mostly adapted to 
terrestrial life, but some with aquatic habits. The three very 
different sorts of modification which the anterior teeth (incisors 
and canines) underwent in the three principal series may be 
taken as an illustration of this divergent development, and 
to these may be added a fourth, the complete suppression of 
all the incisors and canines above and below, as is exemplified 
bythe modern African species. 

Of the three rhinoceros groups, whatever rank be assigned 


350 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


them, family or subfamily, much the most prolific in diver- 
gent forms was that of the true rhinoceroses (Rhinocerotide) 
of which seven or more phyla have been distinguished, three 
of them surviving to the present time. Only in this series 
were horns frequently present, the brief experiment, as it: 
might be called, of the Bridger genus {tColonoceras, being the 
only known instances of horns among the thyracodonts, and 
the tamynodonts were all hornless. In making the comparison 
as to degree of ramification among the three series, it should 
be borne in mind that the true rhinoceroses were the only 
long-lived group, the other two dying out before or at the end 
of the White River stage. Within the series or family of the 
true rhinoceroses, there was no great divergence of type, and 
all the members were much alike, heavy and slow animals, 
but with very great variety in the details of structure. Take, 
for instance, the matter of horns; we find both hornless and 
horned genera, the former preceding the latter in time, but, 
so far as North America is concerned, continuing in associa- 
tion with them till the end. Among the horned genera, the 
horn may be single, double in a transverse pair ({Dicera- 
thervum) or arranged one behind the other in the median line 
of the head (Dicerorhinus, Opsiceros, etc.). The single horn 
may be on the nose or the forehead ; if on the nose, it may be 
on the upper side of the nasal bones (Rhinoceros) or on 
the extreme tip and pointing obliquely forward (}Teleoceras). 
The single frontal horn was much less common, but in the ex- 
traordinary fElasmotherium, of the European and Siberian 
Pleistocene, the horn was of gigantic size and the surface for 
its attachment an enormous, dome-like boss on the forehead. 
All three of the series had their most ancient known repre- 
sentatives in North America, and it seems probable, though 
by no means certain, that they all originated here by diver- 
gence from a common stock, which was represented more or 
less closely by the genus tHyrachyus of the Bridger and Wind 
River stages of the Eocene. However that may be, true rhinoc- 


HISTORY. OF THE PERISSODACTYLA 351 


eroses flourished exceedingly in the Old World from the 
upper Oligocene to the Pleistocene, the events of the latter 
epoch restricting them to their present range. The signifi- 
cance of the American genera for the ancestry of the modern 
types can be found only in the most ancient forms, {7'ri- 
gontas and +Cenopus; the subsequent development which led 
up to the existing species of Asia and Africa went on entirely 
in the eastern hemisphere. The fhyracodont subfamily 
had no known representatives outside of North America, 
but the famynodonts sent out emigrants, which appeared 
for a brief time in the Oligocene of Europe. 

In the varied history of the rhinoceroses, the principles 
of evolutionary change which may be deduced from the recorded 
development of the horses, tapirs and {titanotheres are found 
to be applicable. 

(1) There was the same gradual increase in size from the 
earlier to the later geological stages. Not that all the phyla 
kept equal pace in this respect, and even within the same 
phylum it was the rule rather than the exception to find 
larger and smaller contemporary species. 

(2) In all of the early forms, up to the middle Miocene, 
the teeth were low-crowned; after that time there was a 
decided increase in the height of the teeth, though only in 
tElasmotherium was the fully hypsodont, cement-covered 
crown attained. In the existing African Broad-Lipped Rhi- 
noceros (Opsiceros simus), which is a grazing animal, the high, 
cement-covered teeth may also fairly be called hypsodont. 

(3) In all of the lines, as in the other perissodactyl families, 
the premolars gradually took on the pattern of the molars; 
only in the famynodonts were the premolars notably reduced 
in number and size. 

(4) The three different modes of development of the anterior 
teeth, exemplified by the true rhinoceroses, the thyracodonts 
and famynodonts respectively, need not be recapitulated 
here. It is sufficient to call attention to the fact that the three 


352 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


kinds of modification diverged from a common starting-point 
such as may be seen in the middle Eocene perissodactyls 
generally, and that in each series the transformation was 
gradual. 

(5) The modification of the skull followed several different 
courses, as designated by the major and minor subdivisions 
of families, subfamilies and phyla. The development of horns, 
whether single or double, in transverse or longitudinal pairs, 
was the most important single influence in transforming the 
skull, as determined by the mechanical adjustment necessary 
to make these weapons effective, but even in the hornless 
forms changes went on, and in all the phyla the skull departed 
more and more widely from the primitive Eocene type in 
each succeeding geological stage. The most aberrant form 
of skull was that of the hornless and presumably aquatic 
{Metamynodon, in which the greatly shortened face, high 
sagittal crest and extremely wide zygomatic arches were alto- 
gether exceptional. 

(6) When the history of any horned phylum is at all com- 
plete, the development of the horns may be followed step by 
step from the marks which they left upon the skull. Asa rule, 
the story was one of gradual enlargement, but, in one case at 
least, an incipient horn apparently failed to enlarge and was 
eventually lost. 

(7) In the light, slender and cursorial thyracodonts the 
mode of development resembled that of the horses, as appears 
in the elongation of the neck, limbs and feet, in the enlarge- 
ment of the median toe and concomitant reduction of the 
lateral digits. Also, as in the horses, the elongation of the 
limbs began to be noteworthy while the body-weight was small 
and was consequently accompanied by great slenderness; as 
the body-weight increased, the limbs became stouter, to yield 
the necessary support. 

(8) In the phyla composed of massive animals the principle 
of change agreed with that exemplified by the {titanotheres, 


HISTORY OF THE PERISSODACTYLA 353 


increasing body-weight being the determining factor in both 
cases. When this increase began to be decided, the reduction 
of digits ceased at the point which had already been reached 
in any particular series, three in both manus and pes in the 
true rhinoceroses, four in the manus and three in the pes 
in the famynodonts. Very heavy animals require broad, 
columnar feet to support them, and hence the similarity of 
appearance in such widely separated groups as elephants, 
rhinoceroses and hippopotamuses, not to mention several 
extinct orders and families. Among the larger and heavier 
rhinoceroses, as in those of the present time, there was great 
variety in the proportionate lengths of the limbs, body and 
feet. 

In brief, the great complexity of the history of the rhinoc- 
eroses is due to the many divergent and parallel phyla into 
which these animals may be grouped. Broadly speaking, 
they may be subdivided into the slender, cursorial types and 
the heavy, slow-moving types, the former developing in a man- 
ner similar to that shown by the horses, while the latter were 
modified after the fashion of the ftitanotheres. Obviously 
the load to be supported by the legs and feet was a very impor- 
tant factor in determining the character of evolutionary 
change. 


II. tAncyLorpopa. {CLAWED PERISSODACTYLS 


The very extraordinary and aberrant animals which are 
referable to this suborder have been understood only since 
the year 1888, for, as was shown in an earlier chapter (p. 41) 
their scattered parts had been assigned to two different mam- 
malian orders, the skull to the perissodactyls and the feet to 
the pangolins, or scaly anteaters (Pholidota) of the Old World, 
since it occurred to no one that the same animal could have 
such a skull and teeth in combination with such feet. 

The history of the Ancylopoda is still very incomplete, 


only four genera, of the lower Pliocene, middle and lower 
2a 


354 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


Miocene, and the middle Eocene respectively, being at all 
adequately known, but even in this imperfect form the story 
is worth telling. The suborder was probably of American 
origin and its most ancient known member existed in the middle 
Eocene. Both in Europe and North America the group per- 
sisted into the lower Pliocene and it is believed, though not 
clearly demonstrated, that in eastern Asia it continued even 
into the Pleistocene. All the genera of the suborder may be 
included in a single family. 


7. {Chalicotheriide. tChalicotheres 


The specimens which so far have been found in the Ameri- 
can middle and upper Miocene and lower Pliocene are very 
fragmentary, consisting of little more than teeth, and give 
no information other than to demonstrate the presence of the 
family in North America during that period of time. On the 
other hand, the European genera of the middle Miocene and 
lower Pliocene are well known and may or may not have 
been closely similar to their American contemporaries, though 
they were undoubtedly larger. In these most peculiar and gro- 
tesque animals (;Macrotherium and {Chalicotherium) the head 
was relatively small, the teeth were very low-crowned and 
adapted only to a diet of soft vegetable substances and the 
mode of feeding must have been that of browsing upon leaves 
and shoots of trees and bushes ; the premolars had not acquired 
the molar-pattern, which was very exceptional for perisso- 
dactyls of'so late a time, such a difference between the two 
classes of teeth being characteristic of the Eocene members 
of the order; the incisors and canines were reduced, but the 
formula is not definitely known. 

The neck was of moderate length, the body very long, and 
the limbs were also elongate, especially the anterior pair, in 
consequence of which the back sloped downward from the 
shoulders to the rump; the two fore-arm bones were fused 


HISTORY OF THE PERISSODACTYLA 355 


together, and these, with the thigh-bones, were the longest 
segments of the limbs. The special peculiarity of these ani- 
mals was in the character of the feet, which had three toes, 
each armed with a huge claw, instead of terminating in a hoof, 
as it does in all normal perissodactyls. The external digit, 
which, in the absence of the fifth, was the fourth, was the largest 
of the series and apparently bore the most of the weight, a 
notable departure from the normal perissodactyl symmetry, 
in which the third or median toe is the largest. The hind 
feet were considerably smaller than the fore, but had similar 
claws. 

Many suggestions have been offered as to the manner in 
which these great claws were employed. The teeth demon- 
strate that these animals could not have had predaceous habits, 
but must have been inoffensive plant-feeders. As no such 
herbivorous creatures are living now, it is impossible to reach 
a definitive solution of the problem, which is further compli- 
cated by the fact that in two other orders of hoofed mammals, 
Artiodactyla and +Toxodontia, a more or less similar trans- 
formation of hoofs into claws took place, and among the eden- 
tates the large, herbivorous tground-sloths (}Gravigrada) had 
enormous claws. It is inadmissible to suppose that these 
great fchalicotheres could have been burrowers, or tree- 
climbers, or that they pursued and slaughtered prey of any 
kind, for, aside from the character of the teeth, such heavy and 
slow-moving beasts would have been utterly inefficient at 
work of that sort. No doubt, the claws were used, to some 
extent, as weapons of defence, as the existing South American 
Ant-Bear (Myrmecophaga jubata) uses his formidable claws ; 
probably also some, if not all, of these clawed ungulates would 
employ the fore feet in digging for roots and tubers, as is done 
by the bears generally. Many years ago, the late Sir Richard 
Owen suggested with reference to the. fground-sloths that the 
principal use of the fore feet, other than that of locomotion, 
was to draw down within reach of the long tongue and pre- 


356 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


hensile upper lip the branches upon which they browsed. 
This explanation may perhaps be applicable to all of these 
aberrant and exceptional groups of hoofed animals. 

In the lower Miocene (Arikaree stage) of North America 
well-nigh complete skeletons of a large {chalicothere ({Moro- 
pus, Fig. 180, p. 240) have been obtained, an animal which 
considerably exceeded a large horse in bulk and stature. In 
structure this genus had departed less widely from the normal 
perissodactyl type than the genera of the European Miocene 
and Pliocene above described and was in many respects more 
primitive. It could not, however, have been directly ancestral 
to the European forms, though indicating in a general sort of 
way what the ancestral 
type must have been. 
{tMoropus had a relatively 
small, slender and pointed 
head, a long neck, much 
longer than in the Euro- 
pean genera, and long fore 
legs; the shorter hind legs 
gave the back a steep in- 
clination from the shoul- 
derstotherump. The pro- 
portions of the head, neck 
and limbs suggest those of 
a giraffe, in less exaggerated 
form, but the likeness is 
more marked in the skele- 
ton than in the restoration 


Fic. 185. — Left manus of lower Miocene tchal- 2 
icothere ({Moropus). (After Peterson.) and is at best a distant one. 


The feet were armed with 


the great claws characteristic of the suborder, but the fore foot, 
in addition to the three functional toes, had a long splint, 
representing the rudimentary fifth digit ; of the first, or pollex, 
no trace remained. The perissodactyl plan of symmetry had 


HISTORY OF THE PERISSODACTYLA 357 


not yet been lost, the third or median digit being the longest 
of the series. In the hind foot, which had only three toes, the 
departure from the perissodactyl arrangement had already 
begun, and the third and fourth digits (7.e. of the original five) 
were of nearly equal size, both in length and thickness, while 
the second was smaller. 

The family is represented in the John Day, or upper Oligo- 
cene, by specimens which are sufficiently characteristic to 
prove that they are properly referable to this group. They 
have been assigned to the same genus as that of the lower 
Miocene, but whether the identification is justified remains 
to be determined. 

In the lower White River beds of Canada is found a much 
smaller animal of this family, but the material is too fragmen- 
tary for generic identification. Something more is known of 
a genus ({Schizotherium) from the European Oligocene, like- 
wise much smaller than the Miocene and Pliocene forms, 
which had four, or possibly even five, functional digits, in the 
manus, but it has not been ascertained whether the trans- 
‘formation of hoofs into claws had already taken place. 

It is not yet practicable to determine the relationships of 
the European and American {chalicotheres to one another, 
because of the imperfect nature of most of the material. 

The molar teeth of the {chalicotheres were suggestively 
like those of the {titanotheres, and, were the teeth alone to be 
taken into account, no one could hesitate to regard the two 
families as closely related. 

The most ancient known member of the fly is the genus 
+tEHomoropus, from the Bridger Eocene, which will be described 
by Professor Osborn in a paper soon to appear. tHomoropus 
was much nearer to the normal perissodactyls than were the 
genera from the Oligocene and Miocene above described. 


CHAPTER IX 
HISTORY OF THE ARTIODACTYLA 


THE artiodactyls are and for a very long time have been 
a very much larger and more variegated group than the peris- 
sodactyls, and the Old World has been and still is their head- 
quarters and area of special development, where they are 
represented in far greater number and variety than in the 
New; the perissodactyls, on the other hand, flourished espe- 
cially in North America, as was shown in the preceding chapter. 
At the present time the artiodactyls are the dominant ungulate 
order, far outnumbering all the others combined, and include 
an assemblage of varied types, which, when superficially 
examined, appear to be an arbitrary and unnatural group. 
What could seem more unlike than a dainty little mouse-deer,’ 
no larger than a hare, a stag, a camel, a giraffe, a bison and 
a hippopotamus? Yet, in spite of this wonderful diversity 
of size, proportions, appearance and habits, there is a genuine 
unity of structure throughout the order, which makes their 
association in a single group altogether natural and proper, 
especially as these structural characters are not found united 
in any other group. 4 

It would be superfluous to enumerate all of the diagnostic 
characters which, on the one hand, unite all the living and 
extinct artiodactyls and, on the other, distinguish them from 
all other hoofed animals, and it will suffice to mention a few 
of the more significant of these features. 

As the name implies, the artiodactyls typically have an 
even number of toes in each foot, four or two; though this 
rule may be departed from and we find members of the order 

358 


HISTORY OF THE ARTIODACTYLA 359 


with five digits or three, just as the tapirs 
and nearly all the Eocene genera of perisso- 
dactyls had four toes in the manus. Much 
more important is the fact that the plane of 
symmetry, which in the perissodactyls bisects 
the third digit and is therefore said to be 
mesaxonic, passes between the third and 
fourth digit and is paraxonic. The third 
and fourth digits always form an equal and 
symmetrical pair and are the “‘irreducible 
minimum,” beyond which the number of toes 
cannot be diminished. A single-toed artio- 
dactyl would seem to be an anatomical im- 
possibility ; at all events, such a monstrosity 
was never known. Hence the term ‘‘cloven” 
or ‘‘divided”’ hoof, which seems to take the 
solid hoof of the horse 
as the norm ; but ‘‘cloven 
or divided,’ while ex- 
pressing the appearance 


Fig. 186. — Left fore- 
arm bones of the 
Domestic Pig (Sus 
scrofa). R., radius. 
U., ulna. ol., olecra- 
non. 


Fie. 187.— Left manus 
of Pig. S., scaphoid. 
ZL, lunar. Py., pyrami- 
dal. Pis., pisiform. Td., 
trapezoid. M., mag- 
num. U., unciform. 
Mc. I, second, Me. II, 
third, Mc. IIT, fourth, 
Mc. IV, fifth, meta- 
carpals. 


of the foot with sufficient accuracy, is 
erroneous, if taken to mean the splitting 
of what was once continuous. 

Especially characteristic of the order 
is the structure of the ankle, or ‘‘hock- 
joint”’ of the hind limb. The ankle-bone, 


yor astragalus, has a double pulley, the 


upper and lower ends being of quite similar 
shape; its lower end is almost equally 
divided between the cuboid and navic- 
ular, which are made concave to receive 
it. This type of astragalus is altogether 
peculiar to the artiodactyls, all of which 
possess it; it is unlike that of any other 
mammal whatever and may be recognized 


360 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


at a glance. The calcaneum, or heel-bone, has a large convex 
facet, by means of which it articulates with the fibula, or exter- 
nal leg-bone; there is no such articula- 
tion in the perissodactyls. The lower 
end of the calcaneum is narrow and fits 
into a step cut in the cuboid, which 
is thus every whit as peculiar and char- 
acteristic as the calcaneum and astrag- 
alus. The femur never has the third 
trochanter, which is always present in 
the perissodactyls. Another respect in 
which the artiodactyls differ from all 
perissodactyls except the horses is in 
the much more complex mode of articu- 
lation between the vertebre of the lum- 
bar and posterior dorsal regions, which 
the former display, and even the horses 
have no such elaborate arrangement. 
Finally, another very marked difference 


Fie. 188.— Left pes of Pig. 
Cal., caleaneum. As., as- 
tragalus. N., navicular. 
Cb., cuboid. Cn. 2, Cn. 3, F 
second and third cunei- Fie. 189.— Bunodont Fie. 190,—Selenodont 


forms. Mt. II-V, second upper molar of pec- upper molar of deer 
to fifth metatarsals. cary (Tagassu). (Odocoileus) . 


from the perissodactyls is in the teeth, for the premolars and 
molars are never alike, and only in very rare instances does 
the last premolar assume the molar-pattern. Of this pattern, 
there are two principal kinds, one exemplified by the pec- 
caries, in which the crown supports a series, fundamentally 
two pairs, of conical cusps, and called bunodont, and the 
other, to be seen in all the ruminating animals, in which the 
crown is composed of two pairs of crescents and is therefore 
said to be selenodont. The bunodont was the primitive type, 


HISTORY OF THE ARTIODACTYLA 361 


whence the other was derived, and many transitional forms 
are known. 

The classification of the immense horde of living and extinct 
genera and species which are referable to the artiodactyls 
is an extremely difficult problem, which has found no thoroughly 
satisfactory solution and will not until much more is learned 
concerning the history of the order and conflicting opinions 
can be reconciled. The most important American families 
and genera are given below, though the arrangement is but 
tentative. 


Suborder A. ARTIODACTYLA {fPRIMITIVA. (Extinct genera of 
doubtful affinities) 
I. ¢TRIGONOLESTIDA. 
tTrigonolestes, low. Eoc. 
Il. tLertocua@ripa. 

t Leptocherus, low. Oligo. fStibarus, low. Oligo. 

III. tDicHosunipm. tHomacodon, mid. Eoc. f{Bunomeryzx, up. Eoc. 
IV. tANTHRACOTHERIIDA. 

tAnthracotherium, low. Oligo. f{Bothriodon, do. fArretotherium, 
do. 

V. ? JOREODONTIDA. 

{Protoreodon, up. Eoc. tMerycoidodon, low. Oligo. + Eporeodon, 
up. Oligo. f{Promerycocherus, up. Oligo. to up. Mioc. tMery- 
cocherus, Mioc. and low. Plioc. tPronomotherium, up. Mioc. 
{tMesoreodon, low. Mioc. tMerychyus, low. Mioc. to low. Plioc. 
{ Leptauchenia, low. Oligo. to low. Mioc. t{Cyclopidius, mid. 
Mioc. 

VI. tAcRiocHa@RIDA. 
{Protagriocherus, up. Eoc. tAgriocherus, Oligo. 


Suborder B. SUINA. Swine-like Animals 


VII. Tacassuipa, Peccaries. 
{ Helohyus, mid. Eoc. fPercherus, low. Oligo. tThinohyus, up. 
Oligo. +Desmathyus, low. Mioc. + Prosthennops, up. Mioc. and 
low. Plioc. }Platygonus, mid. Plioc. to Pleist. Tagassu, Recent, 
Pleist. in S. A. 
VIII. tEnreLopontipa#. {Giant Pigs. 
tParahyus, low. Eoc. fAchenodon, mid. and up. Hoc. tArcheothe- 
rium, low. Oligo. {Bodcherus, up. Oligo. {Dinohyus, low Mioc. 


362 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


Suborder C. TYLOPODA. Camels and Llamas 


IX. Came.ipa. 

}Protylopus, up. Eoc. fotylopus, low. Oligo.  Poébrotherium, 
Oligo. tPseudolabis, low. Oligo. {Protomeryzx, up. Oligo. and 
low. Mioc. tOxydactylus, low. Mioc. +Miolabis, mid. Mioc. 
tProtolabis, mid. and up. Mioc. fAlticamelus, mid. Mioc. to 
low. Plioc. fStenomylus, low. Mioc. +Procamelus, up. Mioc. 
and low. Plioc. Pliauchenia, up. Mioc. to mid. Plioc. Camelus, 
Pleist. Lama, Plioc. to Recent, 8. A. 

X. tHyPERTRAGULIDA. 

{Leptotragulus, up. Eoc. {Leptoreodon, up. Eoc.  Leptomeryz, 
low. Oligo. tHypertragulus, Oligo. + Hypisodus, low. Oligo. 
t Protoceras, low. Oligo. {Syndyoceras, low. Mioc. 


Suborder D. PECORA. True Ruminants 


XI. Cervips. Deer. 
{ Blastomeryx, low. Mioc. to low. Plioc. Cervus, Pleist. and Ree. 
Rangifer, Pleist. and Rec. Alce, Pleist. and Rec. fCervalces, 
Pleist. Odocoileus, Pleist. and Rec., N. and 8. A. Mazama, 
Pleist. to Rec., S. A. 
XII. t{Merycopontipm. fDeer-Antelopes. 
{Merycodus, mid. Mioc. to low. Plioc. tCapromeryz, Pleist. 
XIII. AnTiLocaprip#. Prong-Bucks. 
Antilocapra, Pleist. and Rec. ? tDromomeryzx, mid. and up. Mioe. 
XIV. Bovipaz. Antelopes, Sheep, Goats, Oxen, etc. 
{Neotragocerus, tIlingoceros, {Sphenophalus, low. Plioc. } Preptoceras, 
{ Euceratherium, tSymbos, Pleist. Ovibos, Pleist. and Rec. Bison, 
Pleist. and Rec. 


This list of families and genera, portentous as it is, would 


be greatly increased by the addition of the Old World forms, 
which outnumber those of the western hemisphere. 


SUBORDER SUINA. SWINE-LIKE ANIMALS 


The history of the American types of. pig-like forms is, 
in one sense, very full and complete in that the successive 
genera may be traced back to the Eocene, but, in another 
sense, the story is exasperatingly imperfect, because so much of 
the material is fragmentary. Of most of the genera, nothing 
is known but teeth and jaws, and these, though sufficient for 


HISTORY OF THE ARTIODACTYLA 363 


identification, tell but little of the structural changes which it 
is desirable to know. It is merely a question of time, when 
more adequate material will be obtained. 


1. Tagassuide. Peccaries 


The peccaries, or American swine, are now chiefly of Neo- 
tropical distribution, extending into the Sonoran region only 
as far as Arkansas; but this has been true only since the Pleis- 
tocene, for nearly the entire history of the family has been 
enacted in North America. In many points of structure the 
peccaries of the present day are more advanced and specialized 
than the far more varied and diversified true swine of the Old 
World, for it is a singular fact that such a long-lived and per- 
sistent stock as the peccaries should have given rise to so few 
variants and side-branches. Existing peccaries all belong to a 
single genus (Tagassu) and are relatively small animals, of 
unmistakably pig-like character and appearance, but far 
smaller than the Wild Boar (Sus scrofa) of Europe, or the Wart 
Hog (Phacocherus ethiopicus) of Africa, to mention only two 
of the Old World swine. 

One characteristic and thoroughgoing difference between 
the peccaries and the swine is the shape of the canine tusks. 
In the former, the tusks, though 
very effective weapons, are not 
very large and are straight and 
have a vertical direction, while in 
all the true swine the upper tusk is 
curved upward and outward, pro- "a .— Destin of he ct 
jecting strongly from the side of side. i 3, external incisor. C, 
the jaw, and the great, curved ance i ean ees eg she 
lower tusk wears against its an- 
terior side. The peccaries further have smaller and simpler 
molars, each with four principal, conical cusps (quadrituber- 
culate pattern) arranged in two transverse pairs, with 
numerous very small cuspules around and between them, 


364 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


obscuring the plan. In the true swine the teeth are much 
larger and covered with innumerable wart-like cusps, large 
and small, seldom arranged according to any definite 
plan. 

In the following particulars the modern peccaries show 
advance over the Old World swine: (1) the last lower premolar 
has taken on the molar-pattern, a very exceptional feature 
among the artiodactyls ; (2) the ulna and radius are codssified ; 
(3) there are but two functional digits in each foot; the fore 
foot has, in addition, two complete, but very reduced and slender, 
lateral digits and the hind foot only one, whereas in all the pigs 
of the eastern hemisphere there are four functional toes in each 
foot ; (4) in the hind foot the two functional metatarsals, the 
third and fourth, have coalesced to form a ‘‘cannon-bone,”’ 
a structure which is not found in any other family of the sub- 
order; (5) the stomach is complex, approximating that of 
a ruminant. 

In the North American Pleistocene the predominating kind 
of peccary was a genus ({Platygonus) which was more ad- 
vanced than the existing form (Tagassu), and, to all seeming, 
better fitted to survive, though for some inexplicable reason it 
failed to do so. It was a considerably larger animal, with 
proportionately longer and heavier legs. Its molar teeth are 
of special interest because they reproduced a type which has 
been so often repeated and independently acquired in so many 
different groups of mammals. In this molar the two conical 
cusps of each pair were fused into a high, transverse ridge or 
crest. Precisely the same modification took place among the 
true swine in the genus {Listriodon of the French middle 
Miocene. fPlatygonus first appeared in the middle Pliocene, 
and its predecessor in the lower Pliocene and upper Miocene 
showed the crests of the molars in process of formation. In the 
latter stage it was accompanied by a true peccary with tuber- 
culated teeth, which differed from the modern species in the 
simplicity of the hindmost premolar, which had not taken on 


HISTORY OF THE ARTIODACTYLA 365 


the molar-pattern. If the feet and limbs of this upper Miocene 
peccary were known, they would doubtless prove to be much 
more primitive than those of Tagassu, but they still await dis- 
covery. 

Little can be said of the peccaries of the middle and lower 
Miocene other than to record the fact of their presence in those 
formations, but those of the upper Oligocene (John Day) are, 
however, represented by well-preserved skulls, which show that 
more than one phylum of the family had arisen, though there 
was no great difference between them; they were considerably 
smaller animals than those of the Pliocene and Pleistocene. 
Still smaller was the White River genus ({Percherus) of which 
some fragmentary skeletons have been obtained. Although 
an undoubted peccary, this animal was not far from what the 
common progenitor of the peccaries and the true swine might 
be expected to resemble. The molars were quadrituberculate 
without the numerous accessory cuspules of the modern genus ; 
the bones of the fore-arm were separate and the feet had four 
functional digits each, while there was no cannon-bone in the 
pes, the metatarsals remaining free. 

No peccaries have yet been found in the Uinta, but prob- 
ably this is a mere accident of collecting. It is, however, 
possible that the White River genus was not of American deri- 
vation, but an immigrant from the Old World. In the middle 
Eocene, or Bridger stage, this series is known only from teeth 
and jaws and a very few scattered foot-bones, and these, 
though probably referable to the family, cannot be definitively 
assigned to it without more complete material. Several species, 
larger and smaller, of the genus + Helohyus occurred in the Bridger, 
where they were not uncommon, considering the general rarity 
of artiodactyls in that stage. Thus, the peccaries, though 
none of them were large, followed the usual law of mammalian 
development, and, beginning with very small forms, increased 
in size with each succeeding geological stage down to the 
Pleistocene. 


366 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


2. tEntelodontide. {Giant Pigs 


The {giant pigs, a most remarkable group of swine-like 
forms and of as yet unknown origin, appeared for the last time 
in North America in the lower Miocene, where the genus of that 
date ({Dinohyus) was the largest of known suilline animals, 
the hippopotamuses excepted. In nearly every part of the 
skeleton these great beasts displayed an unusual and aberrant 
kind of development. The incisors were long and pointed, and 
the canines formed stout and heavy, though not very long, 
tusks, which in shape were more like those of a bear than those 
of either peccaries or swine. The premolars were very simple, 
of compressed conical and trenchant shape, and occupied a 
very long space in the jaws, while the molars were relatively 
small and quadrituberculate, the crowns covered with very 
thick, coarsely wrinkled enamel. The skull was immensely 
elongate, especially the facial region in front of the eyes, while 
the brain-case was so absurdly small as to give the skull a 
reptilian aspect, when viewed from above. Evidently, these 
great pigs were profoundly stupid, in this respect rivalling 
the {titanotheres of the White River (p. 311). Beneath 
each eye-socket was a long, descending, bony flap, or process, 
and on the under side of the lower jaw were two pairs of prom- 
inent knobs, the function of which, as of the flaps beneath the 
eyes, is quite problematical. The eye-sockets themselves were 
completely encircled in bone, a rare character in the suborder. 

The neck was short, as in the pigs generally, the body not 
very elongate and the tail of moderate length ; at the shoulders, 
the spines of the dorsal vertebree were very long, making a 
decided hump, and in the lumbar and posterior dorsal region the. 
processes for articulation between the vertebra were extremely 
elaborate. For one of the pigs, the limbs were very long and 
gave quite a stilted look to the animal. As in the modern pec- 
caries, the fore-arm bones were indistinguishably fused together 
and the feet had only two toes each, the only members of the 


HISTORY OF THE ARTIODACTYLA 


suborder in which digital reduction had pro- 
ceeded so far, though the existing peccaries 
approximate this condition. There were, 
however, nodular vestiges of two other digits, 
which prove the derivation of this form from 
at least a four-toed type; no cannon-bone 
was formed. In view of the size of the 
animal, the hoofs were surprisingly small, 
which suggests that the weight was chiefly 
borne upon a pad. {Dinohyus was a very 
large animal, six feet or more in height at the 
shoulder. 

In the upper Oligocene were very large 
species of another, but closely similar, genus 
({Boécherus) though somewhat smaller than 
those of tDinohyus, and the species of the 
upper White River beds (+ Archeotherium) 
were little, if at all, smaller than those of the 
John Day. A number of specimens in the 
museum of Princeton University throw a wel- 
come light upon the habits of these strange 
creatures. In one, the external, or third, 


Fie. 192. — Right 
manus of tentelo- 
dont (tArcheothe- 
rium ingens) from 
lower White River 
beds. Princeton 
University Mu- 
seum. 


upper incisor tooth has a deep, triangular notch worn in its 


Fie. 193. —Skull of White River fentelodont ({Archwotherium mortoni). Princeton 
University Museum. For restoration, see Fig. 137, p. 260. 


368 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


postero-external face, and the lower canine has a well-defined 
groove worn on the posterior side at the base of the crown; 
other individuals show less distinct marks of similar kind. 
(See Fig. 194.) It is out of the question to suppose that 
these grooves and notches could have been produced by 
abrasion with other teeth, for no other teeth could reach 
the worn areas, and it is altogether probable that they were 
made in digging up roots. The root, held firmly in the ground 
at both ends and looped over the teeth which pulled until it 
broke, and being covered with 
abrasive grit, would wear. just 
such marks as the teeth actually 
display... While the tentelo- 
donts were thus rooters, they 
were doubtless omnivorous, like 
other pigs, and did not disdain 
a meal of carrion when they 
. y could get it. It is likely that 
Fie. 194.—Specimen showing charac- the heavy canine tusks were 


. teristic grooves of wear in the anterior ; 
teeth of tentelodont (tArcheotherium) also used as weapons, both in 


from upper White River beds. Prince- defence against the attacks of 
ton University Museum. 
carnivores and in fighting be- 
tween the males of the same species. It must have been in 
some such encounter that the animal represented by a com- 
plete skeleton in the Princeton Museum received its broken 
rib; that the fracture was made during life is demonstrated 
by the large callus growths on the broken ends, but the pieces 
did not knit. 

In the middle and lower substages of the White River the 
genus (tArcheotherium) was the same as in the upper substage 
of these beds, but the species were all smaller and some of them 
very much so, not exceeding an ordinary pig in size. Through- 
out the series, as we now have it, from the lower Oligocene into 


1 This plausible and no doubt correct explanation was suggested to me by 
my colleague, Professor C. F. Brackett. 


HISTORY OF THE ARTIODACTYLA 369 


the lower Miocene, there is very little change except in size, 
all the essential features of structure remaining the same; 
the genera are therefore distinguished by modifications of very 
secondary importance, and it is a question whether all the 
species should not be included in a single genus. The European 
genus {Entelodon, which gives its name to the family, is so like 
the American forms that by most writers the White River 
species are referred to it. It is of interest to note that the 
tgiant pigs have also been found in the marine Miocene of 
New Jersey, one of the few records of the Tertiary land mam- 
mals of the Atlantic seaboard. 

At present, the fentelodonts proper cannot be traced back 
of the lower White River beds, nor are they found in any more 
ancient formations in Europe. It is, therefore, probable that 
they were immigrants in both of these continents, presumably 
from Asia. 

The whole Eocene of North America had a series of pig-like 
animals, called the tachzenodonts or fshort-faced pigs, which 
seem to have 
been related to 
the fentelo- 
donts. They 
ended their 
career in the 
Uinta just be- 
fore the appear- 
ance of the fen- 
telodonts, and 
it would be nat- 


ural to suppose == 
Fig. 195.—Skull of fshort-faced pig (tAchenodon robustus) 
that the latter from the Bridger Eocene. Princeton University Museum. 


were descended 

from them. If, however, the principle that an organ or 

structure once lost can never be regained, is valid, then there 

can be no relation of ancestor and descendant between the 
2B 


370 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


two groups, for of the tachenodonts, even their most ancient 
representatives had lost the first premolar, giving the formula 
p#, while in the fentelodonts it is constantly pz. The tache- 
nodonts, which are much less fully known than the fentelo- 
donts, had teeth very similar in form to those of the latter; 
and their most conspicuous feature was the shortness of the 
face and jaws, as contrasted with the extreme elongation of 
‘these parts in the fentelodonts, nor did they have the bony 
flaps under the eyes or the knobs on the lower jaw which gave 
such a fantastic appearance to the tentelodont skull. Little 
is known of the skeleton except that there were four functional 
digits in the manus. The Uinta and Bridger genus (tAche- 
nodon) was larger than the Wasatch form ({Parahyus), which 
was an immigrant, probably from the same region as after- 
wards sent out the tentelodonts to America and Europe; this 
would account. for the similarity and probable relationship of 
the two subfamilies. 


SUBORDER ARTIODACTYLA {PRIMITIVA. {PRIMITIVE 
ARTIODACTYLS 


No doubt, this suborder is an artificial assemblage of unre- 
lated families, a sort of waste-basket, into which are thrown 
the groups of which no other disposition can be made in the 
present state of knowledge. As information becomes more 
complete, the various families will be redistributed among 
the groups with which they had a genuine relationship. 


3. tAnthracotheriide. +Anthracotheres 


This family was abundantly represented in Europe from 
the middle Eocene through the Oligocene, in Asia persisting 
even into the Pliocene, and were abundant in the Oligocene of 
Egypt. Migrants from the Old World reached America in 
White River times, but speedily died out, as they did not sur- 
vive into the upper Oligocene. The most fully known of these 
animals is an American species of a European genus {Bothri- 


HISTORY OF THE ARTIODACTYLA 371 


odon. Almost complete skeletons of this genus have been 
obtained in the channel sandstones of the upper White River 
substage. In size and proportions, {Bothriodon was not 
unlike a domestic pig, but had a very long head with slender, 
pointed snout; it had also a short neck, long body, short 
limbs and feet. The primitive character of this genus is made 
clear by many features of its structure; the molar teeth were 
extremely low-crowned and their cusps were so imperfectly 


HoRsFA LL 
a Se 


R-BRUCe 


Fic. 196.— tBothriodon brachyrhynchus, upper White River stage. Restored from a 
skeleton in the museum of Princeton University. 


crescentic in form as to be called buno-selenodont, as indicating 
their transitional nature, and the upper molars had five cusps 
instead of four, a very primitive feature. Another very sig- 
nificant character was the five-toed manus; the first digit, 
or pollex, was much smaller than the others. 

The second genus of the family which had American rep- 
resentatives was tAnthracotherium, which was much like 
+Bothriodon, but even more archaic in character; the molars 
could hardly be called selenodont at all. 


372 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


4. tOreodontide. + Oreodonts 


This was one of the most characteristic of North American 
artiodactyl families, and its members were exceedingly abun- 
dant throughout the upper Eocene, the whole Oligocene and 
Miocene, ending their long career in the lower Pliocene. In 
distribution the family was exclusively North American, and 
no trace of it has been found in any other continent. In the 
course of their long history the toreodonts underwent many 
transformations and branched out into several distinct phyla, 
yet through all these changes they remained singularly con- 
servative, for the transformations, some of them sufficiently 
bizarre, affected chiefly the teeth and skull, the remainder of 
the skeleton changing but little. The toreodonts were all 
small or of moderate size, none of them surpassing the Wild 
Boar in stature, nor was there any decided increase in size 
from stage to stage. One and all, they were strange beasts. 
Dr. Leidy, who first described and named most of the genera, 
spoke of them as combining the characters of camel, deer and 
pig, and called them ‘‘ruminating hogs,”’ a conception expressed. 
in the names which he gave to some of them, such as t{Merychyus 
and {+Merycocherus, both of which mean ruminant swine. 

The general proportions of most of the species were quite 
as in the peccaries, though, for the most part, with much longer 
tails; they had a short neck, elongate body, short limbs and 
feet. In one genus (tMesoreodon) of the lower Miocene a 
rudimentary collar-bone has been found, and probably all of 
the more ancient genera possessed. it, but only by an unusually 
lucky chance would so small and loosely attached a bone be 
preserved in place. As the collar-bone is superfluous in hoofed 
animals, in which the limbs are used only for locomotion and 
move in planes parallel with that of the backbone, it is almost 
universally absent in them, and in only one other group of 
ungulates, the extinct +Typotheria of South America, has its 
presence been demonstrated. In all of the foreodonts the 


HISTORY OF THE ARTIODACTYLA 373 


bones of the fore-arm and lower leg remained separate. The 
teeth were in continuous series, and there was a peculiar feature 
in the dentition common to nearly every one of the genera. 
On casual examination, one would say that the animals had 
four lower incisors on each side and that the lower canine closed 
behind the upper one, a most exceptional arrangement. More 
careful study shows that the apparent fourth incisor was the 
canine, a transformation which has also taken place in all of the 


Fic. 197. — Head of tMerycocherus proprius, lower Miocene to lower Pliocene. Re- 
stored from a skull in the American Museum of Natural History. 


ruminants except the camels, and the tooth which had as- 
sumed the form and function of the lower canine was really 
the first lower premolar; this latter change is not found among 
the ruminants, but was repeated in a few other extinct families. 

Only two genera of toreodonts ({Merychyus and tMery- 
cocherus) survived into the lower Pliocene. Both had the 
proportions common throughout the family, but tMerychyus 
was much more slender and lightly built, its lateral digits were 
reduced in size and very thin and it had hypsodont grinding 
teeth ; while }Merycocherus was of larger size (about that of a 


374 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


large domestic pig) and stouter build and had low-crowned 
teeth; its head, however, had a very different appearance, 
given by the possession of a short proboscis, the presence of 
which is indicated by the greatly reduced nasal bones; the 
jaws and face were also much shortened. The eye-sockets 
presented obliquely forward and upward, intead of laterally, 
as is usual among mammals, and were placed high in the head. 
This position of the eyes and of the entrance to the ear renders 
it probable that tMerycocherus was largely aquatic in its habits. 
Both genera had short, four-toed feet, as was general through- 
out the family and in no genus did the reduction of digits proceed 
beyond the loss of the first of the original five, the pollex and 
hallux. 

The two genera above described, representatives of two 
distinct phyla within the family, held over, as it were, from the 
upper Miocene without essential change. The phylum of the 
hypsodont and slender tMerychyus went back, with only minor 
modifications, into the upper substage of the lower Miocene, 
but cannot as yet be traced to an Oligocene ancestry ; .it is 
therefore still impossible to say just where and when it branched 
off from the main stem of the family. Future discoveries in 
the Oligocene will no doubt clear up this problem. The real 
terminal and most highly specialized member of the tMery- 
cocherus phylum and the most extraordinary member of the 
entire family was confined to the upper Miocene. The extreme 
peculiarity of this genus ({Pronomotherium) was displayed only 
in the head, which was an exaggeration of the {Meryco- 
cherus type, the face being excessively shortened and the nasals 
so reduced as to show that the proboscis was much better 
developed than in the parent genus. Theshortening of the face 
and the great vertical height of the skull and lower jaw gave 
a decided likeness to the skull of a great ape, though the probos- 
cis would mask any such resemblance in the living head. 
+Merycocherus itself went back to the upper division of the 
lower Miocene, but in the lower division it was replaced by an 


HISTORY OF THE ARTIODACTYLA 375 


ancestral genus, tPromerycocherus, which had an elongate 
face and jaws and no proboscis; but in other characteristic 
features, such as the extreme thickness and roughness of the 
zygomatic arches, it was like its descendant. tPromeryco- 
cherus contained the largest known species of foreodonts, 
some of them equalling a Wild Boar in stature, and its remains 


Fic. 198. — Head of tPronomotherium laticeps, upper Miocene. Restored from a 
skull in the Carnegie Museum, Pittsburgh. 
are found so abundantly in the middle and lower Miocene and 
upper Oligocene, that there must have been great herds of these 
animals over the plains. Probably it was itself derived from 
some of the larger species of {Hporeodon of the upper White 
River beds, but there is a gap in the history, due to the fact 
that the lower part of the John Day is almost barren of fossils 
and the connecting link has not been recovered. 
It is an interesting and significant fact that ancestral and 


376 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


derivative genera may continue to live side by side in the same 
region. {Promerycocherus, it is believed, gave rise to {Mery- 
cocherus, but survived with it into the middle Miocene. 
{Merycocherus, in its turn, produced +Pronomotherium, and, 
so far from being replaced by the latter, actually outlived it and 
persisted into the lower Pliocene. 

A third phylum of the toreodonts, which appeared for the 
last time in the middle Miocene (genus tCyclopidius), was a 


Fic. 199. — ¢Promerycocherus carrikeri, lower Miocene. Restored from a skeleton in 
the Carnegie Museum, Pittsburgh. 


series of small and very small species, of which the skull was 
almost as peculiar as that of +Pronomotherium, but in a dif- 
ferent fashion. The face was very much shortened and on 
each side a great vacuity reduced the nasal bones to mere 
splints; the elevated position of the eye-sockets, which pro- 
jected above the forehead, and of the tubular entrance to the 
ear is an evidence of an aquatic or amphibious mode of life, 
such as is illustrated by the hippopotamuses, which can float 
almost completely submerged, with only the ears, eyes and 


HISTORY OF THE ARTIODACTYLA 377 


nostrils above the surface of the water. The tympanic bulle 
(see p. 66) or bony chambers into which the ear-tubes opened, 
were of relatively enormous size and added much to the unusual 
appearance of the skull. The incisors were very small and the 
grinding teeth narrow and completely hypsodont, this and 
the {Merychyus series being the only two phyla of the family 
in which the hypsodont molar was fully acquired. The re- 
mainder of the 
skeleton differed 
but little from 
the type common 
to the whole 
family, except {yy 
for a somewhat ° 
shorter tail. 

The animals 
of this series were 
common in the 
middle and lower 
Miocene and in 

‘ ‘ Fre. 200. —Skull of jLeptauchenia nitida, upper White 

the upper sub- River. 

stage of the 

White River, but have not been found in the intermediate 
John Day. This may have been a matter of geographical dis- 
tribution, these creatures not extending west of the main 
ranges of the Rocky Mountains. In the upper White River 
the genus }Leptauchenia is extremely common, but below that 
level they suddenly and completely vanish and, as in the case 
of the {Merychyus phylum, it is not yet practicable to deter- 
mine the point in time or space of their branching off from the 
main stem of the family. Were the toreodonts not entirely 
confined to North America, we should, as a matter of course, 
explain the seemingly sudden appearance of {}Leptauchenia as 
due to immigration, and it is entirely possible that the series 
did actually originate in some part of North America which 


378 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


has left no record of its Eocene or Oligocene terrestrial life. 
On the other hand, no one can imagine that everything that 
can be known of the mammals of the middle and lower White 
River has already been learned, and at any time the sought- 
for ancestor of {Leptauchenia may be found in those beds. 

The fourth phylum may be regarded as the main or central 
stem of the family and was the one which underwent the least 
change, though it probably gave rise to all the other phyla, 


Fic. 201. — Leptauchenia nitida, upper White River. Restored from a skeleton in the 
Museum of Princeton University. 


which branched off from it at various stages in its history. 
This series terminated in the middle Miocene and comprised 
several genera, all very much alike, in the lower stages of that 
epoch. One of these genera ({Mesoreodon) displayed a very 
remarkable peculiarity of structure in the ossification of the 
great cartilage of the larynx, which seems to point to the pos- 
session of uncommon vocal powers. It is impossible to say 
whether this feature was confined to the single genus, or was 
general in the family, for only in rare instances would so ex- 


HISTORY OF THE ARTIODACTYLA 379 


tremely delicate a structure be preserved. In the John Day 
the genus {Eporeodon, which was very abundant, was the repre- 
sentative of this phylum, and the same, or a closely similar, 
genus lived in the latter part of the White River stage. 

In the middle and lower White River substages toreodonts 
are the commonest of fossils, so that the collector soon wearies 
of them (see Fig. 136, p. 259); they must have lived in great 
herds in the forests and along the streams. There were several 
species, varying principally in size, the largest about as long 
as a wolf, but with shorter legs, and the smallest not so much 
as half of that size. 
All belonged to a single 
genus, for which the 
rigid law of priority 
compels us to use a 
most cumbrous name 
(tMerycoidodon), the 
widely used term 
{Oreodon being a syno- 
nym. This genus was ; dee 
the central stock of the Fia. 202. eae ee ae aaa middle 
family, from which 
most, if not all, the others were directly or indirectly derived, 
though, as previously pointed out, we cannot in all cases trace 
the connection. In these White River animals the grinding 
teeth were very low-crowned and had considerable resemblance 
to those of a deer; the molars were typically selenodont and 
made up of two pairs of crescentic cusps. The skull differed 
little from that of the succeeding genera of this phylum; the 
neck was short, body and tail long. An especially interesting 
fact is that the fore foot had five digits, the first, or pollex, 
very small and of no functional value, but complete in all its 
parts; the hind foot was four-toed. In all of the subsequent 
genera of the family the number of digits was uniformly four 
in both manus and pes. 


380 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


In the Uinta stage of the upper Eocene lived the most 
ancient and primitive member of the family yet discovered, 
the genus {Protoreodon, which is in every respect what the 
ancestor of the White River genus should be. The functional 
transformation of the lower canine into a fourth incisor and 
the replacement of the canine by the first lower premolar had 
already taken place, but the molars were much more primitive 
than those of the White River and succeeding genera; the 
crescents were thicker and less complete, plainly indicating 
their derivation from conical cusps, and a small fifth cusp was 
present between the anterior pair of the upper molars, as in 


and other European 
families of the Artio- 
dactyla fPrimitiva. 
Before the discovery 
of +Protoreodon, the 
character of its 
molars was predicted 


Fic. 203. — Skull of tProtoreodon parvus, Uinta Eocene. by Dr. Schlosser ) of 
Princeton University Museum. N.B. This skull is Munich. The skull 
actually much smaller than that shown in Fig. 202. 

resembled that of the 


White River genera, except that the eye-socket was open 
behind, and there was no glandular pit in front of theeye. The 
skeleton is but partially known, but it has been ascertained that 
there were five toes in the manus and probably also in the pes. 

Nothing has yet been discovered in formations older than 
the upper Eocene which can be regarded as ancestral to the 
toreodonts, and this is not surprising in view of the extremely 
meagre and unsatisfactory nature of our information regarding 
the artiodactyls of the Bridger. On the whole, however, it 
seems rather more probable that the Uinta genus was an immi- 
grant (whence, we cannot say) than that the Bridger will ever 
yield the desired ancestral forms. So long as the early Tertiary 
mammals of northern and central Asia remain unknown, this 


the tanthracotheres : -- 


HISTORY OF THE ARTIODACTYLA 381 


and many similar problems can find no definitive solution. 
The question of relationship with other families is bound up 
with that of the origin of the foreodonts; many characters 
point to a connection with the fanthracotheres and, from 
the standpoint of present knowledge, that appears to be the 
most probable affinity; but, on the other hand, there are 
structural features which suggest relationship with the primi- 
tive camels. Between these and other alternatives, only the 
recovery of the middle and lower Eocene forms can finally 
decide. 

Reviewing the long history of the oreodont family from the 
evolutionary point of view, we find a course of development 
which differs in several respects from that exemplified by most 
of the families previously considered : 

(1) There was a general increase in size, though it was far 
from steady, and almost every genus had larger and smaller 
species, and in some of the phyla the species were far larger than 
in others. The members of the tLeptauchenia phylum were 
very small and no member of the family ever attained to more 
than moderate size. 

(2) The upper molars early lost the fifth cusp, and after 
that there was little change in the dentition, except that in 
the +Merychyus and }+Leptauchenia phyla the grinding teeth 
became hypsodont. 

(3) There was great variety in the modifications of the 
skull, each phylum having its own peculiarities. The orbit, 
which was open behind in the Uinta {Protoreodon, was closed 
in the White River and all succeeding genera. In the tMery- 
cocherus series, the skull first enlarged, with little change in 
proportions, then elongated the facial region, then shortened 
the face and so reduced the nasals as to indicate the presence of 
a proboscis, culminating in the grotesque, ape-like skull of 
tPronomotherium. In the tLeptauchenia phylum the skull 
became depressed and flattened and the face was invaded by 
great openings, or vacuities; the tympanic bullz were enor- 


382 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


mously inflated and the orbits and ear-openings raised, pre- 
sumably in adaptation to an amphibious mode of life. These 
were the extremes of change within the family ; the other phyla 
need not be considered. 

(4) At an early stage the digits were reduced from five to 
four, first in the pes and then in the manus, and there reduction 
ceased ; though in -Merychyus, especially in the upper Miocene 
species, the lateral 
digits were very 
slender and, had 
this series survived, 
it would probably 
have led to didactyl 
forms. 

In other respects 
there was very little 
difference in the 
skeletons of the vari- 
ous phyla and herein 
lies the peculiarity 


Fig. 204.— Left manus of foreodonts. A, tMerycoido- in the history of the 
don culbertsoni, White River. B, tMerycocherus . . 
family, great variety 


proprius, upper Miocene. 

in the form of the 
skull, and, relatively speaking, hardly any change in the body, 
limbs or feet. In the horses, rhinoceroses and {titanotheres 
the modifications of the successive genera affected all parts of 
the structure, but in the toreodonts, except for the loss of one 
digit in manus and pes and variations in the length of the tail, 
the skeletons of the latest genera did not differ in any impor- 
tant respect from those of the earliest. Such a combination 
of mutability and plasticity in the skull with extreme conserva- 
tism in the remainder of the bony structure is an exception to 
the usual mode of development, though something of the same 
sort has already been pointed out in the case of the tapirs 
(p. 325) and will recur in that of the elephants (Chap. X). 


HISTORY OF THE ARTIODACTYLA 383 


5. tAgriocheride. tAgriocherids 


This family, one of the strangest and most aberrant of 
ungulate groups, was very closely allied to the foreodonts and 
by many authorities is included in the same family. The his- 
tory of the successive steps of discovery, by which the struc- 
ture of these extraordinary animals was gradually made plain, 
is much the same as in the case of the even more peculiar 
perissodactyl family of the fchalicotheres (p. 356). The 
various parts, found scattered and at long intervals of time, 
had been referred to no less than three different mammalian 


DEAL ary 
QAQIIT PCED 


Fic. 205. — Skull of tAgriocherus latifrons, White River. (After Wortman.) 


orders! for, until the discovery of tchalicothere skeletons gave 
the clue, no one imagined that such discordant parts could 
belong to the same animal. 

The fagriochcerids had a very much shorter career than the 
allied family of the foreodonts, extending only through the 
upper Eocene and the Oligocene (Uinta to John Day, inclusive) ; 
and only two genera of the family are yet known, tAgriocherus 
of the John Day and White River, and +Protagriocherus of the 
Uinta. In the former the teeth were not in a continuous, 
closely crowded series, but there were open spaces behind the 
upper canine and first lower premolar; the same exceptional 
character of the lower teeth which was found in the foreodonts 
was repeated in the present family, the canine assuming the 


384 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


form and functions of an incisor and the first premolar those 
of the canine ; the upper incisors were extremely small and were 
shed in the adult, just as in the true ruminants. The molars 
had the selenodont pattern, but the upper molars were 
very different in shape from those of the foreodonts, resem- 
bling rather those of the fanthracothere tBothriodon (see p.370). 
Another difference from the foreodont dentition was that the 


seer 
A 


ye 


Fic. 206.—tAgriocherus antiquus, White River. Restored from a skeleton in the 
American Museum of Natural History. 


last lower premolar had acquired the molar form and the last 
upper one nearly so, a very unusual feature among the artio- 
dactyls. The skull was almost exactly like that of the White 
River toreodonts, save in a few details; the face was somewhat 
longer, the orbit was open behind and there was no glandular 
pit on the face in front of the eye. The neck was short and the 
body long, and the backbone in the region of the loins very 
stout, the vertebra of this region having much resemblance to 
those of the great cats, as though t+Agriocherus were an agile 


HISTORY OF THE ARTIODACTYLA 385 


and powerful leaper. Another likeness to the cats was in the 
very long and heavy tail, which was much longer than in the 
foreodonts, and its vertebre were hardly distinguishable from 
those of a Leopard. The limbs were relatively longer than 
those of the foreodonts and the separate bones had a suggestive 
likeness to those of carnivores, and, more specifically, of cats. 
The feet, save in one particular, were not only artiodacty]l, 
but also characteristically foreodont in structure and, as in 
the earlier members of that family, there were five toes in the 
manus and four in the pes. The excep- 
tion was that, instead of narrow and 
slender hoofs, the feet were armed with 
sharp, though not very large claws, which 
were not comparable in relative size to 
the great claws of the {chalicotheres. 
Altogether, a strange jumble of in- 
congruous characters was united in this 
skeleton. Were only the skeleton known 
without the skull, one would be tempted 
to call it that of a carnivorous artio- 
dactyl, but the teeth make such a sugges- y.. 907.—Rieht manus 
tion absurd, since they could have been of tAgriocherus latifrons, 
- : Lowe White River. (After 
used only for masticating a diet of soft wortman,) 
vegetable substances. No flesh-eater 
has, or ever had, teeth in the remotest degree like these, which 
were of characteristically herbivorous type. How such a 
creature lived: and what were its habits, are questions to 
which no satisfactory answer has been found. 
}Protagriocherus of the upper Eocene is, unfortunately, 
known only from very imperfect and fragmentary specimens, 
which, however, are sufficient to determine some significant 
points. These remains show that, while the two families of 
the tagriochcerids and the foreodonts were already distinct in 
the Uinta, they were decidedly nearer together than they 
became in the Oligocene. In other words, it is clear that the 
2c 


386 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


two groups were converging back to a common ancestry. This 
may be discovered in the Bridger, but it seems more probable 
that these forms were immigrants. Another fact concerning 
the Uinta genus, which is important, is that the upper molars 
possessed the fifth or unpaired cusp which also occurred in the 
contemporary foreodonts, as well as in the fanthracotheres 
and other Old World families. 


SUBORDER TYLOPODA. CAMELS AND CAMEL-LIKE ANIMALS 


Existing Tylopoda are all included in a single family, the 
_ Camelidz, and by several authorities no other family, even of 
extinct forms, is admitted to the suborder. My own prefer- 
ence, however, is to refer the problematical little thypertrag- 
ulids to this group, as will be shown subsequently. 


6. Camelide. Camels and Llamas 


Under modern conditions, no mammals could seem more 
completely foreign to North America than those of the camel 
family, which, now restricted to two well-defined genera, in- 
habit central Asia and the colder parts of South America. 
Yet, as a matter of fact, this family passed through nearly 
the whole of its development in North America and did not 
emigrate to the other continents before the late Miocene or 
early Pliocene, and it is this North American origin of the 
family which explains its otherwise inexplicable distribution 
at the present time. To all appearances, the whole family 
had completely disappeared from this continent in the later 
Pleistocene, but in the middle and earlier portions of that 
epoch both true camels and large llama-like animals were very 
abundant on the Great Plains and in California, while they 
seem to have avoided the forested regions. 

In order to appreciate the changes through which the 
camels and llamas have passed, it will be necessary to consider 
briefly the skeletal and dental structure which characterizes 


HISTORY OF THE ARTIODACTYLA 387 


the modern genera. In the true camels (Camelus) the first 
and second upper incisors have been lost, but the third re- 
mains as a large, sharp-pointed tooth, as are also the upper 
canine and first premolar; thus there are three pointed, spike- 
like teeth in a row, with spaces between them, constituting 
with the lower canine a very effective lacerating apparatus. 
Behind the first premolar is a long gap, the second being sup- 
pressed ; the third and fourth are grinding teeth, but unusually 
small. The molars are selenodont and high-crowned, though 
not extremely hypsodont. The lower incisors are large and 
shovel-shaped, the canine large and erect and there are but two 
lower premolars. The dental formula thus is: 74, c}, p $, m3. 

The skull is long, with the facial region much and abruptly 
narrowed, which gives a triangular appearance to the head when 
seen from above; the orbit is completely encircled with bone 
and the sagittal and occipital crests are very prominent. The 
tympanic bulle are large and filled with spongy bone. The 
condyle of the lower jaw is hemispherical and not, as it is in 
most ungulates, semicylindrical, and a curious, hook-like 
angulation is on the posterior border of the bone. The neck 
is very long, and the vertebre have the exceptional peculiarity 
that the canal for the vertebral artery runs through the side of 
the neural arch, instead of perforating the transverse process, 
and thus is invisible externally; the odontoid process of the 
axis is spout-like. The legs and feet are very long; the 
humerus has a double bicipital groove and the fore-arm bones 
are coéssified, and the ulna is so reduced that the radius carries 
the whole weight ; in the lower hind leg the tibia supports the 
weight, and of the fibula only the lower end remains as the 
malleolar bone. There are but two digits in each foot, the 
third and fourth, the metapodials of which have coalesced 
to form a cannon-bone, which differs from that of the true 
ruminants, or Pecora, in the curious way in which the lower 
ends, separated by a A-shaped notch, diverge from each other, 
and by the fact that the keels of the lower articular surfaces 


388 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


are confined to the posterior side, not visible from the front. 
The ungual phalanges are small and nodular, and the hoofs, 
which carry no part of the weight, are hardly more than nails. 
Under the other phalanges is a broad pad of elastic tissue, upon 
which the weight rests, and the separation of the toes is very 
partial. The peculiar external appearance of the camels is 
largely due to structures which leave no trace in the skeleton, 
and especially to the great humps, one or two according to the 
species, which are accumulations of fat; the ears are short 
and rounded and the hair is not woolly, but almost straight. 

The teeth and skeleton of the llamas (Lama) are closely 
similar to those of the camels, but the absence of humps, the 
long, pointed ears, the woolly hair and the much smaller size 
and lighter build give to the living animals a more marked 
difference of appearance from the camels than one would expect 
from a comparison of the skeletons alone. The dental formula 
is: 74, c+, p3, m3. The remaining upper incisor, the third, is 
recurved, as is also the canine, but the spike-shaped first pre- 
molar of the camels is absent and the other premolars are 
‘much smaller than in the latter. In the skull the brain-case 
is larger, and the sagittal and occipital crests are much less prom- 
inent. The skeleton differs hardly at all from that of the 
camels, except for its:smaller size and more slender proportions. 
The toes are more distinctly separated, each having its own 
pad. Thus, among the existing representatives of the family 
are two very well-defined phyla, each characteristic of a differ- 
ent continent. 

The Blanco stage of the middle Pliocene, which has pre- 
served but a meagre representation of the life of its time, has 
yielded a number of very large, llama-like species, not, however, 
ancestral to the modern species, for they had but one premolar 
in each jaw. From the lower Pliocene we have fuller infor- 
mation. In the Snake Creek stage the separation of the two 
modern phyla was complete, and there was a third one, now ex- 
tinct, that of the browsing or “‘ {giraffe-camels”’ ({Aléicamelus) 


HISTORY OF THE ARTIODACTYLA 389 


(see Fig. 127, p. 236),a term which must not be taken as implying 
any relationship with the giraffes, but merely a resemblance to 
them in proportions. These browsing camels were very large 
animals, but with relatively small heads and low-crowned teeth 
not suited for grazing ; the neck was extremely long, made so by 


Fic. 208.— Guanaco (Lama huanacus). — By permission of the New York 
Zoological Society. 


the great elongation of five of the vertebre (second to sixth, 
inclusive), and the legs were also very long, fitting their pos- 
sessors to browse upon trees. Much of the description of the 
appearance and habits of the Giraffe given by Flower and 
Lydekker would no doubt be applicable to these extinct camels. 
“To produce the extremely elongated neck the seven cervical 


390 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


vertebree are proportionately long, which gives a somewhat, 
stiff and awkward motion to the neck.... The Giraffe 
feeds almost exclusively on the foliage of trees . . . for brows- 
ing on which its prehensile tongueand large free lipsare specially 
adapted.”’! 

In teeth and skeleton the phyla of the true camels and of 
the llamas in the lower Pliocene did not differ very strongly 
from the living forms; the upper incisors were already reduced 
to one, but the premolars were not so small; the ulna and 
radius had coalesced and of the fibula only the lower end re- 
mained; the cannon-bones were completely formed, and that 
the pads of the feet had already been developed is shown by 
the phalanges, especially the irregular, nodular unguals. 

The most ancient known camels of the Old World are found 
in the Pliocene of India, and the first llamas recorded in South 
America are also Pliocene. Since both camels and Ilamas 
existed together in North America, it may reasonably be asked 
why only one phylum migrated to Asia and only the other to 
South America. Why did not each continent receive migrants 
of both kinds? Without knowing more than we are ever 
likely to learn about the details of these migrations, it will not 
be possible to answer these questions, though plausible solu- 
tions of the problem suggest themselves. It is to be noted, in 
the first place, that a migration from the central portion of 
North America to Asia was by way of the far north and thus 
involved very different climatic conditions from those which 
must have been encountered in passing through the tropics to 
South America. It is perfectly possible that animals which 
lived together in temperate North America should have had 
very different powers of adaptation to heat and cold respec- 
tively, and the northern route may have been impassable to 
one and the southern route to the other. To this it might 
perhaps be objected that the llamas are cold-country animals, 
but this is true only of the existing species, for fossil forms are 

1 Flower and Lydekker, Mammals Living and Extinct, p. 332. 


HISTORY OF THE ARTIODACTYLA : 391 


found abundantly in the Pleistocene of Ecuador, Brazil and 
Argentina. Another possibility is that both phyla did actually 
migrate to both continents and that only the camels succeeded 
in permanently establishing themselves in Asia and only the 
llamas in South America, though for this solution the fossils 
afford no evidence. 

The camels of the upper Miocene did not differ sufficiently 
from those of the lower Pliocene to call for special notice other 
than to remark that the two phyla of the true camels and the 
llamas were hardly distinguishable and one genus ({Pro- 
camelus) may have been ancestral to both. In the middle 
Miocene the browsing camels (fAlticamelus) reached the 
acme of their importance and made no great progress subse- 
quently. The generalized stock, from which the upper Mio- 
cene and lower Pliocene tProcamelus descended, was repre- 
sented by {Protolabis and {Miolabis, smaller animals, which 
had a full set of upper incisors and premolars and the grinding 
teeth were not so high-crowned. In most of the species the 
metapodials had not fused to form cannon-bones and probably 
there were no pads on the feet, though }Alticamelus, the 
{Giraffe-Camel, had already developed both cannon-bones 
and pads. 

In the lower Miocene the jgiraffe-camels were represented 
by the genus tOxydactylus, which was a considerably smaller 
animal than its successor tAlticamelus, of the middle Miocene 
and later formations, and had shorter neck and legs. The 
teeth, though brachyodont, were not very low-crowned. There 
was no cannon-bone, the two metapodials of each foot remain- 
ing separate. An especially noteworthy feature in this genus 
is to be observed in the character of the hoofs, which, as the 
ungual phalanges demonstrate, were narrow and pointed, 
like those of antelope and deer, and carried most of the weight. 
The member of the grazing series ({Protomeryr) was smaller 
in every way than its contemporary ({Ozydactylus) of the 
browsing line and had shorter neck and legs, though these were 


MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


LAND 


392 


oY} UI UOJoTAYS ¥ WIOIZ por04soyYy 


“ysings}}ig ‘wmnesnyy osourey 
*(sad16uo7 snphjoppRxO|) ]PULvo-sYViis| sudd0TJW] IaMO'TT — “60S “OT 


HISTORY OF THE ARTIODACTYLA 393 


already long. The teeth were present in undiminished number, 
and the grinders, while not properly to be called hypsodont, 
showed a decided tendency to assume that character. The 
feet were in the same stage of development as in tOxydactylus, 
that is to say, with two free digits and pointed, deer-like hoofs. 
We have thus the remarkable and most significant fact that, 
while the grazing and browsing camels of the lower Miocene 


Fic. 210. Skeleton of {Oxydactylus longipes. Lower Miocene. (After Peterson.) For 
restoration, see Fig. 209. 7 : 


were already distinctly separated, neither had yet attained to 
the type of foot-structure which both of them afterwards in- 
dependently acquired. This is a very instructive example of 
parallel evolution in closely related series. 

Of still another phylum of the camel family, the lower Mio- 
cene contains the only representatives yet discovered, the little 
“‘tgazelle-camels,’”’ as they may be called. The single known 
genus (tStenomylus, Fig. 131, p. 242) of this series was quite a 
small animal, much smaller than its contemporaries of the graz- 
ing or browsing series. }Stenomylus was an extremely slender, 


394 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


-cursorial creature and had a very exceptional feature in its 
dentition in the apparent presence of ten lower incisors, five on 
each side, the canine and first premolar having assumed the form 
and functions of the incisors; the molars were low-crowned. 
The head was rather small and rounded, the neck long and light, 
the limbs and feet elongate and excessively slender. The feet 
had two digits each, which were separate, not forming a cannon- 
bone, and the hoofs were narrow, pointed and deer-like. These 
delicate and graceful little animals had but a brief career, which 
seems to have reached its close in the lower Miocene. Perhaps 
their complete defencelessness made it impossible for them to 
maintain themselves against their enemies, despite their evi- 
dent capacity for swift running. 

The camels of the upper Oligocene (John Day) are still 
incompletely known, but appear all to have belonged to the 
series of grazers which led up to the modern genera. Future 
discovery may bring to light in the John Day earlier members 
of the jgiraffe-camel series, of which a possible member is 
found in the uppermost substage of the White River, or perhaps 
both phyla united in the upper Oligocene, a question which 
remains to be determined. At all events, in the middle sub- 
stage of the White River, or lower Oligocene, there is no evi- 
dence of more than a single phylum, from which the others 
were almost certainly derived, branching off from the main 
stem at different levels. First was given off the branch of the 
tgiraffe-camels, then (or perhaps even earlier) that of the 
little tgazelle-camels, and, finally, the main stem bifurcated 
into the two phyla’ of the llamas and the true camels. The 
point of origin of the tgazelle-camels is still uncertain. 

The typical White River genus ({Poébrotherium) included 
a series of species which increased in size from the earlier to the 
later portions of the stage, but showed no such structural changes 
as to call for special notice. The larger of these species was 
somewhat taller than a sheep, but of much lighter proportions, 
with small, pointed head, long neck and body and long, very 


395 


HISTORY OF THE ARTIODACTYLA 


JO TuNdsNUL ay} UI UOJaTAYS B UOT] patojsay 


“APISIIATUL) WOJOOULIG: 
“(wenqoyqny wngt9yj01990q |) OUTRO TOATY 2714 M OUT, 


1S ON 


396 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


slender limbs and feet. The teeth were present in undiminished 
number, 44 in all; the lower incisors were small, simple, nearly 
erect and ahiivell shiaped: very different from the large, pro- 
cumbent and shovel-like. teeth of the modern genera, and the 
trenchant canines..were much smaller than in the latter. The 
first premolar had: an isolated position, the second and third 
were trenchant and much extended: antero-posteriorly, quite 
as in many other; groups of primitive artiodactyls. The 
molars, which were typically selenodont, were low-crowned in 
the upper jaw, but in’ the lower showed an incipient tendency 
to hypsodontism. The. skull, by its shape and the characteris- 
tic narrowing of the ‘face, immediately suggests the modern 
type, but differed in many details of structure, the most ob- 
vious of which were the‘incompletely closed orbits, the shallow 
and slender jaws, and the, very | large, hook-like process from the 
angle of the lower jaw, which: ‘in greatly reduced. form, is pres- 
ent in both of the Recen¥isi -ygenera. The neck was relatively 
long, though by no means7so ‘long proportionately as it sub- 
sequently became, and the Yertebree had already acquired the 
peculiarity found in all the suéeeeding camels, of the exceptional 
position of the canal for the vertebral artery, save in the sixth 
vertebra, where it pierced the ‘transverse process, as in mam- 
mals generally; the odontoid process of the axis was neither 
spout-like nor peg-like, but of intermediate form, convex 
below and flat above. The body was long and light, and the 
ribs were much more slender than in the Recent genera, The 
fore and hind limbs, which were of nearly equal length, were 
very slender; the humerus had a single bicipital groove; the 
fore-arm bones were fully codssified and in the lower leg only 
the two ends of the fibula remained. The feet were already in 
the stage of development which persisted through the lower 
Miocene in all of the phyla, with two separate digits and nodular 
remnants of two others, and deer-like hoofs. 

It would be of interest to compare this little White River 
camel with its contemporary genus of horses, {Mesohippus, 


HISTORY OF THE ARTIODACTYLA 397 


and to observe in how many respects they have followed a 
parallel course, and how nearly {+Poébrotheriwm occupied the 
same position with reference to the modern camels and llamas 
as tMesohippus did to the Recent horses; but such a com- 
parison would involve too many technicalities to be profitably 
undertaken here. Suffice it to say that in many details there 
was a genuine parallelism in the progress of these two widely 
separated families from a polydactyl ancestry towards an ex- 
treme of digital reduction, ending in the horses in the single- 
toed and in the camels in the two-toed foot. The members of 
the two series kept nearly equal pace in their slow progress, 
with the camels a little in advance, since they were the first 
to attain the modern state of development in the height of the 
teeth and the structure of the feet, though eventually the horses 
surpassed them in both respects. 

In the upper Eocene (Uinta stage) there were at least two 
kinds of camels, the time-relations of which to each other are 
not known, that is, whether they were contemporary or suc- 
cessive. The best-known genus, {Protylopus, may perhaps 
not be in the direct line of camel descent, but it so nearly 
represents the proper ancestral stage that, for all practical 
purposes, it will serve nearly as well. It was a much smaller 
animal than the smallest of the White River species, and was 
hardly larger than a “‘jack-rabbit.’”’ The teeth of each jaw 
were in continuous series and the canines were but slightly 
longer than the incisors; the premolars had less antero-pos- 
terior extension than in {Poébrotherium, and all the molars 
above and below were very low-crowned. The. skull was 
almost a miniature copy of that of +Poébrotherium, but more 
primitive in a number of details, the most important of which 
was that the tympanic bulle were much smaller and hollow, 
not filled with spongy bone. The neck, concerning which it 
would be very desirable to have information, is almost the 
only part of the skeleton that is not known. The fore limb 
was considerably shorter than the hind, making the back slope 


398 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


downward from the rump to the shoulders; in the fore-arm 
the two bones were entirely separate and in the lower leg the 
fibula, though very slender, was still complete. In the manus 
there were four functional digits, the laterals not very much 
smaller than the median pair; but in the pes the lateral 
metatarsals were reduced to mere bony threads, to which small 
phalanges, in full complement, were attached, making tiny 
dew-claws. 

With tProtylopus ends the genealogy of the camels so far 
as it can be definitively traced, but in the middle of the Bridger 
stage is found a genus, tHomacodon (family tDichobunidz), 
which is a probable member of the series. However, until 
the connecting link can be found in the upper Bridger, this 
-conclusion cannot be demonstrated and tHomacodon itself is 
incompletely known. It was a very small animal, even less 
in size than {+Protylopus, and had not yet acquired the seleno- 
dont molars. These teeth were quadritubercular, 1.e. with 
four principal cusps arranged, in the upper molars, in a square, 
and with a minute cuspule between each transverse pair, while 
the lower molars were narrower and had only the four prin- 
cipal cusps. The cusps were not conical, as they are in the 
pigs, but angular and pyramidal, the first step toward the 
assumption of the selenodont form. The skull was not 
specifically cameline in appearance, but rather indifferent, 
as though almost any kind of an artiodactyl might have been 
derived from it. The feet were decidedly more primitive than 
those of the Uinta genus, having four functional digits each, 
perhaps five in the manus. While it cannot be positively 
stated that tHomacodon was the actual ancestor of }+Protylo- 
pus, it nearly represents what we should expect that ancestor 
to be. 

In the lower Eocene (Wasatch stage) lived a tiny creature, 
+Trigonolestes (family }Trigonolestid),smallereven than tHom- 
acodon of the Bridger, and one of the most ancient and primitive 
of known artiodactyls, but, unfortunately, still represented only 


Fie. 212. — Diagram to illustrate the development of the skull and molar teeth in the 
camel tribe, in ascending geological order. A, tProtylopus petersoni, Uinta Eocene. 
B, tPoébrotherium wilsoni, White River. (After Wortman.) C, tProcamelus gracilis, 
upper Miocene. (After Cope.) D, Lama huanacus, the modern Guanaco. 


(399) 


400 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


by very imperfect specimens, so that much which it would 
be highly desirable to learn must await the finding of better 
material. The upper molars were triangular and tritubercular, 
v.e. with three principal cusps arranged in a triangle, and are 
hardly to be distinguished from those of other early mam- 
malian orders. From the teeth alone the artiodactyl nature 
of the animal would not have been 
suspected, and, in fact, they were, 

7) +=when first discovered, referred to primi- 

“| 7 tive monkeys. The feet probably had 
| five toes each, but this is not certain, 
and the femur had the third tro- 
chanter, the only known artiodactyl 
of which this is true. As this little 
Wasatch genus is so imperfectly known, 
it would be premature to claim it as 
the starting point of the 
camel family, and yet it 
may very well have been 
so. Better material of 
this genus and 

the links of the 

alll chain which be- 
long in the upper 

riz Bridger and the 
ga Wind River re- 


L w/e L ye i 
Fic. 213.— Right manus of camels. A, tProtylopus, Uinta. spectively must 
B, tProébrotherium, White River. C, tProcamelus, upper be recovered be- 

Miocene. (After Cope.) D, Recent Guanaco. . . 
fore this earliest 


portion of the family history can be written in more than 
tentative fashion. 

The mode of evolution displayed by the camels does not 
differ in any significant respect from that seen in the horses. 
There was the same increase in bodily stature and in the rel- 
ative lengths of the limbs and feet, the same kind of diminu- 


HISTORY OF THE ARTIODACTYLA 401 


tion in the number of digits from the original five, the same 
reduction of the ulna and its coalescence with the radius and 
the loss of the fibula save for its two ends. There was also a 


IE Il 


G. 214.— Right pes of camels. A, tProtylopus. B, tPoébrotherium. 
C, tProcamelus. (After Cope.) D, Guanaco. 


w 


similar development of the high-crowned, or hypsodont, grind- 
ing teeth, from the low-crowned, or brachyodont, type. In 
still another respect there was a similarity in the mode of de- 
velopment of the two families, namely, in the way in which 
the several phyla of each originated. For the earlier portion 


of their history there was in each but a single distinguishable 
2D 


402 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


series, though it is very possible that fuller knowledge and 
more complete material would enable us to distinguish more 
than one. This monophyletic condition continued through 
the Eocene and most of the Oligocene, but in the upper por- 
tion of the latter and, more markedly in the lower Miocene, 
the two families branched out, each in its own fashion. _ 

Of course, there were differences in the development of 
the camels and horses, some conditioned by the fundamental 
distinction: between artiodactyl and perissodactyl, such as the 
didactyl foot as the possible minimum and the formation of 
cannon-bones in the camels. Other differences are character- 
istic of the latter family, such as the great elongation of the 
neck and the peculiar structure of its vertebre, the formation 
of pads on the feet and concomitant reduction of the hoofs. 
In a general way, the two families kept quite an even pace in 
their advance from the more primitive to the more specialized 
condition and, though the camels were the first to acquire 
certain modifications, the horses ultimately surpassed them. 

Even more close was the parallelism in evolution between 
the camels and the true ruminants (suborder Pecora), and this 
case is of particular importance as clearly demonstrating the 
development, in two independent but related lines, of similar 
structures not derived from a common ancestry. This com- 
parison must naturally await the description of the Pecora. 


7. tHypertragulide. {Hypertragulids 


This was a very peculiar family, of exclusively North 
American distribution and of doubtful systematic position, the 
known history of which extended from the upper Eocene into 
the lowest Miocene and then abruptly terminated. None of 
its members attained to considerable size, the largest hardly 
surpassing a sheep, and some were extremely small. In view 
of its comparatively brief career, this family was surprisingly 
ramified, and no less than four phyla may be distinguished 
within its limits. 


403 


ARTIODACTYLA 


HISTORY OF THE 


"BySBIqaN Jo APISIOATU() 


oY} JO UMOSNUT oY4 UL UOJOYS B UIOIJ PoIOysoY —‘OUDDOTP] JOMOT ‘2009 spsad0Nipulig)| — ‘Gz ‘Oly 


f 7 ' 


| “Avastorl Bonugr' y 


404 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


One of the phyla which persisted into the lower Miocene was 
there represented by a most fantastic creature ({Syndyoceras) 
with four horn-like outgrowths from the skull, one pair arising 
from the anterior part of the face and curving outward away 
from each other, and the hinder pair, which were placed over 
the eyes, eurved toward each other at the tips and were shaped 
much like a cow’s horns in miniature. The shape of these 
bony protuberances makes it unlikely that they were sheathed 
in horn and probably they were merely covered with skin like 
the horns of the giraffes. This description applies only to the 
skull of the male ; that of the female is not yet known, but there 
is good reason to believe that in that sex the horns were much 
smaller or wanting, as in nearly all existing deer. Theskull was 
long, narrow and low; the orbits were small, completely en- 
closed.in bone and unusually prominent ; the nasal bones were 
exceedingly short, as though indicating the. existence of a 
proboscis, but this can hardly have been the case, for the nasal 
opening was divided into anterior and posterior portions by 
the bony bridge which united the bases of the forward pair of 
horns. Inno other known mammal does such a division of the 
nasal opening occur. The upper incisors had all disappeared, 
but there was a small upper canine tusk and another formed by 
the first lower premolar, while the real lower canine had gone 
over to the incisor series. This exceptional arrangement is a 
point of resemblance to the toreodonts (see p. 372). The 
grinding teeth were brachyodont. The fore limb is not known, 
but the hind limb has been completely recovered ; it was stout 
and not very long in proportion to the length of the head. 
The fibula was completely reduced, only the ends remain- 
ing, and the pes was didactyl, the two metatarsals uniting 
in a cannon-bone; the hoofs were like those of deer and 
antelopes. 

No representative of this series has yet been found in the 
upper Oligocene ; and it is not yet possible to say whether their 
absence from the John Day beds, as in several other cases 


405 


HISTORY OF THE ARTIODACTYLA 


“AYISL JATU() UOJPOOULG PUB WNIN]AT UBOLIOWY off} UL SUO0}O [OAS ULOA p: 
‘oTpprtu oyy ul oO [CULO F eG) | 


yoy 
2 QYS OY} UO SOPRUL + IOATY oFTY AA JOddN ‘wa709 sps990j}04 7 | — "91% “ALT 


406 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


already referred to, was due to an actual geographical differ- 
ence in contemporary faunas, or whether it is merely one of the 
accidents of preservation and collecting. In the upper White 
River, however, was another most curious animal (Protoceras), 
a forerunner, if not a direct ancestor, of tSyndyoceras. The 
exact relationship between the two forms can hardly be de- 
termined, until the genera, one or more, which once connected 
them shall have been recovered, though it is obvious that they 
belonged to the same series. {Protoceras was a smaller ani- 
mal and, if anything, an even more bizarre-looking object, for 


Fic. 217. — tProtoceras celer, skull of male. (After Osborn and Wortman.) 


the anterior protuberances were broad, prominent and everted 
plates of bone, not even suggesting horns in their form, and 
the posterior pair were short and club-shaped; in the female 
neither pair was more than indicated. The dentition was very 
similar to that of tSyndyoceras, except that the upper tusk 
was considerably larger and scimitar-shaped ; the female had 
no tusks. In the fore-arm the two bones were just beginning 
to coalesce, but in the lower leg the fibula was completely 
reduced. The manus had four complete and functional digits, 
the laterals not very much shorter and thinner than the median 
pair ; but the pes was already didactyl, though the metatarsals 
were separate, not fused into a cannon-bone; two long and 


HISTORY OF THE ARTIODACTYLA 407 


pointed splints were the vestigial remnants of the second and 
fifth digits. 

It is not yet possible to trace this phylum below the level 
of the uppermost White River beds, yet that will very probably 
be accomplished by future exploration. 

The second phylum of the family was represented in the 
lowest Miocene by tHypertragulus, a genus of much smaller 
animals than those of the preceding series, which went back 
to White River times without essential change, and was abun- 
dant in the John Day stage. Despite this fact, the structure 
of the genus is still incompletely known and much remains 
to be learned, but enough has already been ascertained to 
justify the association of this phylum with the tProtoceras- 
+Syndyoceras series in one family as reasonable. The num- 
ber of upper incisors in tHypertragulus has not been ascer- 
tained, but the canines were enlarged and tusk-like, the lower 
one not having gone over to the incisors, as it had in the pre- 
ceding group. The skull had much resemblance to that of 
the contemporary camels; the sudden narrowing of the facial 
region giving it a very llama-like appearance; the orbit was 
open and on the face in front of it was a conspicuous vacuity. 
The ulna and radius were codssified and there were four digits 
in the manus, two in the 
pes, but no cannon-bone 
was formed. 

The third phylum, that 
of tLeptomeryx, had about 
the same range in time as 
the preceding one, though 
it has not yet been found Fie. 218. —Skull of tLeptomeryz evansi, White 
in the John Day, and the River. (After Matthew.) 
genus is assuredly known only from the White River beds, 
in which it is not uncommon. {Leptomeryx comprised a 
number of species, all very small animals, and none larger 
than a jack-rabbit. (See Fig. 277, p. 563.) In size, propor- 


408 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


tions and appearance, these dainty little creatures must have 
been very like the existing chevrotains or ‘“‘ mouse-deer” of 
Asia and the Malay islands, and by many writers they have 
been classed in the same suborder, the Tragulina. The upper 
incisors had been suppressed and the upper canine reduced to 
very small size, while the lower canine had become functionally 
one of the incisors. Theskull had avery long and slender facial 
region, but had a less llama-like appearance than in +Hypertra- 
gulus. The neck was short and the fore limbs much shorter than 
the hind, so that the back sloped downward from the rump to 
the shoulders, as in the chevrotains. There was a remarkable, 
indeed quite unparalleled, difference between the fore and hind 
limbs and feet, the hinder extremity being not only much longer, 
but also much more specialized, while the anterior one retained 
in very large degree its primitive characteristics. Thus, in the 
fore-arm the ulna was complete and separate from the radius, 
but in the lower leg the fibula was reduced to its minimum. In 
the manus there were four entire and functional digits, in the 
pes only two, which were joined in a cannon-bone. 

Finally, there was a fourth phylum, that of Hypisodus, which 
was confined to the White River stage arid is still incompletely 
known. This was a tiny creature, much smaller than any of 
the preceding ones, and is the only known White River un- 
gulate with fully hypsodont grinding teeth. Another very ex- 
ceptional peculiarity of its dentition was that in the lower jaw 
it had ten incisor-like teeth; not only the canine, but the first 
premolar as well, had assumed the character of the incisors. 
This same peculiarity is found in the lower Miocene tgazelle- 
camel, +Stenomylus (see p. 394), but in no other mammal. 

A considerable assemblage of genera belonging to this family 
occurs in the upper Eocene, but the material yet obtained is too’ 
fragmentary to permit the assignment of these forms to the 
different phyla, though it is very probable that among them are 
to be found ancestors of all the White River and subsequent 
genera. 


HISTORY OF THE ARTIODACTYLA 409 


While there is little difference of opinion as to the propriety 
of including in the family Hypertragulide the four phyla de- 
scribed in the foregoing pages, the systematic position and the 
relationships of that family as a whole are matters of debate 
and likely long to remain so. Dr. Matthew refers the entire 
group to the suborder Tragulina and regards {Leptomeryx as 
being closely related to the direct ancestry of the American deer, 
a view which is accepted by Professor Osborn, but in which I 
am unable to concur. My own belief is that the family was an 
early offshoot from the cameline stock and therefore referable 
to the Tylopoda, in which suborder they are here included. It 
would be out of place to enter upon a discussion of this per- 
plexing problem, which can hardly receive a definitive solution 
until the artiodactyls of the Uinta stage are thoroughly under- 
stood. As in so many other series, the key of the mystery lies 
hidden in the Uinta fauna, which is still so inadequately known. 


SuBoRDER Pecora. TRUE RUMINANTS 


This is the most advanced, specialized and diversified group 
of the artiodactyls, though the ruminating habit is shared by 
both Tylopoda and Tragulina. In this multitude of forms, 
giraffes, deer, antelopes, sheep, goats, oxen, buffaloes, bisons, 
etc., it is difficult to find a clue to a natural arrangement or 
classification. As a whole, the suborder is a well-defined group, 
and many structural characters, not all of which is it needful 
to enumerate here, are common to all of its members. The 
upper incisors are invariably absent, and, save in a few of the 
deer, the upper canine also, while the lower canine has become 
incisiform; the premolars are always three in number in each 
jaw and the molar-pattern is selenodont throughout. The 
odontoid process of the axis is spout-shaped. Except in a few 
deer, the Pecora all have bony outgrowths of the skull in the 
form of antlers or horns, at least in the males, many females 
being hornless. The ulna is coéssified with the radius and the 


410 


fibula is lost, except the lower end, which is a 


separate malleolar bone. 


There is always, in 


both fore and hind feet, a cannon-bone, the 


Fie. 219.— Left manus 
of Patagonian Deer 
(Hippocamelus  bisul- 


cus). &., scaphoid. 
L., lunar. Py., py- 
ramidal. Td., M., co- 


ossified trapezoid and 
magnum. Un., unci- 
form. Mc. II and V, 
rudimentary second 
and fifth metacarpals. 
Me. III and IV, can- 
non-bone. Ph. 1, 2, 
first and second pha- 
langes. Ung., ungual 
phalanx. 


lower ends of which are 
parallel, not divergent, as 
they are in the Tylopoda, 
and each articular surface 
is encircled all around by a 
prominent median keel, as 
in the horses, which in the 
other suborders, as in mam- 
mals generally, is confined 
to the posterior side and 
not visible from the front.. 
(Cf. Figs. 220 and 214, p. 
401.) In no existing mem- 
ber of the Pecora are there 
complete lateral digits, and 
in several modern genera 
they have been completely 
suppressed; but in most 
there is, behind the func- 
tional pair of digits, a pair 
of ‘‘dew-claws,’”’ the bones 
of which are more or less 
completely reduced, often 
to mere nodules. The 
stomach, which in the Tylo- 
poda and Tragulina is three- 
chambered, is in the Pecora 
divided into four distinct 
parts. 

As already intimated, the 
subdivision of the Pecora 
into smaller groups is far, 


LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


Fic. 220. — Left pes 
of Patagonian 
Deer. Cal., calca- 
neum. As., astrag- 
alus. N.,Cb., co- 
ossified navicular 
and cuboid. Mt. 
III, IV, cannon- 
bone. Other let- 
ters as in Fig. 219. 


HISTORY OF THE ARTIODACTYLA All 


from easy. ‘‘The great difficulty which all zoologists have 
felt in subdividing them into natural minor groups arises 
from the fact that the changes in different organs (feet, skull, 
frontal appendages, teeth, cutaneous glands, etc.) have pro- 
ceeded with such apparent irregularity and absence of correla- 
tion that the different modifications of these parts are most 
variously combined in different members of the group.”’ ! 
Two main sections of the suborder are, however, sufficiently 
well defined, (1) the Cervicornia and (2) the Cavicornia. 


SECTION CERVICORNIA. DEER AND GIRAFFES 


This section includes two families, the giraffes and the deer. 
Inasmuch as the former have not now and never did have any 
representatives in the western hemisphere, for the purposes of 
this book the section becomes identical with the deer family. 


8. Cervide. Deer 


In most of the deer now existing the male has antlers. The 
antler is a bony outgrowth from the frontal bone of the skull 
and is annually shed and replaced, increasing, as a rule, in 
size and in the number of branches with each renewal. During 
the period of growth the antler is richly supplied with blood- 
vessels and covered with skin and is then said to be ‘‘in the 
velvet,’’ which dries and peels off when growth is complete; 
after the rutting season a layer of bone at the base of the antler 
is resorbed, loosening the antler, which is then shed. There 
is, however, a permanent, cylindrical process, of greater or 
less length, from each frontal, the ‘“‘pedicle,’’ from which the 
antler is annually reproduced, and around the base of the antler 
and shed with it is a roughened ring, the “burr.” Among 
the different genera of deer there is great variety in the form 
and size of the antler, from a single spike to the immense and 
complicated appendages of the Wapiti (Cervus canadensis). 
As a rule, the ‘‘beam” or main stem of the antler and its 

1 Flower and Lydekker, op. cit., pp. 307-308. 


412 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


branches or ‘‘tines’’ are cylindrical and tapering; but in some 
cases, as in the Moose (Alce) and the Fallow Deer (Dama), the 
antler is very broad and flat and is then said to be ‘‘ palmated.” 
Except in the Reindeer and Caribou (Rangifer) the female is 
without antlers. 

In the skeleton there is little difference between the deer 
and the Cavicornia, but there are some differences in the teeth. 
In the males of those deer which have no antlers, such as the 
Musk-Deer (Moschus moschiferus) and the Chinese Water- 
Deer (Hydropotes inermis), as well as in certain forms with very 
small antlers, like the muntjacs of Asia (Cervulus and Elapho- 
dus), the upper canine is a long, thin, recurved and sabre-like 
tusk, a very effective weapon. Speaking of the Indian Munt- 
jac or ‘‘Barking Deer” (Cervulus muntjac), Flower and Lydek- 
ker say, ‘‘When attacked by dogs the males use their sharp 
canine teeth with great vigour, inflicting upon their opponents 
deep and even dangerous wounds.” In other forms of deer 
the upper canines are small or absent. The grinding teeth are 
brachyodont, but in the existing genera they have higher 
crowns than in the Tertiary progenitors of the family, and in 
the Axis and Hog Deer of India (Azis axis and A. porcinus) 
the molars are quite hypsodont. 

As was shown in Chapter V, the existing deer of North 
America are of two kinds: (1) the northern, which are plainly 
of Old World origin and so closely similar to Old World species 
that many naturalists deny the necessity of making distinct 
species for the American forms. The best known of these 
are the Wapiti (Cervus canadensis), the Caribou (Rangifer 
caribou) and the Moose (Alce americanus). (2) The southern 
deer, of which the common Virginia Deer (Odocoileus virgin- 
ianus) is a familiar example, though overlapping in their 
range that of the northern genera, are peculiar to the Americas, 
and, though not exactly autochthonous, they must have had 
a long American ancestry. In the Pleistocene we find the 
same genera and mostly the same species, their distribution 


HISTORY OF THE ARTIODACTYLA 413 


over the continent shifting in accordance with the many cli- 
matic changes of that epoch. There was, however, at least one 
Pleistocene genus (tCervalces) different from any now living 
and different from any known in the eastern hemisphere. The 
most complete specimen of this animal is a skeleton in the 
museum of Princeton University, found beneath a bog in 
northern New Jersey, though other bones, collected in Ken- 
tucky and elsewhere, are very probably referable to it. {Cer- 
valces was very nearly related to the Moose, the neck, body, 
limbs and feet being almost identical in the two genera, but 
the skull and antlers were notably different ; the nasal bones 
were not nearly so much shortened as in the Moose, indicating 
that the proboscis-like snout was not so large or inflated as in 
the latter. The antlers were quite unique; though in general 
like those of the Moose, they were much less palmated and they 
had, in addition, a great trumpet-like plate of bone on the lower 
side of each antler (see Fig. 117, p. 209), such as occurs in no 
other known member of the family. Although fCervalces has 
not been found in the Old World, it was almost certainly an 
immigrant from eastern Asia. 

The Moose, Caribou and Wapiti were unquestionably im- 
migrants and came in not earlier than the Pleistocene. Noth- 
ing is known in the Pliocene or more ancient Tertiary epochs 
of North America which could be twisted into forms ancestral 
to these typically Old World genera. With the southern deer 
(Odocoileus, etc.) the matter stands differently, for these have a 
probable American ancestry extending back to the lower 
Miocene and possibly much farther. On the other hand, it is 
not altogether certain that these may not have been Pliocene 
immigrants, for their genealogy is still in an extremely frag- 
mentary and unsatisfactory condition. The North American 
genus, Odocoileus, extended back to the Pliocene with very 
little change. The annoying, unrecorded gap of the upper 
Pliocene and the meagre representation of the middle Pliocene 
mammals given by the Blanco leave us without information 


414 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


regarding the deer of that time. In the lower Pliocene and 
through the whole Miocene we meet with frequent remains of 
a genus ({Blastomeryx) which was quite probably the ancestor 
of the American types of deer. It was considerably smaller 
than any of the existing North American species and had no 
antlers, but possessed the sabre-like, upper canine tusks, which 
characterize the muntjacs and hornless deer of Asia. The 
limb-bones had already attained nearly their present state of 


Fra. 221.— Lower Miocene thornless deer (tBlastomeryx advena). Restored from a 
skeleton in the American Museum of Natural History. 


development, as regards the reduction of ulna and radius, for- 
mation of cannon-bones, etc. {Blastomeryx probably en- 
tered North America in the lower Miocene, but, as was men- 
tioned previously (p. 409), Dr. Matthew and Professor Osborn 
regard the genus as autochthonous and descended from the 
tHypertragulide. 

In the middle Miocene {Blastomeryx gave rise to an ab- 
errant genus ({Merycodus) which has been made the type of.a 
distinct family (+Merycodontida, see table, p. 362), but this 


HISTORY OF THE ARTIODACTYLA 415 


is perhaps unnecessary. {Merycodus had deer-like antlers, 
but completely hypsodont teeth such as no known member 
of the Cervide possesses. The middle Miocene species ({M. 
osborni) was a little creature, not more than eighteen or twenty 
inches high at the shoulder, and had a branched antler of three 
tines, which was considerably longer than the skull, while in 
the species of the upper Miocene ({M. furcatus) the antler 
was shorter and simply forked. From the number of speci- 


Fic. 222.— Miocene fdeer-antelopes ({Merycodus osborni, middle Miocene, and tM. 
furcatus, upper Miocene). Restored from specimens in the American Museum. 


mens of these animals found in which the burr is incomplete 
or absent, it may be inferred that the antler was not always 
deciduous. The legs were long and very slender, and appar- 
ently there was no trace of the lateral digits, even in the fore 
foot. These peculiar hypsodont deer persisted even in the 
older Pleistocene. 

Deer are the only members of the Pecora which inhabit 
South America, where there are several genera of them, all 
much more nearly allied to North American than to Old World 


416 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


forms. No record of the presence of the family in the southern 
continent has been found in beds older than the Pleistocene, 
but in view of the degree of specialization which they have 
there undergone, it is probable that the immigration took plaée 
in the Pliocene. 


SECTION CAVICORNIA. HOLLOW-HORNED RUMINANTS 


In the animals of this second and far larger section of the 
Pecora there are bony outgrowths of the skull, from the frontal 
bones, outgrowths which are permanent and non-deciduous; 
these are the horn-cores, which are tapering and unbranched. 
The horn-core is, in turn, covered with a sheath of horn, like- 
wise unbranched and permanent, but growing from year to 
year until the maximum size is attained, a process which is 
familiarly illustrated in the growth of a calf. Among Recent 
Cavicornia there is but one exception to the rule that the 
horny sheath is non-deciduous and unbranched and that one is 
the Prong Buck (Antilocapra americana). In the Cavicornia it 
is the very general rule that both sexes are horned, though the 
females commonly have smaller horns and in several genera 
of antelopes the does are hornless. There is almost as great 
variety in the shape and size of the horn as of the antler; we 
find small, medium-sized and enormously large horns, which 
may be straight, simply curved, complexly curved, spiral, 
lyrate or twisted. The antelopes have many types of horns, 
as have the sheep and goats, the oxen, buffaloes and bisons; 
but only a few of them are exemplified in the western hemi- 
sphere, which now, as in the preceding geological periods, is 
singularly poor in representatives of the Pecora. 


9, 10. Antilopide and Antilocapride. Antelopes 


Two very different kinds of antelopes are found in North 
America at the present time; one of them, the erroneously 
named Rocky Mountain Goat (Oreamnos montanus), is evi- 
dently a late immigrant from the Old World, and fossil remains 


HISTORY OF THE ARTIODACTYLA 417 


of it have been found in the Pleistocene cave-deposits of Cali- 
fornia. This animal is a member of the true antelope family 
(Antilopide) and belongs to the chamois group of mountain- 
antelopes; it has no near relatives among other American 
mammals, living or extinct. 

The Prong Buck, or Prong-horned Antelope (Antilocapra 
americana), occupies a very isolated position, so much so that a 
distinct family, the Antilocapride, has been created for its 
reception. It differs from all other Cavicornia in having a 
branched horn, though the bony core is simple, and in an- 
nually shedding and renewing the horny sheath; the horn is 
directly over the eye; there are no dew-claws and all traces of 
the bones of the lateral digits have completely disappeared. 
The grinding teeth are thoroughly hypsodont. The genus 
occurred in the older Pleistocene, where it was associated with 
the last of the tdeer-antelope, or {Merycodus series (tCapro- 
meryx), and which, so far as it is known, would seem to con- 
nect the two families, though this is doubtful. A middle 
Miocene genus ({Dromomeryzx Fig. 128, p. 237) would be a more 
probable ancestor of the Prong Buck, if it were not for the long, 
unfilled gap of the upper Miocene and the whole Pliocene. 
{Dromomeryx had erect horn-cores placed directly above the 
eyes as in the modern genus, but low-crowned grinding teeth ; 
it was the most ancient American cavicorn yet known. It 
remains to be determined by future exploration, whether this 
middle Miocene genus was actually the ancestor of Antilocapra, 
or merely an anticipation of it. 

In the lower Pliocene have been found the remains, very 
incomplete, of several antelopes, which appear to have been 
immigrants from the Old World, but are too imperfectly known 
for any definitive reference. One resembles the flat-horned, or 
goat-horned, antelopes of the European Miocene and Pliocene. 
Others had spirally twisted horns like those of the Recent 
strepsicerine, or twisted-horn antelopes of Africa and Asia, but 


may, nevertheless, be referable to the Antilocapride.. 
25 


418 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


Antelopes even penetrated to South America, and three 
genera of them have been reported from the Pleistocene of the 
Brazilian caverns and the Argentine pampas, but they were less 
successful in establishing a foothold than were the deer, and form 
no part of the modern Neotropical fauna. 


11. Bovide. Sheep, Bisons, Oxen, etc. 


A series of genera, of disputed systematic position, is rep- 
resented to-day by the so-called Musk-Ox (Ovibos moschatus), 
which is now exclusively North American, but in the Pleistocene 
ranged over northern Asia and Europe as far west as Great 
Britain. The Musk-Ox, which is at present found only in the 
extreme north, is a heavy, short-legged animal, three and a half 
to four feet high, and six feet or more in length; the body is 
covered with a dense coat of woolly hair overlaid by a thatch of 
long, straight hair, which gives the animal a very shaggy ap- 
pearance. The horns are broad at the base, especially so in old 
males, in which they meet in the middle-line and cover much of 
the head as with a horny casque; they curve downward and then 
upward and forward, with the tips directed toward the front ; in 
the females and young males the horns are very much smaller. 

This series cannot be traced back of the Pleistocene, in 
which epoch it was not only far more widely distributed, but 
also very much more diversified, no less than three extinct 
genera, in addition to the existing one, having been found in 
the North American Pleistocene. One of these ({Symbos), which 
extended from Alaska to Arkansas, had horns which were 
smaller and shorter than in the modern genus, and, even when 
fully developed, did not meet in the middle line of the head. 
The other two genera, from California (tEuceratherium and 
+Preptoceras Fig. 116, p. 203), are of great interest as showing 
affinities to the Musk-Ox and also to sheep and to certain ante- 
lopes, such as the Takin (Budorcas) of northern India and Tibet. 
They serve to connect the musk-oxen with other Cavicornia, 
but the origin of all these animals is to be sought in Asia. 


HISTORY OF THE ARTIODACTYLA 419 


In Recent North America there are four or five species of 
sheep (Ovis) which are confined to the mountainous and broken 
areas of the western part of the continent and extend from 
Alaska to Mexico. The “Bighorn”? or Rocky Mountain 
Sheep (Ovis canadensis) is characterized by great, spirally coiled 
horns in the rams, in the ewes the horns are very much smaller 
and nearly straight ; the other species differ but slightly from 
this type. The species O. canadensis has been found in the 
Pleistocene, but nothing further is known of its history. 
Evidently, the sheep were late immigrants. 

“The geographical distribution of wild sheep is interesting. 
The immense mountain ranges of Central Asia, the Pamir and 
Thian Shan of Turkestan, may be looked on as the centre of 
their habitat.’’ ‘Sheep are essentially inhabitants of the 
high mountainous parts of the world, for dwelling among 
which their wonderful powers of climbing and leaping give 
them special advantages. No species frequent by choice either 
level deserts, open plains, dense forests or swamps. By far 
the greater number of species are inhabitants of the continent 
of Asia, one extending into North America [should read, four 
or five] one into Southern Europe and one into North Africa. 
: No remains that can be with certainty referred to the 
genus [Ovis] have been met with in the hitherto explored true 
Tertiary beds, which have yielded such abundant modifications 
of Antelopes and Deer.” # 

The only other division of the family which is represented 
in North America is that of the bisons, of which the fast vanish- 
ing remnant of a single species ? (Bison bison) is all that is left 
of what was once an extensive and varied assemblage. The 
bisons differ from the true oxen in the form and structure of 
the skull, in the shoulder-hump, which is produced by the very 
long spines of the dorsal vertebra and in consequence of which 
the back slopes downward from the shoulders to the croup. 


1 Flower and Lydekker, op. cit., pp. 355 and 357. 
? The Woodland Bison of Canada is now regarded as a distinct species. 


420 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


They differ further in the character of the hair, which is short 
and woolly on the body and hind quarters, very long and shaggy 
on the head and neck. In the Pleistocene of North America 
there were at least seven recognizable species of bisons, which 
ranged over the continent from Alaska to Florida, though it 
is not probable that they were all contemporary. One of the 
earliest and by far the largest of these was the gigantic B. 
tlatifrons, a specimen of which in the American Museum of 
Natural History measures six feet across the horns in a straight 
line; this was a Mississippi Valley species and extended from 
Ohio to the Gulf of Mexico and westward to Kansas and Texas. 
Another gigantic species (B. tcrassicornis) lived in Alaska in 
association with a second and smaller species (B. toccidentalis) 
which ranged as far south as Kansas. 8B. toccidentalis, though 
smaller than the preceding species, was larger than the existing 
one and was remarkable for the great size of the hump. The 
bisons were migrants from the Old World and are the only 
members of the great ox-tribe that ever reached America. At 
present the Old World has but a single species of Bison (B. 
bonasus), which has been saved from extermination only by the 
most rigid protection. 

Neither sheep nor bison extended their range to South 
America; both are and have been essentially northern groups 
and seem to have been unable to cross the tropics. 


From the foregoing account, confused as it unavoidably is, 
one thing at least stands out clearly, that North America 
played a very insignificant réle in the evolution of the Pecora, 
and has only two peculiar groups, the Prong Buck and the 
American types of deer, and of these, the probable American 
ancestry does not extend back of the lower Miocene and per- 
haps not so far. Even in the Old World the story, so far as it 
has been deciphered, is by no means clear and consistent, which 
is no doubt due to the fact that the regions from which Tertiary 
mammals have been obtained are so small in comparison with 


HISTORY OF THE ARTIODACTYLA 421 


those that have yielded nothing. Certain broad outlines of the 
history may, nevertheless, be discerned. 

The suborder Pecora at an early date became divided into 
the two great branches of the Cervicornia and Cavicornia, 
the former giving off the giraffe series, which in the Miocene 
and Pliocene ramified and extended through Asia and southern 
Europe, though now confined to Africa. In the lower Miocene 
of Europe the muntjac-like deer and the antelopes, the first 
of the Cavicornia, were already well distinguished. From the 
primitive antelopes arose not only the wonderful assemblage 
of modern antelopes, but also the goats and sheep and the great 
and varied ox-tribe. From the middle Oligocene forms it 
may obviously be inferred that both Cervicornia and Cavi- 
cornia united in a single trunk, or, traced in the other direction, 
diverged from a common stock, to which also the suborder of 
the Tragulina goes back. 

On the other hand, it is equally obvious that the camels 
and llamas have been separated from the Pecora at least since 
the middle Eocene, and, consequently, the many points of 
agreement between the two suborders, other than those shared 
with all artiodactyls, are not due to inheritance from a common 
ancestry, but have been independently acquired in the two 
series. It will be instructive to note some of the more im- 
portant of these independent similarities: (1) the selenodont 
and more or less hypsodont character of the grinding teeth; 
(2) the spout-shaped odontoid process of the axis; (3) the 
great reduction of the ulna and its codéssification with the 
radius ; (4) the loss of the fibula, except for its lower end, which 
persists as a separate malleolar bone; (5) the formation of 
cannon-bones by the fusion of the third and fourth metapodials ; 
(6) the development of a complex, many-chambered stomach. 
Other points of likeness might be cited, but those already given 
will suffice to show how very important this parallel mode of 
evolution often proves itself to be. 


CHAPTER X 
HISTORY OF THE PROBOSCIDEA 


Utter y foreign as the elephant-tribe appears to be to 
present-day North America, it was a very conspicuous element 
in the fauna of that continent from the middle Miocene to the 
end of the Pleistocene, and in the latter epoch it spread over 
South America also. Like so many others of the mammals 
which have, from time to time, flourished in the Americas, the 
elephants and their allies, the tmastodons, were immigrants 
from the Old World, and, until comparatively lately, the region 
of their origin was a complete mystery. They appeared sud- 
denly and unheralded and at approximately the same time in 
Europe and North America and nothing is known from pre- 
ceding geological formations of either continent which could 
with any plausibility be regarded as ancestral to them. The 
mystery was dispelled by the discoveries of Dr. C. W. Andrews 
in Egypt, which demonstrated that these strange and huge 
beasts had originated in Africa and had migrated thence through 
Asia to Europe, on the one side, and to North America on the 
other. 

The proboscideans occupy a very isolated position among the 
hoofed mammals, and in structure they display a curious min- 
gling of high specialization with an extreme conservatism of 
primitive characters, the specialization being exemplified in 
the teeth and head and the conservatism in the body and limbs, 
very much as in the toreodont family of artiodactyls (p. 382). 
The most conspicuous of the external features in the order is 
the long trunk, or proboscis, which gives its name to the group, 
and is a great prolongation of the nose, with the nostrils at the 

422 


HISTORY OF THE PROBOSCIDEA 423 


end and a finger-like tip, which can be used to pick up minute 
objects. 

In the true elephants the dental formula is : 7 3, c 3, p 8, m3, 
xX 2=14, though this formula is misleading, to the extent that 
the milk premolars, three in number in each jaw, take the place 
and perform the functions of the premolars, thus adding 12 to 
the effective number of teeth. ‘The single upper incisor on 
each side grows into an immense tusk, which has enamel only 
on the tip, where it is speedily worn away; the lower jaw is 
without incisors and there 
are no canines above or 
below. The grinding teeth 
are very large and have a 
highly complex structure 
and a most exceptional 
method of eruption on 
coming into use. They 
are thoroughly hypsodont 
and each is composed of a 
large number of high, broad 
and thin plates of dentine 
covered with enamel and 29 Mal of te Ato, Besa 


the spaces between ‘the mode of wear. Heavy black lines indicate 
enamel ridges are filled enamel, enclosing areas of dentine, cement 


covering the whole tooth. 

with cement (see Fig. 47,, 

p. 97); indeed, the whole tooth is so thickly covered with 
cement that, when unworn, it looks like a mere limp, with 
no ridges showing on the surface. The teeth increase in size 
and in the number of component ridges from before back- 
ward, and in the Indian species (Elephas maximus) the 
number of ridges in the six grinding teeth, including the 
milk premolars, is: 4, 8, 12, 12, 16, 24. In the African Ele- 
phant, (Loxodonta africanus) the teeth are not so high and 
have fewer and thicker plates, the formula being: 3, 6, 7, 7, 
8, 10. The teeth do not succeed one another vertically in the 


424 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


normal mammalian fashion, but come in successively from 
behind and the series moves forward, so that the foremost tooth 
is pushed out, when it is so worn down as to be of no further 
service. As these teeth are very large and the jaws are rela- 
tively short, only one tooth on each side, above and below, is in 
use at the same time, though part of a second may also be in- 
volved. The movement of the successive teeth is not directly 
forward, but oblique, an upper tooth coming forward and down- 
ward and a lower tooth forward and upward. In consequence 
of this arrangement the teeth are abraded obliquely, the anterior 
part first coming into use, and, by the time a tooth is fully in 
place, the front portion is worn down to less than half the 
height of the hinder part. All of these peculiarities in the 
dental system imply a very high degree of specialization and a 
notable difference from other mammals. 

The skull is equally specialized, as is indeed required by 
the character of the teeth and the development of the long 
and heavy proboscis. The premaxille are converted into 
sheaths for the great tusks ; the nasals are extremely abbreviated 
and the anterior nasal opening is shifted to the top, directly 
above the posterior opening, so that the nasal canal passes 
vertically downward through the skull. All of the bones 
forming the cranium are enormously thickened and at the same 
time lightened by the formation of an extensive system of 
communicating sinuses, and thus the brain-chamber is, as it 
were, hidden away in the middle of the huge mass of the skull. 
This explains the difficulty of killing an elephant by shooting 
it in the head; the shot must be so directed as to reach the 
brain, which requires knowledge and skill. 

The neck is short, the body long and extremely massive, 
the tail of moderate length. The shoulder-blade is very large 
and has a prominent metacromion given off from the spine; 
the hip-bones are immensely expanded in correlation with the 
breadth of the thorax and abdomen. The limbs are long, 
massive and columnar, their upper segments, especially the 


HISTORY OF THE PROBOSCIDEA 425 


thigh, are very long, so that the knee-joint is brought below 
the body and free from it to the position of the hock-joint 
in the Horse; hence, the hind leg appears to bend in the op- 
posite direction from the bend in the legs of ordinary quad- 
rupeds, in which the true knee-joint is concealed. The fore- 
arm bones are separate and, for most of its length, the ulna 
is far heavier than the radius, a wide departure from the pro- 
portions usual in hoofed 
animals. The femur 
has no pit in its head 
for the round ligament 
and no third trochanter ; 
the shaft is broad and 
much flattened, having 
quite lost the normal 
cylindrical shape. The 
bones of the lower leg 
are also separate, but 
the fibula, though stout, 
is very much more 
slender than the ulna. 
The long bones have 
no marrow-cavities, but 
are filled with spongy 
bone. The feet are ex- 
tremely short and broad 
and of columnar shape, 
the weight resting upon a pad of elastic tissue and the small, 
nail-like hoofs are mere excrescences upon the periphery. 
There are five digits in manus and pes, but not all of them 
have hoofs; in the Indian and West African species the 
number of hoofs is five in the fore foot and four in the hind, 
in the East African four and three respectively. In the adult 
the skin is quite hairless, though the young calf has a consider- 
able quantity of hair. 


Fie. 224. — Right manus of the Indian Elephant 
(BE. maximus). 


426 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


At present, the Proboscidea are restricted to the warmer 
parts of Asia and Africa, where five species, four of them 
African, are recognized. This is a very great reduction in the 
number of species and in the area inhabited during the Pleis- 
tocene epoch, when they ranged through every continent, 
except Australia, and were adapted to every climate from the 
tropics to the shores of the Arctic Sea. Four distinct species 
of proboscideans existed in Pleistocene North America, three 
elephants and a tmastodon, though not all in 
the same areas, nor probably all at the same 
time, their ranges both in time and space 
overlapping to a greater or less degree, but 
not exactly coinciding in either respect. 

The first species was an immigrant, the 
northern {Mammoth (Elephas tprimigenius), 
which extended over the greater part of the 


Fic. 225. — Vertical 


section through 
the manus of the 
Indian Elephant. 


northern hemisphere, both in the Old World 
and in the New. This is the species of which 
complete carcasses with hide and hair have 


U, lower end of been found in the frozen gravels of northern 


ulna. 2, lunar. : R 5 7 
M, wagnum. Siberia, its structure and appearance being 
HI, third meta- thus almost as well known as those of any 
carpal. 1, 2, 8, 


phalanges. E, pad 
of elastic tissue. 
(After M. Weber.) 


modern elephant. That the {Mammoth was 
perfectly adapted to life in a climate of severe 
cold is shown not only by the contents of the 
stomach, which are comminuted fragments of present-day 
Siberian vegetation, but also by the dense coat of woolly hair, 
covered by long, coarse outer hair, which afforded full protec- 
tion against the cold. The tusks, with considerable variation 
of form, had a tendency to spiral curvature, curving first 
downward and outward, then upward and inward ; the grind- 
ing teeth were characterized by their relative breadth and the 
numerous thin enamel-ridges which traversed them. The 
number of these ridges was very variable in different indi- 
viduals, but may be expressed for the six successive teeth as 


HISTORY OF THE PROBOSCIDEA 427 


follows: 3-4, 6-9, 9-12, 9-15, 14-16, 18-27. The skeleton 
was more like that of the Indian Elephant than of the other 
species, though with a number of small differences in the skull. 
In size, the {Mammoth was comparatively small, standing 
about nine feet six inches at the shoulders. In North America 
its range was from Alaska southeastward across the continent 
to New England. 

The second species, the {Columbian Elephant (E. tcolumbi 
Fig. 114, p. 198), was eighteen inches or more taller than the 
+Mammoth and rivalled the largest existing elephants in 
stature ; its huge tusks curved first downward and then upward 
and inward, their tips crossing when full-grown. The grinding 
teeth had fewer and thicker enamel plates than those of the 
{Mammoth. The range of the fColumbian Elephant over- 
lapped the southern border of that of the {Mammoth, but was, 
on the whole, much more southern; it crossed the continent 
from ocean to ocean and covered nearly the whole of the United 
States, extending down to the southern end of the Mexican 
plateau. The two species were very closely related and in some 
cases are so intergraded that it is difficult to distinguish them ; 
the {Mammoth was an undoubted immigrant and the {Colum- 
bian Elephant was probably a local North American variant of 
it, adapted to a somewhat warmer climate. Nothing is known 
of the skin or hair in the latter animal, but, from the fact that 
it was not a tropical species and was exposed to very cold 
winters, it may be inferred that it had a hairy covering of 
some sort. 

The third species of elephant (H. timperator) was older 
geologically than the others, as it was more characteristic of 
the lower Pleistocene and uppermost Pliocene; its range 
coincided with the western half of the region covered by E. 
tcolumbi, extending far into Mexico, but not occurring east 
of the Mississippi River. It was an enormous creature, the 
largest of known elephants, with an estimated height of thirteen 
and a half feet at the shoulder (Osborn). The grinding teeth 


LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


428 


: “AYISIOATA) WOysoULIg jo UMesnuZ 
OY} Ul UOJO[ENS B UIOIZ paroysay “oua004STa[q ‘(snunovauy uopossvpy|) UOpOse!| UBIEULY ey, — “9ZZ “OTT 


HISTORY OF THE PROBOSCIDEA 429 


had thicker and more crumpled enamel plates than in either 
of the other species. 

The fourth of the Pleistocene proboscideans of North 
America was a member of a different and much more ancient 
genus, (Mastodon, which in the Old World became extinct 
before the end of the Pliocene. The American +tMastodon 
(tM. americanus) was thus a belated survival of an ancient 
type, seemingly out of place even in the strange Pleistocene 
world, which had so many bizarre creatures. The distinguish- 
ing characteristic of the genus was in the simple, low-crowned 
and comparatively small grinding 
teeth, which had three or four 
prominent transverse ridges, cov- 
ered with heavy enamel, and, 
usually, with no cement on the 
crowns. As these teeth were so 
much smaller than those of the 
elephants, as many as three on 
each side of each jaw might be 
in simultaneous use. In this 
species there was no vertical suc- 
cession of teeth, but in some of 
the Tertiary tmastodons such 
succession has been observed. The long tusks were directed 
nearly straight forward and were almost parallel, with but 
slight curvature, the convexity downward. In the males 
there was a short single tusk or, less commonly, a pair of such 
tusks, in the lower jaw, which were probably not visible ex- 
ternally ; these were the vanishing remnants of an earlier 
stage of development, when the {mastodons had a fully 
developed pair of lower tusks, nearly as large as the superior 
pair. 

The skull, while essentially proboscidean, was yet much 
lower and flatter and less dome-like than in the elephants; 
the thickening of the cranial bones was less extreme. The 


Fic. 227.— Last lower molar of the 
American Mastodon. 


430 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


remainder of the skeleton differed so little from that of the 
elephants as to require no description. In size, this species 
about equalled the Mammoth, the larger individuals measur- 
ing nine feet six inches at the shoulder. Remains have been 
found which prove that the American {Mastodon had a cover- 
ing of long, coarse hair, and that it fed upon the leaves, shoots 
and small branches of trees, especially of conifers. There is 
much reason to believe that the species outlived the elephants 
in this continent and persisted until after the establishment 
here of the American Indian, and it may well have been human 
agency which finally extinguished the dwindling race. The 
range of the species nearly coincided with that of the tColum- 
bian Elephant, but did not extend so.far into Mexico, and in 
the central part of the continent reached much farther north, 
even into Alaska. 

In the Pliocene of Texas, Nebraska and Idaho lived the 
American representatives of a genus ({Stegodon) which was a 
connecting link between the elephants and the tmastodons, and 
which was especially characteristic of the Pliocene of India. 
The tusks, which were confined to the upper jaw, had lost 
their enamel and the last molar, above. and below, had five or 
six enamel ridges, but the crowns, which in the Asiatic species 
were buried in cement, had but a small amount of this 
material. Several species of +Mastodon occur in the same beds, 
but only isolated teeth have been found. 

The tmastodons, in a broad sense of the term, have been 
divided into several genera and subgenera in accordance with 
different schemes; the simplest perhaps is to group into a 
second genus those species which had fully developed lower 
tusks. This four-tusked genus has received several names, 
of which +7 etrabelodon is most commonly used in this country, 
but the term +Gomphotherium is much older and, according 
to the law of priority, must therefore be employed. The lower 
Pliocene species of tGomphotherium had a pair of large lower 
tusks, of cylindrical shape, and both upper and lower tusks 


HISTORY OF THE PROBOSCIDEA 431 


had longitudinal bands of enamel, and in order to support the 
weight of these great tusks the symphyseal, or chin, region of 


Fic. 228. — Head of upper Miocene tmastodon (tGomphothertum productum) showing 
the chisel-like lower tusks. Restored from askull in the American Museum of Natu- 
ral History. 


the lower jaw was greatly elongated; the molars had four 
cross-crests. 

In the upper Miocene is found another and more primitive 
stage of proboscidean development. In these species the grind- 
ing teeth were three-ridged ; the upper tusks were quite short 
and curved downward, diverging somewhat from each other, 
and they had enamel bands. The lower tusks were still 
shorter and of depressed, flattened and somewhat chisel-like 


432 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


form and so worn as to show that they were regularly employed 
in cropping and browsing. The skull was low and broad and 
the symphysis of the lower jaw was greatly prolonged to carry 
the tusks. 

A very important fact concerning these early tmastodons 
is that they had the normal method of tooth-succession, per- 
manent premolars forming beneath (in the lower jaw, above 
in the upper) the milk-teeth and pushing them out at maturity. 

Of the middle Miocene proboscideans not much is known 
beyond the mere fact of their presence in North America 
at that time and indeed little of the skeleton, other than the 
skull, has yet been found in the American Miocene; but well- 
nigh complete skeletons have been obtained from the middle 
Miocene of Europe, and these bring out the surprising fact that 
the body and limbs of these species did not differ in any note- 
worthy manner from those of the existing elephants; the 
modern skeletal structure of these animals had been attained 
at a time when the dentition and skull were still in a far less 
advanced stage of development. In size, however, there was 
a decided difference, the species of the American Miocene 
rarely attaining a height of six feet. 

Proboscidea have been reported from the lower Miocene 
of the Great Plains, but the material is insufficient for a defin- 
itive judgment. There is no doubt as to their presence in 
Europe at that time, but in neither continent can the history 
be traced any farther and we must turn to Africa for a back- 
ward continuation of the story. In the lower Oligocene of 
the Faydim, southwest of Cairo in Egypt, occurs the highly 
interesting genus tPalwomastodon, which was much more 
primitive than any of the genera described above, though it 
was an unmistakable member of the order and even of the 
family Elephantide. The dentition was already much re- 
duced, giving the formula: 74, c$, p3, m3. The upper tusks 
were short, compressed, directed downward, and slightly diver- 
gent, and had a broad band of enamel on the outer side ; the 


HISTORY OF THE PROBOSCIDEA 433 


lower tusks were still shorter and procumbent, pointing straight 
forward, and were covered with enamel, which was very thick 
on the lower side and thin or wanting on the upper. All of 
the grinding teeth were in place and function at the same time, 
which was not true of any of the genera previously considered, 
and each of the premolars had its predecessor in the milk-series, 
which it succeeded and displaced in the normal vertical manner. 
The premolars were smaller and simpler than the molars, 
which were made up of three pairs of conical tubercles arranged 
to form a three-crested crown. The skull, as compared with 
that of the elephants, was long and narrow, the premaxillaries 
extending into a long snout; the nasals were shortened, 
though not so much as in the succeeding genera, and there was 
probably rather a long and flexible snout than a true proboscis. 
The skull had a long and well-defined sagittal crest, which 
none of the later genera had, and the development of sinuses 
in the cranial bones, though considerable, was much less than 
in the elephants. The occiput was relatively high and the 
thickened parietals did not tower above it to any such degree 
as they do in the elephants. The symphysis of the lower jaw 
was greatly prolonged, extending out beyond the ends of the 
upper tusks, and this implies that the lower lip had a corre- 
sponding prolongation. 

The skeleton is still incompletely known, though it may be 
said that the neck was probably longer than in the subsequent 
genera of the family. The limb-bones were already proboscid- 
ean in character, differing only in details from those of the 
more typical members of the order, but the animal was more 
lightly built and had less massive limbs. The presence of the 
third trochanter on the femur, which is lacking in all of the 
succeeding forms, is an interesting approximation to other and 
still more primitive groups of ungulates. The several species 
of tPaleomastodon represent a considerable range in size, 
from animals which were not much larger than a tapir to those 
which equalled a half-grown Indian Elephant. 

2F 


434 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


It is possible to take another and very long step back from 
}Paleomastodon, so long, indeed, as to make it apparent that 
one or more links in the chain are still missing. The genus 
{Meritherium is found together with +Palwomastodon in the 
lower Oligocene, but also occurs separately in the upper Eocene. 
It seems likely that it is a persistent middle Eocene type and 
that the known species of it were somewhat aside from the 
main line of descent, but that it very closely represents, never- 
theless, a very early stage in the elephant genealogy. These 
known species were quite small animals, about the size of a 
tapir, and therefore not much less than the smaller members of 
{Paleomasiodon. The dental formula of {Meritherium was: 
718, ct, p3, m3, X 2 =36. The first or median upper incisor 
was a relatively small and simple tooth, but the second was 
quite a large, downwardly directed tusk, which was much 
smaller and less curved than in | Paleomastodon, and was not 
capable of indefinite growth. The third incisor and the canine 
were small, spike-like teeth of no functional importance, but 
their presence is significant as approximating the primitive, 
unreduced dentition of the ungulates. The lower incisors 
were nearly procumbent, with a slight upward inclination; 
the first one was long and the second a thick, enamel-covered 
tusk, with a chisel-like edge, which was produced by wear. 
The premolars were smaller and simpler than the molars, which 
were quadritubercular, the four conical cusps arranged so as 
to form two transverse crests, giving a pattern like that of the 
early pigs and pecearies and of precisely the kind that might 
have been predicted from the teeth of {Paleomastodon. 

The skull had an utterly different appearance from that 
of tPaleomastodon, the difference being much greater than 
between the latter and the Miocene tGomphotherium. It was 
‘long and narrow, and, except for the very prominent zygomatic 
arches, of nearly uniform, tubular shape, the brain-case being 
of small capacity, though, as compared with other Eocene 
mammals, the brain was proportionately large. ‘‘It is possible 


HISTORY OF THE PROBOSCIDEA 435 


that the early tendency toward a considerable cerebral devel- 
opment shown in these primitive Proboscidea is one of the 
causes why the group has survived and flourished through so 
long a period”’ (Andrews). The cranium was very long and 
the facial region extremely short, the premaxillaries not being 
prolonged into a snout, as they were in tPaleomastodon; the 
occipital bones formed nearly the entire posterior surface of 
the cranium and even encroached slightly upon the roof. There 
was a long, but not very prominent, sagittal crest, and some of 
the cranial bones were much thickened; in one species the 
hinder part of the cranial walls was distinctly inflated, a begin- 
ning of the enormous thickening which has culminated in the 
true elephants. The nasal bones were already much shortened, 
though they were twice as long as those of tPalewomasto- 
don, and the animal would appear to have had an incipient 
proboscis. 

The neck was of moderate length and the body very long, 
with at least twenty pairs of ribs, and there was probably 
a long tail. The hip-bone differed remarkably in its extreme 
narrowness from that of the later Proboscidea and the limb- 
bones were much more slender, though not dissimilar in shape. 

At a very early period the order became divided into two 
main branches, one of which includes all the forms so far 
considered, and the other the very strange {Dinotherium. The 
jdinotheres entered Europe together with the jtmastodons 
in the lower Miocene and continued into the Pliocene without 
much change and then died out, leaving no descendants. 
They never invaded North America, probably because they 
were of more or less aquatic habit, like the hippopotamuses, 
and therefore less likely to find suitable conditions in the 
narrow and unstable land-bridges which connected the Old 
World with the New, than were animals of purely terrestrial 
habitat. The tdinotheres were of huge size, equalling the 
larger elephants in this respect and closely resembling them in 
the skeleton of the body and limbs. As usual in this order, 


436 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


the generic peculiarities were to be found in the teeth and skull. 
There were no superior tusks, all the upper incisors and canines 
being lost, but there was a pair of large lower tusks, which 
were directed downward, with a strong backward curvature. 
The dental formula then was: 74, cf, p3, m3,X2=22. The 
grinding teeth were relatively quite small and had, except the 
first molar, two transverse crests, giving a pattern singularly 
like that seen in the tapirs. The skull was remarkably long, 
low and flat, and no doubt these animals had a proboscis of 
some sort. That the tdinotheres were derived from the same 
ancestral stock as the tmastodons and elephants is perfectly 
obvious and is not questioned by any one, but it is not yet 
possible to trace the connection. 

The proboscideans were late immigrants into South 
America, being known there only in the Pleistocene and late 
Pliocene times, and only the fmastodons entered the southern 
continent, where they gave rise to several peculiar local species 
in Argentina, Bolivia, Chili and Brazil; one of these (}Mas- 
todon andium) had a deposit of cement on the crowns of the 
grinding teeth. Why the elephants, which extended to the 
northern border of the Neotropical region, should have failed 
to reach South America and maintain themselves there, is but 
one of many similar questions to which no assured answer can 
be given. 

The evolution of the Proboscidea was, in a certain sense, 
very similar to that of the foreodont family (p. 381) among the 
Artiodactyla, in that the developmental changes affected 
chiefly the dentition and the skull, the skeleton of the body 
and limbs having very early acquired a character which was 
afterward but little modified. Were the skull and teeth of the 
lower Miocene +Gomphotherium not known, we should hardly 
hesitate to refer the skeleton to the genus Elephas, and even 
in the Oligocene +Palewomastodon all the bones of the skeleton, 
other than the skull, were characteristically and unmistakably 
proboscidean. On the other hand, the transformations of the 


RECENT ) 


Flephas 
(Short chin). 


PLEISTOCENE ( 


Mastodon 


XK. Ghort chin). gb a 


Stegodon. 
(short chin). 


UPPER PLIOCENE} 


» Jongtrostris sta ge, 
(Shortening 


\. LOWER PLIOCENE |e 
chin) 


UPPER MIOCENE 


MIDDLE MYOCENE 


Mgration into Gomphotherium 


3 angushidens. Stage 
North America long thin), 


LOWER MIOCENE 


WWPPER OLIGOCENE 


LOWER OLIGOCENE) 


Palacomastodon 
(Aengflening chin). 


Folaecomastodon V3 UPPER E OC. ENE. 


Noeriiherium ae 
MIOOLE EOCENE Giorciy) 
Moeritherium J4 
2 LOWER EOCENE (ancestor unknown), 2 


Fie. 229. — Evolution of the Proboscidea: on the right, a series of skulls; on the left, 
last lower molar. (After Lull, modified by Sinclair.) N.B. {Tetrabelodon should 
read tGomphotherium. 

(437) 


438 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


teeth and skull were very profound and far-reaching, very 
much more so than those which took place in the foreodonts. 

In the dentition we may consider separately the develop- 
ment of the tusks and of the grinding teeth. The first step 
in the known series, as exemplified by tMeritherium, was the 
enlargement of the second incisor in each jaw to form a tusk 
which, though actually quite long, was very small when judged 
by the proboscidean standard. The upper tusk was directed 
vertically downward and the lower one was procumbent, point- 
ing almost directly forward; the third incisor and the canine 
were small and in the lower jaw already lost. In the next known 
stage, {Paleomastodon, all of the anterior teeth, except the 
tusks, had been suppressed; the upper tusks were longer 
and more curved and of an oval cross-section; they extended 
less directly downward and more forward, while the enamel 
was restricted to the outer side of the tusk; the lower tusks 
were more fully procumbent than in the preceding genus. The 
third stage, that of the lower Miocene tGomphotherium, showed 
the upper tusks greatly elongated and directed more forward 
than downward, while the lower tusks were but little larger 
than before. From the middle Miocene two phyla may be © 
distinguished by the tusks alone ; in one, which was not destined 
to long life, the lower pair increased greatly both in length and 
in diameter, while in the other series they rapidly diminished 
and eventually disappeared. Even in the Pleistocene, how- 
ever, the American tMastodon had remnants of these tusks 
in the males. In the later tmastodons, the tstegodonts, and 
true elephants, the upper tusks, which alone remained, lost 
the enamel bands and attained enormous proportions, differing 
in the various genera and species in the extent and direction 
of curvature. An aberrant mode of tusk development was 
to be seen in the tdinotheres, in which the upper pair was sup- 
pressed and the lower pair enlarged and so curved that the 
points were directed backward. 

The grinding teeth underwent much more radical and 


HISTORY OF THE PROBOSCIDEA 439 


striking changes. At first ({Meritherium) they were small, 
very low-crowned and of simple pig-like or quadritubercular 
pattern, making two interrupted cross-crests; all were in use 
simultaneously and the succession of milk-teeth and premolars 
was by vertical replacement, as in normal mammals generally. 
In tPaleomastodon there were three pairs of tubercles on the 
molars and in {Gomphotherium these coalesced into ridges, but 
in all the tmastodons there was more or less distinctness of the 
conical tubercles. In one or more phyla the three-ridged plan 
persisted for a long time, one such phylum terminating in the 
Pleistocene tMastodon americanus. In the other series the 
number of ridges increased, first to four, then to five, six and 
more ({Stegodon); the crowns of the teeth became much 
larger and higher, and the ridges, as their number increased, 
became much thinner, and the valleys between them were filled 
with cement, and finally, in the true elephants, with their 
fully hypsodont, many-crested teeth, were thickly covered all 
over with cement. The vertical succession of milk-teeth and 
premolars was retained in tGomphotherium, at least in some 
species, but the large molars, which could not find room to be 
exposed while the premolars were in place, came in successively 
from behind. This horizontal mode of succession is the only 
one to be seen in the true elephants, in which but one tooth, 
or parts of two, on each side of each jaw are in simultaneous 
use and the premolars have entirely disappeared, but the milk- 
teeth are retained. 

The changes in the skull, which amounted to a recon- 
struction, were very largely conditioned by the great increase 
in the length and consequent weight of the tusks, in the size 
of the grinding teeth and the development of the proboscis. In 
the earliest known type ({Meritherium) the skull had little 
about it that would, at first sight, suggest proboscidean affin- 
ities; it was long and narrow, with sagittal crest and occiput 
of normal type, very long cranial and very short facial region. 
The nasal opening was directed forward and the nasal canal 


440 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


was relatively long and horizontal in direction, but the nasal 
bones were already much shortened, indicating that the pro- 
boscis was probably in an incipient stage. The symphysis 
of the lower jaw was procumbent and somewhat elongated, but 
to only a comparatively slight degree. 

While the skull of tMeritheriwm was not obviously pro- 
boscidean, that of its successor, |Paleomastodon, was unmis- 
takably so, yet retained several primitive features, which were 
lost in all of the subsequent genera, such as the sagittal crest, 
the relatively low cranium and moderate thickening of the 
cranial bones, the forward direction of the nasal opening, etc. ; 
the symphysis of the lower jaw was very greatly prolonged. 

As the tusks enlarged and the proboscis grew longer, the 
weight of the head and its appendages necessitated a largely 
increased ‘area of attachment for the neck-muscles, and this 
was attained by a very great thickening of the cranial roof, 
the occiput not increasing proportionately ; at the same time, 
the thickened bones were honeycombed with sinuses, so as to 
reduce their weight without sacrifice of strength. In those 
species of the Miocene +Gomphotherium which had large and 
heavy tusks, this thickening was not very much less than in 
the true elephants. The enlargement of the tusks had other 
consequences, as, for example, in lengthening and broadening 
the premaxillaries and, in the elephants, in their downward 
bending, so as to shorten still further the facial region of the 
skull. With the development of the proboscis, the nasal 
bones were reduced to a minimum and the anterior nasal 
opening was no longer directed forward, but obliquely upward, 
while the nasal passage lost its horizontal direction and became 
almost vertical. The lower jaw continued to elongate the 
symphysis, reaching a maximum in certain species of tGom- 
photherium ; but the reverse process of shortening this anterior 
region of the jaw began with the reduction of the lower tusks, 
and, when these had disappeared, nothing remained of the 
immensely elongated symphysis, except the short spout of the 


HISTORY OF THE PROBOSCIDEA 441 


elephant’s jaw. As the grinding teeth increased in height, 
there was a concomitant increase in the vertical depth of the 
jaws for their lodgment. 

It was an obvious advantage in the mechanical problem 
of supporting the enormous weight of head, tusks and trunk 
to shorten the neck and thus bring the weight nearer to the 
point of support at the withers, the lengthening proboscis 
rendering it unnecessary for the mouth to reach the ground 
in feeding or drinking. The other parts of the skeleton under- 
went comparatively little change, the degree of modification 
being greatest between {tMeritherium and t+Paleomastodon. 
Throughout the series the bones of the fore-arm and lower 
leg remained separate, and the feet very short and five-toed. 
In size also the great stature and massiveness were attained 
early. After the great migration of the Proboscidea to the 
northern continents, we find considerable differences of size 
between the various phyla, though all were very large, and 
even as early as the lower Miocene of France, there were 
species which rivalled the modern elephants in bulk. It was 
this rapid attainment of great size and weight which appears 
to have been the determining factor in the conservatism of the 
skeleton. After the skeleton had become fully adjusted to 
the mechanical necessities imposed by immense weight, and 
that adjustment, as we have seen, was effected at a com- 
paratively early period in the history of the order, then no 
further modification of importance would seem to have been 
called for. No doubt the habits and mode of life of these 
massive, sedate and slow-moving animals underwent but little 
change from the lower Oligocene onward. There is reason to 
think that }|Meritherium was semi-aquatic and a haunter of 
marshes and streams, but, if so, the change to a life on dry 
ground was complete in the lower Oligocene, for the structure 
of tPaleomastodon gives no reason for supposing that it was 
anything but a dweller on solid land and a denizen of forests. 

Although this book does not undertake to deal with the 


442 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


obscure problems connected with the marine mammals, it may 
be noted in passing that one of these problems has been brought 
near to solution, if not actually solved, by the discoveries in 
Egypt and that is the question concerning the origin of the 
Sirenia. The order includes the existing Manatee or Sea- 
Cow (Manatus) of the coast of Florida, northeastern South 
America and western Africa, and the Dugong (Halicore) of the 
Indian Ocean. These are mammals which are adapted to a 
strictly marine habitat and are incapable of existence on land, 
having lost the hind limbs and converted the fore limbs into 
swimming paddles. Unlike the whales, porpoises and other 
Cetacea, the Sirenia are herbivorous and feed upon seaweed 
and eel-grass and the aquatic plants of large rivers. The 
Egyptian discoveries tend very strongly to the conclusion that 
the Sirenia and Proboscidea were both derived from a common 
stock and that the genus t{Meritheriwm was not very far removed 
from the probable ancestor from which both of the orders 
descended. 


CHAPTER XI 
HISTORY OF THE JAMBLYPODA AND {CONDYLARTHRA 


TuEsE are two orders of hoofed animals which long ago 
vanished from the earth and no member of either is known to 
have survived later than the Eocene epoch ; both were of great 
antiquity, dating back to the Paleocene, perhaps even to the 
Cretaceous. The last of the tAmblypoda are found in the 
lowest Uinta or highest Bridger, but they were relatively 
abundant in all the more ancient beds. The following table 
gives the more important American forms : 


Order AMBLYPODA. {Short-Footed Ungulates 


Suborder + TALIGRADA 
I. {PeRrPTycuipaz. 


t Periptychus, Paleoc. 
II. {PANTOLAMBDID&. 
t Pantolambda, Paleoc. 


Suborder {PANTODONTA 
II. tCorypHopontipa. 
} Coryphodon, Wasatch and Wind River. 


Suborder {D1nocERATA 
IV. {UINTATHERIIDA. 
{Bathyopsis, Wind River. t{Elachoceras, Bridger. f{Uintatherium, 
do. fobasileus, do. 


As is shown in the table, the suborder }Taligrada is entirely 
Paleocene in distribution, the +Pantodonta are lower Eocene 
and the +Dinocerata chiefly middle Eocene, though persisting 
into the upper. The tDinocerata were the most striking and 
characteristic of Bridger mammals, and two or three phyla 
of them may be distinguished, though for our purposes this 

443 


444 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


is hardly necessary, for these strange and bizarre creatures 
were all very much alike. From the commonest and best- 
known genus ({Uintatheriwm) they are called ftuintatheres. 
They were large and ponderous animals, the veritable giants 
of their time, far exceeding any of their contemporaries. In 
appearance they were among the most fantastic of the many 
curious beasts which. the fossils have revealed. 

The skull carried three pairs of bony protuberances, or 
horn-like outgrowths; one pair on the nasal bones suggest 
by their shape and character that they formed the support of 
dermal horns like those of the paired-horn rhinoceroses (tDicer- 
athertum) of the Oligocene and lower Miocene. (See p. 239.) 
The second pair, which were moderately high and thick prom- 
inences, almost cylindrical in shape and tapering but slightly 
to their bluntly rounded ends, were chiefly outgrowths of the 
maxillaries, or upper jaw-bones. From their shape, it is likely 
that these were not sheathed in horn, but were merely covered 
with skin, as were also the third pair, which arose from the 
parietals. These were massive, club-shaped prominences, 
eight or ten inches high and broadening to the free ends, a 
shape which makes it impossible to suppose that these were 
true horn-cores covered with horny sheaths. A high crest 
of bone, representing the occipital crest, enclosed the top and 
back of the cranium, connecting the posterior pair of ‘“‘horns”’ 
and dying away in front of them. The top of the cranium 
had thus a deep, basin-like character, such as is to be found 
in no mammal outside of this suborder and was one of the 
most peculiar features of this extraordinary skull. The brain- 
cavity was absurdly small, the growth of the brain not having 
kept pace with that of the body; the cavity is hidden away in 
the postero-inferior portion of the skull, the immense thickness 
of the cranial walls being somewhat lightened by the formation 
of sinuses, but these were much less extensive and pervasive 
than in other very large, horned or tusk-bearing mammals, 
such as elephants, rhinoceroses, etc. Probably, as in the case of 


HISTORY OF THE TAMBLYPODA 445 


the {titanotheres and tentelodonts, this deficiency of brain-de- 
velopment was at least one of the factors which led to the early 
extinction of the group. The premaxillaries were slender and 
rod-like bones, which did not meet in the middle line and carried 
no teeth. The long and massive nasal bones and the position of 
the nasal opening show that these animals cannot have had 
a proboscis of any kind. The lower jaw was remarkable for 
the great bony flange which, in the males, descended on each 


Fig. 230.—Skull of tuintathere (+ Uintatherium alticeps), lower jaw supplied from another 
species. Princeton University Museum. For restoration, see Fig. 231, p. 447. 


side from the lower border, near the anterior end, and served 
to protect the great canine tusks from fracture. 

The female skull differed in two respects from that of the 
male: (1) the horn-like protuberances were much more slen- 
der and less prominent; (2) as the upper canine did not form 
a tusk, the lower jaw had no flanges. The skull of the artio- 
dactyl {Protoceras (p. 406) was remarkably similar to that of 
the tuintatheres. 

The dental formula was: 7%,c4, p3,m%,x2=34. The 
upper incisors were completely lost and the lower ones had the 


446 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


very unusual peculiarity of being bilobate, or having the crown 
separated into two well-defined cusps. The upper canines in the 
males were very large, relatively thin, recurved and sabre-like 
tusks, with acute points and sharp edges, which must have been 
terrible weapons, though it is difficult to see how they were 
used; probably the mouth was widely opened, so as to clear 
the points of the tusks, and the animal then struck with them, 
as a snake does with itsfangs. The lower canine was very small 
and was included in the incisor series, the shape and function 
of which it had assumed. Thus, the tuintatheres, with their 
toothless premaxillaries and, to all appearances, eight lower 
incisors, formed a curious parallel to the true ruminants 
(Pecora), and, as in the latter, they must have had a firm 
elastic pad on the premaxillaries, against which the lower 
incisors could effectively bite, when cropping the soft plants 
which formed the diet of these great beasts. The grinding 
teeth were low-crowned and surprisingly small in com- 
parison with the size of the skull. The premolars and 
molars were nearly alike and had two or more transverse 
crests. 

Aside from the altogether exceptional character of the skull, 
the skeleton was quite strikingly elephantine in appearance, 
so much so, in fact, that these animals have repeatedly been 
referred to the Proboscidea and some writers are still of the 
opinion that the two orders were related. There is, however, 
no sufficient ground for this view ; the undeniable likenesses are 
much more probably to be ascribed to the operation of con- 
vergent development. 

The neck was of moderate length, sufficiently long to enable 
the animal to reach the ground with the lips, a necessity in the 
absence of a proboscis. The body was very long and, as is 
shown by the length and curvature of the ribs and the great 
breadth of the hip-bones, extremely bulky. The limbs were 
very massive, and the long bones had lost the marrow-cavities, 
being filled with spongy bone, as in the elephants, {titanotheres 


447 


HISTORY OF THE ;AMBLYPODA 


ISIOATUN UOJOULG pue ov[e X fo suMasnU oY} UI sustUTDods WOI] polO}soy ‘pulyod apeuroy 
‘punoiso10j UL oO ‘ODUYS LOBplUg oY} JO (sda17y wniwayjopUr| |) spodaAyquie|, suyurydoo oq Jo aug — ‘LEZ ‘Py 


448 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


and most other very heavy mammals. The bones of the fore- 
arm and lower leg were separate. The hip- and thigh-bones 
and shin-bones were remarkably elephantine in character and, 
if found isolated, might readily be referred to some unknown 
proboscidean, but the bones of the fore limb were quite different 
from those of the elephants. The feet likewise had a very 
proboscidean appearance, notwithstanding important and 
significant deviations in structure; they had the same short- 
ness and massiveness and a similar reduction in the size of 
the hoofs, and the presence of all five digits added to the resem- 
blance. Undoubtedly, the feet had the same columnar shape 
and arrangement of elastic pads. The living animal must 
have had an appearance quite similar to that of a rather small 
elephant, not exceeding six or seven feet in height at the 
shoulders and therefore not surpassing the largest modern 
rhinoceroses, the broad-lipped species of Africa (Opsiceros 
simus). Of course, the head must be excepted from the com- 
parison, as that was totally unlike the head of any existing 
creature; with its long and narrow shape; its fantastic pro- 
tuberances and its lack of a proboscis, it had no suggestion of 
likeness to any proboscidean. Whether the great body was 
naked, or clothed with hair, it is of course impossible to deter- 
mine with confidence, but, all things considered, it seems un- 
likely that the hair should have been completely lost in any 
terrestrial mammal at so early a period. As we have seen in 
the preceding chapters, hairy elephants and rhinoceroses con- 
tinued into and through the Pleistocene, not only in the cold 
regions of the north, as is shown by the hair of the American 
tMastodon. In the tropics conditions were different, and in 
that uniformly warm climate the loss of hair by the very large 
mammals probably took place long before the Pleistocene. 
At all events, it is a significant fact that no hairless land 
mammals are now known in any region which has severe 
winters. It is true that the middle Eocene climate over most 
of North America was warm-temperate or subtropical, and 


HISTORY OF THE TAMBLYPODA 449 


the fuintatheres may, in consequence, have been hairless, 
but there is no evidence of this. 

Within the limits of the fuintathere family, considerable 
modification and change may be traced, which, as in the case 
of the Proboscidea, principally affected the skull and the gen- 
eral stature. It is hardly worth while to deal separately with 
the two or.more phyla which may be distinguished, for the 
differences between them are relatively unimportant. In the 
uppermost part of the Bridger stage almost the latest repre- 
sentatives of the family are found and the genus ({Hobasileus) 
was of the largest size. These animals had remarkably long 


Fic. 232. — Skull of tElachoceras parvum (lower jaw restored). 
Princeton University Museum. 


and narrow heads and very large, shovel-shaped nasal protu- 
berances; in the males the upper canine tusks were very long 
and curved back nearly in a semicircle. In the middle portion 
of the stage the species of tU%ntatheriwm were somewhat 
smaller and had shorter, wider and higher heads, the tusks, 
though well developed, were not quite so long, nor so strongly 
recurved; in some species they were nearly straight, with 
“hastate” or spear-head point. In the same horizon is found 
a third genus ({tElachoceras) which was probably a survival 
persisting from the lower Bridger, in which none of these ani- 
mals and little of anything else has yet been found. fHlacho- 
ceras was hardly half as large as the common species of }Uinta- 
2G 


450 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


thertum and its skull might be described as a preliminary sketch 
for that of the latter ; the nasal horns were extremely small, or, 
more probably, entirely absent; the median pair were mere 
low knobs, hardly an inch in height, and the posterior pair 
were simply thickenings of the crest which enclosed the top of 
the cranium on three sides, scarcely rising above it. This 
crest itself was much less prominent than in tU¢ntatherium 
and the basin-like top of the skull, in consequence, very much 
shallower. The upper incisors and the first premolar had 
already been lost and the upper canine enlarged into a sabre- 
like tusk, which, however, was relatively smaller than in the 
succeeding genera. The grinding teeth were quite the same 
as in the latter. Unfortunately, the skull of f{Hlachoceras 
is the only part of the animal which is known, but, so far as 
that is concerned, it is precisely, what we should expect the 
forerunner of {Uintatherium to be; ‘an angestor made to order 
could hardly be more ers It might, of course, be 
objected that no such relation as that of ancestor and de- 
scendant could obtain between these two genera, because they 
were contemporaries, but the case is like that of the ancestral 
elephants described in the preceding chapter. {tMerritherium 
and tPaleomastodon are found together in the Egyptian 
Oligocene, the former surviving for a considerable time after 
it had given rise to the latter, and in the upper Eocene only 
{Meritherium occurs. Many similar instances might be 
given, just as grandfathers often live long with their grand- 
children. 

In the Wind River stage, or upper division of the lower 
Eocene, lived the still incompletely known {Bathyopsis, of 
which, however, sufficient material has been obtained to show 
that it was much less specialized than any of the Bridger genera. 
This genus comprised animals much smaller than its successor, 
+Hlachoceras of the middle Eocene, being smaller than a tapir ; 
it stood in much the same relation to {Hlachoceras as the latter 
did to tUintatherium. In the American Museum of Natural 


HISTORY OF THE SAMBLYPODA 451 


History is a highly interesting skull of tBathyopsis, which will 
shortly be described by Professor Osborn. The premaxillaries 
have not been preserved, and it is therefore impossible to say 
whether the upper incisors had already been suppressed or not, 
and though the upper canine has not been found, there can be 
no reasonable doubt that it wasa tusk. The lower canine had 
not yet gone over to the incisor series, but wasathin though large 
tusk. There was one more lower premolar, four in all, than 
tUintathertum possessed, and all the premolars were some- 
what smaller and simpler than the molars. The small skull 
had a broad and somewhat concave cranial roof, with slightly 
raised enclosing crest, and the horn-like protuberances of the 
posterior and median pairs were present in an incipient stage. 
Whether those of the nasal pair were also indicated is not 
known, but probably they were not. The lower jaw was of 
very peculiar shape; the flange of the inferior border was not 
so well defined as in tUintatherium, but had no hinder margin 
and rose very gradually backward. 

The series of genera in descending order, {Hobasileus, 
{Uintatherium, +Elachoceras and {Bathyopsis, immediately 
impresses the observer as being a natural phylogenetic series 
of successive ancestors and descendants. Unfortunately, 
only the skull is known in the two last named, but there is no 
ground for supposing that the discovery of the skeletons would 
require any alteration in the series as we now have it. No 
member of this series has yet been found in the Wasatch, but 
there can be no doubt that it was represented in that stage, for 
a recent expedition from the American Museum has collected 
teeth of a }Bathyopsis-like form in still older beds. 


SUBORDER {PANTODONTA 


During the older part of the lower Eocene the { uintatheres 
must have been a rare and unimportant element of the fauna, 
at least in those parts of the continent whose history we know. 
Their place was taken by another suborder, the tPantodonta, 


452° LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN: HEMISPHERE 


which was not ancestral to them, but collaterally related and 
descended from a common ancestry. The largest and most 
dominating of Wasatch mammals was the genus {Coryphodon, 
which also occurred in the lower Eocene of Europe, and the 
species of which ranged in stature from a tapir to an ox, though 
of much heavier form than the latter. The latest surviving 
species lived in the Wind River stage as a contemporary 
of {Bathyopsis, but then the suborder gave way to the 
tuintatheres. 

In {Coryphodon (see Fig. 142, p. 279) the number of teeth was 
unreduced, a fact which is recorded in the name of the suborder, 
the dental formula typical of all the primitive ungulates being 
applicable to the genus. This formula was: 73, c4, p 4, m3, 
x2=44,. The upper incisors were rather small, but functional, 
and the canines of both jaws were formidable tusks, though not 
rivalling in size the great sabres of the tuintatheres; the pre- 
molars had a simpler structure than the molars, which resembled 
those of the fuintatheres in a general way, but not closely. The 

. skull differed greatly from that of the fuintatheres in having 
no horn-like protuberances, and was relatively large and heavy, 
the cranium having a broad, flat roof and no sagittal crest, and 
the lower jaw had no descending flange from the inferior border ; 
in every way this skull was more normal and less bizarre- 
looking. The neck was proportionately longer than in the 
fuintatheres, the body long and the tail of medium length; 
the trunk-vertebre had surprisingly small and weak spines, 
perhaps an indication of aquatic habits. The limbs were 
quite short and very heavy, and the bones, in comparison with 
those of the fuintatheres, were less proboscidean and more 
perissodactyl in character. For example, the femur retained 
the third trochanter and the long bones had marrow-cavities. 
The feet, on the contrary, were very like those of the fuin- 
tatheres, being extremely short and five-toed and with reduced, 
nodular hoof-bones; even in the details of the wrist and ankle 
joints there was no important difference between the two groups. 


HISTORY OF THE {AMBLYPODA 453 


SUBORDER {TALIGRADA 


None of the ungulate series considered in the foregoing 
chapters can be traced back to a time earlier than the Wasatch, 
and many of them not so far, but in the case of the fAmblypoda 
the line may be carried down through the Paleocene. In the 
upper stage of that epoch (Torrejon) the order was represented by 
tPantolambda (Fig. 143, p. 285), a member of the third suborder, 
tTaligrada. The best-known species of the genus was ananimal 
with head and body somewhat smaller than those of a sheep 
and much shorter legs. The teeth were present in unreduced 
number, 44 in all; the canines were tusk-like, but very much 
smaller proportionately than those of f{Coryphodon; the 
premolars were smaller and simpler than the molars, which 
closely represent the common starting point, whence the curious 
tooth-patterns found in the subsequent genera of the various 
families were derived. The skull was long and narrow and had 
a prominent sagittal crest; the neck was of ordinary length, 
about equal to that of the head; the body was long and the 
tail very long, much as in the great cats. The hip-bones were 
narrow and slender and not bent outward, having no such 
breadth asin tCoryphodon. The limbs were short and relatively 
heavy, and the various bones were of such primitive character 
that, if found isolated and not in association with teeth or 
foot-bones, one would hardly venture to consider them as be- 
longing to any hoofed animal; the humerus had a very promi- 
nent deltoid crest and an epicondylar foramen, and the femur 
had the third trochanter. The five-toed feet were very short, 
and the digits were arranged in a spreading manner and were 
relatively much more slender than in fCoryphodon. Each 
digit terminated in a flat, pointed, well-developed hoof; evi- 
dently there was no elastic pad to bear the weight, such as 
recurs in nearly all very heavy ungulates. The gait of the 
animal was probably semi-plantigrade, the hoofs being the 
principal points of support. 


454 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


While +Pantolambda was an undoubted ungulate and a 
member of the +Amblypoda, there were many structural 
features in its skeleton which point to a relationship with the 
primitive flesh-eaters. In the lower stage of the Paleocene, 
the Puerco, the genus {Periptychus would seem to be the most 
ancient known member of the order, but it is still very im- 
perfectly understood. 


In the mode of evolution of the tAmblypoda, so far as that 
is recorded by the fossils, there is much to recall the develop- 
ment of the Proboscidea, though the story began and ended 
at far earlier dates and may be traced back to a much more 
primitive stage. 

(1) There was a rapid increase of stature, especially of 
bulk, in the fcoryphodonts, but decidedly more gradual 
in the fuintatheres, which eventually attained a far larger 
size. 

(2) The upper incisors were suppressed and the canines 
grew into formidable tusks, at first straight, then the superior 
one, enlarging still farther, acquired a curved, scimitar-like 
shape, while the inferior one dwindled and became functionally 
one of the incisors. 

(3) The grinding teeth remained low-crowned throughout, 
but acquired a more complex pattern, and the premolars became 
almost like the molars. 

(4) The skull underwent a most remarkable transformation. 
Beginning with a form that might have belonged to almost 
any of the ancient mammals, hoofed or clawed, having very 
prominent sagittal and occipital crests, long cranium and 
short face, it became in tCoryphodon flat-roofed, with mod- 
erately elongated face, while in the tuintatheres the top of the 
cranium gradually took on a deeply concave basin-shape and, 
with equal gradualness, three pairs of horn-like protuberances ; 
the lower jaw developed a great bony flange for the protection 
of the upper tusks. These peculiarities grew more and more 


HISTORY OF THE TAMBLYPODA 455 


exaggerated and were most striking in the terminal genus of 
the series, tHobasileus. 

(4) Unfortunately, nothing is yet known of the skeleton 
of tBathyopsis and }Elachoceras, so that it is not practicable 
to follow out all the stages of skeletal modification, though the 
general course of development is sufficiently plain. The neck 
did not change greatly, except to become very strong and heavy 
and to grow shorter proportionately as the skull was lengthened. 
The body remained long throughout the series, but gained 
greatly in bulk, as the stature of the animal increased. 

(5) The limb-bones lost their primitive character, such as 
the epicondylar foramen of the humerus and the third tro- 
chanter of the femur, and then, with the great increase of the 
weight to be supported, the marrow-cavities were filled with 
spongy bone and the hip-bones increased enormously in width ; 
the femur lost its cylindrical shape and was flattened antero- 
posteriorly, which gave it a very elephantine appearance. 
None of the limb-bones was suppressed or greatly reduced in 
size, nor was there any codssification between them. 

(6) The feet early gained their definitive character; at 
no time was there any loss of digits, but the originally divided 
toes were, in the genera of the Wasatch and subsequent stages, 
united into the columnar foot, and the hoofs were reduced from 
their primitively pointed shape to nodular form. 

As in the Proboscidea, therefore, there was comparatively 
little change in the skeleton after the massive and bulky pro- 
portions had been acquired, but great and continual modifica- 
tion of the skull. At the time when the tAmblypoda finally 
disappeared, no ungulate had acquired the hypsodont dentition. 
Had the group survived till the middle Miocene, a time when 
the spread of grassy plains so profoundly affected the feeding 
habits of many herbivorous mammals, the high-crowned teeth 
might have been developed in them also, and this, in turn, 
would have produced other changes in the skull, making closer 
the parallel with the Proboscidea. 


456 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


In conclusion, a few words may be said concerning the geo- 
graphical distribution of the tAmblypoda. In the Paleocene 
the only known representatives of the order were those of 
North America, but the tcoryphodonts of the lower Eocene 
migrated to the Old World; indeed, the genus +Coryphodon 
was first described and named from English specimens, but 
there were no such abundance and variety of these animals 
in Europe as there were in the western United States. The 
fuintatheres were strictly North American in distribution and 
no member of the suborder has ever been found outside of this 
continent. Animals referred to the tAmblypoda by some 
authorities have been obtained in the Oligocene and Miocene 
of South America, but the assignment has been made upon 
insufficient evidence. (See p. 508.) 


ORDER tCONDYLARTHRA 


The tCondylarthra were a group of exceedingly primitive 
ungulates, which served to connect the hoofed and clawed 
mammals in quite an intimate manner. So few indeed were 
the distinctively ungulate characters which they had acquired, 
that it is still premature to make any positive statements re- 
garding their geographical distribution, because unusually 
well-preserved specimens are required to make sure of their 
presence in any particular region. Concerning North America 
there is no room for question, and there is hardly any doubt 
that they existed in the Paleocene of Europe. The South 
American remains which have been referred to this order may 
very well prove eventually to belong to it properly, but until 
both feet and skulls have been obtained in unequivocal associa- 
tion, the reference can be only tentative. In North America 
they ranged through the Paleocene and lower Eocene, but are 
not known from any subsequent formation, and even in the 
Wind River only a few stragglers survived. 

The principal American families and genera are as follows: 


HISTORY OF THE {CONDYLARTHRA 457 


I. {MENISCOTHERIIDE. 
{Meniscotherium, Wasatch and Wind River. 
II. {PHENACODONTID. 
{Protogonodon, Puerco. {Euprotogonia, Torrejon. fPhenacodus, 
Wasatch and Wind River. 


1. +Phenacodontide 


The typical Wasatch genus + Phenacodus, which is very fully 
known from nearly complete skeletons, included species which 
varied in size from a fox to a small sheep; the same genus 
occurred in the Wind River, but not later. tPhenacodus 
had the unreduced dental formula: 73, c1, p 4, m3, X 2 = 44. 


A 


Fic, 233. Skeleton of the Wasatch tcondylarth, tPhenacodus primevus. American 
Museum. For restoration, see Fig. 141, p. 278. 


The incisors were small and simple, the canines tusk-like, 
but of no very great size, the premolars smaller and simpler than 
the molars. The latter were of the quadrituberculate pattern, 
of four simple, conical cusps arranged in two pairs, a pattern 
which is common to the earlier and less specialized members of 
many ungulate groups. The skull was long, narrow and low, 
with long and well-defined sagittal crest. As in primitive 
skulls generally, the cranial region was long and the face short, 
the eyes being very far forward; this does not imply large 
brain-capacity, indeed, the brain was very small, but merely 
that the portion of the skull behind the eyes was relatively 
long. The jaws were short and shallow, in accordance with the 


458 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


small and low-crowned teeth which they carried. The neck was 
of medium length, but the body was elongate and the tail was 
very long and stout. The hip-bones were narrow and slender, 
as in primitive ungulates generally. The limbs were short 
and stout and retained many very primitive characteristics. 
The humerus had a prominent deltoid crest and an epicondylar 
foramen; the fore-arm bones were separate and the ulna quite 
unreduced, being almost as stout as the radius. The femur 
had the third trochanter and the leg-bones were distinct, 
though the fibula was slender. The feet, which were short, had 
five digits each, but the third toe was enlarged, while the first 
and fifth were shortened, as though preparing to disappear 
and thus give rise to a three-toed perissodactyl foot. The 
ankle-bone (astragalus) had a rounded, convex lower end, 
fitting into the navicular, so that it might readily be taken for 
that of a clawed mammal. 


2. |Meniscotheriide 


A second family of Condylarthra was represented in the 
lower Eocene by the genus {Meniscotherium and was in some 
respects considerably more advanced than the fphenacodonts. 
These were small animals, in which the molars had acquired 
a crescentic pattern, recalling that seen in the early horses and 
in the {titanotheres and jchalicotheres, and other perisso- 
dactyl families. In the upper molars the two external cusps 
had been so extended as to form a continuous outer wall, each 
of the cusps having a concave external face and the two unit- 
ing in a prominent median ridge. The lower molars had two 
crescents, one behind the other, as in several families of both 
perissodactyls and artiodactyls. The body and tail were long, 
the limbs relatively longer and lighter than those of {Phena- 
codus and the five-toed feet were so like those of the modern 
conies, or klipdasses, of Africa and Asia Minor, that by some 
investigators the family has been referred to the same order, the 
Hyracoidea, but the suggestion is not a probable one. It is 


HISTORY OF THE {CONDYLARTHRA 459 


much more likely that these problematical little tmeniscotheres 
were merely a short-lived branch of the {Condylarthra. 

The tcondylarths were quite abundantly represented in 
the Paleocene, where the genus }+Euprotogonia was the fore- 
runner of the Wasatch tPhenacodus, but had an even more 
. primitive type of dentition. The upper molars were not 
quadritubercular, but tritubercular, the three cusps arranged 
in a triangle, the two outer ones forming the base and the single 


Fie. 234. — Lower Eocene tcondylarth, tMeniscotherium terre-rubre. Restored from 
a skeleton in the American Museum. 


inner one the apex. This type of upper molar was, or is still, 
common to the primitive and unspecialized members of a great 
many mammalian orders, marsupials, insectivores, rodents, 
carnivores, lemurs, artiodactyls, etc., and there is strong reason 
to believe that the tritubercular molar was the common start- 
ing point for almost all types of mammalian dentition. How- 
ever that may be, {Euprotogonia is of great interest as materi- 
ally helping to close the gap between the clawed and the 
hoofed mammals, belonging, as it did, to the latter and yet 


460 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


retaining in dentition, limbs and feet so many characteristics 
of the former. 

{tCondylarthra were probably present in the lowest 
Paleocene (Puerco stage), but the material so far obtained is 
so fragmentary that there can be no certainty on this point. 

It is not at all probable that any of the North American 
+Condylarthra should be regarded as ancestral to any of the 
more advanced ungulate groups; on the contrary, they would 
appear to have come to an end in the Wind River, leaving no 
descendants behind them. It is further true, as was men- 
tioned above, that the presence of tCondylarthra in other 
continents, while very probable, cannot be positively asserted, 
because the evidence is incomplete. Yet it would be a great 
mistake to assume, for this reason, that these most primitive 
of ungulates were devoid of evolutionary importance and 
interest. As is so often the case, where, in the absence of the 
direct ancestry, the collateral relations afford very valuable 
information as to the course of descent and modification, the 
{Condylarthra throw useful light upon the origin of the 
ungulate groups. It is extremely probable that the fcondy- 
larths, or some very similar series of primitive hoofed mam- 
mals, had a very wide and perhaps cosmopolitan range at the 
end of the Cretaceous and beginning of the Tertiary period, and 
that, in the still unidentified region, where the artiodactyls and 
perissodactyls arose, it was from a condylarthrous ancestry. 
Possibly, all the other ungulate orders may yet be traced back 
to the same stock, but it is rather more likely that the ungulates 
include several series of quite independent origin. At all 
events, it is quite certain that the clawed mammals long ante- 
dated the hoofed types and that the latter arose, either once or 
at several separate times, from the former. The tCondy- 
larthra show how one, at least, of these transitions was effected, 
and thus, in principle, how all were accomplished. 


CHAPTER XII 
HISTORY OF THE fTOXODONTIA (OR {NOTOUNGULATA) 


It is a regrettable circumstance that, while the successive 
Tertiary faunas are very fully represented in South America, 
approximately complete skeletons have, as yet, been obtained 
~ from only a few of the various stages; from the others the 
known material is very fragmentary and largely made up of 
teeth and jaws. No doubt, the history of fossil-collecting in 
North America will, in due course of time, be repeated in the 
southern continent and more and more complete and satis- 
factory specimens be obtained. At present, however, it is not 
possible to trace the modifications of structure in any given 
series with such detail as in those which were developed within 
the limits of Arctogeea. No such story as that of the horses, 
the rhinoceroses or the camels, can yet be told of the South 
American groups, whatever future exploration may teach us. 
Nevertheless, much has already been learned concerning the 
strange creatures that once inhabited the Neotropical region 
and long ago vanished completely, leaving no trace in the 
modern world. 

As was mentioned in Chapter VI, on the present geographi- 
cal distribution of mammals, South America is to-day the 
richest and, after Australia, the most peculiar zodlogically of 
all the regions. All of the modern hoofed animals found in 
that continent at present, the tapirs, peccaries, llamas and 
deer, are immigrants derived at a comparatively late date 
from the north, but throughout the Tertiary and the Pleisto- 
cene there were several indigenous types of ungulates, and of 
these the largest and most varied assemblage was that included 

461 


462 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


in the order tToxodontia. The most important and best 
known of the families and genera are listed in the table: 


Suborder fTOXODONTA. /Toxodonts Proper 


I. tToxopontipaz. 

{Toxodon, up. Plio. and Pamp. {Xotodon, do. {Trigodon, Monte 
Hermoso. fNesodon, Santa Cruz. tAdinotherium, do.  {Pro- 
nesodon, Deseado. + Proadinotherium, do. 

II. {Notouipripaz. 

{Notohippus, Patagonian. tRhynchippus, Deseado. fMorphip- 

pus, do. 
III. {Leontinips. ; 
{Leontinia, Deseado. tColpodon, Patagonian. 


Suborder fTYPOTHERIA. };Typotheres 


I. ¢TypoTHErip2. 
tTypotherium, Plioc. and Pleist., {| Hutrachytherus, Deseado. 
II. tINTERATHERIID A. 
tI nteratherium, Santa Cruz.  Protypotherium, do. 
III. {HEGETOTHERIIDA. 
tHegetotherium, Santa Cruz. fPachyrukhos, Santa Cruz to Pam- 
pean. 
IV. tNororiTHEcipz. 
{Notopithecus, Casa Mayor. tAdpithecus, do. 
V. {ARCHHOPITHECIDA. 
tHenricosbornia, Casa Mayor. 
VI. tARCHZOHYRACIDA. 
tArcheohyrax, Deseado. 


Suborder fENTELONYCHIA. tHomalodotheres 


I. tNorostTyLoPip#. 
tNotostylops, Casa Mayor. 
II. tIsoremnipaz. 
{Isotemnus, Casa Mayor. t Pleurocelodon, Deseado. 
III. {HoMALoDoNTOTHERIID#. 
tHomalodontotherium, Santa Cruz. +Asmodeus, Deseado.  fPro- 
asmodeus, Astraponotus Beds. +Thomashualeya, Casa Mayor. 


Suborder tPYROTHERIA. {fPyrotheres 


{PYROTHERIIDAE. 
+ Pyrotherium, Deseado. +Propyrotherium, Astraponotus Beds. 
t Carolozittellia, Casa Mayor. t+ Paulogervaisia, do. 


HISTORY OF THE {TOXODONTIA 463 


SUBORDER {ToxopontTa. }Toxoponts PRopER 


Among the remarkable animals which Charles Darwin 
found in the Pampean deposits of Argentina and took with him 
to England, was a skull of one which Sir Richard Owen named 
tToxodon, or ‘‘Bow-Tooth,” from the strongly curved grind- 
ing teeth, those of the opposite sides almost meeting in the 
median line above the hard palate. For many years {Toxodon, 
of which ha.dly anything was known, save the skull and teeth, 
was a zoological puzzle and no one was able to reach any satis- 
factory conclusion as to its systematic position and relation- 
ships, as all the attempts made to force it into one of the known 
ungulate groups were obvious failures. The discovery of 
complete skeletons, two of which are mounted in the La Plata 
Museum, showed the necessity of making a new group for its 
reception, as Owen had originally proposed. Through the 
exploration of Argentina and its Patagonian provinces, the 
history of the suborder was followed far back into the Tertiary 
period and its indigenous character demonstrated. This and 
all the other subdivisions of the tToxodontia were exclusively 
Neotropical in distribution, and none have been found farther 
north than Nicaragua and there only in the Pleistocene. 

The suborder was represented in the Pampean beds by 
several genera, which differed in size and in the complexity of 
the grinding teeth, but only of tTozodon is the skeleton at 
all fully known. The Pampean species of this genus were 
massive, elephantine creatures, rivalling the largest rhinoceroses 
in bulk, but not equalling them in height. The teeth were all 
thoroughly hypsodont and apparently continued to grow 
throughout life without forming roots; the dental formula 
was: 12,c%, p3, m3, X 2=34. The first upper incisor was 
broad and chisel-shaped, the second more tusk-like, but in some 
species these proportions were reversed; the lower incisors 
were procumbent, pointing straight forward, and of these the 
third was the largest. The canines were lost and there was a 


464 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


long, toothless gap behind the incisors. The premolars were 
smaller and simpler than the molars, and the anterior ones were 
very small and were frequently shed at an early stage, making 
the number of these teeth variable in different specimens. The 
upper molars also were of quite simple pattern; the broad and 
smooth external wall showed no distinct signs of a division 
into cusps, and from it arose two oblique transverse ridges ; the 
deep cleft or valley which separated these ridges was divided 
and made Y-shaped on the grinding surface by a prominent 
spur from the outer wall between the two principal crests. 
The lower molars were composed of two crescents, one behind 
the other, of which the posterior one was very much longer, 
and both were very narrow transversely. 

The skull had shortened nasal bones, an indication that 
some sort of a proboscis or prehensile upper lip was present. 
There was no trace of a horn; and the general aspect of the 
skull was not unlike that of one of the hornless rhinoceroses, 
except for its great vertical depth; the sagittal crest was very 
short and had almost disappeared. The auditory apparatus 
was very extraordinary, though it can hardly be described 
without an undue employment of anatomical terms; suffice it 
to say that in addition to the usual outer ear-chamber, formed 
by the inflated tympanic bone, there was a second chamber in 
the rear wall of the skull, communicating with the first by a 
canal. This arrangement would seem to imply an unusual 
keenness in the sense of hearing. The external entrance to the 
ear was placed very high up on the side of the head, as in the 
pigs and in many aquatic mammals, suggesting that tToxodon 
was more or less amphibious. The anterior, or symphyseal, 
region of the lower jaw was very broad, flattened and shovel-like, 
hardly projecting at all below the plane of the lower incisors. 

The neck was short and stout, the body long and extremely 
bulky, having an immense, almost hippopotamus-like girth ; 
the spines of the anterior dorsal vertebre were very long, mak- 
ing a high hump at the shoulders. The limbs were short and 


HISTORY OF THE }TOXODONTIA 465 


very heavy, the bones very massive and with large projections 
for muscular attachments. The fore leg was much shorter 
than the hind, depressing the neck and head in very curious 
fashion. The shoulder-blade was rather narrow, the spine 
without acromion or distinct metacromion; the hip-bones 
were greatly expanded and turned outward, quite in elephant- 
like fashion, a character which almost invariably accompanies 
great increase in bodily mass. The thigh-bone was also very 
elephantine in appearance, a likeness due to its shape and pro- 
portions, to the loss of the third trochanter and the flattening 
of the shaft, so that the width much exceeded the antero- 
posterior thickness. All of these characters are, as a rule, asso- 
ciated with greatly augmented weight and have been independ- 
ently acquired in several series of large and massive animals, 
elephants, fuintatheres, {titanotheres, and to this list should be 
added the ttoxodonts. In the fore-arm the bones were sep- 
arate and the ulna was quite unreduced and very stout, but in 
the lower leg, which was very short in comparison with the 
thigh, the tibia and fibula were codssified at the upper end, 
but not at the lower, a most exceptional arrangement. The 
feet were surprisingly small and had but three digits, the reduc- 
tion from the original five having proceeded to that extent 
before the process was arrested by augmenting weight. The 
heel-bone (caleaneum) was so articulated with the other bones 
of the tarsus as to project almost straight backward, nearly 
at a right angle to the position normal in a digitigrade foot, 
a feature which is not known to occur in any other mammal. 
The hoof-bones were so small and nodular that the foot must 
have been of the columnar type, the weight resting upon the 
usual elastic pad. 

The restoration (Fig. 121, p. 217) shows tToxodon as a very 
heavy, slow-moving, water-loving animal; the aquatic habits 
are, of course, conjectural, but the general proportions are 
accurately given by the skeleton. 

From the Pleistocene, tTorodon may be followed back 

2H: 


466 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


without notable change to the Pliocene, but there it was in 
association with the last of a curious phylum, the genus 
tTrigodon (Fig. 138, p. 263), as yet known only from the skull. 
In these animals a very prominent bony knob or boss on the 
forehead clearly demonstrates the former presence of a large, 
rhinoceros-like, frontal horn. But very few of the indigenous 
South American ungulates possessed horns, or horn-like pro- 
tuberances of the skull, and all of these so far discovered 


Fie. 235. —Skull of tToxodon, Pampean formation, the upper molars much broken. 
La Plata Museum. 


belonged to the suborder ¢Toxodonta. +Trigodon was, from 
present knowledge, the only horned creature of its time and 
region, for the deer and antelopes which had probably arrived 
in South America had not advanced so far south as Argentina. 
Another very peculiar feature of this genus was that the lower 
incisors were present in uneven number, two on each side 
and one in the middle. Nothing has been found of the 
skeleton, but it was doubtless that of a smaller and somewhat 
lighter T7’oxodon. 


HISTORY OF THE TTOXODONTIA 467 


The material from the lower Pliocene adds nothing to our 
knowledge of the suborder, but in the Santa Cruz time of 
Patagonia, which was Miocene, it was very abundantly repre- 
sented and preponderatingly by the genus +Nesodon, which 
was the first discovered member of the marvellous Santa Cruz 
fauna, named nearly 70 years ago by Sir Richard Owen. 
It so chanced that Owen’s specimen was the imperfect lower 
jaw of a young animal with the milk-teeth, which were mis- 
taken for the permanent dentition, and when the latter was 
found long afterwards, it was naturally supposed to belong to 
a different animal and received a different generic name. Nor 
was this all; the changes which took place in the appearance 
and relative size of the permanent 
teeth within the life-time of the in- 
dividual were so remarkable, that 
the successive stages of development 
were by several investigators sup- 
posed to be distinct genera and 
species and named accordingly. In , 
this way nearly 30 different names Fic. 236.—Skull of Santa Cruz 

i ttoxodont, tNesodon ; same scale 
have, at one time or another, been 6 reduction as Fig. 235. 
assigned to the common species, 
tN. imbricatus; and it was not until the late Dr. Ameghino 
had brought together a complete series of skulls and jaws 
illustrating these changes, and showing the gradual transition 
from one to the other, that the confusion could be cleared up. 

There was a long hiatus in time between t7oxodon and 
tNesodon and so great was the structural difference between 
them, that there is much doubt whether the latter was directly 
ancestral to the former; in any event, tNesodon so nearly 
represents what the desired ancestor must have been, as to 
serve for all practical purposes of the study. 

All the species of this Santa Cruz genus were much smaller 
animals than the species of tToxodon, +N. imbricatus being 
no longer than a tapir, with considerably shorter legs, and of 


468 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


much slighter and more slender build than tTorodon, though 
every tooth and every bone proclaims its relationship to the 
latter. 

In tNesodon the dental formula was unreduced; 73, c4, 
pi, m3, X 2 =44, though several of the teeth were much 
reduced in size, so as to have lost their functional impor- 
tance, and frequently individuals are found in which one or more 
of these insignificant teeth are lacking. The first upper incisor 
was a broad, chisel-shaped tooth, which continued to grow for 
a period, then formed its root, and growth ceased ; the second 
incisor was a pointed, triangular tusk, which grew throughout 
life, becoming longer with advancing age ; while the third, which 
was lost in ¢Torodon, was small and unimportant. In the 
lower jaw the first and second incisors were chisel-like and had 
a limited growth; being rather narrow, they both bit against 
the broad first upper incisor; the third incisor was a persist- 
ently growing tusk, not so large as the upper one, against the 
posterior face of which it impinged and was obliquely trun- 
cated by wear, so that its length was limited, while the upper 
tusk continued to elongate and was made narrower and sharper 
by wear. All the lower incisors were far less procumbent than 
in tToxodon, and were directed obliquely upward and forward. 
The remarkable changes of appearance which, as mentioned 
above, took place within the life-time of the individual, were 
largely due to the differential growth of the incisors. The 
milk-incisors were all nearly alike and formed no tusks; when 
the permanent incisors were first protruded, the first upper 
and the first and second lower were large and the tusks were 
not visible, and, when the latter did appear, they were for some 
time smaller than the other incisors. These, however, formed 
roots and ceased to grow, actually becoming smaller with 
advancing age, for the crowns narrowed to the roots and, the 
more they were worn down, the smaller they became. The 
tusks, on the other hand, grew throughout life and became 
larger as the other incisors were reduced by wear, and thus the 


HISTORY OF THE {TOXODONTIA 469 


whole appearance of the anterior part of the jaw was totally 
changed. 

This mode of forming the tusks by the enlargement of the 
second upper and third lower incisor is an unusual one, though 
it was repeated in another South American ungulate order, the 
tLitopterna, and nearly so in the Proboscidea, in which both 
upper and lower tusks were the second of the three original 
incisors. 

In both jaws, the canines of ¢Nesodon were insignificant and 
sometimes absent. The premolars, which were smaller and 
simpler than the molars, had quite high crowns, but early 
ceased to grow and formed long roots. The molars were truly 
hypsodont and formed no roots till late in life; they were con- 
structed on the same plan as those of {Toxodon, but were de- 
cidedly more complex, the upper ones having several spurs 
and crests given off inward from the external wall, in addition 
to the two principal transverse crests, and they had a certain 
superficial likeness to the teeth of a rhinoceros. As in tT ozxo- 
don, these upper molars were curved inward, so as almost to 
meet those of the opposite side above the palate. The lower 
molars had the same bicrescentic plan as in {Toxodon, but 
were more complicated, and in the concavity of the hinder 
crescent was a vertical pillar, which was well-nigh universal 
among the indigenous South American ungulates. 

If {Nesodon was really the ancestor of tToxodon, then the 
development of the grinding teeth must have been a process 
of completing the hypsodontism, until the teeth grew per- 
sistently, never forming roots, and, at the same time, of sim- 
plifying the pattern. This is contrary to the usual course of 
evolution, in which the pattern grew more complex in the suc- 
cessive stages ; but such steadily increasing complexity was not 
invariable, and several instances of undoubted simplification 
are known among mammals, though not yet in other ungulates. 
Only the recovery of the intermediate genera will enable us to 
determine whether +Nesodon was the actual ancestor of 


LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


470 


‘AYISIOATUE) UOPOOULIG 
jO UMASNU 9Y} UI UOJTaHS B WIOA YB “DO Aq pes0zsay 


‘adBYS ZNID BURG ‘snyvor.uquia UOposa jy] — "LEZ “DI 


HISTORY OF THE }TOXODONTIA 471 


+Toxodon, or whether it was merely one of a short-lived branch 
from the main stem, in which the teeth had acquired an un- 
usual degree of complexity. 

A few years ago Dr. Ameghino announced the very sur- 
prising discovery that, instead of having merely the normal 
arrangement of two dentitions, the milk and the permanent, 
{Nesodon developed three successive dentitions, one preceding 
the milk-series, and therefore called pre-lacteal. In certain 
other mammals traces of a pre-lacteal series had already been 
found, in the shape of tooth-germs, which never attain full 
development or even cut the gum; and quite recently Dr. 
Ameghino has shown that in the tapir at least one functional 
pre-lacteal premolar is formed. The significance of this fully 
developed pre-lacteal dentition in tNesodon is not yet clear, 
though it seems reasonable to suppose that it was the almost 
uniquely late retention of a primitive character. 

The skull was closely similar to that of tToxodon, on a 
smaller scale, but there were several minor differences, which 
were, in part, conditioned by the larger and much more com- 
pletely hypsodont teeth of the Pampean genus, as well as by its 
generally increased size and bulk. In }Nesodon the sagittal 
and occipital crests were much more prominent and the former 
was much longer, while the thickening of the cranial bones 
was in only an incipient stage. The nasal bones were consider- 
ably longer. The jaws were lower and shallower, in correla- 
tion with the less perfectly hypsodont teeth, and in the lower 
jaw the chin was much more erect and rounded. The entire 
head of this curious Santa Cruz animal had something 
remarkably rodent-like in its appearance, though it is 
quite inadmissible to suppose that the likeness was due to 
relationship. 

The skeleton was far smaller and lighter and otherwise 
differently proportioned from that of +Torodon, but there was, 
nevertheless, a close agreement between the two genera. The 
neck was of moderate length and thickness, the body long and 


472 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


heavy, but with no such relative bulk as in the Pampean genus. 
The hump at the shoulders, as indicated by the spines of the 
anterior dorsal vertebre, though already well defined, was less 
prominent. The shoulder-blade (scapula) was relatively 
broader than in tToxodon, its spine had a distinct acromion 
and two very long and conspicuous processes given off backward 
from the spine, only one of which, and that a mere vestige, 
is indicated in tToxodon. The 
hip-bones were almost parallel 
with the backbone and were 
not nearly so broad or so 
everted as in the latter, a differ- 
ence which is amply accounted 
for by the great discrepancy in 
girth. 

The limbs were of nearly 
equal length and there was no 
such shortening of the fore-arm 
or elongation of the thigh as in 
tToxodon, and so the descent 
of the backbone forward, which 
gave such grotesqueness to the 
skeleton of the latter, was far 
ta less pronounced. The limb- 


Fic. 238.— Left pes of tT oxodon. 
Plata Museum. Cal., caleaneum. bones were rather slender, in 


As., astragalus. N., navicular. . ad ‘ lik 
Cn. 1 and 2, codssified internal and size an proportions not unlike 


middle cuneiforms. : Cn. 8, external those of 2 tapir, but in struc- 
cuneiform. Cb., cuboid. wv 
ture very like the very much 
larger and more massive ones of tToxodon. The bones of the 
fore-arm were separate, but those of the lower leg were codssi- 
fied in the same exceptional manner as in the Pampean genus, 
that is, the upper ends, but not the lower, were fused together. 
The thigh-bone was not flattened, but had the normal cylin- 
drical shaft and a conspicuous third trochanter. The feet, 
in which the digits were already reduced to three, were ex- 


HISTORY OF THE {TOXODONTIA 473 


tremely small in comparison with the size of the animal; in 
structure, they were almost identical with those of tTozodon, 
but were far narrower and more slender. The heel-bone (cal- 
caneum) articulated with the other bones of the tarsus in a 
normal manner. The digits were well separated and the hoof- 
bones quite strongly developed, indicating that the hoofs were 
functional, supporting most of the weight. In short, the 
difference in the external appearance of the feet between 
the two genera was much the same as between 
the tapirs and rhinoceroses. 

The species of +tNesodon, of which many 
have been named on very questionable grounds, 
differed but little in size and were of such vari- 
able and fluctuating character that a proper 
discrimination of them is exceedingly difficult. . 
One of these species (tN. cornutus) gives in- 
dications of having possessed a small dermal 
horn on the forehead and was thus a possible 
ancestor of +7'rigodon. 

A second phylum of the suborder was 
represented in the Santa Cruz stage by the 
genus fAdinotherium, the species of which, 
not equalling a sheep in size, were very much Tee 
smaller animals than those of tNesodon, but ton University 
closely like them in other respects. The denti- oe Ro apaits 
tion, including the pre-lacteal series, and the hee SN lice 
skull were almost identical in the two genera, ; 
with the exception that a large proportion of the individuals 
of tAdinotherium had the small frontal horn, while others had 
no trace of it. While it is quite possible that the presence or 
absence of the horn, which was always inconspicuous, may 
have been a matter of specific distinction, a more probable 
explanation is that it was a sexual character, the males horned 
and the females hornless. Much the same thing is to be 
observed in the modern Javan Rhinoceros (R. sondaicus) in 


474 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


which the females have avery small horn, or none at all, and 
the males a large one. 

In the skeleton also there were few differences, other than 
those of size, between +Adinotherium and +Nesodon; the for- 
mer was not only smaller, but also lighter and more slender 
proportionately, and there was no hump at the shoulders, 
the spines of the dorsal and lumbar vertebre all reaching the 
same level, so that the back must have been nearly straight in 


poe” —A BRUCE HORSEA 


Fic. 240. — fAdinotherium ovinum, small, horned ftoxodont of the Santa Cruz. Re- 
stored from a skeleton in the museum of Princeton University. — Note the minute 
horn on the forehead. 

the living animal. From the more general and constant pres- 

ence of the frontal horn, tAdinothertum was more probably 

the ancestor of the horned {7'rigodon than was {Nesodon, but 
until the intermediate forms shall have been recovered, no 
definite decision can be made. 

The same or very nearly the same genera of the family 
tToxodontide lived in the Patagonian and Deseado stages, 
but there the record breaks off and can, for the present at least, 
be followed no farther. It remains to be determined whether 


HISTORY OF THE {TOXODONTIA 475 


the series originated in regions farther to the north, or whether 
the ancestral types will be found in Patagonia. 

The other two families are still very incompletely known, 
but sufficiently to justify their inclusion in the present suborder. 
In the +Leontiniide, which are known only from the Deseado 
stage ({Leontinia), we have a curious variant of the ttoxodont 
type. The tusks were decidedly smaller than in the Santa 
Cruz members of the preceding family, the grinding teeth with 
lower crowns and simpler structure. The skull was much like 
that of {Nesodon, but the anterior nasal opening was of quite 


Fic. 241. —Skull of Adinotherium, top-view, showing the rugosity on the forehead for 
the small frontal horn. — Princeton University Museum. 


a different shape, being carried much farther back on the sides, 
so that the nasal bones had a far longer portion which was 
freely projecting and unsupported; these bones were shorter 
and much thicker than in the Santa Cruz genera and, to all 
appearances, supported a small, median horn on their anterior 
ends.. The feet, so far as they have been recovered, did not 
differ in any significant manner from those of the preceding 
family. 

Another imperfectly known family, that of the Notohip- 
pide, occurred in the Patagonian stage, but was most abun- 
dant in the Deseado, where several genera of it have been found. 


476 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


These animals had mostly hypsodont teeth, forming roots in 
old age, and the teeth were in closed series, but there was no 
tusk-like enlargement of the incisors. In the later genera, 
those.of the Patagonian stage (tNotohippus, tArgyrohippus), 
the crowns of the grinding teeth had a thick covering of cement, 
and those of the lower jaw had some resemblance, though not 
at all a close one, to the teeth of horses. The skull also had a 
certain suggestion of likeness to the horses and Dr. Ameghino 
was persuaded that these animals were ancestors of the horses. 
The family went back to the Astraponotus stage, but can be 
traced no farther. 


SUBORDER }TYPOTHERIA. }{TYPOTHERES 


This suborder was composed of much smaller animals than 
the {Toxodonta and contained no large forms; some, indeed, 
were exceedingly small, no larger than rabbits. It was much 
the most diversified of the suborders, as is made evident by the 
table of families and genera. Two of these families, the 
{tTypotheriide and the tHegetotheriide, continued into the 
older Pleistocene. Of the former there was the genus first 
named and described, tTypotheriwm, which has given its name 
to the family and suborder, and the species of which were much 
the largest of the entire group, almost equalling a large pig in 
size. At the first glance this genus might easily be mistaken 
for a large rodent, and indeed it has actually been referred to 
that order, but the resemblance was a purely superficial one 
and involved no relationship. 

In +Typotherium the teeth were considerably reduced in 
number, the formula being: 74, c2, p2, m#%,x2=24. The 
first incisor in each jaw was a broad, scalpriform, persist- 
' ently growing tooth, which much resembled the corresponding 
tooth in the rodents, but was not, as it is in the latter, worn to 
a sharp chisel-edge by attrition, but was abruptly truncated. 
There was a second similar, but much smaller, tooth in the lower 
jaw; the other incisors and all the canines had been lost and 


HISTORY OF THE ;TOXODONTIA 477 


the premolars reduced to two in the upper and one in the lower 
jaw. The molars were large, persistently growing and thor- 
oughly hypsodont ; in pattern they were very similar to those of 
tToxodon. The skull without the lower jaw was low and the 
cranial portion broad and flattened, but retaining a long sagit- 
tal crest. The eye-sockets were nearly, but not quite, closed 
behind by the very long and slender post-orbital processes of 
the frontal bones. In front of the eyes the face was suddenly 
constricted into a long, narrow rostrum, and it is this shape of 
the skull which, together with the persistently growing, scal- 
priform incisors, gave such a rodent-like appearance to the 
head. The auditory region had the same remarkable struc- 
ture as in the {Toxodonta. The lower jaw had a short hori- 
zontal portion and very high vertical portion, which gave the 
head great vertical depth. 

The skeleton, so far as it is known, was decidedly more primi- 
tive than that of the contemporary tToxodon, as is shown by the 
presence of collar-bones (clavicles) and by the larger number 
of digits, five in the front foot and four in the hind. The hoof- 
bones, or ungual phalanges, were narrow, pointed and nail-like, 
though in the hind foot they were broader and more hoof-like. 

Little can be done as yet in tracing back the history of this 
family, the Santa Cruz beds having yielded no member of it. 
In the Deseado stage, the genus {Hutrachytherus differed 
surprisingly little from +Typotherium, in view of the long hiatus 
in time between them. The Deseado genus already had 
thoroughly hypsodont and rootless teeth, and the molar pattern 
was quite the same as in ¢Typotherium, but the teeth were much 
more numerous, the formula being: 7 8, c4, p 4, m%, X 2 = 42. 
Nothing is known of the skeleton. The family arose probably 
from one of the Eocene families (tArcheopithecide or tAcce- 
lodide) with low-crowned teeth, but the connection cannot be 
made out. Presumably, the development of this family ran 
its chief course in some part of South America far to the north 
of the fossil-beds of Patagonia. 


478 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


The second family which was represented in Pampean times 
was that of the {Hegetotheriide, and the sole genus of it which 
survived so late was }Pachyrukhos, a little creature no larger 
than a rabbit. The genus went back without any noteworthy 
change to the Santa Cruz stage of the Miocene, from which 
complete skeletons have been obtained. The dental formula 
was nearly as in tT ypotherium: 14, ¢%, p3, m#, X 2 = 30, and 
the enlarged, rootless and scalpriform incisors were similar. 
The grinding teeth were thoroughly hypsodont and had a thin 
coating of cement; the molar-pattern was fundamentally 
like that of tNesodon, in simpler form, but can be seen only in 
freshly erupted and unworn teeth. 

The skull was very rodent-like in appearance, its flat top 
and narrow, tapering facial region, and the gnawing incisors 
adding much to the resemblance. The very large eye-sockets 
and the enormously developed auditory region suggest noc- 
turnal habits, and, no doubt, the timid, -defenceless little crea- 
tures hid themselves by day, perhaps in burrows. The en- 
largement of the accessory auditory chambers, which all of 
the tToxodontia possessed, reached its maximum in }Pachy- 
rukhos, and the chambers formed great, inflated protuberances 
at the postero-external angles of the skull. The neck was 
short, the body long and the tail very short, much like that of a 
rabbit. Collar-bones were present, as they probably were in 
all of the other members of the suborder tTypotheria, though 
this has not been definitely ascertained in all cases. The limbs 
were relatively long, especially the hind legs, and very slender ; 
the bones of the fore-arm were separate, but those of the lower 
leg were coéssified at both ends. The feet, which had four 
digits each, were of unequal size, the posterior pair being much 
longer than the anterior, and the hoofs were long, slender and 
pointed, almost claw-like. The entire skeleton suggests a 
leaping gait and its proportions and general appearance were 
remarkably like those of a rabbit-skeleton. In the restoration 
(Fig. 300, p. 639) Mr. Knight has followed these indications 


HISTORY OF THE tTOXODONTIA 479 


and drawn an animal which might readily be mistaken for 
a curious, short-eared rabbit ; and there is every justification 
for doing this, though the character of the fur and the form 
of the ears are, of course, merely conjectural. Perhaps the 
ears are too small. 

Associated with {Pachyrukhos in the Santa Cruz stage was 
another genus of the family, tHegetotherium, which, though it 
cannot possibly have been ancestral to the former, yet serves 
to indicate, in general terms, what the ancestor must have been. 
This is another example of the long-continued survival of the 
more primitive together with the more advanced and special- 
ized form. t+Hegetotherium persisted into the Pliocene, but 
is not known from the Pleistocene. In this genus one upper 
and two lower incisors were already enlarged, rootless and 
scalpriform, but none of the teeth had been lost ; it is interesting 
to note, however, that the teeth which were lacking in tPachy- 
rukhos were all very small and ready to disappear. The Santa 
Cruz species of tHegetotherium were considerably larger and 
more robust animals than those of |Pachyrukhos. 

Both of these genera were preceded by very similar, almost 
identical forms in the Patagonian, Deseado and Astraponotus 
stages, but the family cannot be definitely traced farther back 
than the lower Oligocene, but it very probably arose from some 
one of the groups, with low-crowned teeth, of the Casa Mayor 
stage. 

The family fInteratheriide was, in most respects, more 
conservative and underwent less change than either of the pre- 
ceding groups. A persistently primitive type was the genus 
{Protypotherium, which appeared for the last time in the Plio- 
cene of Monte Hermoso, but was much more abundant and 
better preserved in the Santa Cruz. The animal was small 
and had the full complement of teeth, which were arranged 
in each jaw in a continuous series, and were fully hypsodont and 
rootless, except incisors and canine, which were rooted. None 
of the incisors was specially enlarged, but there was a gradual 


LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


480 


Aq pe10jsey 


“¢ 


“AYISIOATUL) WOJOOUTIG JO WANSSsNUT oY} UT SUOJeTAS Woy WYBUyy “O 


7 ULNA. 


4# if, 


iS) O[[Ipeurre pus (a7v.snv wnreyjodfyo1g |) e19y}0d A444 zn1Q Byueg — ‘sHZ ‘HIT 


HISTORY OF THE {TOXODONTIA 481 


transition of increasing size and complexity from the incisors 
to the molars. A remarkable feature of this genus was the 
deeply cleft form of the lower incisors, giving them a fork- 
like shape, somewhat .as in the modern Hyracoidea. The 
ulna and radius in the fore-arm and the tibia and fibula in the 
lower leg were separate, but the digits were already reduced to 
four in each foot. This was one of the few Santa Cruz un- 
gulates which possessed a long and heavy tail. The limbs 
were relatively long and the feet were armed with such slender 
hoofs that they looked almost like claws. The restoration 
shows the animal to have had, like nearly all of the fTypo- 
theria, a very rodent-like appearance, a likeness which may, 
perhaps, be unduly increased by the form given to the ears. . 

In the allied genus, tInteratherium, from which the family 
is named, the head was short, broad and deep, almost bullet- 
like; the first incisor was enlarged and chisel-shaped, and the 
other incisors and the canines were much reduced in size. It 
is an interesting fact, observed as yet only in this genus, but 
probably true also of all the smaller members of the suborder 
which had hypsodont teeth, that the milk-premolars were 
rooted and comparatively low-crowned, while their permanent 
successors were completely hypsodont and rootless. The 
limbs were considerably shorter than those of }Protypotherium 
and the tail long and thick, except for which, the general 
appearance of the skeleton suggests that of the modern “‘co- 
nies” or ‘‘klipdases”’ (Hyracoidea) of Africa and Syria, a sug- 
gestion which Mr. Knight has followed in the drawing (Fig. 
297, p. 636). 

This family was represented in the Deseado stage by a 
genus ({tPlagiarthrus) in which the teeth developed roots in 
old age, but is not known from more ancient formations. 
Their probable ancestors of the Eocene were very small ani- 
mals, with brachyodont teeth, the premolars smaller and of 
simpler pattern than the molars. The upper molars had a 
continuous external wall, with indication of separate cusps, 

21 


482 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


and two transverse crests, as in the fToxodonta, and the lower 
molars were composed of two incomplete crescents. The 
teeth were present in undiminished number and the anterior 
incisors were but little enlarged. Nothing is known of the 
skeleton. 


SUBORDER SENTELONYCHIA. fHOMALODOTHERES 


This third suborder of the }Toxodontia was in some respects 
the most peculiar of all; no representatives of it have been 
found in formations later than the Santa Cruz, and the group 
attained its culmination in the still older Deseado stage, in 
which there were very large members of it. These most extraor- 
dinary beasts are still incompletely known, and little can be 
done as yet in the way of following out the steps of change 
which led up to their exceptional characters, though the sub- 
order itself may be traced back to the Eocene by means of 
jaws and teeth alone. 

The Santa Cruz genus labours under the portentous name of 
‘tHomalodontotherium, which may be shortened to the ver- 
nacular form of thomalodothere. In this genus the dentition 
was unreduced in number, and the teeth, though having rather 
high crowns, were all rooted and placed in continuous series, 
with a gradual transition in shape from the incisors to the 
molars. The canines were tusks of very moderate size, which 
projected but little above and below the plane of the other 
teeth; the premolars, except the last, which was nearly mo- 
lariform, were smaller and simpler than the molars, which had 
a pattern fundamentally the same as in the fToxodonta. 
Those of the upper jaw were, however, less complicated by 
spurs and accessory crests, and they had a somewhat stronger 
resemblance to the rhinoceros pattern, though the resemblance 
is demonstrably superficial and not indicative of relationship. 

The skull was very like that of the Santa Cruz ftoxodonts, 
+Nesodon, etc., and had the same unusual structure of the audi- 
tory region as was found throughout the order, but differed in 


HISTORY OF THE {TOXODONTIA 483 


many details, which it is not worth while to enumerate, though 
it may be said that the nasal bones were so much shortened 
that some kind of a proboscis or prehensile upper lip was prob- 
ably present. The head was quite small in proportion to the 
size of the animal as a whole. Such of the vertebre as are 
known were quite similar to those of tNesodon, but the limbs 
were far longer and quite stout, though not massive. The 
humerus was remarkable for the great development of the 
ridges for the attachment of the deltoid and supinator muscles 
and for the prominence of the epicondyles, all of which gave 
to the bone the appearance of the humerus of a huge burrower, 
yet it is impossible to believe that so large an animal could have 
had burrowing habits. The fore-arm bones were separate 
and very long, the ulna almost as heavy as the radius; the 
latter is not known from a complete specimen, but there would 
appear to have been some power of rotation, a power which is 
conditioned by the shape of the upper end of the radius, and 
its mode of articulation with the humerus in the elbow-joint. 
The thigh-bone was long and heavy and its shaft was much 
flattened, having lost the normal cylindrical shape, but re- 
tained a small third trochanter. The bones of the lower leg 
were separate and relatively short, and the fibula was un- 
commonly heavy. 

So far, there was nothing very unusual, save in the shape of 
the humerus, about the skeletal structure of the {Entelonychia, 
the remarkable characters having been confined to the feet. 
Were it not for these, the group might be included in the sub- 
order tToxodonta without difficulty. The feet, which were 
five-toed, differed notably in size, the manus being more than 
twice as long as the pes. In the former the metacarpals 
were very long and, though actually stout, were slender in 
proportion to their length; there was also a very unusual 
feature in an ungulate foot, that the heaviest of the digits was 
the fifth, or external one. The mode of articulation of the 
metacarpals with the first row of phalanges was very excep- 


- 484 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


tional, indicating an extraordinary mobility of the toes, and the 
hoofs had been transformed into large, bluntly pointed claws, 
somewhat like those of the {chalicotheres, those aberrant 
perissodactyls (see p. 354), but not so large or so sharp. In 
the pes, the ankle-bone had hardly any groove for the tibia, 
and its lower end was hemispherical, as in the tCondylarthra 
and the clawed mammals generally. The toes were quite 
grotesquely short in comparison with those of the fore foot, 
and, as in the latter, the fifth was the heaviest of the series. 
The hind foot was apparently plantigrade, the heel-bone and 
the entire sole being applied to the ground in walking, while 
the fore foot was probably digitigrade, the wrist being raised 
and the metacarpals vertical. The weight was carried upon 
the metacarpals and one or more pads under the phalanges, 
as in the digitigrade carnivores, such as dogs and cats. In 
describing the tchalicotheres, it was pointed out that it was 
uncertain whether each foot had a single large pad, or whether 
there was a separate one under the phalanges of each digit, 
and a larger one, the ‘‘ball of the foot,’’ under the metacarpals 
collectively. The same doubt applies to the manus of the 
thomalodotheres. 

This is the third instance to be cited of the acquisition of 
claws by a hoofed mammal and, as in the other two cases, the 
tehalicotheres and fagriocherids (p. 383), we are con- 
fronted by the seemingly incompatible association of teeth 
which could have masticated only soft vegetable tissues with 
feet like those of a beast of prey. As in the other two groups, 
the problem as to the habits and mode of life of the fhomalodo- 
theres is an unsolved one, chiefly because no mammal now 
living is at all like these extraordinary creatures and one can 
therefore form but vague conjectures as to the use of such feet 
to herbivorous animals. Possibly they subsisted largely 
upon roots and tubers and used the great claws for digging up 
food, the principal employment that bears now make of their 
claws. This remarkable transformation of hoofs into claws 


HISTORY OF THE TTOXODONTIA 485 


took place in three unrelated groups of hoofed animals and 
must have occurred independently among the Artiodactyla, 
the Perissodactyla and the tToxodontia. By no possibility, 
so far as we are able to comprehend the course of evolutionary 
change, could this common characteristic have been due to 
inheritance from a common ancestry. 

The thomalodotheres were among the largest of Santa Cruz 
mammals, but they were then already approaching extinction, 
while in the Deseado stage they were more numerous and varied 
and some of them very much larger. This is an exception 
to the more common rule, according to which the successive 
members of a phylum increased in stature until the maximum 
was reached and this, in many cases, was followed by extinction. 
The rule is, however, by no means without exceptions and 
several have already been referred to: The largest of American 
proboscideans was the {Imperial Elephant (Elephas fim- 
perator) of the upper Pliocene and Pleistocene and in many 
other phyla the Pleistocene species were much larger than 
the Recent. So with the thomalodotheres; they reached 
their culmination in size and importance in the Deseado stage, 
fewer and smaller forms surviving into the Santa Cruz, after 
which the entire suborder vanished. The family may be traced 
back to the Eocene, where it is represented chiefly by a genus 
(tThomashuzleya) which had larger canine tusks and much 
more brachyodont teeth, but there is no way of determining 
when the transformation of the hoofs took place. The other 
two families ({Notostylopide, tIsotemnide) flourished chiefly 
or exclusively in the Eocene and were small animals still very 
imperfectly understood. 


SuBORDER {PYROTHERIA. {PYROTHERES 


This suborder was a remarkable group, still incompletely 
known, of elephant-like animals, which reached their culmina- 
tion and died out in the Oligocene, their last appearance being 
in the Deseado stage. The genus {Pyrotherium from the 


486 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


Deseado (also called the Pyrotherium Beds) was the latest, 
largest and best known of the suborder. The dentition was 
much reduced as is shown by the formula: 7?, c%, p 3, m3,x2 
=28. The upper incisors were two downwardly directed 
tusks, the first quite small, the second considerably larger ; 
the single lower incisor of each side was a stout, but not very 
long, horizontally directed tusk, with the enamel confined to a 


Fig. 243.— Head of tPyrotherium, showing the two pairs of upper tusks. Restored 
from a skull in the museum of Amherst College. 


longitudinal band; the other incisors and the canines had dis- 
appeared. The premolars, except the foremost one, had the 
molar-pattern, which very rarely occurred among the indig- 
enous South American ungulates. The grinding teeth were 
similar above and below and each had two elevated, transverse 
crests, which, when quite unworn, carried a row of bead-like 
tubercles. These teeth are decidedly reminiscent of the den- 
tition of the aberrant proboscidean {Dinotherium, from the 
Miocene and Pliocene of Europe (p. 435), and this resemblance, 
together with the form of the tusks, has led to the reference of 


HISTORY OF THE }TOXODONTIA 487 


this group to the Proboscidea, but the assignment is un- 
doubtedly erroneous, as is shown by the character of the skull 
and skeleton. 

The skull, hitherto unknown, was obtained by the Amherst 
College Expedition to Patagonia and its description by Pro- 
fessor F. B. Loomis is anxiously awaited. In advance of that, 
he has published a brief account, with a figure. This skull 
was long and narrow, with very short facial region and nasal 
bones so shortened that the nasal canal passed almost vertically 
down through the head, as in the elephants, and there must 
have been a considerable proboscis. Despite this great modi- 
fication, the skull was plainly of the ftoxodont and not of the 
proboscidean type. The legs were extremely massive and 
the fore legs were considerably shorter than the hind, with 
such a difference in length that the head must have been carried 
low, as in the Pampean {Toxodon. The upper arm and thigh 
were much longer than the fore-arm and lower leg respectively. 
The humerus was immensely broadened, especially the lower 
end, and the processes for muscular attachment were extremely 
prominent. The femur was long, with broad and flattened 
shaft, and had no trace of the third trochanter, quite strongly 
resembling the thigh-bone of an elephant, which, as we have 
repeatedly seen, is the type more or less closely approximated 
by all of the very heavy ungulates. In the standing posi- 
tion, the femur was in nearly the same vertical line as the tibia 
and the whole leg must have been almost perfectly straight, 
with the knee-joint free from the body. The short and massive 
fore-arm bones were coossified, at least in some individuals, 
as were the equally heavy bones of the lower leg, the fibula 
being exceptionally stout. Little is known of the feet, but that 
little renders probable the inference that they were short, 
columnar and five-toed. 

The Eocene representatives of the Pyrotheria are known 
only from very fragmentary material. {Propyrotherium, of 
the Astraponotus Beds, was smaller than the Deseado genus 


488 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


and still smaller was tCaroloztttellia of the Casa Mayor, which 
was not so large asatapir. In the latter the molars were of the 
same type as in the succeeding forms and small tusks had al- 
ready begun to develop. The older Eocene genus {Paulo- 
gervaisia was probably a member of this suborder; if so, it 
shows that the molars with transverse crests were derived from 
quadritubercular teeth, just as happened in the Proboscidea 
and several other ungulate groups. 


CHAPTER XIII 
HISTORY OF THE {LITOPTERNA AND TASTRAPOTHERIA 


Besipes the four well-defined groups which make up the 
tToxodontia (or fNotoungulata) there are two other extinct 
orders of indigenous South American ungulates, which remain 
to be considered. These did not have the exceptional develop- 
ment of the auditory region of the skull which characterized 
the tToxodontia. The best known and most important genera 
of the {Litopterna are listed in the following table : 


TLITOPTERNA. {Litopterns 


I. {MacravucHENID. 

{tMacrauchenia, Plioc. and Pleist. {Scalibrinitherium, Parand. 
tTheosodon, Santa Cruz. f{Cramauchenia, Patagonian. fPro- 
theosodon, Deseado. 

II. PrRoTERoTHERIIDA. 

{Epitherium, Monte Hermoso. {Diadiaphorus, Santa Cruz and 
Parand. Proterotherium, do. tThoatherium, Santa Cruz. 
{Deuterotherium, Deseado. fProtheatherium, do. 

III. Dipotopipz. 

{Didolodus, Casa Mayor. +tLambdaconus, do. + Notoprogonia, do. 

{ Proectocion, do., etc., etc. 


Only one of the families of this suborder survived into the 
Pampean stage, where it was represented by a single genus, 
tMacrauchenia. Like all the other large Pampean mammals 
of distinctly South American type, this was a grotesque crea- 
ture, from the modern point of view. The genus was first dis- 
covered by Darwin, who says of it: ‘‘At Port St. Julian, in 
some red mud capping the gravel on the 90-foot plain, I found 
half the skeleton of the Macrauchenia Patachonica, a remark- 


able quadruped, full as large as a camel. It belongs to the 
489 


490 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


same division of the Pachydermata with the rhinoceros, tapir, 
and paleotherium; but in the structure of the bones of its 
long neck it shows a clear relation to the camel, or rather to 
the guanaco and llama.””!_ The views upon classification and 
relationship here expressed have been superseded, but the 
passage is an important one in the history of scientific opinion. 

tMacrauchenia (Fig. 120, p. 216), as Darwin says, was as 
large as a camel; it had an unreduced dentition of 44 teeth and 
in each jaw the teeth were arranged in continuous series and 
were quite decidedly hypsodont. Both in the upper and-the 
lower jaws the incisors formed a nearly straight transverse 
row and have a ‘“‘mark,”’ or enamel pit, like that seen in the 
horses ; the canines were but little larger than the incisors and 
did not form tusks. The premolars were smaller and simpler 
than the molars. The upper molars had two concave and 
crescentic external cusps, connected by a median ridge, as in 
several families of perissodactyls; two transverse crests and 
several accessory spurs and enamel-pockets gave to the grinding 
surface, when somewhat worn, the appearance of considerable 
complexity. The lower molars had the two crescents, one 
behind the other, which recurred in almost all the South Ameri- 
can types of ungulates; the vertical pillar which so generally 
in these types arose in the inner concavity of the posterior 
crescent was wanting in the permanent teeth of ftMacrau- 
chenia, but present in the milk-premolars. 

No part of this remarkable animal was more curious than 
the skull, which was quite small in proportion to the rest of the 
skeleton. It was long, narrow and low, sloping and tapering 
forward to a blunt point at the end of the muzzle, though there 
was a slight broadening here to accommodate the transverse 
row of incisors. The sagittal crest was replaced: by a short, 
narrow and flat area; the cranium was shortened and the face 
elongated, the orbits, which were completely encircled in bone, 
having been shifted behind the line of the teeth, as in the 


1 Darwin, Voyage of a Naturalist, p. 172. 


HISTORY OF THE {LITOPTERNA 491 


modern horses. The nasal bones were reduced to a minimum, 
a mere vestige of their original length, the anterior nasal 
opening being directly over the posterior, making the nasal 
passage vertical. Such an arrangement is an almost positive 
proof that in life the animal had a flexible proboscis, a con- 
clusion which is confirmed by the presence, on the top of the 
head and behind the nasal opening, of deep pits for the attach- 
ment of the proboscis-muscles. A very curious feature of this 
skull was that the bones of the upper jaw, the maxillaries and 
premaxillaries of the opposite sides, united in the median line, 
making a long, solid, bony rostrum in front of the nasal open- 
ing, a character not found in other land mammals. 

The neck was almost as long as in a camel and its vertebrze 
agreed with those of the latter in the very exceptional character 
of having the canal for the vertebral artery passing longitu- 
dinally through the neural arch, instead of perforating the 
transverse process. As Darwin says in the passage quoted 
‘above, “it shows a clear relation to the .. . guanaco and 
llama,” but this is founded on the postulate that such a like- 
ness must, of necessity, imply relationship. As was shown in 
the chapters on the Artiodactyla and Perissodactyla, it is the 
general rule among long-necked ungulates that the odontoid 
process of the axis assumes a spout-like shape, but +Macrau- 
chenia was an exception and had an odontoid which retained 
its primitive and peg-like shape; it was, however, relatively 
very short and in cross-section was no longer circular, but 
oval. This may be regarded as a step toward the assumption 
of the spout-like form, but the extinction of the family put an 
end to further changes in that direction. 

The body was rather short and the limbs very long, giving 
the animal a stilted appearance, while the feet were relatively 
short. The proportionate lengths of the different limb-seg- 
ments was unusual; the upper arm was short, the fore-arm 
very long, the thigh long and the lower leg quite short. The 
humerus was very heavy; the ulna and radius, which were 


492 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


firmly coéssified, formed a very long compound bone, which 
was broad transversely and thin antero-posteriorly. The long 
femur had only a small and inconspicuous third trochanter 
and the shaft was broad and thin, being flattened, or ‘“‘com- 
pressed”’ antero-posteriorly. The tibia and fibula were united 
at both ends; the former was very heavy at the upper end, but 
diminished downward in width and thickness, and the fibula 
articulated with the caleaneum, as in the artiodactyls. The 
feet were tridactyl and had mesaxonic symmetry; that is to 
say, the median digit, or third of the original five, was sym- 
metrical in itself and was bisected by the middle line of the foot, 
while the lateral toes (second and fourth), each of which was 
asymmetrical, formed a symmetrical pair. It is this perisso- 
dactyl character of the foot to which Darwin refers when he 
says that +Macrauchenia ‘“‘belongs to the same division of 
the Pachydermata with the rhinoceros, tapir and paleothe- 
rium.’”’ On the other hand, the very significant structure of the 
ankle-joint was radically different from that of the Perisso- 
dactyla; not only did the calcaneum have a special facet for 
articulation with the fibula, but the lower end of the astragalus 
was a convex ‘‘head,”’ resting only on the navicular, as in the 
{tToxodontia, {Condylarthra, Hyracoidea and other very 
primitive groups of hoofed animals and in clawed mammals 
generally. Such a combination of characters is not known in 
any of the perissodactyls and precludes the reference of the 
{Litopterna to that order, though such a reference is strongly 
maintained by several authorities. The ungual phalanges 
were small and appear to suggest the presence of pads on the 
feet. 

The appearance of +Macrauchenia in life must have been 
sufficiently strange. The small head with its proboscis and the 
long neck and legs should probably be regarded as indicative 
of browsing habits, though the hypsodont teeth show that 
grazing was at least an occasional mode of feeding. The long 
limbs and short feet gave to the extremities an appearance un- 


HISTORY OF THE ;LITOPTERNA 493 


like that of any existing hoofed animal. The form and size 
of the ears and the character of the hairy coat are, of course, 
conjectural. 

In the later Pliocene the family was represented by forms 
which differed so little from the Pampean {Macrauchenia as 
to call for no particular notice, but in the presumably lower 
Pliocene of the Paran4 stage, occurred several genera, all un- 
fortunately but imperfectly known, which are of interest as 
being less specialized than tMacrauchenia and as showing 
the way in which some of the peculiarities of the latter were 
acquired. In tScalibrinitherium, which may be taken as an 
example of these genera, the teeth were brachyodont; the 
upper molars were rather less complex than those of +Mac- 
rauchenia, while the lower molars had the pillar in the con- 
cavity of the posterior crescent, which the Pampean genus 
retained only in the milk-teeth. As we have repeatedly 
found, the milk-dentition is often conservative and retains 
primitive or archaic features which have been lost in the per- 
manent teeth, and {Macrauchenia is another illustration of the 
same principle. In the skull of tScalibrinitherium the nasal 
bones, though very short, had not suffered such extreme ab- 
breviation as in the succeeding genus, the nasal opening was 
farther forward and the maxillaries united in the superior 
median line for only a short distance, while the premaxillaries 
were fused together for their whole length. The orbit had not 
been shifted entirely behind the teeth, but was above the third 
upper molar. : 

Next in the ascending series, to use the genealogist’s term, 
came the genus ftTheosodon of the Santa Cruz, of which al- 
most all the skeletal parts are known and thus make possible 
a full comparison with +Macrauchenia, which assuredly was 
its direct descendant. In view of the great lapse of time in- 
volved, the differences between the two genera were less than 
might have been expected, though the more ancient animal 
was in all respects the more primitive. {Theosodon was, in 


LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


494 


‘APSIOATA) UOJOUTIG JO WMISNUL oy} UI SuOZofOHS Wo’ YYZ ‘OQ Aq posoysoy 
‘(nyosaqny vuHMhy.sog|) yetdnsreul snosoepeid pues (wn10j4eL106 Uopososy,y, |) prusyonei9eUl| znId BUYS — "FPS “OL 


HISTORY OF THE {LITOPTERNA 495 


the first place, considerably smaller, not much exceeding a 
llama in size; the teeth had lower crowns than even those of 
tSealibrinitherium and the incisors were arranged in line with 
the grinding teeth, not in a transverse row, but curving inward 
slightly, so that those of the opposite sides nearly met in 
front. The incisors, ‘canine and first premolar ‘were simple, 
sharply pointed, conical teeth, which gave an almost reptilian 
expression to the anterior part of the skull. The upper molars 
were on the same fundamental plan as those of {Macrauchenia, 
but in aless advanced stage: of development, the transverse crests 
being incomplete and the ‘internal cusps had a certain degree 
of separateness from the crests and from each other. It is evi- 
dent that the upper molars were‘derived from the quadrituber- 
cular type. The lower molars had the vertical pillar in the 
concavity of the posterior crescent very prominently developed. 

The resemblance of the skull to that of {Macrauchenia is 
obvious at: the first glance, but it was less specialized and de- 
parted less “from the ordinary ungulate type. The cranium 
was longer and the face shorter, the orbit, ‘which was incom- 
pletely closed behind, extending over the second molar. There 
was a sagittal crest, the length of which differed much in the 
various species; the nasal bones were already very short, 
though decidedly longer than i in the- subsequent genus }Scali- 
brinitherium, and the anterior nasal opening was extended 
forward as a long, narrow slit, because the,maxillaries did not 
come into contact with each other in the superior median line, 
andthe premaxillaries touched each other, but were not co- 
ossified. ‘The nasal canal, though very short, was horizontal, 
not vertical. The skulls of the three genera thus displayed 
three successive stages in the backward shifting of the orbit 
and of the anterior nasal opening, in the shortening of the 
nasal bones and in the formation of a solid rostrum by the 
fusion of the upper jaw-bones. No doubt also the living ani- 
mals exhibited a corresponding gradation in the development of 
the proboscis. 


496 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


The neck of tT heosodon was even longer proportionately 
than in tMacrauchenia and the transference of the canal for 
the vetebral artery from the transverse processes to the neural 


Fic. 245. — Development of the skull in the }Macrauchenide, side views. A, tTheo- 
sodon, Santa Cruz. B, tScalibrinitherium, Paran&. (AfterAmeghino.) C, tMacrau- 
chenia, Pampean. (After Burmeister.) 1., nasal bones. 


arch had already taken place, except in the first, sixth and 
seventh vertebre, and was thus less complete than in the 
Pampean genus, in which all the vertebre of the neck, save the 
seventh, had the canal in its exceptional position. The odon- 


HISTORY OF THE {LITOPTERNA 497 


toid process of the axis was less modified than in the latter, 
being relatively longer and more conical. The body was 


TF J AW 


Fic. 246.—Development of the skull in the tMacrauchenide. A, +Theosodon. 
B, tScalibrinitherium. (After Ameghino.) C, tMacrauchenta. (After Burmeister.) 


rather short, and the spines of the trunk-vertebre were pro- 
portionally higher and more prominent. No caudal vertebre 
2k 


498 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


have been found, but, from the shape of the sacrum, it is evi- 

dent that the tail was short. 

The limbs were long, but more slender and less elongate 
than in tMacrauchenia, in which the growth of the neck did 
not keep pace with that of the limbs, the 
lengthening of the proboscis probably 
compensating for this. The shoulder- 
blade had two conspicuous metacromia, 
very much as in the contemporary {toxo- 
dont, {tNesodon, but shorter and more 
widely separated. The humerus was 
short and quite slender and the fore-arm 
bones, which were much longer, did not 
coéssify. The femur had a more slender 
and rounded shaft than in {Macrauchenia 
and a much larger third trochanter; the 
leg-bones were also separate from each 
other. The tridactyl feet were so like 
those of the Pampean genus, that no 
particular account of them is necessary, 
and the proportions of the limb segments 
were similar in both genera, short upper 
arm and lower leg, very long fore-arm 
and thigh, and short feet. 

Fic. 247. Left manus of The appearance of the living animal, 
Le nger ads gee as shown in the restoration, was no doubt 
pyramidal. Tm., trape- somewhat like that of tMacrauchema, 
Fars Sac but less bizarre. That there must have 
ciform. V., rudimen- been some sort of a proboscis or pre- 
tary fifth metacarpal. nsile upper lip, is indicated by the 

greatly shortened nasal bones, but this may not have been 

longer than in the existing Moose or Saiga Antelopé. The 
long neck, short body and tail and long limbs suggest an 
animal not unlike a Guanaco, but larger and heavier. The 
hair may or may not have had the woolly character given 


HISTORY OF THE {LITOPTERNA 499 


to it in the drawing; upon such a point there can be no 
certainty. 

In the older formations preceding the Santa Cruz, the 
jmacrauchenids are known only from fragmentary material, 
though something of their history may be made out even from 
these fragments. }Protheosodon, of the Deseado stage, was 
considerably smaller than the Santa Cruz genus and had more 
primitive upper molars, in that the internal cusps and inter- 
mediate cuspules were isolated and conical, not forming trans- 
verse crests. Still smaller were the several genera ({Lamb- 
daconus, etc.) related to the tmacrauchenids found in the Casa 
Mayor Eocene, which have been referred, perhaps correctly, 
to the {Condylarthra. In these the formation of the external 
wall of the almost bunodont upper molars was in progress, by 
the fore-and-aft extension and transverse thinning of the ex- 
ternal cusps; the internal pair of cusps and the cuspules were 
separate and conical. With much confidence, it may be in- 
ferred that in these little animals the skull was normal, the 
nasal bones were long and that the feet were five-toed, but 
demonstration is lacking. 


The second family of the tLitopterna, the +Proterotheriide, 
were remarkable for their many deceptive resemblances to the 
horses. Even though those who contend that the tLitopterna 
should be included in the Perissodactyla should prove to be 
in the right, there can be no doubt that the fproterotheres 
were not closely related to the horses, but formed a most strik- 
ing illustration of the independent acquisition of similar char- 
acters through parallel or convergent development. The 
family was not represented in the Pleistocene, having died out 
before that epoch, and the latest known members of it lived 
in the upper Pliocene of Monte Hermoso. In the still older 
Parané formation more numerous and varied forms occurred, 
but only from the Santa Cruz have materials been obtained of 
sufficient completeness to furnish a full account of the struc- 


500 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


ture of these extraordinary animals. Not that this remarkable 
character was due to grotesque proportions; on the contrary, 
they looked far more like the ordinary ungulates of the northern 
hemisphere than did any of their South American contempo- 
raries; it is precisely this resemblance that is so notable. 

In Santa Cruz times the family was represented by a large 
number of species, which have been grouped in four or five gen- 
era, which differed sufficiently to require generic separation, yet 
were closely similar. In all of them the dental formula was: 
14, c4, p 4, m3, X2=36. Except in one genus (}Thoathe- 
rium) a pair of small tusks was formed by the enlargement of 
the second upper and third lower incisors, as in the ttoxodonts, 
but the first upper and lower and the third upper incisors, which 
were retained in the ;toxodonts, were lost in this family, as 
was also the upper canine, and the lower canine was very small, 
of no functional use. The teeth were brachyodont and, except 
the small tusks, displayed no tendency at any time toward the 
acquisition of high crowns. The premolars were less complex 
than the molars, though the last one approximated the molar- 
pattern. The upper molars had two crescentic outer cusps, 
meeting in a vertical ridge and together forming the outer wall ; 
the transverse crests were imperfect, especially the hinder one 
which was often merely the intermediate cuspule, and did not 
fuse with the external wall. The lower molars had the two 
crescents, one behind the other, which recur in the tmacrau- 
chenids, all the suborders of the +Toxodontia, except the 
{Pyrotheria, and other South American ungulates, but the 
pillar in the posterior crescent, which was so characteristic of 
the groups named, was reduced to very small proportions and 
sometimes suppressed altogether. It should be noted, how- 
ever, that this was the loss of an element which was formerly 
present. 

The skull had a long cranium and rather short face, with 
long, high sagittal crest. The neck was short, the odontoid 
process of the axis peg-shaped, and the canal for the vertebral 


> 


HISTORY OF THE {LITOPTERNA 501 


artery was in its normal position. The body was rather short, 
like that of a deer or antelope; the number of trunk-vertebre 
is not definitely known in any of the genera, but was very prob- 
ably 19 or 20, and the tail must have been short. 

The limbs were slender and of moderate length; there was 
no coossification between the bones of the fore-arm or the lower 
leg. The feet were three-toed, except in one genus (tT hoa- 
therium) in which they were single-toed, and nearly or quite 


Fie. 248. — Skull of tDiadiaphorus, Santa Cruz. American Museum. 


the whole weight was carried upon the median digit, the laterals 
being mere dew-claws. The shape of the hoofs and the whole 
appearance of the foot were surprisingly like those of the three- 
toed horses, but there were certain structural differences of 
such great importance as, in my judgment, to forbid the refer- 
ence of these animals, not merely to the horses, but even to 
the perissodactyls. In studying the {Litopterna, one is con- 
tinually surprised to note the persistence of archaic and 
primitive characters in association with a high degree of 
specialization. 

The largest Santa Cruz representatives of the family were 


LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


502 


wosy ‘yy stryy 


‘AYISIBATUL) WOYOULIG pUS UNesN]] UBOLIOUTY oY} Ul SUOZTAAS 
-_ Aq peroysay “-znIn eyueg ‘(snzynasnfow snsoydvrporq7|) a1eyz{O19},01d | ps0}-9014 I, — “6FG “OI 


HISTORY OF THE TLITOPTERNA 503 


the species of +Diadiaphorus, animals 
considerably taller than a sheep and of 
heavier build. Their appearance was 
not unlike that of a short-necked, horn- 
less antelope, but with the feet of the 
three-toed horses! These feet were, 
however, merely superficially like those 
of the horses, differing in points of fun- 
damental significance. In the horses, 
the reduction of the digits was accom- 
panied by a readjustment of the carpal 
and tarsal articulations, so that, in 
proportion as the median toe was en- 
larged and the laterals reduced, the 
weight was shifted more entirely upon 
the former. This is the method of 
digital reduction which Kowalevsky 
called ‘“‘adaptive” and is exemplified 
in all existing artiodactyls and perisso- 
dactyls and by none more perfectly 
than by the monodactyl horses. In 
“inadaptive reduction,” the method 
followed by {Diadiaphorus and the 
other genera of this family, there was 
no readjustment, or a very imperfect 
one, of the articulations, the lateral 
digits, however small and rudimentary, 
retaining the connections which they 
had when they were of full size and 
function. This distinction may seem 
to be unimportant, but its  signifi- 
cance is shown by the fact that not 
a single ungulate with inadaptively 
reduced feet has survived to the present 
time. 


Fic. 250.— Left pes of tDia- 
diaphorus, from specimens 
in Princeton University and 
the American Museum. 
Cal., caleaneum. As., as- 
tragalus. N., navicular. 
Cn. 3, external cuneiform. 
Cb., cuboid. 


504 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


In still another respect the feet of {Diadiaphorus deviated 
markedly from those of the horses, viz. in the great proportion- 
ate length of the phalanges, especially of the first one, and the 
shortness of the metapodials, the three phalanges of the 
median digit together exceeding in length the metacarpal or 
metatarsal, while in the horses this proportion is reversed. The 
skull of this genus was short, deep and with an anterior taper ; 
it had a long sagittal crest, but a brain-chamber of good capac- 
ity, considering its geological date. The nasals were quite 
short, though the degree of shortening was not such as to sug- 
gest the existence of a proboscis. In general appearance the 
skull recalls that of one of the larger foreodonts (p. 372) of 
the North American Oligocene. 

To the genus }{Proterotherium, the type of the family, be- 
longed a great number of Santa Cruz species, for at that time 
the genus was in a state of most vigorous development and the 
species were so variable that satisfactory discrimination of 
them is exceedingly difficult. They were all much smaller and 
slighter animals than the species of {Diadiaphorus, but did not 
differ from them in any important structural character. The 
skull in this genus closely resembled that of the one last named, 
save for its smaller size and lighter and more slender propor- 
tions ; the nasal bones were considerably longer and the occiput 
was somewhat wider. 

A more isolated position was held by the genus tThoa- 
therium, which was very clearly demarcated from all of the 
other genera of the family. Its species were the smallest of the 
commoner Santa Cruz members of the order and were of very 
light and graceful form. The dental formula was the same as 
in the other genera, but there were no tusks; the single upper 
and two lower incisors were of nearly the same size and simple, 
chisel-like form. The upper molars had the same elements 
as in the preceding genera, but somewhat differently con- 
nected, the two internal cusps and the anterior intermediate 
cuspule being united into a nearly longitudinal ridge. The 


HISTORY OF THE {LITOPTERNA 505 


skull was light, slender and pointed ; the nasals were shortened, 
though less than in {Diadiaphorus; the sagittal crest was 
shorter than in the latter and the occiput was far narrower. 
The neck was short, the body of moderate length and the tail 
short. The limbs and especially the feet were proportionately 
more elongate and slender than in any other known genus of 
the family, giving quite a stilted appearance to the skeleton. 
The fore-arm bones were not codssified, but the ulna was much 
more reduced than in any of the other genera of the family, 
and the same is true of the fibula, which, though very slender, 


Fic. 251. —Skull of tThoatherium, Santa Cruz. Princeton University Museum. 


showed no tendency to unite with the tibia. The limb-bones, 
especially the femur, had a decided resemblance to those of 
{tMesohippus, the lower Oligocene tridactyl horse of North 
America, with the smaller species of which, tM. baird:, tThoa- 
therium agreed well in size. Most remarkable of all were the 
feet, which were more strictly monodactyl than those of any other 
known mammal. The single functional digit, the third, had 
on each side of its upper end a very small, scale-like nodule of 
bone, the last vestiges of the lateral digits, corresponding to 
the immensely larger splints of the horse. Despite the un- 
rivalled completeness of digital reduction which {Thoatherium 
displayed, the mode of reduction was inadaptive and the 
rudimentary metapodials retained the same carpal and tarsal 


LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


506 


“AYSIOATUA) UOJOOUTIG JO UINESNUL oY} UL 
ToZPOAS B WOT WYSIUY “D Aq pasoysay “znrH vzurg ‘(wnynosnuzw wnpwaywoyy |) o194}3010301d | pe0}4-9]suIg — *"zZog ‘HIT 


HISTORY OF THE {LITOPTERNA 


connections that they originally had in the 
pentadactyl manus, a very great difference 
from the horses. The ankle-joint also was of 
the same primitive character as in the other 
tLitopterna. The feet were relatively longer 
and more slender than in the other fpro- 
terotheres and the metapodial of the single 
functional digit longer in proportion to the 
phalanges. 

The appearance of the living animal, aside 
from the character of the hair, colour-pattern, 
etc., may be closely inferred from the skeleton. 
It was a much smaller and more graceful ani- 
mal than its contemporary and relative +Dia- 
diaphorus, as light and agile as a gazelle. The 
head had some resemblance to that of a small 
horse, but the neck was much shorter than in 
the horses; the body also was shorter than in 
the latter, and the proportions of the trunk 
and limbs were quite as in the smaller ante- 
lopes. But these likenesses to horses and an- 
telopes were, it must again be emphasized, 
superficial ; the fundamental characteristics 
of structure were more primitive than in the 
most ancient known artiodactyls and perisso- 
dactyls. 

With the aid of the fragmentary material 
which alone represents the tproterotheres in 
the formations preceding and following the 
Santa Cruz in time, it is not practicable to 
trace the development of the various phyla in 
asatisfactory manner. Two of the Santa Cruz 
genera, {;Diadiaphorus and _ {Proterotherium, 
continued into the lower Pliocene (Paran4), 
and two additional ones have been named, 


507 


Fic. 253.—Left pes 
of tThoatherium. 
Princeton Uni- 
versity Museum. 
Letters as in Fig. 
250. 


508 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


but little is known about them. The latest known member of 
the family so far discovered is a genus (tEpitherium) from the 
upper Pliocene of Monte Hermoso, a tridactyl form like +Dia- 
diaphorus. It is a noteworthy fact that the most advanced 
and specialized genus of the entire family ended with the 
Santa Cruz, while the less differentiated types survived till a 
considerably later period. Possibly, it was the incoming of 
the highly efficient Carnivora from North America that led 
to the extermination of the last tproterotheres. 

Turning backward from the Santa Cruz, the family may be 
traced without any question to the Deseado stage of the Oligo- 
cene, though nothing but teeth has yet been obtained, while 
in the Eocene it would appear to have become merged in the 
same group of small, {Condylarthra-like animals with quad- 
ritubercular molars, as those which are regarded as the probable 
ancestors of the tmacrauchenids. However likely this con- 
clusion may seem to be, its confirmation must await the dis- 
covery of much more complete specimens than are now avail- 
able. 


ORDER {ASTRAPOTHERIA. TASTRAPOTHERES 


In the Santa Cruz another group of peculiar South American 
ungulates, the tAstrapotheria, made its last recorded appear- 
ance. Though not at all uncommon in that formation, no 
complete or even partial skeleton has yet been found, but 
merely the skull and a few bones of the limbs and feet. For 
this reason there is much doubt as to the systematic position 
and relationships of these animals, which were among the most 
curious of the many strange mammals which made up the 
Santa Cruz fauna. They were mentioned in connection with 
the tAmblypoda (p. 456) as possible representatives of that 
order in South America, but, as will be seen later, this is an 
improbable conclusion, and.the group appears to have been 
indigenous in the southern continent, in which, at all events, 


HISTORY OF THE TASTRAPOTHERIA 509 


it had a very long history. It has not been found in any for- 
mation later than the Santa Cruz, unless the Friasian fauna, 
which contains it, should be removed from that stage, of which 
it apparently forms the latest division. 


I, fASTRAPOTHERIIDE. 
{Astrapotherium, Santa Cruz and Patagonian.  {Astrapothericulus, 
Patagonian. {Parastrapotherium, Deseado. tAstraponotus, Astra- 
ponotus Beds. {Albertogaudrya, Casa Mayor. 
II. {TRIGONOSTYLOPIDA. 
t Trigonostylops, Casa Mayor. {Edvardocopeia. Astraponotus Beds. 


The genus:{Astrapotherium, which was the only well-de- 
fined representative of its family and order in the Santa Cruz 
stage, contained several species, some of them the largest 
animals of their time, as well as the most grotesque in appear- 
ance. The dentition differed in some important respects from 
that of all the other South American ungulates, the formula 
being: 7 3,c4,p4,m 4, X 2 = 28. The upper incisors had com- 
pletely disappeared, but the lower ones were large and, what 
was an exceptional charactér, they were partially divided into 
two lobes, somewhat as in the Eocene fuintatheres of North 
America (p. 446). The canines were very large and formi- 
dable tusks, which grew throughout life and apparently formed 
no root; the upper tusk was nearly straight and was obliquely 
truncated by the strongly curved and sharp-pointed lower 
tusk. This arrangement was very unusual among South 
American hoofed mammals, many of which had no tusks at all ; 
and in those which possessed them, such as the ftoxodonts 
(p. 468), they were mostly incisors. Only in the fastrapotheres 
and thomalodotheres were there canine tusks, and in the latter 
group they were small and of limited growth. All the teeth, 
except the canines, were brachyodont and, though rather high- 
crowned, formed roots before coming into use. The pre- 
molars were small and greatly reduced in number (3), and in 
pattern were simpler than the molars. The upper molars were 
constructed on essentially the same plan as in the {Toxodonta ; 


510 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


indeed, the first specimen of this genus collected was referred 
to a large species of tNesodon by Owen. On the other hand, 
the resemblance to the rhinoceros teeth is very decided, and 
has led several writers to postulate a relationship between the 
tastrapotheres and the rhinoceroses. The lower molars were 


% 


Fic. 254.—Head of | Astrapotherium magnum. Santa Cruz. Re- 
stored from a skull in the museum of Princeton University. 


of the bicrescentic pattern so frequently met with already ; 
these teeth were very narrow in proportion to their length 
and ‘strongly suggest those of tMetamynodon, the supposedly 
aquatic rhinoceros of the North American Oligocene (p. 
346). It may be confidently inferred that so small a number 
of premolars was due to reduction from a full series, and this is 
confirmed by the milk-dentition, in which the premolars were 4. 


HISTORY OF THE {ASTRAPOTHERIA 511 


The skull was extremely peculiar, more so than in any other 
of the contemporary genera of hoofed animals. The toothless 
premaxillaries were quite small, but thick, and must have sup- 
ported an elastic pad, against which the lower incisors could 
effectively bite in cropping herbage. The nasal bones were 
extremely short and there must have been a proboscis or greatly 
inflated snout, probably the former; the immense develop- 
ment of sinuses in the frontal bones elevated the whole fore- 
head into a great, dome-like convexity, a feature which is not 
equalled in any other known mammal. The orbits were open 
behind and the brain chamber was small, so that the sagittal 
and occipital crests were very high and strong, to afford suffi- 
cient surface for the attachment of the great temporal muscles. 
The horizontal portion of the lower jaw was shallow vertically, 
but very thick and massive, and the symphyseal region was 
broad and depressed. , 

Unfortunately, the skeleton is still very incompletely 
known. Of the vertebra, only the atlas and axis have been 
recovered, and these resembled those of the Santa Cruz ftoxo- 
dont +N esodon, on a larger scale. The scapula had a very 
thick spine, without the projections which were found in most 
of the Santa Cruz ungulates. The limb-bones were long and 
comparatively slender, and the processes for muscular attach- 
ment were singularly small and weak; the bones of the fore- 
arm and lower leg did not codssify and were proportionately 
elongate, the tibia being but little shorter than the femur. 
The latter had the flattened shaft which recurs in nearly all of 
the very heavy ungulates, but retained a remnant of the third 
trochanter. If the feet found isolated in the Santa Cruz and 
Deseado stages have been correctly referred to this order, then 
the genus was five-toed and the feet were broad, short and 
heavy, quite elephantine in appearance, especially the fore 
foot. The ankle-joint was very peculiar and the calcaneum had 
no articulation with the fibula, which it had in all the other 
indigenous South American ungulates. 


512 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


Incomplete as the material is, it is yet possible to form 
some general conception of this extraordinary animal when in 
life. The head was short, broad and deep, rounded and very 
probably furnished with a proboscis; the neck was of moder- 
ate length, so that the mouth could not reach the ground 
without a straddling of the fore legs. The body was no doubt 
long, the limbs long and rather slender,. giving the animal a 
stilted appearance, the feet very short, broad and columnar. 
Several species of the genus are known, which differed much in 
size, the largest ({A. giganteum) probably exceeding any modern 
rhinoceros in height and length, and the smallest ({A. nanwm) 
not much larger than a Wild Boar. 

tAstrapothericulus, of the Patagonian stage, was smaller 
than the average species of the Santa Cruz genus, and had 
teeth of the same number, but the canines were not capable 
of indefinite growth, and the lower molars had the pillar in the 
posterior: crescent so characteristic of the South American 
hoofed animals. In the Deseado stage, on the contrary, the 
fastrapotheres were of larger size, and in the commonest genus, 
+Parastrapotherium, the grinding teeth had lower crowns and 
the premolars were more numerous, at least 3. In the still 
more ancient tAstraponotus, which gives its name to the upper 
Eocene (or lower Oligocene) of Patagonia, the premolars were 
present in full series. In the Casa Mayor the order was abun- 
dantly represented by still more primitive genera, which as- 
suredly had an undiminished number of teeth, though this 
has not been proved. One of these genera, }Albertegaudrya, 
was the largest animal of its time and the highly probable 
ancestor of the series leading to the Santa Cruz +Astrapothe- 
rium. 

The second family of the order, the {Trigonostylopide, 
did not survive beyond the Eocene and is so imperfectly known 
that any account of it would be to small profit. 

As stated above, the tAstrapotheria were an isolated group 
and their relationships are problematical and are likely to re- 


HISTORY OF THE {ASTRAPOTHERIA 513 


main so pending the discovery of much more complete speci- 
mens of the various genera which made up the series. I am 
inclined to the opinion, however, that all of the indigenous 
groups of South American ungulates, which inhabited that 
continent before the great immigration from the north, were 
derivatives of the same stock and more nearly related to one 
another than to any of the orders which lived in other regions. 


In looking over the labyrinth of ungulate history, as re- 
corded by the fossils, certain facts stand out clearly, while 
others are still very obscure. It is like trying to trace the 
plan of vast and complicated ruins, which here are deeply 
buried in their own débris, there are fully exposed and in 
another place are swept away so completely that hardly a 
trace remains. But the problem is far more complex than any 
which can be presented by buildings, for the factor of repeated 
‘migrations from continent to continent comes in to obscure 
the evidence. Had each of the great land areas received its 
original stock of early mammals and then been shut off from 
communication with any other, many of the difficulties would 
be removed, but the story would lose half its interest. 

Within the limits of the family, giving to that group the 
broad and elastic definition which has hitherto been employed, 
we have repeatedly found it feasible to construct a phylogenetic 
series which very nearly represents the steps of structural 
modification as they occurred in time. Much less frequently 
is it possible to trace allied families to their common starting 
point, and, so far as the hoofed animals are concerned, in no 
case have we yet succeeded in doing this for the separate orders. 
The obstacle lies in the fact that the ordinal groups were al- 
ready distinct, when they made their first appearance in the 
known and accessible records, and the hypothetical ancestors 
common to them all, or to any two of them, are to be sought 
in regions of which we know little or nothing. Nevertheless, 
certain legitimate inferences may be drawn from the available 

2L 


514 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


evidence. It remains to be proved whether the assemblage 
of hoofed mammals, as a whole, was of single or multiple origin. 
Have all ungulates been derived from a common stock, or did 
they arise independently from several groups of clawed mam- 
mals? While the records cannot be followed back to the point, 
or points, of origin of the various orders, yet it is a noteworthy 
fact that, between several of them, the differences grow less 
marked as the more ancient members are reached, as though 
they were converging to a common term; others again show 
little such approximation, and the most probable conclusion 
from the evidence now at hand is that the ungulate assemblage 
is composed of several independent series. 

One such series is that of the Hyracoidea and Proboscidea, 
to which Dr. Schlosser has given the name ‘‘Subungulata,” 
and has pointed out its relationship to the tCondylarthra, 
which, however, is not a close one and may be illusory. 
Another apparently natural group is that of the peculiarly 
South American forms, the {Toxodontia, with its four sub- 
orders, the fLitopterna and the tAstrapotheria, which all 
appear to be traceable to closely allied families in the Eocene, 
whose teeth strongly suggest derivation from the fCondy- 
larthra; but the material does not permit any positive state- 
ments. The Artiodactyla and Perissodactyla have so many 
similarities that they have always been regarded as closely 
related groups, but the distinction between them was almost as 
sharply drawn in their most ancient known members as it is 
to-day, and there was no distinct tendency to converge back 
into a common stem. Their mutual relationships are thus ob- 
scure, but the Perissodactyla, at least, seem to be derivable from 
a fcondylarthrous ancestry. ; 

The }tCondylarthra, as a whole, were by far the most 
primitive of the ungulates, which they connected with the 
clawed mammals. None of the genera yet discovered can be 
regarded as ancestral to any of the higher orders, but it is en- 
tirely possible that in the upper Cretaceous period the fCon- 


HISTORY OF THE {ASTRAPOTHERIA 515 


dylarthra were spread over all the continents, except Australia, 
and that from them the other ungulate orders arose in dif- 
ferent regions. At all events, the fCondylarthra show how 
the transition from clawed to hoofed types may have occurred 
and perhaps actually did so, but it would be premature to 
affirm this. 


CHAPTER XIV 
HISTORY OF THE CARNIVORA 


Tur story of the hoofed mammals, as sketched in brief 
outline in the preceding chapters (VIII-XIIJ), is a curious 
mixture of relatively full and satisfactory paragraphs, with 
scanty, broken and unintelligible ones, not to mention those 
which have not yet been brought to light at all. With all its 
gaps and defects, which inhere in the nature of things, the 
history of the various ungulate series is the best that the 
paleontology of mammals has to offer and constitutes a very 
strong and solid argument for the theory of evolution. For 
the Carnivora the story is less complete and for obvious reasons. 
Individual abundance was a very large factor in determining 
the chances of preservation in the fossil state for any given 
species, and, as a rule, whole skeletons are found only when the 
species was fossilized in large numbers. In any region the 
Carnivora are less numerous than the herbivora upon which 
they prey, and while most ungulates live in larger or smaller 
herds, the carnivores are mostly solitary. 

The Carnivora are divisible into three well-marked sub- 
orders, called respectively the Pinnipedia, Fissipedia and 
tCreodonta. The Pinnipedia, seals, walruses, etc., which 
are almost purely marine in habitat, are not dealt with in 
this book, since so little can be learned of them from the 
fossils, and the +Creodonta, an extremely ancient and primi- 
tive group, will be treated separately. The Fissipedia are 
chiefly terrestrial, though they include the otters, and their 
subdivisions, so far as the American forms are concerned, are 

516 


HISTORY OF THE CARNIVORA 517 


shown in the following table, which, it should be observed, 
omits several genera. Unless otherwise noted, the genera are 
North American. 


Suborder FISSIPEDIA. Land Carnivora 


I. Canna, Dogs, Wolves, Foxes, etc. 
Canis, Wolves, Pleist. and Rec. Vulpes, Red Fox, do. Urocyon, 
Grey Fox, do. Cerdocyon, fox-like wolves, S.A., do. Icticyon, 
Bush-Dog, 8. A., do. ?Cyon, Dhole, mid. and up. Mioc. fDino- 
cynops, S. A., Pleist. f{Hlurodon, up. Mioc. and low. Plioc. 
{tTephrocyon, mid. Mioc. to low. Plioc. fBorophagus, up. 
Mioc. to mid. Plioc. tIschyrocyon, up. Mioc. fAmphicyon, 
mid. Mioc. to low. Plioc. tDaphenodon, low. Mioc. t{Enhy- 
drocyon, up. Oligo. tTemnocyon, up. Oligo. fMesocyon, up. 
Oligo. tCynodesmus, low. Mioc. tDaphenus, Oligo. fCyno- 
dictis, Oligo. + Procynodictis, up. Eoc. 
II. Procroniwa, Raccoons, etc. 
Procyon, Raccoons, N. and S. A., Pleist. and Rec. Nasua, Coatis, 
S. A., Pleist. and Rec., now extending to Calif. tCyonasua, 
8. A., up. Plioc. Bassariscus, Cacomistle, low. Plioc. to Rec. 
t Phlaocyon, low. Mioc. fLeptarctus, up. Mioc. Potos, Kinkajou, 
Neotropical, Recent. 
III. Ursa, Bears. 
Ursus, true Bears, Pleist. and Rec. Tremarctos, Spectacled Bear, 
S.A. fArctotherium, tShort-faced Bears, N. and S. A., Pleist. 
IV. Musre.ums, Martens, Weasels, etc. 
Mustela, Weasels, mid. Mioc. to Rec. Grison, Grisén, S. A., Pleist. 
to Rec. Tayra, Tayra, do. Martes, Martens, up. Mioc. to 
Ree. Gulo, Wolverene, Pleist. and Rec. {Canimartes, mid. 
Plioc. }Brachypsalis, up. Mioc. tMegalictis, low. Mioc. 
+Zilurocyon, do. fOligobunis, up. Oligo. and low. Mioc. 
{Bunelurus, low. Oligo. Mephitis, Skunk, Pleist. and Rec. 
Spilogale, Spotted Skunk, do. Conepatus, S. A. Skunk, Pleist. 
and Rec., N. A., Rec. Taxidea, Badger, Pleist. and Rec. 
Lutra, Otters, up. Mioc. to Rec., S. A., Pleist. and Rec. Lataz, 
Sea-Otter. 
V. Feira. Cats. 
Felis, true Cats, N. A., low. Plioc. to Rec., S. A., Pleist. and Rec. 
Lynx, Lynx, Pleist. and Rec. + Pseudelurus, mid. and up. Mioc. 
{Smilodon, Sabre-tooth Tiger, N. and S. A., Pleist. ?{Machai- 
rodus, mid. Mioc. to Plioc. {Nimravus, up. Oligo. fArchelu- 
rus, do. +Hoplophoneus, Oligo. {Dinictis, do. {Eusmilus, 
low. Oligo. 


518 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


Two families, the hyenas (Hyeenide) and civet-cats (Viver- 
rid), are omitted from the table because they apparently 
never reached the western hemisphere. The bears, of Old 
World origin, invaded America at a very late period and are 
not certainly known here before the Pleistocene. The other 
four families were well represented in North American history, 
though the great weasel tribe (Mustelidz) went through the 
greater part of its history in the Old World. None of the 
families is indigenous in South America, and all of the five 
families which it now shares with North America came in in 
the series of immigrations, of which the first recorded effects 
are found in the Pliocene and continued into the Pleistocene. 

The Fissipedia are adapted to a great variety of habits and 
modes of life and consequently there is considerable diversity 
of structure among them, though they all form a homogeneous, 
natural group. The dogs (Canide) are terrestrial, neither 
swimmers nor climbers; some, like the foxes, are solitary, 
others, like the wolves, hunt in packs and nearly all are strong, 
swift runners. The cats (Felide#) which have a remarkable 
range of size, are terrestrial or arboreal; they take their prey 
by stalking and leaping upon it, not by running it down. The 
bears (Urside) are mostly omnivorous, not very often killing 
prey, and largely vegetarian in diet. The raccoons (Pro- 
cyonidz) are chiefly arboreal and omnivorous. The very 
large and varied weasel family (Mustelide) have different 
habits, though nearly all are fierce and _ bloodthirsty. 
_ Otters and sea-otters are aquatic and prey chiefly on fish; 
minks and fishers are semi-aquatic; martens are arboreal, 
skunks terrestrial and badgers fossorial. 

While there is thus much diversity of habit with corre- 
sponding differences of structure among the Fissipedia, there is 
a certain unity of plan recognizable among them all. With 
but few exceptions, the incisors are present in full number and 
the canines are formidable lacerating weapons. Especially 
characteristic of the dentition are the ‘‘sectorial”’ or ‘‘car- 


HISTORY OF THE CARNIVORA 519 


nassial”’ teeth, always the fourth upper premolar and first 
lower molar, which form a pair of shearing blades, the pre- 
molar biting outside. In the bears and most of the raccoons 
the teeth are tuberculated, in adaptation to the omnivorous 
habit, and the carnassials have lost the shearing form, though 
clearly derived from that type. The skull has powerful jaws, 
and the crests and ridges for the attachment of the jaw muscles 
are prominent except in very small animals, and the stout, 
boldly outcurving zygomatic arches are very characteristic. 
The face may be elongate, as in the dogs, or extremely short, 
as in the cats, or of intermediate length; the brain-case is 
relatively capacious, and the orbits, except in the cats, are 
widely open behind. The neck is never very long, but the 
body often is, and the tail varies greatly in length, as do also 
the limbs. There is great difference, too, between the va- 
rious families in the prominence of the processes on the limb- 
bones for the attachment of muscles, as expressive of the mus- 
cular development of the limbs, and also in the extent to which 
the fore foot can be rotated and used for grasping. In all exist- 
ing Fissipedia the femur has no third trochanter, but many 
extinct genera possessed it. The bones of the fore-arm and 
lower leg are always separate and uninterrupted. 

In the wrist (carpus) there is always a large bone, the scapho- 
lunar, which is made up by the coalescence of three elements, 
the scaphoid, lunar and central, a feature which, though recur- 
ring in a few other mammals, is essentially characteristic of 
the modern Carnivora. The feet are armed with claws more 
or less sharp, which in some families, notably the cats, are 
retractile and may be folded back into the foot. The gait 
may be plantigrade, as in the raccoons and bears, or digiti- 
grade, as in the dogs and cats, or intermediate in character. 

Throughout the Paleocene and most of the Eocene, there 
were no Fissipedia, the flesh-eaters all belonging to the extinct 
tCreodonta, and the first clearly recognizable fissipedes occurred 
in the upper Eocene or Uinta. 


520 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


1. Canide. Dogs, Wolves, Foxes, etc. 


This family, which may with convenience be called simply 
dogs, is at present the most widely distributed of the families of 
Fissipedia, occurring in every continent, even Australia, 
and ranging through all climates almost from pole to pole. 
They are a singularly homogeneous family and show few 
differences of structure; such differences as there are affect 
chiefly the number and size of the teeth and external char- 
acters, such as the size of the ears, length and colouring of the 
hair, etc. The many domestic breeds are not here considered. 
Almost alone among the Fissipedia the dogs capture their 
prey by running it down, and they are endowed with remark- 
able speed and endurance. The entire organism, especially 
the limbs and feet, are adapted to cursorial habits. 

For the purpose of comparison with the extinct genera of 
the family, some account of a wolf will suffice. The wolves, 
like most other members of the family, have a larger number 
of teeth than is usual in the suborder, as appears from the 
formula: 73, c+, p$, m3,x2=42, that is to say, only the third 
upper molar has been lost from the typical number, though the 
third lower is very small and seemingly on the point of dis- 
appearance (Fig. 44, p. 93). The upper sectorial tooth, 
the fourth premolar, has its shearing blade made up of two 
sharp-edged cusps, one behind the other, and there is a small 
internal cusp carried on a separate root; the upper molars 
are triangular and tritubercular and are used for crushing. 
The lower sectorial, the first molar, has an anterior blade of 
two shearing cusps, with the remnant of a third, and a low, 
basin-like posterior ‘‘heel.”’ 

_ The skull is characterized by the long face and jaws and 
by the structure of the auditory region; the tympanic bones 
are inflated into large oval bulla, which are hollow and un- 
divided, and the external opening of each is an irregular hole, 
without tubular prolongation. There is an alisphenoid canal 


HISTORY OF THE CARNIVORA 521 


for the passage of the internal carotid artery. The neck, body 
and tail are of moderate length and the vertebre of the loins 
are not conspicuously large and heavy. There is no collar- 
bone. The limb-bones have a distinct, though superficial, 
resemblance to those of hoofed animals; the humerus has no 
very prominent ridges for the attachment of muscles and no 
epicondylar foramen, and the femur no third trochanter. The 
fore-arm bones are separate, but are so articulated together 
and with the humerus as to give the fore foot no power of 
rotation. The manus in all existing wild species has five digits, 
though the pollex or first digit is very small, a mere dew-claw ; 
the four functional digits are arranged in two symmetrical 
pairs, very much as in the artiodactyls, a longer median pair, 
of which the metacarpals have a nearly square cross-section, 
and a shorter lateral pair (2d and 5th) of more trihedral 
form. All the metacarpals are closely appressed and almost 
parallel. The pes has four digits arranged in similar fashion. 
The claws are blunt and non-retractile, and are of little use in 
seizing or lacerating prey, but are useful in digging. The 
ungual phalanges have no bony hoods reflected over the base 
of the claw. All modern forms are digitigrade. 

Materials are lacking for the construction of any such 
detailed phylogeny of the dogs as has been accomplished for 
many ungulates. Many of the extinct genera are known 
only from skulls, or even jaws, and the well-preserved skulls 
are too few to form distinctly defined and continuous series. 
On the other hand, there is every reason to believe that the 
canine genera of the successive geological stages did approx- 
imately represent the successive steps of development within 
the family, though it is difficult to distinguish between the 
phyla. . 

The Pleistocene dogs, for the most part, differed little from 
the Recent ones; there were some very large species like the 
Canis tdirus (Frontispiece) of the Mississippi Valley and the 
Pacific Coast. Two very peculiar genera have been reported. 


522 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


One ({Pachycyon), from a cave in Virginia, had remarkably 
short, stout and strongly curved limb-bones, which suggest otter- 
like habits; the other ({Hyenognathus), from California, had 
a very short face and extremely massive lower jaw and very’ 
heavy teeth; it was probably like a hyena in appearance. 

As far back as the Blanco stage of the middle Pliocene, 
remains occur which are assigned to the modern genus Canis, 
though better preserved specimens would probably require their 
removal from that genus. In the lower Pliocene the phylum 
of the true wolves was represented by tTephrocyon, which, so 
far as it is known, differed only in minor details from Canis, 


Fie. 255.—Skull of tCynodesmus thodides, alower Miocene wolf. Princeton University 
Museum. Compare with Fig. 7, p. 62. 


and {Tephrocyon went back to the middle Miocene. What 
would appear to be its direct ancestor is }Cynodesmus, of the 
lower Miocene, which, in view of the long lapse of time involved, 
differed less from the modern wolves than one would have 
supposed, but the differences are significant, as pointing back 
to a far more primitive type of structure. tCynodesmus was 
a small animal, intermediate in size between a Red Fox and 
a Coyote. The dental formula was the same as in Canis, 
but the teeth were relatively smaller and more closely crowded, 
as the face and jaws were shorter and the cranium, though 
longer, had a less capacious brain-chamber. The cast of 
this chamber, which very perfectly reproduces the form of 
the brain, shows that the latter was not only smaller but less 


HISTORY OF THE CARNIVORA 523 


convoluted than in the modern animals, and this, in turn, 
denotes a lower grade of intelligence. The limb-bones were 
like those of wolves, but the feet were quite different. In the 
manus the first digit, or pollex, was much less reduced, though 
considerably shorter than the other digits, which were not 
in two symmetrical pairs, but were all of different lengths, 
not closely appressed, but arranged in radiating fashion; the 
metacarpals had not yet acquired the quadrate or trihedral 
form, but were more oval in cross-section. The pes was more 


Fig. 256. — Skull of primitive ‘‘ bear-dog”’ ((Daphenus felinus). White River stage. 
(After Hatcher.) oe 


modernized, but had five digits, which is not true of any exist- 
ing member of the family. The claws were thin and sharp 
and were slightly retractile, a power which has been completely 
lost in all the modern canids. Such an animal could hardly 
have been preéminently cursorial. 

Out of the crowd of dog-like creatures in the John Day 
Oligocene, it is not yet practicable to select one which is to 
be taken as the ancestor of the Recent wolves through 
tCynodesmus, nor can this be done with better assurance of 
success in the White River, though the beginning ({Daphenus) 
of the tbear-dogs in that formation probably closely represents 
the ancestral stage sought for. It is likely that several of 


524 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


the phyla into which the family was divided became blended 
in a common stock at that stage. 

A second phylum, now entirely extinct, is that of the fbear- 
dogs, which is not certainly recorded later than the middle 


Pliocene, though 

LPG some have been 

eS a Q doubtfully reported 

from the older Pleis- 

Fic. 257.— Upper teeth of tDaphenus felinus. tocene of the Great 
p. 4 = fourth premolar. (After Hatcher.) , 

Plains and the’ re- 
markable Californian genus, tHyenognathus, may have been 
an offshoot of the same stock. The phylum was characterized 
by the unusually large size of the molars and by certain other 
features, which, however, are not 
known to have persisted through | 
the entire series from first to. last. 
In the middle Pliocene lived some 
very large bear-dogs, of the genus 
+Borophagus, the teeth of which had 
a strong likeness to those of the 
hyenas and probably the animals 
had hyena-like habits, feeding largely 
upon carrion and crushing the stout- 
est bones with their massive teeth. 
The same, or a very similar, genus 
lived in the lower Pliocene, but none 
of the species of that date is at all 
well known. In the upper Miocene Fic. 258.—Right manus of {Da- 
, ‘ ‘ phenus felinus. SI., scapho-lunar. 
occurred several species which have py, pyramidal. Ps., pisiform. 
been referred. to the European J. unciform. (After Hatcher.) 

7 , Compare with Fig. 32. p. 82. 
genera, tAmphicyon and }Dinocyon. 
The latter was an enormous canid, equalling in size the largest 
of living bears, the great Kadiak Bear of Alaska, and, though 
probably having a long and heavy tail, was much like a bear 
in appearance. The teeth indicate a more exclusively car- 


HISTORY OF THE CARNIVORA 525 


nivorous habit than that of the bears and these may well 
have been savage and terrible beasts of prey. 

tAmphicyon, which had three upper molars, continued 
down through the middle Miocene, but was replaced in the 
lower by tDaphenodon, which may or may not have been its 
direct ancestor. The uncertainty as to the exact relationship 
between the two genera will remain until more complete 
material shall have been obtained from the middle Miocene. 


Pana FABRUCE AORSFALL 
ew 


Fic. 259. Lower Miocene “‘ tbear-dog” (Daphenodon superbus). Restored from a 
skeleton in the Carnegie Museum, Pittsburgh. 


}Daphenodon was the largest dog of its time, the contemporary 
wolves (tCynodesmus) having been hardly half so large, but 
was much inferior in size to the huge fbear-dogs of the middle 
and upper Miocene. The skull resembled that of a large 
wolf, but the tympanic bulle were smaller and more loosely 
attached and the molar teeth were relatively much larger, 
a persistent characteristic of this phylum. The very long and 
heavy tail was a cat-like feature. The limbs were compara- 
tively short and stout; the humerus had the epicondylar 


526 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


foramen and the femur retained a trace of the third trochanter, 
both of which are lost in the modern members of the family. 
The feet were not at all canine in type, but rather resembled 
those of the ancient and unspecialized flesh-eaters. There 
were five digits in manus and pes and were not arranged in 
parallel pairs, but diverging; the metapodials were of oval 
cross-section, not squared, and their lower ends, which articu- 
lated with the first row of phalanges, had hemispherical sur- 
faces, not semicylindrical. The claws were sharp and aremnant 
of former retractility was to be observed. Such an animal 
could hardly have been a strong and enduring runner and its 
structure suggests that it captured its prey by stalking and 
leaping upon it. The wolf-like head, with cat-like body, tail 
and limbs, made a strange combination, not closely paralleled 
by any existing carnivore. 

Through the Oligocene the phylum was carried back by 
the several species of tDaphenus, assuredly the ancestor of 
{Daphenodon and decidedly more primitive in many respects. 
The Oligocene genus was a much smaller animal than its lower 
Mioeene successor, the larger species hardly equalling a Coyote ; 
the teeth were smaller and more closely set, but the molars 
were proportionately large, while the carnassials were less 
finished and effective shearing blades. The skull was less 
distinctively dog-like and had a smaller brain-case, with very 
prominent sagittal and occipital crests, a longer cranium and 
shorter face; the tympanic bones were very small ahd so 
loosely attached to the skull that they are rarely found, a very 
striking difference from all existing dogs. The backbone was 
remarkable for the unusually large size of the lumbar vertebre, 
a point of resemblance to the cats and suggesting that {Da- 
phenus had great powers of leaping; there was a long, heavy, 
leopard-like tail, and the caudal vertebre were very like those 
of the long-tailed cats. The limbs and feet were similar in- 
character and proportions to those of tDaphenodon, but the 
astragalus was less grooved for the tibia, the claws were rather 


HISTORY OF THE CARNIVORA 527 


more retractile and the gait was probably more plantigrade. 
There were so many cat-like features in the skeleton of {Da- 
phenus, that the observer cannot but suspect that these resem- 
blances indicate a community of origin, but, until the Eocene 
ancestors of the cats are found, the question of relationship 
must remain an open one. 

The most ancient member of the bear-dog phylum yet 
discovered appears to be one of the fcreodont family of the 
tMiacide, found in the Uinta Eocene. 

A short-lived branch of the canine stock was that of the 
so-called ‘‘thyena-dogs,” a peculiar American type, which 
abounded in the upper Miocene and lower Pliocene and then 
became extinct. Traced backward, this brief series of species 
would appear to have sprung from the true wolves ({Tephro- 
cyon) of the middle Miocene. The upper Miocene and lower 
Pliocene genus {4lurodon had several species, which differed 
considerably in size; the commoner of these were large wolves 
with very modern type of body, tail, limbs and feet, but having 
short and massive heads. The premolars were extremely 
thick and heavy, with such a resemblance to those of the hyenas, 
that these animals have sometimes been mistakenly regarded 
as ancestral to that family. The especial characteristic, how- 
ever, of the series was in the form of the upper sectorial tooth, 
which was much more feline than canine in construction and has 
given occasion for the generic name which means “‘cat-tooth.”’ 

A fourth phylum of the Canidz, which would seem to be 
represented in the modern world by the Indian Dhole, or Wild 
Dog (Cyon), and perhaps by the Brazilian Bush-Dog (Icticyon), 
was characterized by the lower sectorial molar, the heel of which 
was not basin-like, as in the typical dogs, but trenchant and 
consisted of a single sharp-edged cusp, the external one of the 
primitive basin. Although there is no inherent improbability 
in the view that the Dhole and the Bush-Dog are derivatives 
of this phylum, no positive statement can yet be made, for 
the gap in the history is too great to be bridged with any assur- 


528 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


ance. The fossil members of the series did not come down 
later than the middle or upper Miocene and it is quite possible 
that the trenchant heel of the carnassial was developed more 
than once. The middle and lower Miocene members of the 
series are still very imperfectly known and it is only from the 
upper Oligocene (John Day) that well-preserved skeletons 
have been obtained. These pertain to an aberrant member 
of the phylum, the genus tTemnocyon, in which not only does 
the sectorial have a trenchant heel, but the second lower 
molar also was trenchant, having lost the two inner cusps, 
while. the upper molars were as large as in the tbear-dogs. 

tTemnocyon was a comparatively large animal and its 
skeleton had a mixture of primitive and advanced characters, 
the latter predominating, so that this genus was not only 
the largest but also the most specialized canid of its time. 
There was the long, heavy tail, which all of the known Oligocene 
carnivores possessed, but the limbs were long and the gait 
was, it would seem, thoroughly digitigrade. While the epi- 
condylar foramen was retained by the humerus and the third 
trochanter by the femur, those bones were otherwise very 
modern in form. The feet were five-toed, but the functional 
metapodials were parallel, appressed and with something 
of the quadrate shape. In very notable degree, therefore, the 
feet of tTemnocyon anticipated the characters which the true 
wolves acquired considerably later. The less specialized 
{tMesocyon, which was smaller, was the ancestor of the Miocene 
forms and was, in turn, very probably derived from the White 
River tDaphenus. 

Still a fifth phylum, that of the fshort-faced dogs (tHnhy- 
drocyon), is very imperfectly known and has, so far, been found 
only in the lower Miocene and upper Oligocene. These also 
may have been descended from tDaphenus, but the connection 
is not clear, nor has the relationship of the American genus 
to the extremely tshort-faced dogs of the European Pliocene 
been determined. 


HISTORY OF THE CARNIVORA 529 


Finally, so far as North America is concerned, there was 
a phylum of very small fox-like canids, which ranged from the 
lower Miocene to the upper Eocene and were very abundant, 
relatively speaking, in the White River and John Day. The 
. dental formula was the same as in Canis and the skull was 
narrow and slender, though the brain-chamber was propor- 
tionately capacious, and the face was quite short. The tym- 
panic bulle were large and inflated. The body and tail were 


A Bace HO FAR 
TT: Ee 


Fic. 260. —Small, fox-like dog (tCynodictis gregarius) of the White River. Restored 
from a skeleton in the American Museum of Natural History. 


long and the limbs quite short and weak. The humerus had 
no epicondylar foramen and the femur no third trochanter. 
The five-toed feet had the spreading arrangement of the meta- 
podials seen in the more primitive fissipedes generally and the 
claws were sharp. In proportions and appearance these 
animals must have been more like civets or weasels than like 
dogs and it is evident that they were not swift runners. The 
series had its earliest representatives ({Procynodictis) in the 
Uinta and was doubtless derived from the fcreodont family 
2M 


530 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


{tMiacide. The White River species are referred to the Euro- 
pean genus {Cynodictis, those of the John Day and lower 
Miocene to +Nothocyon, and it has been suggested that this 
series gave rise to the foxes, a suggestion which may prove to be 
true, but the very long gap in time between these animals and 
the most ancient known foxes prevents any conclusion. 

To determine the mutual relationships of the six phyla of 
Canide which, from the Eocene onward, inhabited North 
America in such numbers, is a task of great difficulty and only 
a tentative solution of the problem can be offered. The central 
stock would seem to be nearly represented by the White 
River {+Daphenus, leading through tCynodesmus and tTephro- 
cyon, of the Miocene, to the wolves. A short-lived series, 
apparently given off from tTephrocyon, was that of the fhyena- 
dogs, which flourished greatly in the upper Miocene and lower 
Pliocene and then became extinct. Another branch, that of 
the tbear-dogs, was derived from {tDaphenus, through {Da- 
phenodon to tAmphicyon, tDinocyon and +tBorophagus, the 
gigantic Miocene and Pliocene forms, ending perhaps in tHye- 
nognathus of the California Pleistocene. A third branch, 
represented by tMesocyon and tTemnocyon, is believed to be 
continued to-day by the Asiatic Dhole and the Brazilian Bush- 
Dog. The fshort-faced dogs (tH#nhydrocyon) are still very 
obscure. The last phylum, that of +Nothocyon, tCynodictis, 
tProcynodictis, had become distinct in the upper Eocene and 
possibly gave rise to the foxes, but this is highly conjectural. 


2. Felide. Cats 


The only other fissipede group whose development in North 
America may be followed for a long period is that of the 
tSabre-Tooth Tigers, the. subfamily +Machairodontine, which 
have been extinct since the Pleistocene; the history of the True 
Cats (Feline) is much more obscure. In most respects the 
two subfamilies agreed closely and, as they became separate 
at least in the early Oligocene, they furnish instructive parallel 


HISTORY OF THE CARNIVORA 531 


series. The {sabre-tooth cats were terrible beasts of prey, which 
in most of the Tertiary period ranged over the whole northern 
hemisphere and in the Pleistocene or late Pliocene extended 
throughout South America. 

The Pleistocene genus {Smilodon (Frontispiece) belonged 
to nearly the whole western hemisphere and its various species 


Fic. 261. — Skull 6f the Pleistocene tsabre-tooth tiger (tSmilodon californicus, 
after Matthew). P. 4, fourth upper premolar, sectorial. 


were distributed from California and Pennsylvania on the 
north, to the Argentine Pampas on the south. The most 
obvious and striking peculiarities of tSmilodon were in the 
teeth, which were much reduced in number, the formula being: 
tz35, C1, Patz, mj. The upper canine was a great, curved, 


scimitar-like blade, eight inches or more in length, with broad 


532 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


inner and outer faces, but quite thin transversely, and with 
finely serrate posterior edge. It is difficult to understand 
how these great tusks, which would seem to have blocked 
the entrance to the mouth, could have been effectively used, 
unless the creature could open its mouth much more 
widely than any existing mammal, so as to clear the points of 
the tusks, and would then strike with them as a snake does 
with its fangs. There are great anatomical difficulties in 
the way of accepting this explanation and the problem, 
which is the same as that presented by the fuintatheres 
(p. 446), is still unsolved. It is, however, quite certain that 
no arrangement which was disadvantageous, or even in- 

efficient, could have 

persisted for such vast 

periods of time. The 


lower canine was 
p mM. TZ. ae ; 
ay. much diminished and 
Fic. 262.— Upper teeth of tSmilodon, left side. P.4, hardly larger than an 


fourth premolar. m.1, first molar. (After incisor. The two 


Matthew.) 
upper premolars were 


the third and fourth of the original series; the third was small, 
but the fourth, the sectorial, was a very large and efficient 
shearing blade. In addition to the two external trenchant 
cusps of the blade, which are present in the Carnivora gener- 
ally, the cats have a third small, anterior cusp which in {Smilo- 
don was large; the internal cusp had almost disappeared. The 
single upper molar was very small and so overlapped by the 
great carnassial as to be invisible from the side. The third 
lower premolar was small and unimportant and most speci- 
mens had lost it, leaving only the fourth, which was larger 
and evidently of functional value. The single molar was the 
sectorial, a large, thin, flattened blade, consisting of only two 
cusps, one behind the other, the trenchant edges of which met 
at nearly a right angle, and there was no trace of a heel. 

The skull was in appearance closely similar to that of 


HISTORY OF THE CARNIVORA 533 


one of the great modern cats, such as the Lion or Tiger; 
with extremely shortened face, heavy and widely expanded 
zygomatic arches and very prominent sagittal crest. The 
tympanic bullze were large and inflated, each divided by a 
septum into two chambers, but were not visible from the side, 
being covered externally by very large processes, which served 
for the attachment of some of the great muscles of the neck. 
The short, rounded, bullet-head of the true cats was thus 
repeated, but there were in the skull several interesting dif- 
ferences of detail, which it is not worth while to enumerate 
here. Suffice it to say, that some of these differences were due 
to the retention of primitive characters in the skull of tSmilo- 
don, which have been lost in the modern felines, and others to 
special developments, in which the true cats did not share. 
The lower jaw had on each side a small, descending flange for 
the protection of the tusks, which, however, projected well 
below these flanges when the jaws were shut. The neck 
was heavy and the structure of its vertebre was such as to 
suggest the presence of unusually powerful muscles; the back 
and loins were also uncommonly stout, in the larger species 
heavier than in the Lion or Tiger, but, in marked distinction 
from those modern forms, the tail was short. The limbs were 
shorter and much heavier in relation to the size of the body 
than in the great existing cats and must have been extremely 
powerful. The humerus usually had no epicondylar foramen, 
which all the true felines possess, though it was sometimes pres- 
ent. The feet also were very stout and armed with large retrac- 
tile claws; the base of each claw was covered by a thin bony 
hood, an outgrowth of the ungual phalanx, which is very char- 
acteristic of the entire family. The hind foot had five digits, 
whereas no existing cat has more or less than four. The ap- 
pearance of these animals must have been very much like that 
of the Lion or Tiger, aside from the unknown factors of mane 
and colour-markings, but differed in the great tusks, the short 
tail and the shorter and more massive legs and feet. 


5384 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


On account of the very incomplete preservation of the 
material so far collected, little is known of the fsabre-tooth 
series in North America during the Pliocene and Miocene 
epochs. Remains of very large cats have been found in the 
lower Pliocene and upper Miocene, but it is uncertain whether 
they belong to the feline or the f{machairodont subfamily. Some 


Fic. 263.—Skull of a tsabre-tooth tiger ({Machairodus palmidens) from the Miocene 
of France. (After Filhol.) P. 4, fourth upper premolar, sectorial tooth. 


of the species have been referred to the genus +Machairodus, 
which ranged from the lower Pleistocene to the middle Miocene 
of Europe, and the reference may be correct, but is uncertain. 
However, the European representatives of that genus, which 
are much better known, will serve to show the developmental 
stage from which +Smilodon was undoubtedly derived. The 
dental formula was the same as in the American genus, though 
there were generally two premolars in the lower jaw and in tSmi- 
lodon generally but one; the individual teeth were formed on 
the same plan as in the latter, but were relatively smaller, and 
the very small, rudimentary upper molar was visible externally 


HISTORY OF THE CARNIVORA 535 


and was not overlapped and concealed by the great carnassial ; 
the sabre-like tusk had not attained such great proportions. 
The skull of +Machairodus, the only part of the skeleton which 
is definitely known, was like that of {tSmilodon on a much 
smaller scale, but more primitive in several respects. It was 
longer and had a less capacious brain-case and less prominent 
sagittal and occipital crests. The large tympanic bulle were 
conspicuous in the side-view of the skull, as the processes for 
the attachment of the neck-muscles had no such development 
as in {Smilodon. The descending flanges of the lower jaw 
were larger than in the latter. 

The upper Oligocene (John Day) contained a large variety 
of cat-like forms, of which no less than five genera have been 
described ; one of them ({Pogonodon), nearly as large as a Lion, 
would seem to have died out here without descendants, and 
two others, to which we shall return later, so combined the 
characters of true felines and tmachairodonts as to be of un- 
certain reference. Two other genera, which are much com- 
moner and better known, from the White River, will be described 
from specimens of that stage. 

The White River, or lower Oligocene, had three highly 
interesting genera of }machairodonts, two of them known from 
nearly or quite complete skeletons. One of these (tHoplo- 
phoneus), which was, it can hardly be doubted, the direct an- 
cestor of the later typical tmachairodonts, had several species, 
which are found in the various levels of the White River beds. 
The largest of these species was considerably smaller than 
+Machairodus, and the smallest and most ancient was inferior 
to the modern Wild Cat. The number of teeth was variable, 
but normally greater than in the genera above described, being 
13, ct, p33, mi,x2=28-32. The foremost premolar in each 
jaw was very small and often absent. The upper canine was 
a long and curved, but very thin, scimitar, finely serrate on 
both edges, while the lower canine was but little larger than 
the incisors. The carnassial teeth had a significant likeness 


536 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


to those of other fissipede families; the upper one, the fourth 
premolar, was relatively smaller than in +Machairodus and 
its blade less effectively: trenchant; the accessory antero- 
external cusp was present, though extremely small, and the 
internal cusp, which in ¢Smilodon had almost disappeared, was 
quite large. The lower sectorial, the first molar, though already 
cat-like and consisting of two thin, broad and trenchant 


Fig. 264.— White River tsabre-tooth tiger ({Hoplophoneus primevus). Restored from 
a skeleton in the American Museum. {Oreodonts (tMerycoidodon) in the back- 
ground. 

cusps in line, yet had vestiges of the heel and sometimes of the 

inner cusp. These vestiges were a connecting link between 

the highly specialized sectorial of the cats and the type usual 
among the Fissipedia, which is exemplified by the dogs. The 
small upper molar was less reduced than in the Miocene and 

Pliocene genera and plainly consisted of a larger external and 

smaller internal cusp. 

Compared with that of other Fissipedia, the skull was short 
and broad, but in comparison with that of the modern cats 
and of {Smilodon, it was decidedly longer and narrower and 


HISTORY OF THE CARNIVORA 537 


the face was less abbreviated; the resemblance to tSmilodon 
was very marked in the form of the cranium, but, of course, 
the skull of tHoplophoneus was distinctly more primitive in 
many respects. Thus, the orbit was much more widely open 
behind, the tympanic bulle# were but imperfectly ossified, and 
the perforations, or foramina, in the base of the skull, by 
which the nerves and blood-vessels communicated with the 
brain-chamber, were quite different and had more resemblance 
to those of the ancient. dogs (e.g. {Daphenus). In the classi- 
fication of the Fissipedia much stress is laid upon the number 
and arrangement of these cranial foramina, and it is very 
significant to find the primitive dogs and cats agreeing so 
much more closely than do the modern members of these 
families. The lower jaw was relatively much stouter than in 
{tSmilodon and the anterior flanges much more prominent, 
projecting downward so far that, when the jaws were closed, 
the points of the tusks did not extend below the flanges. 
The animal could have made no use at all of the sabre-tusks 
unless the mouth could have been opened so widely as to clear 
their points. 

With close general resemblance, allowing for the very inferior 
size, the skeleton of tHoplophoneus had many significant differ- 
ences from that of ¢Smilodon. The neck was shorter and the 
body, especially the loins, longer, lighter and more slender and the 
tail very much longer, equalling that of the Leopard in relative 
length and surpassing it in thickness. The limbs were much 
less massive and somewhat differently proportioned, the upper 
arm being shorter and the fore-arm longer. The humerus, 
though far more slender than that of tSmilodon, was remarkable 
for the great development of the deltoid and supinator ridges, 
the latter, together with the shape of the radius, indicating 
very free rotation of the fore paw. The very prominent in- 
ternal epicondyle was pierced by a foramen, and the femur had 
a distinct remnant of the third trochanter. The five-toed 
feet were comparatively small, but the claws were as completely 


538 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


retractile and as fully hooded as in any of the subsequent 
genera. 

That tHoplophoneus was a fierce destroyer, is made evident 
by every part of its skeleton, and, like other cats, it no doubt 
subsisted upon warm-blooded animals, which it killed for itself, 
the size of the prey being determined by the size and power of 
the particular species of the tsabre-toothed genus. In view of 
the probable extent of the Oligocene forests, the restoration 
(Fig. 264) gives the animal a spotted coat and the general 
aspect is that of one of the modern spotted cats, but the pro- 
truding ends of the tusks and the relatively long head distin- 
guish it from any existing cat. ‘‘The presence of long, 
knife-like canines is correlated with powerful grasping feet 
possessing highly developed retractile claws. With its power- 
ful feet the animal clung to its prey, while it struck repeatedly 
with its thin, sharp sabres”’ (J. C. Merriam). 

In the latter part of the White River stage lived one of the 
most highly specialized of the fmachairodonts, so far, at least, 
as the dentition is concerned, for only the skull is known. 
This genus, tHusmilus, which also occurred in the Oligocene 
of Europe, was apparently an example of premature specializa- 
tion which led to nothing, for none of the subsequent genera 
could have been derived from it. The teeth were reduced to 
a minimum in number: 7%, c+, p?, mi, X 2 = 24, one lower 
incisor and at least one premolar less in each jaw than had 
tHoplophoneus. The canine tusk was very large and the 
flange of the lower jaw for its protection correspondingly 
elongated, being more prominent than in any other tmachairo- 
dont. The American species, tH. dakotensis, was the largest 
carnivore of its time and not greatly inferior in size to the Lion. 

Still another White River tmachairodont, t+Dinictis, 
differed in many interesting ways from its contemporary 
tHoplophoneus, being more primitive and departing less from 
the ordinary fissipede type of structure. This is shown by 
the greater number of teeth, which was normally, 73, c4, p3, 


HISTORY OF THE CARNIVORA 539 


m}3,X2 =34. The upper carnassial had a considerably larger 
internal cusp and the trenchant blade did not have the accessory 
anterior cusp, which is present in almost all other cats and was 
thus more dog-like than cat-like. The lower carnassial was more 
feline, but retained a remnant of the heel and of the inner cusp, 
but the latter was variable, being sometimes present in one 
side of the jaw and not in the other, a sign that it was on the 


R.GRucE HORSFALL 
U <—y , a 


Fic. 265. — Primitive tsabre-tooth ({Dinictis felina) from the White River. Restored 
from specimens in the American Museum and Princeton University. 


point of disappearance. The upper molar was plainly a re- 
duced form of the tritubercular tooth, in plan like that of the 
dogs, while the second lower molar was a very small, single- 
rooted tooth. No other American cat has such a primitive 
dentition as this, and, aside from the sabre-tusk, which was not 
nearly so long as in tHoplophoneus, and the lower carnassial, 
it might almost as well have belonged to a dog or musteline. 
The skull was very like that of tHoplophoneus, but was stil! 
longer and somewhat different in shape, owing to the higher 
forehead and lower occiput. The primitive features of the 


540 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


cranial base, such as the foramina, the imperfectly ossified 
tympanic bulle, etc., were repeated in {Dinictis, but the lower 
jaw had much less prominent flanges for the protection of the 
tusks. The limbs differed considerably from those of tHop- 
lophoneus in being relatively longer and more slender and 
retaining more primitive features, such as the larger third 
trochanter of the femur. The five-toed feet were decidedly 
small and weak, and the claws, though retractile, were less 


Fic. 266. —Skull of tDinictis squalidens, White River. (After Matthew.) p. 4 = fourth 
upper premolar, sectorial. 


so than in the other genus and were not hooded. The gait 
was probably plantigrade or semi-plantigrade. 

The relationships of {Dinictis and tHoplophoneus are 
rather puzzling ; none of the known species of the former could 
have been ancestral to the latter, for the two genera were 
contemporaneous. }Dinictis was apparently the somewhat 
modified survivor of the ancestral stage and represented very 
nearly the common starting point of both the feline and tmachai- 
rodont subfamilies. Dr. Matthew has propounded the bold 


HISTORY OF THE CARNIVORA 541 


theory that this genus was the actual ancestor of the felines, 
continuing the series through fArchelurus and tNimravus 
of the John Day to the unmistakable felines of the middle 
Miocene. This view runs contrary to the supposed ‘“‘law of 
the irreversibility of evolution,” a rule which many authorities 
look upon as well established. The 
theory postulates a different mode 
of development from anything that 
we have so far encountered in the 
series previously described and sup- 
poses that the upper canine first lost 
its original form, becoming a thin, 
elongate and scimitar-like tusk, while 
the lower canine was reduced almost 
to the proportions of an incisor and 
the lower jaw acquired a straight, 
flat chin and inferior flanges for the 
protection of the tusks. Then, after 
_ Specialization had advanced so far, 
it was reversed and the original con- 
dition regained. This interesting 
hypothesis may possibly turn out 
to be true, though personally I can- 
not accept it, and, should it do so, 
it would necessitate a thoroughgoing 
revision of current opinions as tO 5. 967.—rLeft pes ef {Diniolie 


the processes of mammalian de- felina Cal, calcaneum. 
As., astragalus. Cb., cuboid. 
velopment. 


Princeton University Museum. 

The only John Day cat which 
was assuredly derived from {Dinictis was the large tPogonodon, 
previously mentioned. 

Also in the John Day stage lived tArchelurus and tNim- 
ravus, which, as was noted above (p. 249), have been called the 
“false sabre-tooths,” for in them the upper canine was not 
much larger than the lower and the latter, though smaller 


542 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


than in the felines, was yet very much less reduced than in 
the true tmachairodonts. The skull closely resembled , that 
of {Dinictis, but the lower jaw was without flanges. The 
limbs were long and slender and the feet long and digitigrade. 
The pes had only four digits, of which the median pair was 


¥ie. 268. —Skull of false tsabre-tooth ({Nimravus gomphodus) from the John Day. 
(After Matthew.) p. 4 = fourth upper premolar, sectorial. 


elongated and the lateral pair shortened, so as to produce 
considerable resemblance to the pes of the dogs, and the claws 
were partially retractile. The proportions of the body, limbs 
and feet were suggestively like those of the Cheeta, or Hunt- 
ing Leopard (Cynelurus jubatus) of India, the generic name of 
which means ‘‘dog-cat,” and it is quite possible that the 


HISTORY OF THE CARNIVORA 543 


Cheeta may have been derived from some member of this 
“false jsabre-tooth” series, though the connecting links are 
unknown. These cursorial cats quite displaced the leaping 
tmachairodonts of the tHoplophoneus type, at least in the 
Oregon region at a time when, it will be remembered, that 
region had a remarkable variety of dogs. In other parts of 
the continent, of which we have no record, the true tmachairo- 
donts must have been thriving, as may be inferred from their 
comparative abundance in the later formations. 

Concerning the habits of these cursorial cats, Professor 
Merriam says: ‘‘When the canines are not developed to the 
dagger-like form for stabbing, the premolar teeth serve a more 
definite purpose in the destruction of prey and would be less 
subject to reduction. The view suggested above finds support 
in that such evidence as we have indicates that during the 
deposition of the Middle John Day beds this region was in the 
main a country of open plains, offering advantages to running 
types of carnivores, and that during this epoch the Archelurus- 
Nimravus type of feline was by far the most common form 
[v.e. of cats].’’ The derivation of these cats is still obscure, 
but their likeness to certain forms of the European Oligocene 
suggests that they were immigrants. 

The true cats of the subfamily Feline include the great 
variety of living forms, large and small, from the Lion and Tiger 
at one extreme to the Domestic Cat at the other. There is 
great difference among naturalists with regard to the nomen- 
clature of the Recent cats; some make a considerable number 
of separate genera, while others include all the species, except 
the lynxes and the Cheeta, in the genus Felis. For the pur- 
poses of this book the latter practice is the more convenient 
and will be followed. In Felis the dental formula is: 73, c1, 
p*3, m1, x 2 = 28-30; the canines are large and strong, of 
oval section, and the upper one is but little larger than the 
lower; there are two large and functional premolars in each 
jaw, and an additional very small one may or may not be present 


544 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


in the upper jaw. The upper sectorial has a large shearing 
blade, with well-developed anterior accessory cusp, and the 
inner cusp, which in fSmilodon had almost disappeared, is 
quite large and carried on a separate root. The lower sectorial 
is composed of two cusps only, all traces 
of the heel and of the inner cusp having 
disappeared. The single upper.molar 
is very small and usually concealed 
by the sectorial. The skull is very 
short and broad, and the shortening of 
Fie. 269. — Dentition of Lynx the jaws gives great power to the biting 
(L. rufus), left side. 7. 3, muscles, because of the more favourable 
external upper incisor. 7. 1, é 
firstlowerincisor.c.=canine. leverage. The zygomatic arches are 
p. 3, p. 4, third and fourth very stout and curve.out boldly, con- 
premolars. m. 1, first molar. ‘ 
tributing much to the rounded shape 
of the head; the orbits are almost encircled in bone. The 
large tympanic bulle are two-chambered and there is no ali- 
sphenoid canal, but in several other respects the base of the 
cranium differs markedly from that of tSmilodon. The lower 


Py 


= SLO: 


Fic. 270. — Upper teeth of Puma (Felis concolor), left side. p. 4, fourth 
premolar. m. 1, first molar. 


jaw is without flanges and there is no angle between front 
and sides. 

The neck is short, the body long and the tail is long in most 
of the species, but short in thelynxes. The limbs are relatively 
longer and less massive than in tSmilodon, and there are five 
toes in the manus, four in the pes; the claws are hooded and 
retractile. 


HISTORY OF THE CARNIVORA 545 


The western hemisphere at the present day contains none 
of the very large species, the Puma and Jaguar being the largest ; 
but this was not true of the Pleistocene, where a huge cat 
(Felis ftatroz), surpassing the Lion in size, ranged over the 
southern half of North America. Enormous cats also lived 
in the lower Pliocene and upper Miocene of the Great Plains 


Fic. 271.—Skull of Puma (Felis concolor). p. 4, upper carnassial. The upper molar 
is concealed. 


region, but are not sufficiently well known for reference to 
either subfamily. 

The history of the true felines has been but partially 
deciphered, and can, as yet, be traced back only to the middle 
Miocene, the genus +Pseudelurus representing the series both 
in Europe and North America. In this genus the dental 
formula was nearly the same as in Felis, but there was fre- 
quently an additional small premolar in the lower jaw and the 
sectorials were more primitive, the upper one having the acces- 
sory anterior cusp in a merely incipient stage and in the lower 

2N 


546 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


one there was a vestige of the heel. The upper canine was 
considerably longer than the lower, thinner and more blade- 
like than in Felis, which, so far as it goes, is in favour of Dr. 
Matthew’s theory (p. 541). What little 
is known of the skull and skeleton of 
tPseudelurus agrees with the modern cats. 

While it is not feasible to trace the 
series of true felines to an earlier stage 
than the middle Miocene, there can be no 
doubt that the subfamily was derived 
from the same stock as the fmachairo- 
donts and it is probable that the White 
River +Dinictis nearly represents the com- 
mon starting point for both series; the 
resemblances between {Dinictis and such 
primitive dogs as }Daphenus are sugges- 
tive of a common origin. 


3. Procyonide. ' Raccoons, etc. 


An almost exclusively American family 
Fig. 272.—Left manusof Of Fissipedia is that of the raccoons, which 
eae ake includes not only the latter (Procyon), but 
The horny claws are left also the coatis (Nasua), curious animals, 
ngutl shai’ *° with long, flexible, pig-like snouts, the 
cacomistles (Bassariscus) and kinkajous 
(Potos). In addition to these American forms, there is an out- | 
lying Asiatic genus, the Panda (#lurus) of the southeastern 
Himalayas, the last of a series which goes back to the Euro- 
pean Pliocene. 

The Procyonide are animals of small and moderate size, 
largely arboreal in habits and subsisting upon a mixed diet 
of fruit, eggs, insects and the like; the teeth are adapted to 
this diet and the sectorials have mostly lost their shearing 
form and the molars are tuberculated for crushing and grind- 
ing. The species generally have long tails, except in the rac- 


HISTORY OF THE CARNIVORA 547 


coons proper, in which the tail is of medium length, and five- 
toed, plantigrade feet, with naked soles. Fossil members of 
this family are very rare in Tertiary formations and its history 
is therefore but scantily known; in the lower Pliocene have 
been found fragmentary remains with less 
specialized teeth, which appear to belong 
to the direct ancestor of Bassariscus. The 
upper Miocene genus tLeptarctus was an 
undoubted member of the family, and, bs 

: e 7 Fic. 273. — Dentition of 
while it would seem not to have been in Raccoon (Procyon 
the direct line of any of the modern forms, 7)» left_ side. + 5, 

external incisor. c., 
it was near to the common ancestry of the canine. p. 4, fourth 
American genera, so far as the imperfect aha oe 
specimens enable us to judge. 

By far the most primitive representative of the family 
yet discovered is the lower Miocene genus tPhlaocyon, which 
connected the Procyonide with the Oligocene genus of dogs, 
tCynodictis (p. 529). The dentition resembled that of the 
latter, with several differences, which were all changes toward 
the Procyonid#. All the cusps were lower and blunter than 
in tCynodictis; the premolars were small, thick and closely 
crowded together and the upper séctgrial, while still trenchant, 
had a postero-internal cusp, which is found in none of the 
Canide and was a first step toward the tuberculated pattern 
of the raccoons, and the lower sectorial had a very low cutting 
blade and large heel; the other molars of both jaws were low, 
wide and of subquadrate shape. The skull was short and broad, 
with the face as much shortened and the orbits as far forward 
as in Procyon, but the brain-case was narrower, less capacious, 
and the lower jaw had the curved form and much the same 
character as in the modern genus. The limbs were relatively 
more slender than in the latter and the five-toed feet were 
more canine than procyonine in the proportions of the 
digits. 

The discovery of {Phlaocyon by Dr. Matthew was an 


548 LAND MAMMALS.JN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


event of capital importance, as showing the highly probable 
derivation of the raccoons from {Cynodictis and thus bringing 
another fissipede family into relationship with the dogs. 


4. Urside. Bears 


The present distribution of the bear family is all but ex- 
clusively northern, as there is but one African species, confined 
to the northwestern corner of that continent, and one in the 
Andes of Peru and Ecuador, all the others belonging to Eurasia 
and North America. 

Structurally, the family is very distinct and the dentition 
is quite peculiar. The incisors and canines resemble those of 
other Fissipedia; the three anterior 
premolars are very small, single- 
rooted and often shed early; the 
carnassials have lost their trenchant 
character; and the molars, which are 
usually longer than wide, are tubercu- 
lated, somewhat resembling those of 
Pn ee ee es pigs. Almost all the bears live prin- 

Bear (Ursus americanus). Cipally upon vegetable food, and even 
ee ce ag eet the Polar Bear, which feeds upon fish 
p. 4, fourth premolar. and seals, will eat grass and berries in 
se a a en a the brief Arctic summer; thus, the 
the grinding surface of the shearing teeth of the strictly carnivor- 
ae Rnicares and frst ous types are unnecessary to these 
animals. The skull is not unlike that 

of the dogs in shape, but the tympanic bulla are much flattened 
and the entrances to them are long, bony tubes, while the cranial 
foramina are nearly as in the dogs. The body is very heavy 
and the tail always short. The limbs are short and thick; 
the humerus has lost the epicondylar foramen in all existing 
species except the South American Spectacled Bear (Tre- 
marctos ornatus). The plantigrade feet have naked soles 
(except in the Polar Bear) and each foot has five well-developed 


HISTORY OF THE CARNIVORA 549 


and functional digits, armed with very long, sharp and non- 
retractile claws. 

The Pleistocene representatives of the family in America 
included species of the true bears (Ursus) and of the very large 
{short-faced bears (fArctotherium) which ranged over both 
North and South America. In fArctotherium the dentition 


Fic. 275. — Restored head of the {Short-faced Bear (tArctotherium boneerense). From 
a skull in the National Museum, Buenos Aires. 


was less modified; the larger premolars were very closely 
crowded together and the molars were nearly square ; the lower 
jaw was almost as much curved as in the raccoons. The 
humerus retained the epicondylar foramen. The family, 
which was of Old World origin, may have reached America 
in the lower Pliocene, but was rare until the late Pleistocene. 
tArctotherium has not been found in the eastern hemisphere, 
but that, of course, is no proof that the genus was not an im- 


550 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE e 


migrant from Asia. On the other hand, it may have been 
a peculiar American development from Pliocene immigrants. 
In the Old World, bears were first distinguishable in the upper 
Miocene, and may be there traced back ‘to forms which were 
unmistakably derivatives of the early dogs. 


5. Mustelide. Mustelines 


The last fissipede family, which has, or has had, representa- 
tives in the western hemisphere is that which includes a great 
variety of small carnivores, such as minks, martens, skunks, 
badgers, otters, etc., and was likewise of Old World origin, 
though now of universal distribution, except in Australia and 
Madagascar. These are fierce and bloodthirsty beasts of 
prey, most of them strictly carnivorous and often killing in 
mere wantonness more than they can devour. Though now 
quite numerous and varied in North and South America, they 
are decidedly less so than in the eastern hemisphere and com- 
paratively few peculiar types have originated here. Owing 
to the small size and fragility of the skeletons, they have not 
been well preserved as fossils, and little can be done as yet in 
tracing out the genealogy of the various phyla. 

The mustelines have shortened jaws and a reduced number 
of teeth, the molars being 4 or even 4+ and the premolars vary- 
ing from four to two, though three in each jaw is the usual 
number. The cranium is generally very long and the facial 
part of the skull short, but the soft snout may add considerably 
to the length of the face. The tympanic bulle are single- 
chambered and little inflated, and the lower lip of the entrance 
is extended; the hard palate is usually continued well back 
of the teeth. The body is very long and the tail variable and, 
in most of the genera, is short rather than long. The limbs are 
short, the feet, except in one genus, five-toed and plantigrade or 
semi-plantigrade, and the claws are non-retractile. Terrestrial, 
arboreal, burrowing, aquatic and marine forms are all repre- 
sented in the family. 


HISTORY OF THE CARNIVORA 551 


So far as North America is concerned, it is scarcely practi- 
cable to do more than catalogue the genera of the successive 
geological epochs. Pleistocene mustelines were very modern 
in character, differing little from those now inhabiting the con- 
tinent, though in some cases with different ranges, according 
to climatic fluctuations. Badgers, martens, skunks and others 
occurred then very much as they do now and the Boreal Wol- 
verene extended down to Pennsylvania. Little is known of 
Pliocene mustelines, the Blanco having yielded fragments 
of only one genus of uncertain affinities and though several 
genera occurred in the lower Pliocene, but one, a marten 
(Martes), can be identified. Unquestionably, North America 
had many more Pliocene members of the family, but the con- 
ditions of preservation were unfavourable. 

Much the same is true of the Miocene stages. In the upper 
Miocene there were a marten (Martes), a weasel (Mustela) 
and two otters ({Potamotherium and the modern Lutra), of 
which the marten and the more primitive otter went back to 
the middle Miocene. In the lower Miocene were several 
mustelines quite different from any now existing. One of 
those, {Megalictis, was truly gigantic, with a skull nearly as 
large as that of a Black Bear and having heavy, pointed claws. 
This and asimilar genus, t#lurocyon, were related to the Ratel 
(Mellivora) of India and Africa and, more closely, to the 
Wolverene. {Oligobunis, a much smaller animal, was ap- 
parently of the same group. This genus was also in the upper 
Oligocene, but there represented by a larger species, which 
was as large as a badger. 

The White River beds have yielded but a single genus, 
+Bunelurus, which was the most primitive of American 
mustelines and had four premolars and two molars in each 
jaw, though the second upper molar was extremely small. 
The face was much less shortened than in the modern weasels 
and the tympanic bulle were short and strongly inflated and 
had no tubular entrance, and were thus ‘canine rather than 


552 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


musteline in form. The.bony palate was not extended back 
of the teeth as it is in the modern genera. The same primitive 
group was much more abundant in the European Oligocene, 
migrating probably from Asia into Europe as well as into 
North America. 


SOUTH AMERICAN FISSIPEDIA 


The history of the South American carnivores is a com- 
paratively brief one ; the southern continent has representatives 
of the same five families as the northern, but most of the genera 
are different, the time since the great southward migration 
having been sufficient for the development of peculiar forms 
in the new environment. Among the dogs, there are to be 
noted the curious, close-haired, long-bodied and short-legged 
Bush-Dog (Icticyon) and the fox-like wolves (Cerdocyon), but 
there are no true foxes. Of the cats, the Puma differs little 
from that of North America, and the Jaguar (Felis onca) and 
Ocelot (F. pardalis) also range into the northern continent, 
but several small cats are confined to South America, which 
has no lynxes. There is but one bear (T’remarctos ornatus) of 
Andean range. Of the Procyonide, the northern Procyon 
lotor is replaced by the Crab-eating Raccoon, P. cancrivorus, 
while the coatis (Nasua) and kinkajou (Potos) are chiefly 
Neotropical. Except for the otters, the genera of Mustelide 
are nearly all different; there are no badgers and a different 
genus of skunks (Conepatus) replaces the northern Mephitis; 
the Grison (Grison), Tayra (Tayra) and the Patagonian Lyn- 
codon are peculiar. 

Even less can be done to trace the evolution of the South 
American genera than for the forms of the northern continent, 
whence migrated the more or less different ancestors of the 
former. The Pleistocene has yielded most of the modern 
genera, both existing and extinct species. An example of 
the latter was Procyon tursinus from the Brazilian caverns, 
a truly gigantic Raccoon, as large as a bear. The tsabre-tooth 


HISTORY OF THE CARNIVORA 553 


tigers ({Smilodon) and short-faced bears ({Arctotheriwm) were 
shared with North America. In the Pliocene a bear, a raccoon 
and a dog were the only known fissipedes, and in the 
Miocene none have been found, their place being taken by 
flesh-eating marsupials. 


While the history of the Fissipedia, as outlined in the pre- 
ceding pages, is sadly incomplete as compared with that of 
many ungulates, it is nevertheless highly suggestive. In each 
family the advance of specialization and adaptation to a 
narrow range of habits may be followed; generally speaking, 
the teeth were diminished in number and increased in size and 
were either simplified by the loss of parts, as in the cats, or 
complicated by the addition of new elements, as in the bears 
and raccoons. The brain grew larger and more convoluted 
and the cranium more capacious; in most of the families, 
the face was shortened, notably in the cats and mustelines, 
while in others, especially the dogs, it was elongated. In all 
of the early types there was a long and heavy tail, but in most 
series it underwent more or less reduction. There was little 
reduction of digits, and no fissipede has less than four. In 
modern dogs and cats there are five digits in the manus and 
four in the pes and the hyenas have four in each, as has one 
genus of mustelines ; other modern genera throughout the sub- 
order are pentadacty]l. 

It is significant that the more ancient members of the various 
families differed less than do the modern ones; the various 
groups, as they are traced back in time, would seem to be 
converging to a common ancestry, of which the lower Oligocene 
dogs were the least changed representatives, and it is probable 
that all the families of the Fissipedia were derived, directly 
or indirectly, from a single Eocene group of primitive flesh- 
eaters. The families, none of which is extinct, are not all of 
equal antiquity. So far as now appears, the dogs and viverrines 
are the most ancient, having become distinct in the upper 


554 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


Eocene; in the Oligocene were added the mustelines and cats ; 
the raccoons branched off from the dogs in the lower Miocene, 
as did the bears in the upper Miocene. Finally, the hyenas 
appeared in the lower Pliocene, seemingly derived from the 
viverrines. The dogs passed through the greater part of 
their development in North America, where, during the Oli- 
gocene and Miocene, they were very abundant and varied, 
while at the same time they were comparatively rare in Europe 
and belonged chiefly to the phylum of the fbear-dogs. On the 
other hand, the remaining four families are of Old World 
origin, the bears and mustelines migrating to America, while 
the viverrines and hyenas did not. 


SUBORDER {CREODONTA. }PRIMITIVE FLESH-EATERS 


This group long preceded the Fissipedia in time, for they 
began their recorded history in the Paleocene and became 
extinct in the Oligocene. Through one family, the {Miacide, 
the tcreodonts were broadly connected with the fissipedes, 
and it seems probable that that family was the ancestral 
stock from which all the fissipede families were derived. The 
other tcreodont families died out without leaving descendants. 

There is some difference of practice as to the number of 
families to be admitted; the table contains those listed in 
Professor Osborn’s book and also adopted by Dr. Schlosser. 
I should prefer a somewhat larger number of family groups, 
but the matter is one of secondary importance. Many genera 
are omitted. 


I. tOxyYcLanipaé. 
tOxyclenus, Paleoc. tDeltatherium, do. 
II. fARcTocyonip@. 
{Clenodon, Paleoc. tAnacodon, low. Eoc. 
III. {MrsonycHIp@. 
{Triisodon, Paleoc. {Dissacus, do. tPachyena, low. Eoc. tMes- 
onyx, mid. Koc. tDromocyon, do. + Harpagolestes, mid. and up. 
Eoc. 


HISTORY OF THE CARNIVORA 555 


IV. fOxyanipa. 
tPaleonictis, low. Eoc. {Oxyena, do. fPatriofelis, mid. Koc. 
{Limnocyon, do. tMachatroides, do. ‘tOxyenodon, up. Eoc. 
V. t{Hymnopontipa. 
{Sinopa, mid. Eoc. tStypolophus, low. and mid. Koc. f Tritemnodon, 
mid. Eoc. fPterodon, low. Oligo. + Hycenodon, do. 
VI. {Miacipz. 
{Didymictis, Paleoc. and low. Eoc. tViverravus, mid. Eoc. fMia- 
cis, low. Eoc. fUintacyon, low. to up. Eoc. +Oddectes, mid. Eoc. 
{Vulpavus, do. }Palearctonyx, do. 


The ftCreodonta were an extremely varied assemblage, of 
carnivorous, omnivorous and presumably insectivorous habits, 
so that few statements, not subject to exceptions, can be made 
of them all. Only seven genera are known from skeletons, and 
several more from skulls, but most are represented only by jaws 
and teeth ; limb- and foot-bones, however, give us a conception 
of the general structure of a considerable number. As a 
rule, the dentition was complete, according to the formula, 
1%, c4, p 4, m3, X 2 = 44, but the first premolar or the last 
molar may be lost. The canines were always large, as was be- 
fitting for beasts of prey. In only one family, the Miacide, 
were the carnassial teeth confined to a single pair and those 
the same as in the Fissipedia, the fourth upper premolar and first 
lower molar; in all the other families there were either no 
sectorial teeth, or else there was more than one pair. Inthe 
Fissipedia the first is the largest of the lower molars, while in the 
{Creodonta (except the tMiacidez) it was usually the smallest. 
The premolars were generally simple, compressed-conical teeth 
and the molars, with all their great variety, may be reduced to 
a common plan; those of the upper jaw were primitively tri- 
tubercular, with a triangle of two external and one internal 
cusps, and those of the lower jaw were in two distinct parts, 
an anterior, elevated triangle of three cusps and a low heel 
of two. 

The skull was almost always very large in proportion to the 
size of the animal; the cranium, though long, was of small 


556 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


capacity and the face varied much in length in the different 
families. Primitively, the face and jaws were short in correla- 
tion with the small size of the teeth, and this primitive con- 
dition was modified in two opposite directions; in one the 
face and jaws were elongated, as the teeth enlarged, and in the 
other they were shortened still further. The zygomatic arches 
were stout and curved out strongly from the sides of the skull, 
making very wide openings, and, in almost all cases, the sagittal 
and occipital crests were very high, as would be necessary from 
the combination of powerful jaws and small brain-case (see 
p. 63). The tympanic bulle were not ossified. The brain 
was extremely small, especially in the more ancient genera, and 
the convolutions were almost always few and simple, which in- 
dicates a low grade of intelligence and. very marked inferiority 
to the Fissipedia. 7 

In all the genera of which sufficient, material has been ob- 
tained the body was long and had 19 or 20 trunk-vertebre : 
in the lumbar and posterior part of the dorsal regions the pro- 
cesses by which the successive vertebre were articulated to- 
gether (zygapophyses) were cylindrical and interlocking, as 
in the artiodactyl ungulates (p. 360). To this general state- 
ment, the tMiacide formed a partial exception. The tail 
was very long and heavy in all the forms of which the caudal 
vertebre are known, and this was probably true of all. The 
limbs were short and generally heavy; the femur had the 
third trochanter and the humerus, save in a few of the later 
genera, the epicondylar foramen, and the manus could, in 
nearly all, be freely rotated. Except in the most advanced 
forms of one family, the tMesonychide, the feet were five- 
toed and plantigrade, or semi-plantigrade, and of decidedly 
primitive structure. The scapholunar bone of the Fissipedia 
(see p. 519) was not formed, its three elements, with very few 
exceptions, remaining separate. The astragalus nearly always 
had a shallow groove, or none at all. The claws were thick and 
blunt and the ungual phalanges cleft at the end, except in the 


HISTORY OF THE CARNIVORA 557 


tArctocyonide and tMiacide, which had sharp claws and 
uncleft phalanges. 

From this brief description, it is obvious that the tMiacide 
occupied a very isolated position among the tcreodonts and, in 
my judgment, it would be better to transfer that family to the 
Fissipedia and include the others in a separate order. 

Throughout the Paleocene and Eocene epochs the {Creo- 
donta were numerous and varied, the first of the Fissipedia 
appearing in the upper Eocene. Till then the {creodonts 
were the only predaceous mammals in North America and 
Europe, and they were especially abundant in the former. 
Most members of the suborder and all the Paleocene forms were 
of small or moderate size, but some of the Eocene species were 
very large. In the Uinta the fcreodonts were greatly de- 
creased in numbers and in the White River there were only 
two genera of one family, the Hyenodontide, and since the 
Oligocene the suborder has been extinct. 


1. tMiacide. Fissipede-like tCreodonts 


It is: unfortunate that no member of this family is known 
from a complete skeleton,:but the material collected is suffi- 
cient to give a fairly adequate conception of these most in- 
teresting animals. These were the only tcreodonts with a 
single pair of carnassials, the fourth upper premolar and first 
lower molar, but in some of the genera the carnassials did not 
differ greatly from the other teeth. In the various genera the 
skull differed considerably in length and in the proportions of 
cranium and face; the brain-case was larger than in most 
other tcreodonts and the brain more advanced, though smaller 
than in the fissipedes, and the sagittal and occipital crests were 
very prominent; the tympanic bulle were not ossified. The 
humerus had the epicondylar foramen and the femur the third 
trochanter ; in the wrist the scaphoid, lunar and central were 
separate, almost the only important difference from the Fissi- 
pedia and merely the primitive stage of the latter. The feet 


558 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


were pentadactyl and the digits were arranged in spreading 
fashion; the claws were small, sharp and partially retractile 
and the ungual phalanges not cleft at the tip. 

Within the family several different phyla may be distin- 
guished, one of which ({Miacis — tUintacyon) led to the dogs, 
another to the fbear-dogs, or tamphicyons. A third phylum 
({Didymictis — tViverravus) is by several authorities regarded 
as ancestral to the civet family, or viverrines, of the Old World, 
and a fourth (tOddectes, }Vulpavus) as the forerunner of the 
kinkajous (Potos). Except for the connection with the dogs, 
the hiatus in time between the supposed ancestors and descend- 
ants is too great to permit any confident statements. It 
seems very probable, however, that the tMiacide represented 
the common stock, from which the fissipede families were all 
derived, directly or indirectly, though for most of them the 
details of the connection remain to be learned. 

We find thus a group separating itself from the other tcreo- 
donts in the older Paleocene and gradually assuming fissipede 
characteristics, at the same time dividing into. several phyla. 
In the upper Eocene this group passed almost imperceptibly 
into the Fissipedia, more obviously into the dog family, which, 
as we have seen, represents the central line of fissipede develop- 
ment. 

2. tMesonychide 

This family displayed, in certain respects, the highest 
degree of specialization attained by any tereodonts, for they 
were the only ones which acquired cursorial limbs and feet. 
The ftmesonychids were prevailingly, but not exclusively, a 
North American family and their range in time was through 
the Paleocene and Eocene. 

The teeth, in the more advanced genera, had a curious 
mingling of primitive and specialized characters and none were 
sectorial in the proper sense of the word. The incisors were 
small, the canines large and bear-like and the premolars simple. 
The upper molars were very primitive, retaining the original 


HISTORY OF THE CARNIVORA 559 


tritubercular pattern, except that the two outer cusps were 
joined together, but the lower molars had lost all the internal 
cusps, which gave them a carnassial appearance; they were 
not sectorial, however, for their cusps wore directly against the 
upper teeth, not shearing past them, and were greatly blunted 
and worn down by use. 

The last of the family was t+Harpagolestes, of the Uinta 
and Bridger, one of the largest of the tereodonts. The skull, 
which was of disproportionate size, exceeded that of the Grizzly 
Bear; the upper profile of the skull had considerable resem- 
blance to that of a bear in the steep forward descent at the fore 
head. The teeth were more reduced than in the other mem- 
bers of the family through the loss of the second premolar and 
third molar of the upper jaw. The skeleton is little known, but 
the humerus had a long and prominent deltoid crest and an 
epicondylar foramen. 

In the middle Bridger stage were closely allied and very simi- 
lar genera, {Mesonyx and t{Dromocyon (Fig. 139, p. 269), which 


Fic. 276.— Upper teeth, right side, of tMesonyzx obtusidens, showing the 
grinding surface. 


were like small, big-headed wolves, for the skull was as long as 
that of a Black Bear. Though the cranium was very long, the 
brain-chamber was very small and the sagittal crest enormously 
high, to afford surface for the attachment of the powerful jaw- 
muscles. The tympanic bulls were ossified and had quite 
long, tubular entrances, a feature which has been found in no 
other fcreodont skull. The face and jaws were also elongate, 
giving the head quite a wolf-like appearance. ‘he neck and 
body were of moderate length, but the tail was extremely 
long, slender and whip-like. 


560 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


The limbs and feet were more specialized than in any other 
tcreodont and the changes were all in the direction of adapta- 
tion to swift running. The humerus was very smooth, with 
low ridges, and, alone among fcreodonts, had in these genera 
no epicondylar foramen, though the femur retained the third 
trochanter. The radius was broad and so interlocked with the 
humerus as to prevent any rotation of the manus. The feet 
were four-toed and much resembled those of the modern dogs 
and hyenas. In each foot the metapodials were closely ap- 
pressed and parallel, not spreading, but arranged in two sym- 
metrical pairs, a longer median and shorter lateral pair, much 
on the artiodactyl plan; the ankle-bone (astragalus) also had 
an artiodactyl look, with its deeply grooved surface for the tibia 
and pulley-like lower end. The ungual phalanges were so short 
and broad as almost to suggest hoofs rather than claws. It is 
clear that the gait was as fully digitigrade as in a modern wolf 
and these were the only tcreodonts of which this is known to be 
true. These were somewhat puzzling animals; the whole 
structure of the limbs and feet was that of cursorial types, but 
the broad, blunt claws do not suggest the running down and 
capture of prey, nor were the teeth those of savage killers. 
The speed may have been defensive, to escape from enemies, and 
* the food may have been largely vegetable. 

Ancestors of these Bridger genera have not been found yet 
in the Wasatch, a time when the family was represented by 
{tPachyena, some of the species of which were very large, rival- 
ling tHarpagolestes, which was descended from one or more of 
them. tPachyena had extremely massive teeth and was not 
improbably a carrion-feeder of hyena-like habits, and it re- 
tained the epicondylar foramen of the humerus and pentadactyl 
feet. 

Much more primitive was {+Dissacus, of the upper Paleo- 
cene, which was very probably the direct ancestor of both the 
Wasatch and the Bridger genera. The upper molars were 
substantially as in the latter, but the lower molars had the in- 


HISTORY OF THE CARNIVORA 561 


ternal cusp of the primitive triangle, though the heel was trench- 
ant, and had lost its inner cusps. “The feet had five well- 
developed digits, which were arranged in spreading fashion, 
and the gait was plantigrade. The claws were longer, more 
pointed and much less hoof-like than in the Bridger genera. 
The Puerco genus +7 rizsodon may or may not have been directly 
ancestral to {Dissacus; at all events, it was very nearly what 
the desired ancestor must have been. The teeth were much 
less specialized than in {Dissacus; the tritubercular upper 
molars were broader and their external cusps were more sepa- 
rated, while in the lower molars the anterior triangle was made 
up of three nearly equal cusps and the heel was low and basin- 
shaped. The skull had an extremely narrow brain-case and a 
long, heavy sagittal crest. 

The most interesting feature in the history of the {Meso- 
nychide is the demonstrable derivation of the cursorial, digiti- 
grade, four-toed and almost hoofed Bridger genera from the 
plantigrade, five-toed Torrejon genus, which had sharp claws. 
To all appearances, this family was the fcreodont analogue 
of the hyenas. 


3, 4. tArctocyonide and tOxyclenide 


This second tcreodont family which had no carnassial teeth 
has received the not very happily chosen name of fArctocy- 
onide, or ‘‘bear-dogs,”’ though they were not related to either 
bears or dogs. The family was a very ancient one and has 
been found only in the Paleocene and lower Eocene (Torrejon 
and Wasatch) of North America and Europe. The molar 
teeth were very low-crowned and quadritubercular, with 
numerous small tubercles in addition to the four principal 
cusps, a pattern which was rather pig-like than bear-like. The 
Wasatch genus tAnacodon, known only from jaws and teeth, had 
reduced premolars, both in size and number, while in the Torre- 
jon genus, {Clenodon, the premolars, though small, were present 
in full number. The skull was like that of tMesonyx in the 

20 


662 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


‘relative lengths of cranium and face, the very small size of the 
-brain-case and the great prominence of the occipital and sagittal 
crests. The feet were pentadactyl and plantigrade and the 
claws were long, thin and pointed, and the ungual phalanges 
were not cleft at the tip, the only tcreodont family, except the 
+Miacide, of which this was true. 

Of the tOxyclenide, very little is known and they may not 
have been fcreodonts at all. They were quite small animals, 
‘with sharp-cusped tritubercular upper molars and lower molars 
with high anterior triangle and low heel. This is the type of 
dentition from which all the divergent fcreodont types were 
‘doubtless derived. The family was Paleocene. 


5. tHyenodontide 


This was the last of the tcreodont families to survive, being 
quite common in the lower Oligocene of North America and 
Europe and in the upper Eocene of the latter also. The family 
became extinct in the upper Eocene of North America and the 
White River genera were not of native origin, but migrants 
from the Old World. One of the more abundant predaceous 
genera of White River times was the European }+Hyenodon; 
it was represented by several species which ranged in size from 
a fox to a Black Bear. In this genus the dentition was some- 
what reduced, the incisors often numbering 2 and the molars 
‘constantly 2; there were three pairs of carnassial teeth on 
each side, of which the pair formed by the second upper and 
third lower molar was the largest and most efficient, the other 
pairs being the first upper and second lower molar, the fourth 
upper premolar and first lower molar, the latter the smallest 
of the three. The upper molars had lost the internal cusp and 
the remaining, extérnal portion consisted of a flattened-conical 
anterior cusp and a posterior trenchant ridge; the milk-teeth 
of tHyenodon, as well as the permanent dentition of the an- 
cestral genera, show that the anterior cusp was composed of 
the two external cusps of the primitive tritubercular tooth fused 


HISTORY OF THE CARNIVORA 563 


into one and that the trenchant ridge was a superadded ele- 
ment. The fourth upper premolar was a sectorial like that of 
the Fissipedia, but of an unfinished, ineffective sort. The third 
lower molar was very similar in shape to the carnassial of the 
cats and was composed of only two large, thin and trenchant 
cusps, which made a shearing blade, having lost the inner cusp 


ABR CE MO SA 


Fic. 277. — tHyenodon horridus, a White River tereodont: in the background, t Lepto- 
meryx evansi. Restored from skeletons in the American Museum of Natural 
History. 


of the primitive triangle and the heel. The first and second 
molars were like the third except in size and in retaining a 
vestige of the heel. The premolars were large and massive, 
almost hyena-like, which suggested the generic name. The 
canines were prominent and strong. 

The skull, as in almost all fcreodonts, was relatively very 
large, but in the various species there was considerable differ- 
ence of shape; more commonly it was long and narrow, with 
elongate jaws, and was quite wolf-like in appearance, but in 


564 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


some of the species it was shorter and wider. The brain-case 
was more capacious and the brain more richly convoluted 
than in any other known fcreodont, but the sagittal and oc- 
cipital crests were very prominent. The neck was rather short, 
not equalling the head in length, the body elongate and the 
loins very muscular; the tail was fairly long and thick, but 
much less so than in most fereodonts. The limbs were short 
and, in most of the species, quite slender, though in some they 
were much stouter; the primitive features, such as the third 


<a 


Fic. 278. — Skeleton of tHyenodon. American Museum. 


trochanter of the femur, the epicondylar foramen of the hu- 
merus, the separate scaphoid, lunar and central in the carpus, 
were retained. The feet had five digits arranged in spreading 
fashion and were probably semi-digitigrade ; the claws were so 
thick and blunt that they could hardly have served in seizing 
prey. 

The restoration gives the animal quite a near resemblance 
to the modern hyenas and perhaps errs in making the likeness 
so close. From the whole structure of the skeleton and the 
form of the claws, it may be inferred that }Hye@nodon was not 
a swift runner or very efficient in the capture of prey. While 
probably savage fighters, they doubtless subsisted chiefly as 
carrion-feeders and scavengers. 


HISTORY OF THE CARNIVORA 565 


Another doubtfully distinct genus, tHemipsalodon, was 


so closely like, 
if not identical 
with, the much 
better known 
European }Péer- 
odon, that the 
latter may be 
taken in place 
of it. +Pterodon 
was similar in 
most respects to 
{Hyenodon, but 
distinctly less 
advanced, and 
though not the 
ancestor of the 
latter, serves to 
connect it with 
the older mem- 
bers of the 
series. Pitero- 
don did not, so 
far as we know, 
penetrate North 
America south 
of the Canadian 
border, occur- 
ring in the lower 
White River of 
Alberta. In 
this genus the 
upper molarsre- 
tained a large 
internal cusp, 


D 


Fic. 279. — Lower teeth, right side, of thyzenodontids. A, fSi- 
nopa. B,tTritemnodon. C, tPterodon. D, tHyenodon. X, Ox- 
yena. The dotted line connects the first molar of each, lost 
in tPterodon. See explanation of Fig. 280. (After Matthew.) 


566 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


INTGSS oo» 


Fia. 280. — Upper teeth of thyzenodontids, right side, showing 
the grinding surface. A, tSinopa, Wasatch and Bridger. 
B, tTritemnodon, Bridger. C, tPterodon, upper Eocene and 
lower Oligocene of Europe. D, tHyanodon, White River. 
The dotted line connects the first molar of each. For 
comparison is added X, tOxyena, one of the tOxynide. 
C and Dare much larger than the others, but all, except 
X, are reduced to the same length. (After Matthew.) 


and the third 
molar, though 
small and not sec- 
torial, had not 
been lost; the 
two external cusps 
were connate, but 
not completely 
fused together and 
the posterior ridge 
was not so well 
developed as in 
tHyenodon, nor 
was the fourth 
upper premolar so 
nearly a carnas- 
sial. The lower 
molars were shear- 
ing blades, but 
distinct vestiges 
of the heel re- 
mained. So far 
asthey are known, 
the skull and 
skeleton resem- 
bled those of 
tHyenodon. 
+Hyenodon and 
4Pterodon were 


evidently derived 


from a group of 
small tereodonts 
which, in thelower 
and middle Eo- 


cene, were spread 


HISTORY OF THE CARNIVORA 567 


all over the northern hemisphere, but it is not yet possible 
to select from the crowd of allied genera those which formed 
the actual steps of descent. These small animals were numer- 
ous and varied and are far better known in North America 
than in Europe and it is not at all improbable that some of 
the lower Eocene genera migrated to the Old World and 
there gave rise, among other forms, to tHyaenodon and 


Fig. 281. — fTritemnodon agilis, a primitive thyenodont, Bridger stage. Restored 
from a skeleton in the American Museum. 


+Pterodon, which eventually returned to the land of their 
earlier ancestry. If confirmed, this will be an exceptionally 
interesting case of back and forth migration. However that 
may be, the American Eocene genera, {Sinopa and tT ritem- 
nodon, illustrate very well the ancestry of the Oligocene genera, 
as they must have been similar to the actual progenitors. 

The first and most obvious difference from the Oligocene 
genera was the very much smaller size of the animals, few of 
the Eocene forms equalling a fox in height. The teeth were 


568 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


unreduced in number, and there were three pairs of carnassials. 
The first and second upper molars were not far removed from 
the primitive tritubercular form, but the two external cusps 
were close together and a small posterior cutting ridge was 
present; the third molar was progressively reduced in size. 
The three lower molars were carnassials of a rather imperfect 
kind and the first was the smallest of the series; the two outer 
cusps of the anterior primitive triangle formed the shearing 
blade and there was a basin-shaped heel. The skull was long, 
narrow and low and the cranial portion, despite the very small 
brain-case, was especially elongate, though face and jaws were 
also long; -the sagittal crest was very prominent. The neck 
was of moderate length, the body long and slender and the 
tail extremely long. The short and delicate limbs were of 
very primitive character, but the radius had already lost the 
power of rotation; the feet had five spreading digits, armed 
with sharp claws. The thyznodont relationships of these 
small animals are obvious in every part of their structure and 
yet, as would be expected, they were far less specialized. 
Probably, too, they were more active and successful hunters 
of prey, the smaller mammals and birds, less given to carrion- 
feeding. The line probably originated in the tOxyclenide of 
the Paleocene. 
6. tOxyenide 

The genera of this family had such feline characters that 
more than one writer has been misled into the belief that they 
were the ancestors of the cats. In this family there were two 
pairs of sectorial teeth, of which the larger pair was composed 
of the first upper and second lower molar, the smaller pair of 
the fourth upper premolar and first lower molar, as in the fissi- 
pedes. Of the three phyla within the family, the most special- 
ized one ran a brief career, through the Wasatch, Wind River 
and Bridger, and then died out. The terminal member of 
this series, the Bridger genus }+Patriofelis, had a skull as large 
as that of a lion, but the rest of the skeleton was not so large 


HISTORY OF THE CARNIVORA 569 


in proportion. The teeth were considerably reduced in num- 
ber, the formula being : 73, c+, p3,m4, a loss of at least twelve 
from the primitive total of 44. The single upper molar was a 
large sectorial, which was formed much as in the thyzenodonts, 
the two external cusps connate, but not indistinguishably 
fused together, and a long, trenchant ridge behind, while the 
inner cusp had almost vanished. The second lower molar 


Fic. 282.— tPatriofelis ferox, Bridger stage. Restored from a skeleton in the 
American Museum. 


was very cat-like ; its cutting blade was formed of two shearing 
cusps; of the inner cusp no trace was left, and of the heel merely 
avestige. The first lower molar was smaller and less specialized, 
since it retained a small internal cusp and quite a large heel. 
The skull was very large and massive, with elongate cra- 
nium and shortened face, the muzzle broad and abruptly trun- 
cate, not tapering; the brain-case was exceedingly small, 
with very long and prominent sagittal crest; the zygomatic 
arches were extremely heavy and curved outward boldly, so 


570 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


that the head was very wide, notwithstanding the absurdly 
small brain-case. The lower jaw was very deep and heavy and 
the chin abruptly rounded, with almost. vertical front. The 
very unusual massiveness of the zygomatic arches and the great, 
development of the crests and ridges for the attachment of the 
jaw-muscles, and the _ short, 
heavy lower jaw, all indicate a 
degree of power in the biting 
and shearing apparatus such as 
occurred in no other known 
{creodont. 

The neck was of medium 
length, while the body, though 
actually elongate, was rather 
short as compared with most 
other fcreodonts ; the loins 
were very heavy and must have 
been extremely powerful in the 
living animal; in this region 
the articulations between the 
. Successive vertebre were more 

; _.. complex than in any other 

vitae, Cal, calgancom, As. setae, member of the suborder; re- 

alus. Cb., cuboid. N., navicular. gembling the structure found in 
Cn. 1, 2, 3, internal, middle and ex- e : . 

ternal cuneiforms. (After Wortman.) certain artiodactyls, The ribs 

were long and thick, the chest 

deep and capacious. Even for a tcreodont, the tail was long 

and uncommonly thick. 

The limbs, especially the anterior pair, were short and very 
stout ; the humerus had an immensely developed deltoid ridge, 
which extended down for two-thirds the length of theshaft, and a 
very prominent supinator ridge ; the fore-arm bones, particularly 
the ulna, were heavy and the radius had but a limited power of 
rotation. The feet were short and broad, with five complete, 
spreading toes, ending in thick and blunt-pointed claws. 


HISTORY OF THE CARNIVORA 571 


{Patriofelis was by far the most formidable of the Bridger 
Carnivora and, with the exception of tHarpagolestes, the larg- 
est. Its appearance must have been very curious, judged from 
the modern standpoint, with its disproportionately large, 
broad and rounded, leonine head, thick body and long, ex- 
tremely heavy tail. The short, powerful limbs and broad feet 
must have given it something of the appearance of an otter. 
As in the case of so many other fcreodonts, the combination 
of characters in the skeleton makes the question of habits a 
very puzzling one. The teeth had a form suited only to 
seizing and devouring prey, but the short legs and feet were not 
at all adapted to the swift movements, whether by long-con- 
tinued running, or by stealthy approach and sudden leap, 
which are required in capturing agile prey, while the blunt 
claws could have rendered no service in holding a struggling 
creature. The form of the humerus and fore foot suggests 
burrowing habits, but it seems most unlikely that so large an 
animal could have lived in any such fashion. Terrestrial, ar- 
boreal and aquatic modes of life have all been suggested, and, all 
things considered, perhaps the least improbable conclusion is 
that +Patriofelis was more or less aquatic and preyed chiefly 
upon the fishes and turtles with which the Bridger waters 
abounded. This hypothesis of Dr. Wortman’s is supported 
by the otter-like form of the animal. Whatever the principal 
kind of food was, it must have been something that greatly 
abraded the teeth, which in old animals were mere stumps. 

The Wind River representatives of the series are known 
only from fragments, which, so far as they go, are not separable 
from }Patriofelis. On the other hand, the Wasatch genus, 
tOxyena, is fairly well understood. This genus was very like 
its Bridger successor, but differed from it in just such ways as 
would be expected in an immediately ancestral form, that is to 
say, in smaller size and less advanced specialization. The 
number of teeth was not so far diminished : 73, c4, p$, m#, X 2 
= 40; the carnassial teeth were the same, but they were less 


572 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


effective; the fourth upper premolar and first upper molar 
had large inner cusps, and in the latter the postero-external 
trenchant ridge was shorter. The second upper molar, lacking 
in tPatriofelis, was a transversely placed ridge, which engaged 
the heel of the second lower molar. The latter tooth, though 
larger than the first molar, was much less completely trenchant 
than in tPatriofelis and retained a small internal cusp and quite 


Fic. 284. — tOxyena lupina, Wasatch stage. Restored from a skeleton in the 
American Museum. 

large heel. The skull resembled that of the Bridger genus, 
but the face was not so much shortened, the zygomatic arches 
were not so widely expanded or so massive, the lower jaw was 
not so heavy, nor the chin so steep. The body was relatively 
longer and more slender, the ribs being thinner and the chest 
shallower; the tail was even longer, but not nearly so thick. 
The articulations of the lumbar vertebrae were less complex. 
Except for their greater length and slenderness the limbs and 
feet were nearly identical with those of {Patriofelis. 


HISTORY OF THE CARNIVORA 573 


In appearance, {Oxyena must have been merely a smaller, 
lighter and less powerful variant of the Bridger genus, and, no 
doubt, its habits of life were substantially the same ; but in the 
details of structure were many minor differences, all of them in 
the direction of greater primitiveness in the more ancient 
animal. 

The second phylum of the family was represented in the 
Uinta and Bridger stages by a group of small species, which 
were survivors of still more ancient and primitive progenitors 
of the family. In the typical genus, tLimnocyon, the dental 
formula was the same as in tOxyena: 1%, c4, p$, m2, but the 
first upper molar had its two external cusps well separated and 
a much lower posterior cutting ridge, while the inner cusp was 
much larger. The second upper molar, though transversely 
placed, had all the elements of the primitive tritubercular tooth, 
the pattern from which all the varied types of fcreodont upper 
molars were derived by the addition or suppression of parts. 
The two lower molars were very primitive, having a high an- 
terior triangle of three cusps, forming an imperfect shearing 
blade, and a low heel. This dentition was on nearly the same 
plan as that of the small, contemporary thyznodonts, but the 
emphasis of development, so to speak, was differently placed. 
In the thyzenodonts there were three pairs of sectorials and the 
best-developed pair was made up of the second upper and third 
lower molar ; while in tLimnocyon the third molar was lost, and 
there were but two pairs of sectorials, of which the largest pair 
was the first upper and second lower molar, as was also true of 
tOxyena and tPatriofelis. 

The skull of tZimnocyon had a much longer facial region, and 
more elongate and slender jaws than in the last-named genera, 
and the feet must have been quite different, with less spreading 
digits. +Zimnocyon thus tends to indicate a common origin 
for the toxyzenids and thyznodonts, though these common 
ancestors are still unknown. 

A very interesting genus of this series, |Machairoides, of 


574 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


the Bridger, shows another imitation of the cats, the flanges of 
the lower jaw indicating sabre-like upper canines. 

Another genus, +Paleonictis, of the Wasatch, found also 
in France, is sometimes referred to the fOxyznidz and some- 
times made the type of a distinct family, but is too incom- 
pletely known for final reference. It had the same number of 
teeth as tOxyena, but the principal pair of carnassials was the 
fourth upper premolar and first lower molar, as in the Fissi- 
pedia, the first upper and second lower molar forming the sub- 
sidiary pair. The first upper molar was hardly sectorial at 
all; its two outer cusps were long, sharp-pointed cones, and the 
posterior cutting ridge was a mere tubercle. The skull had a 
short, cat-like face. The genus left no successors. 


This concludes the long story of the Carnivora, so far as it 
has been recovered from the rocks. Incomplete as it is, and 
full of unsolved problems, it yet enables us to follow, some- 
what vaguely, but with a general kind of accuracy, the develop- 
ment of the various modifications which characterized the 
different families and genera of the group. 

The more ancient and primitive suborder, the tCreodonta, 
made its first recorded appearance in the lower Paleocene and 
was, no doubt, derived from Mesozoic ancestors, which cannot 
yet be distinguished among the very imperfectly understood 
mammals of that era. In the upper Paleocene, if not before, 
the tcreodonts had spread over the northern hemisphere and 
had begun to diverge into a number of families, which con- 
tinued to diverge more and more widely throughout the Eocene 
epoch, as they became more specialized and adapted to differ- 
ent habits of life. From the most primitive group, represented 
more or less accurately by the tOxyclenide, may be traced 
the several lines of diverging adaptations incorporated in the 
various families, some of which had become distinctly recogniz- 
able in the lower Paleocene, others in the upper, while all were 
in existence in the lower Eocene. In one series, the tMeso- 


HISTORY OF THE CARNIVORA 575 


nychide, the upper teeth underwent comparatively little change, 
while the lower ones lost the inner cusps, but no carnassials 
were formed. The face and jaws were elongated and the limbs 
and feet became adapted to cursorial habits, and the more ad- 
vanced genera had four-toed, completely digitigrade feet, with 
blunt, almost hoof-like claws. A second series, the fArctocy- 
onide, likewise failed to develop sectorial teeth, the molars 
becoming quadritubercular, with many accessory tubercles, 
and assuming a bear-like or pig-like pattern, while the premolars 
were reduced in size. The pentadactyl feet had sharp claws. 

In the tOxyenide two pairs of carnassial teeth were 
formed, of which the larger and more effective pair were the 
first upper and second lower molar, the smaller pair the fourth 
upper premolar and first lower molar. The teeth were dimin- 
ished in number, first by the loss of the last molar, then the 
suppression of the first premolar and finally by that of the third 
incisor and second upper molar ; the remaining teeth were en- 
larged. The upper carnassial molar (the first) was formed by 
the approximation and partial fusion of the two external cusps 
and the addition of a trenchant ridge behind these, and by the 
reduction and eventual loss of the internal cusp, thus becoming 
more exclusively shearing in function. The second lower 
molar also lost the inner cusp and the heel, becoming remark- 

ably cat-like in form; the first was similar, but less simplified. 
The face and jaws were greatly shortened, which, with the 
widely expanded zygomatic arches, gave the head a very cat- 
like appearance. The body and tail were long, the limbs short 
and thick, and the feet had spreading toes and blunt claws. 
Save for a notable increase in size and muscular power, the 
toxyznids showed but little change within the family. 

The tHyznodontide differed from the toxyznids in the 
retention of all or nearly all the teeth and in having three pairs 
of sectorials, of which the largest pair was the second upper and 
third lower molar, but resembled them in the mode of forming 
these sectorials and in the cat-like form of the inferior ones. 


576 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


Although the actual line of descent was not through these 
genera, the series, {Sinopa — {Tritemnodon — tPterodon — 
{Hyenodon, extending from the lower Eocene into the Oligo- 
cene, displays perfectly the successive steps in the transforma- 
tion of the teeth. The skull underwent a corresponding series 
of changes, ending in long-faced, long-jawed, wolf-like forms, 
with larger brain-case than in any other fcreodonts. The 
elongated form of body was retained, but the tail was reduced 
to moderate proportions. The limbs and feet did not change 
greatly, except in size and in the greater bluntness of the claws. 

The {Miacide, if not actually referable to the Fissipedia, 
at least anticipated them in the mode of carnassial develop- 
ment. The upper molars changed very little from the primi- 
tive tritubercular plan, but the fourth upper premolar was en- 
larged and acquired a trenchant ridge behind the original single 
outer cusp. The lower molars were at first all alike, except in 
size, the first being the largest ; they had the primitive pattern 
common to the earlier members of nearly all the tcreodont 
families, of an elevated anterior triangle of three subequal 
cusps and low, basin-like heel. The first molar grew larger 
in the successive genera and, by the enlargement of the two 
external cusps of the primitive triangle and reduction of the 
inner one, gradually became an efficient sectorial, the fourth 
upper premolar keeping pace with it. In proportion as the 
first lower molar was elaborated, the second and third were 
reduced in size and the anterior triangle was lowered to the 
level of the heel, these teeth thus becoming tubercular. All 
the +Miacide were small animals, none attaining the stature 
of a fox, though some had heads as large. From this family, 
as was pointed out above, probably arose all of the Fissipedia, 
the history of which it is needless to repeat. 


CHAPTER XV 
HISTORY OF THE PRIMATES 


Tuts order embraces the lemurs, monkeys, man-like apes 
and Man, though in the general account Man will be omitted 
from consideration. The Primates are clothed in dense fur 
or shaggy hair. The teeth are always low-crowned and rooted 
and reduced in number, the incisors generally to 2? and the 
premolars to $-2; the molars are trituberculate or quadri- 
tuberculate. The cranium is unusually capacious and the 
orbit is entirely encircled in bone. The tail varies much in 
length and may be entirely wanting. The bones of the fore- 
arm and lower leg are separate and the radius has much freedom 
of rotation, in correspondence with the grasping power of 
the hand. The pes is also a grasping organ and, with few 
exceptions, the thumb and great toe are opposable to the other 
digits; the bones of the wrist do not coéssify and frequently 
the central is present. The feet are plantigrade and almost 
always pentadactyl and, with a few exceptions, have neither 
claws nor hoofs, but flat nails; the ungual phalanges are 
correspondingly modified and do not taper toward the free 
end, but expand at the tip. The Primates are characteristically 
arboreal in habit, but a few, such as the baboons, have become 
secondarily adapted to a terrestrial mode of life. They inhabit 
at present all the tropical regions of both hemispheres, Aus- ° 
tralia excepted. Extratropical North America has no existing 
member of the order and, so far as we know, has had none since 
the Eocene epoch. The most important of the genera of the 
western hemisphere are listed below. 

2P 577 


578 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


Suborder LEMUROIDEA. Lemurs 


I. }NorHarcrTipz. 
+ Pelycodus, low. and mid. Eoc. ft Notharctus, Eoc. 
II. tANAPTOMORPHIDA. 
tAnaptomorphus, low. and mid. Eoc. fOmomys, mid. Eoc. 
t Hemiacodon, do. 


Suborder ANTHROPOIDEA. Monkeys, Apes, Man 


Section PLATYRRHINA 


III. Hapatip™. Marmosets. 
Hapale. Pleist.and Rec. Midas, Rec. 
IV. Cexsipz. South American Monkeys. 
Cebus, Pleist. and Rec. Alouatta, Howling Monkeys, Pleist. and 
Rec. Afeles, Spider Monkeys. Pithecia, Sakis. Cacajao, 
Uakaris. Nyctipithecus, Douroucoulis. {Hriodes, Pleist. t+ Ho- 
munculus, Santa Cruz. + Pitheculus, do. 


The existing Primates are divided into two suborders, 
Lemuroidea and Anthropoidea, which are quite clearly distin- 
guished from each other, but the fossil forms largely efface the 
distinction. 


SUBORDER LEMUROIDEA. LEMURS 


The name Lemur, which Linnzeus gave to a genus of this 
suborder, signifies in Latin a spectre or ghost and was prob- 
ably suggested by the very strange appearance and nocturnal 
habits of these curious creatures. The term has been adopted 
as the English name for the group, as there was no vernacular 
word for it. The lemurs are very obviously the more primitive 
division of the Primates. Omitting for the present the extinct 
forms, the dental formula is usually: 73, c+, p 3, m3, X2=36; 
the upper canine is a long, sharp, dagger-like tooth, but the lower 
one, in nearly all of the genera, is like an incisor and its place is 

‘taken by the anterior premolar; the premolars are simple, 
compressed and trenchant and the upper molars tritubercular. 
The skull usually has a long and tapering facial portion, so 
that the living head has some resemblance to that of a raccoon. 
The orbits almost always have a more or less lateral presenta- 


HISTORY OF THE PRIMATES 579 


tion, instead of being directed forward, as they are in the An- 
thropoidea; they are encircled in bone, but are not walled in 
by a bony funnel; the lachrymal bone is extended on the face 
and the foramen is outside of the orbit. The hind legs are 
longer than the fore; the humerus retains the epicondylar 
foramen and the femur has a third trochanter; the feet are 
plantigrade, almost always five-toed, with opposable thumb 
and great toe, and having a varying proportion of flat nails 
and sharp claws. The brain is of a primitive type and not 
much convoluted. 

All the existing and most of the fossil lemurs are small 
animals, some quite minute, and only in the Pleistocene of 
Madagascar have large ones been found. They are chiefly 
nocturnal and arboreal in habits, and feed upon fruit and leaves, 
but vary their diet with insects, small reptiles, birds and eggs. 
Their present geographical distribution is very remarkable; 
more than two-thirds of the existing species are confined to 
Madagascar; the others are in tropical Africa, southern Asia 
and the Asiatic islands, as far east as Celebes and the Philippines. 
In the Eocene epoch they extended all over the northern hemi- 
sphere, but have not been found in any subsequent formation 
outside of their present range. 

Lemurs occurred in the Uinta stage, but were much more 
abundant in the Bridger, of which the best-known genus is 
{Notharctus. These Eocene forms did not have the aberrant 
peculiarities of the modern lemurs, but departed less from the 
primitive stock common to both of the suborders. In tNoth- 
arctusthe dental formula was: 72, c4, p 4, m4, X 2=40, the den- 
tition being reduced only to the extent of losing one incisor on 
each side above and below; the lower canine was not incisiform 
nor had the anterior premolar taken its place ; the upper molars 
were quadritubercular, and in the lower ones the anterior 
triangle was hardly higher than the heel. The two halves of 
the lower jaw were coéssified at the symphysis, and the femur 
had lost the third trochanter. It is not likely that }Notharctus 


580 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


was ancestral to any of the existing lemurs, but may have 
been to the numerous forms of the European upper Eocene. 

The Wasatch genera are known from very fragmentary 
material, but it suffices to show that some of the genera, 
at least (e.g. tPelycodus), were decidedly more primitive than 
those of the Bridger. The incisors had already been reduced 
to 3, the well-nigh universal formula among the Primates; 
the upper molars were tritubercular, but with a minute fourth 
cusp beginning to appear, and in the lower molars the anterior 
triangle was elevated above the heel. The two halves of the 
lower jaw were separate. 

The Paleocene has yielded nothing that can be positively 
referred to the Primates, but there was a group of genera (e.g. 
{Indrodon), known only from jaws and teeth, which have been 
variously assigned to the lemurs and the Insectivora and may 
have belonged to either order, or have represented the transi- 
tion between them. This very uncertainty is in itself a signifi- 
cant fact, for it is another of the many examples of the way 
in which, at that early period, the mammalian orders were so 
approximated. that: it is often very difficult to distinguish 
them. 

It was stated above that the distinction between existing 
lemurs and anthropoids was a very clear one, but to this 
statement there is one partial exception. The curious little 
Tarsier (Tarsius spectrum), an animal. about the size of the 
Grey Squirrel, an inhabitant of the Malay Archipelago, is 
.thus described by. Mr. Beddard: ‘The ears are large and the 
eyes are extraordinarily developed. The fingers and toes 
terminate in large, expanded disks and are furnished with 
flattened nails, except on the second and third toes, which 
have claws. The tail is longer than the body and tufted at 
the end. ... The Tarsiers are nocturnal and particularly 
arboreal; they live in pairs, in holes in tree stems and are 
mainly insectivorous in their food.... Like so many 
Lemurs, this animal is held in superstitious dread, which is 


HISTORY OF THE PRIMATES 581 


the result of its most weird appearance.’”’! The skull is 
more anthropoid in character than is that of any other 
lemur, the face being greatly shortened, the cranium en- 
larged and the orbit not merely encircled in a bony rim, 
but with a thin posterior wall of bone. There are also struc- 
tural features in the soft parts, which are more anthropoid 
than lemuroid. 

The particular interest which Tarsius possesses for the stu- 
dent of American mammals is its resemblance to the Wasatch 
genus tAnaptomorphus, the type of a family which was abun- 
dant and varied in the lower 
and middle Eocene. This 
genus was remarkably ad- 
vanced in view of its great 
antiquity. The dental for- 
mula was: 7%, cl, pgs, 
m3, X2 = 34-36; in the 
upper jaw the premolars 
were bicuspid and the 
molars tritubercular, while ——- — 
the lower premolars were Pa.25— Ha noite mur (A 
simple. The face was very Restored from a skull in the American 
much shortened ; the orbits “use™ 
were very large and encircled in bone, but without the pos- 
terior wall. This produces a decided likeness to the Tarsier 
and is no doubt indicative of nocturnal habits. The cranium 
was remarkably large, and no other Wasatch animal had a 
brain-case so capacious in proportion to its size. A lemurine — 
character was the position of the lachrymal foramen outside 
of the orbit. The two halves of the lower jaw were separate. 
It is hardly likely that these American lemurs were the actual 
‘ancestors of the anthropoids, but they closely represent what 
those ancestors must have been. 

1F. KE. Beddard, Mammals, London, 1902, pp. 550, 551. 


582 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


SUBORDER ANTHROPOIDEA. Monkeys, APES, Man 


The specifically human characters will be omitted in defin- 
ing the suborder. The Anthropoidea are plantigrade, usually 
arboreal and pentadactyl, with opposable thumb and great toe 
and thus the pes is like a hand, hence the term ‘‘Quadrumana”’ 
formerly given to the apes and monkeys. Except in the South 
American marmosets (Hapalide) all of the digits have nails. 
The canines are generally more or less tusk-like, projecting 
above (or below) the level of the other teeth; the premolars 
mostly have two tubercles, like the human bicuspids, the upper 
molars have three, or more commonly four, cusps and the lower, 
four or five. Save in the baboons, the skull has a very short 
muzzle and a very large cranium, the capacity of which is 
relatively greatest in the large apes; the brain is large and com- 
plexly convoluted. The orbits present directly forward and 
are deep, funnel-shaped cavities for the lodgment of the eye- 
balls, a thin bony wall completely enclosing them externally 
and posteriorly. The lachrymal bone and its foramen are 
within the edge of the orbit; the nasal bones are short and 
have a nearly vertical position. The two frontal bones are 
early fused into one and usually there is no sagittal crest ; 
the two halves of the lower jaw are codssified at the symphysis. 
The tail is extremely variable in length and may be three 
times as long as the body, or entirely absent. The fore and 
hind legs are sometimes of nearly equal length, but far more 
frequently the anterior pair are much the longer. The length 
of the legs in proportion to that of the body is very different 
in the different families. The humerus is much like that of 
Man and has no epicondylar foramen; the radius has a very 
complete movement of rotation ; the femur never has the third 
trochanter and the lower leg bones are always separate. The 
thumb is more or less opposable to the other digits, except in 
the marmosets, but never so perfectly as in Man; the great 
toe is also opposable, but shorter than the other digits. 


HISTORY OF THE PRIMATES 583 


The Anthropoidea are divisible into two sections, the 
Catarrhina, characteristic of the Old World, and the Platyr- 
rhina, confined to the New. In the Catarrhina, or Old World 
apes and monkeys, the dental formula is the same as in Man: 
13, c4, p3, m%, X2=32; the nostrils are close together and the 
tympanic bull have tubular entrances. Many, but not all, 
have cheek-pouches opening into the mouth. The tail is never 
prehensile and, except in most of the large, man-like apes 
(Simiide), there are naked callosities on the buttocks. With 
these Old World forms we have no further concern, though 
it may be noted in passing that Dr. Schlosser has discovered 
in the Oligocene of Egypt certain monkeys ({Parapithecus) 
which he thus describes: ‘‘The number and structure of the 
teeth, character of the jaws and bodily size make complete 
the transition from the Anaptomorphids and Tarsiids to the 
Simiids.”’ 


Section Platyrrhina. South American Monkeys 


In these animals the nostrils are separated by a broad 
septum, and there are always three premolars above and below 
(p%). The tail is frequently prehensile and serves as a fifth 
limb, being capable of supporting the whole weight of the body. 
There are no cheek-pouches and nocallosities, and the tympanic 
bullz have no bony tubes leading into them. The thumb is 
but partially, or not at all, opposable and insome generais absent. 

The New World monkeys are, in general, smaller and lighter 
than those of the eastern hemisphere; there are no very large 
ones and they are all arboreal and are confined to the forested 
parts of the Neotropical region, except the West Indies, 
which have none. The marmosets (Hapalide), the first of the 
two families into which the Platyrrhina are divided, are little 
creatures, no longer than squirrels, with long, non-prehensile 
tails. They are characterized by the dental formula: 7 $, c 4, 
p,m 2,X2=82, and are the only Primates which have no third 
molar above or below. The thumb is not opposable, though 


584 


quite long, and the hallux, or 
great toe, is very small; they 
are thus deficient in grasping 
power. Instead of the flat 
nails common to all the other 
Anthropoidea, they have long, 
sharp claws. All other South 
American monkeys are in- 
cluded in the family Cebidz 
which, in turn, is divided into 
four subfamilies. It is not 
necessary to consider these 
or do more than cite a few 
illustrative examples. 

Some twenty species of 
the genus Cebus are distrib- 
uted from Central America 


LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


Fic. 286.— Common Marmoset (Hap- 
ale).— By permission of W. L. Berridge, 
London. 


to ee ee have long, prehensile tails completely 


covered with 


Fie. 287. —Sapajou (Cebus).— By permission of the New 
York Zodlogical Society. 


hair, and well- 
developed 
thumbs. The 
monkeys of this 
genus are fa- 
miliar to every 
one, as they are 
largely used by 
organ-grinders. 
The spider- 
monkeys (Ate- 
les) are so 
called because 
of the great 
length and 
slenderness of 


HISTORY OF THE PRIMATES 585 


their limbs; the tail is very long and perfectly prehensile, 
naked on the lower side near the end, which improves its grasp- 
ing power. The hand has lost the thumb, but is used very 
effectively asa hook. The species, ten or more in number, have 
a wider range than those of Cebus and extend from Uruguay 
to Mexico. 

The howling monkeys (Alouatta, more commonly, but im- 
properly, called Mycetes) are gifted with most unusual vocal 
powers. Mr. Bates says of them: ‘‘ Morning and evening the 
howling monkeys make a most fearful and harrowing roar.” 
‘“‘The brief. evening chorus of animals then began, the chief 
performers being the howling monkeys, whose frightful un- 
earthly roar deepened the feeling of solitude which crept on 
as darkness closed around us.’”’! The tremendous volume of 
sound which these small creatures are able to produce is due 
to a resonating apparatus, formed by the great inflation of one 
of the hyoid bones (see p. 67), normally the bony support of the 
tongue. The tail is long and prehensile, with the end naked 
beneath ; the thumb is well developed. 

The sakis (Pithecia) have long and non-prehensile tail 
and complete thumb. The species of this genus have a re- 
markable kind of distribution, which is rare among mammals, 
though not infrequent for insects and birds. Each species 
is limited to a definite area of forest along the Amazon and 
its tributaries, which it occupies to the exclusion of the others. 
The uakaris (Cacajao) are distinguished by the tail, which is 
much shorter than in any other of the Cebide. 

Finally, may be mentioned the nocturnal douroucoulis 
(Nyctipithecus), which have long, non-prehensile tail and well- 
developed thumb. Mr. Bates describes them thus: “A third 
interesting genus of monkeys, found near Ega, are the Nycti- 
pitheci, or night apes, called Ei-4 by the Indians. ... They 
‘sleep all day long in hollow trees and come forth to prey on 
insects and eat fruits only at night. They are of small size, 

1 Bates, Naturalist on the Amazons, London, 1875, pp. 32, 140. 


586 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


the body being about a foot long and the tail fourteen inches, 
and are thickly clothed with soft gray and brown fur, .. . and 
the eyes are large and yellowish in colour, imparting the staring 
expression of nocturnal animals of prey.”’ ? 

The Brazilian caverns have preserved the remains of many 
Pleistocene monkeys belonging to existing South American 
genera, and even several modern species are represented, while 
others are extinct. There is also one extinct genus ({tEriodes), 
a larger animal than any of the existing Neotropical monkeys. 
The Pampean deposits of Argentina, on the other hand, have 
yielded no remains of Primates, nor is this surprising, for the 
Pampas would seem to have been open plains in the Pleistocene, 
as they are to-day. Between the Pleistocene and the Santa 
Cruz Miocene there is a long gap in the history. It is true 
that some bones have been found in the Pliocene of Monte 
Hermoso which have been referred to the Primates, but they 
are too few and imperfect to be of any real assistance in the 
inquiry. 

In the Santa Cruz beds fossil monkeys are very rare, but 
that they were present in Patagonia at all, is strong evidence 
that the climate was then far milder than it is at present. 
These were essentially members of the modern family Cebide. 
The best-known genus, tHomunculus, retained a few primitive 
characters, which the existing genera have lost. For example, 
the premolars were relatively smaller and of simpler form and 
the humerus had the epicondylar foramen, though the femur 
no longer had the third trochanter. The radius was very 
modern in form and evidently could rotate freely upon the 
humerus. 

No monkeys have been found in the Deseado formation, 
though too much stress should not be laid upon this fact, 
because of the general scarcity of small animals in those beds. 
But the same is true of the still more ancient stages; despite an. 
abundant and varied fauna of small mammals, they have 


1 Bates, Naturalist on the Amazons, London, 1875, pp. 332, 333. 


HISTORY OF THE PRIMATES 587 


yielded no Primates, nor anything which could be seriously 
regarded as ancestral to them. The facts are essentially the 
same as we have found them to be with reference to the South 
American rodents and insectivores. All three of these orders 
appeared suddenly and unheralded in the Deseado (Rodentia) 
or Santa Cruz (Insectivora, Primates), and all of them were 
allied to African or European rather than to North American 
types. If we may assume the existence of a land-connection 
with Africa to account for the remarkable distribution of the 
-hystricomorph rodents, the same connection will equally well 
explain the introduction of the Primates into South America. 
Concerning the relations of the Old and New World mon- 
keys, Mr. Beddard remarks: ‘‘Not only are these two groups 
of the Primates absolutely distinct at the present day, but they 
have been, so far as we know, for a very long time, since no 
fossil remains of Monkeys at all intermediate have been so 
far discovered. This has led to the suggestion that the Mon- 
keys are what is termed diphyletic, 7.e., that they have origi- 
nated from two different stocks of ancestors. It is hard, 
however, to. understand on this view the very great similarities 
which underlie the divergences that have just been mentioned. 
But, on the other hand, it is equally hard to understand how it is 
that, having been separated from each other for so longaperiod, 
they have not diverged further in structure than they have.” ! 
The fossil monkeys of the Santa Cruz beds show that, as 
a matter of fact, the South American Primates have undergone 
little change in the essentials of structure since that remote 
period, and thus is removed this objection to the conclusion 
that the Platyrrhina and Catarrhina were derived from a 
common ancestry. In a certain sense also, the discovery of 
}Parapithecus in Egypt has diminished the gap between these 
two sections of the Anthropoidea. The evidence, though by 
no means conclusive, is distinctly in favour of the derivation 
of the South American monkeys from Old World ancestors. 
1 Beddard, op. cit., pp. 555, 556. 


588 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


The Catarrhina have developed and advanced from the point 
of divergence far more than have the South American forms, 
which have changed relatively little since their invasion of the 
Neotropical region. So far as has been ascertained, South 
America never had any of the lemurs. 


MAN IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


Though to most people this is undoubtedly the most inter- 
esting chapter of all the mammalian history, little space can 
be given to it here, for the reason that the subject belongs rather 
in the domain of Anthropology and Ethnology than in that of 
Paleontology. There can be no question that Man originated 
in the eastern hemisphere and at a very remote period; 
abundant remains of his handiwork and of himself have been 
found in Europe as far back as the early Pleistocene, and recent 
discoveries in England have increased the already known 
length of the human habitation of Europe. So primitive and 
ape-like were some of these ancient men that they have been 
named as species (Homo jneanderthalensis and H. theidel- 
bergensis) distinct from the existing H. sapiens. Recently 
discovered and very ancient remains in England have even 
been referred to a separate genus, +Hoanthropus. 

As has been repeatedly pointed out in the preceding 
chapters, America received numerous successive waves of mam- 
malian immigrants during the Pleistocene epoch, at a time 
when there was a broad land-connection between North 
America and Asia, where now is Bering Strait ; and to this late 
connection is due the fact that the Boreal zone of North 
America (see p. 150) is zoélogically a part of the Old World and 
forms a division of the Holarctic region. Now, there is no 
known reason why Man, whose powers of dispersal are so 
superior to those of any other mammal, should not have 
accompanied these migrations, and it is entirely possible that 
he actually did so, but the fact has not been demonstrated. 
It is true that discoveries of Pleistocene Man have been fre- 


HISTORY OF THE PRIMATES 589 


quently reported from both North and South America, but 
these have not stood the test of critical examination, though 
such examination has by no means disproved the presence of 
Pleistocene Man in America. 

Dr. A. Hrdliéka has recently concluded a series of exhaust- 
ive studies of the bones of early Man in both North and 
South America and of the localities where these bones were 
found. For both continents he has reached a negative result. 
As to North America he says: ‘‘Thus far on this continent no 
human bones of undisputed geologic antiquity are known.” ! 
For South America the result is the same. ‘‘A conscientious, 
unbiased study of all the available facts has shown that the 
whole structure erected in support of the theory of geologically 
ancient man on that continent rests on very imperfect and in- 
correctly interpreted data and in many instances on false 
premises, and as a consequence of these weaknesses must. com- 
pletely collapse when subjected to searching criticism.” ‘The 
conclusions of the writers with regard to the evidence thus far 
furnished are that it fails to establish the claim that in South 
America there have been brought forth thus far tangible traces 
of either geologically ancient man himself or any precursor 
of the human race. 

“This should not be taken as a categorical denial of the 
existence of early man in South America, however improbable 
such a presence may now appear.” ? 

On the other hand, the coexistence in North America of 
Man with several extinct species of mammals has been made 
extremely probable, if not certain. One of the most striking 
and best authenticated cases of this was the discovery by 
Professor Williston in western Kansas of a flint arrowhead be- 
neath and in contact with the skeleton of the extinct Bison 
toccidentalis. Professor Russell found in lake deposits of 


1A. Hrdligka, Smithsonian Institution, Bureau of Ethnology, Bulletin 
33, 1907, p. 98. 
2 Ibid., Bulletin 52, 1912, pp. 385, 386. 


t 
590 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


Nevada an obsidian spearhead in association with the bones 
of an elephant or tmastodon, and other such instances have 
been reported. In these cases the doubt is as to the geological 
antiquity of the ‘‘finds,”’ for the implements are of the type 
made by the pre-Columbian Indians. 

In brief, there is no convincing evidence that either North 
or South America was ever inhabited in prehistoric times by 
races of men different: from those first encountered by the 
European discoverers. 


CHAPTER XVI 


HISTORY OF THE EDENTATA 


As here employed, excluding the so-called edentates of the 
Old World, the Edentata form a highly variegated, but natural, 
assemblage of related forms. The order is at present exclu- 
sively American and almost confined to the Neotropical region, 
an armadillo which extends into Texas being the sole exception. 
These animals are so peculiar and so isolated from other mam- 
mals, that it has been proposed to treat them as a separate 
subclass; and there is much to be said in favour of this pro- 
cedure, though it would perhaps be premature, until more is 
learned concerning these most curious and exceptional ani- 
mals. In the subjoined table only the more important and 
better known genera are included. 


Series PILOSA. Hairy Edentates 
Suborder TARDIGRADA. Tree-Sloths 


I. BrapypopID. 
Bradypus, Three-toed Sloth, Rec. Cholepus, Two-toed Sloth, Rec. 


Suborder VERMILINGUA. Anteaters 
II. MyrMECOPHAGIDA. 
Myrmecophaga, Ant-Bear, Rec. Tamandua, Lesser Anteater, do. 
Cyclopes, Tree Anteater, do. 


Suborder {GRAVIGRADA. {Ground-Sloths 
III. {MEGATHERIIDE. 
}Megatherium, Plio. and Pleist.,S. A.; Pleist., N. A. ? tPrepothe- 
rium, Santa Cruz. ? tPlanops, do. 
591 


592 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


IV. tMyiopontipz. 

{tMylodon, Plio. and Pleist., S. A.; Pleist., N. A. t{Paramylodon, 
Pleist., N. A. fGrypotherium, Pleist., S. A. tPseudolestodon, 
Plio. and Pleist.,S. A. tScelidotherium, do. tNematherium, 
Santa Cruz. ftAnalcitherium, do. 

V. {MEGALONYCHIDA. 

{tMegalonyz, Pleist., N.A.  Nothrotherium, Pleist.,8. A. tMega- 
locnus, Pleist., Cuba. tHapalops, Santa Cruz. tSchismotherium, 
do. fPelecyodon, do. {Megalonychotherium, do. {Protobradys, 
Casa Mayor. 


Series LORICATA. Armoured Edentates 


Suborder DASYPODA. Armadillos 


VI. Dasypopipa. 

Dasypus, 6-,7- and 8-Banded Armadillos, Pleist. and Rec., 8. A. 
Cabassous, 11-Banded Armadillo, do. Priodontes, Giant Arma- 
dillo, do. Tolypeutes, Apar, Rec., S. A. Zaédyus, Pygmy 
Armadillo, do. Scleropleura, do. Chlamydophorus, Pichiciago, 
do. Tatu, 9-Banded Armadillo, Pleist. and Rec., S. A.; Rec., 
Texas. }Hutatus, Plio. and Pleist., S. A. fChlamydotherium, 


do. tProeutatus, Santa Cruz. + Prozaédius, Deseado and Santa . 


Cruz. {Prodasypus, do. t{Stegotherium, Santa Cruz. {Meteu- 
tatus, Deseado. fSadypus,do. tAmblytatus, do.  Preuphrac- 
tus, do. 
VII. PELTEPHILIDA. 
{ Peltephilus, Deseado and Santa Cruz. 
VIII. Incert# Sepis. 
{Metachetromys, mid. Koc., N. A. 


Suborder {GLYPTODONTIA. {Glyptodonts 
IX. {GiyproponTipz. 
{Glyptodon, Plio. and Pleist., N. and 8S. A. tDedicurus, Pleist., 
8. A. ftPanochthus, do. tSclerocalyptus, Plio. and Pleist., 
8S. A. fGlyptotherium, mid. Plio., N. A.  fPropaleohoplo- 
phorus, Deseado and Santa Cruz. {Cochlops, Santa Cruz. 
+ Eucinepeltus, do. fAsterostemma, do. 

In the section Pilosa, which includes the sloths (Tardigrada), 
anteaters (Vermilingua) and the extinct fground-sloths ({Gra- 
vigrada), the skin is thickly clothed with long hair, and in the 
Loricata, armadillos and tglyptodonts, the head, body, tail and 
legs are more or less completely encased in an armour of bony 
scutes covered with plates of horn, but with some hairs also. 


pee ees 


eet. Apia. 


HISTORY OF THE EDENTATA 593 


The name Edentata (toothless) is not very happily chosen, 
for only the anteaters are quite toothless. Almost all the 
genera have no teeth in the front of the mouth and the teeth are 
nearly always alike, so that the distinction of regions among 
them is entirely a matter of position in the jaws. In the tree- 
sloths and many fground-sloths the foremost tooth in each 
jaw is a more or less enlarged, canine-like tusk. The teeth are 
always rootless, growing from permanent pulps, and are without 
enamel, made up of dentine, which is sometimes homoge- 
neous and sometimes in layers of different hardness, and with 
a covering of cement, usually thin and film-like. The number 
of teeth varies from ¢ to 18 or more, and their form usually 
approximates a simple cylinder, worn off flat at the end, 
though the ends may be bevelled or grooved, differences which 
are in no way due to pattern but simply to the mode of wear. 
In the tglyptodonts the teeth were divided by deep vertical 
grooves into two or three pillars, connected by narrow necks. 
In most of the edentates there is no change of teeth, the 
milk-dentition having been completely suppressed, but in the 
9-Banded Armadillo (Tatu) each of the permanent teeth is pre- 
ceded by a two-rooted milk-tooth, and some other armadillos 
have milk-teeth. 

The skull varies much in form and proportions, according 
to the character of the food and method of feeding. The tree- — 
sloths and fground-sloths have short, rounded heads; in the 
tglyptodonts, the skull was short and remarkably deep verti- 
cally; while the armadillos have long, shallow: heads, with 
tapering muzzle, the length and slenderness of which differ in 
the various genera. In the anteaters the skull is extraordinarily 
elongate and slender. The sagittal crest is seldom present at 
all and never prominent. The zygomatic arch may be com- 
plete or interrupted ; in the tree-sloths, fground-sloths, tglypto- 
donts and some extinct armadillos, there is a descending, plate- 
like process given off beneath the eye. 

The backbone displays some of the most remarkable 

2Q 


594 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


peculiarities of the order. The neck in the tree-sloths has 
eight or nine vertebre, the only instances known among mam- 
mals in which the normal number of seven is departed from. 
In the armadillos and telyptodonts several of the neck-vertebre 
are coéssified into a single piece, but the atlas is always free, 
so as to permit the movements of the head. In the posterior 
part of the dorsal and in the lumbar region the articulations 
between the successive vertebre are by far the most complex 
and intricate known among mammals; in the tree-sloths 
these have degenerated, though still plainly indicated. In the 
tglyptodonts, which were covered with a huge, tortoise-like 
carapace, mobility of the backbone was needless, and so all of 
the dorsal vertebrae were united into one long piece and the 
lumbars were coéssified with one another and with the sacrum. 
The sacrum consists, throughout the. order, of a very large 
number of vertebra and is attached to the hip-bones at two 
different points, instead of only one, as in other mammals. 
The tail varies much in length and thickness; in the tree- 
sloths it is extremely short and in the anteaters very long and 
bushy, prehensile in the arboreal members-of the group; in 
the fground-sloths, especially the gigantic forms, it was of 
immense thickness; while in most of the tglyptodonts a vary- 
ing number of the terminal vertebre were fused together. The 
sternal ribs are better developed than in any other mammals, 
and in the anteaters and tground-sloths they articulate with 
the breast-bone by regular synovial joints, and each rib has 
head and tubercle like a vertebral rib. 

In the limbs and feet there is great variety, according to the 
manner of their employment. The shoulder-blade has a very 
long acromion and very large coracoid, which long remains 
separate from the scapula; collar-bones are very generally 
present, though often in much reduced condition. The hip- 
bones have in the tree-sloths, fground-sloths and tglypto- 
donts a much expanded anterior element, which in the other 
groups is narrow. The humerus usually has very prominent 


HISTORY OF THE EDENTATA 595 


deltoid and supinator ridges and epicondylar foramen; the 
fore-arm bones are always separate, and there is generally much 
freedom of rotation of the manus. In the wrist there is no 
distinct central and usually there are the ordinary eight sepa- 
rate bones. The tibia and fibula are frequently codssified. 
The tree-sloths, which lead most strictly arboreal lives and are 
almost helpless on the ground, are unique among mammals in 
that the body is habitually suspended from the limbs, not carried 
upon them; the feet are curved hooks, which fit over the tree- 
branches and support the weight. without muscular exertion. 
The limb-bones are very long and slender, the claws long, 
curved and sharp, and the metapodials of each foot, two or three 
in number, are fused into a single mass. In the fground-sloths 
there was much change in foot-structure during the course of 
their recorded development; they were usually five-toed and 
the feet were armed with one or more great claws; the later 
and larger representatives of the suborder walked upon the 
outer edge of the feet. 

The armadillos, which are largely burrowers, have five- 
toed feet and long, heavy, pointed claws, but in some of them 
‘tthe pes has a varying number of flat, hoof-like nails. The 
immense jglyptodonts had very short, broad feet, shod with 
hoofs, which, in some of the genera, were longer and more 
claw-like in the manus. ; 

The recorded history of the edentates was developed almost 
entirely in South America. Inthe Casa Mayor formation there 
were numerous armadillos, but as only scutes of the carapace 
have been found, little is known of them. The fground-sloths 
(t{Protobradys) have been reported, but from such imperfect 
material that the reference is uncertain. The first assuredly 
determinable members of this suborder were in the Astra- 
ponotus beds and, associated with them, the most ancient 
known fglyptodonts. In the Deseado stage were many 
armadillos, some of them extremely peculiar, several {glypto- 
donts and fground-sloths, some species of the latter very 


596 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


large. Edentates were far more numerous and varied in the 
Santa Cruz than in any of the preceding stages. Tree-sloths 
and anteaters have both been reported, but the evidence is 
insufficient, though there can be little doubt that these sub- 
orders had begun their separate existence in some part of 
South America other than Patagonia. The three families of 
tground-sloths were already distinguishable, though much less 
clearly separated than they afterwards became; none of them 
were large animals, smaller even than some of the Deseado 
species and veritable pygmies in comparison with the giants 
of the Pliocene and Pleistocene. The tglyptodonts were 
likewise far smaller than their Pliocene and Pleistocene suc- 
cessors and in several respects more primitive, approximating 
the armadillos more closely; nor was there any such variety 
of forms as in the later stages. The armadillos were extremely 
numerous and varied; they all belonged to extinct genera 
and most of them apparently have no descendants at the 
present day. The tropical forests of Brazil and the Guianas 
must then, as now, have swarmed with mammals which did 
not extend their range to Patagonia and of which we conse- 
quently have no record. No doubt, it was in these forests 
that the ancestors of most modern armadillos, as well as of the 
tree-sloths and anteaters, lived in Miocene times. 

Pliocene edentates were of the same suborders as those of 
the Santa Cruz, but far larger in size. Most of them are known 
only from very incomplete specimens, but the Pleistocene has 
yielded an enormous mass of beautifully preserved material. 
Of the tree-sloths and anteaters, only questionable remains 
have been found. That these tropical and forest-loving ani- 
mals should not have occurred in the open Pampas of Argen- 
tina is not surprising, but it is difficult to account for their 
absence from the extremely rich cave-faunas of Brazil. Nearly 
all the existing genera of armadillos have been obtained, and 
with these were associated several extinct genera, some of 
them (+Chlamydotherium, }Eutatus) relatively huge, as large 


HISTORY OF THE EDENTATA 597 


as tapirs. There was a wonderful variety of tglyptodonts, 
most of them enormous creatures, of which no less than five 
genera have been collected in Argentina and Brazil, and the 
tground-sloths were even more numerous and varied. Nine 
genera, with many species, of these great beasts, which ranged 
in size from an elephant to a tapir, are already known and no 
doubt the list is still incomplete. These fglyptodonts and 
tground-sloths must have been among the most conspicuous 
elements of the Pleistocene fauna. 

Aside from certain problematical Eocene forms, the first 
North American edentates, which were immigrants from the 
southern continent, appeared probably in the middle Miocene 
of Oregon in the form of fground-sloths, but the specimen, 
as well as a similar one from the lower Pliocene of Nebraska, 
is not sufficiently complete for positive reference. In the 
middle Pliocene the tground-sloths and fglyptodonts were 
unquestionably present, and in the Pleistocene these two sub- 
orders were numerously and conspicuously represented. Three 
or four genera of the huge, elephantine jground-sloths co- 
existed in Pleistocene North America. f{Megalonyx was 
abundant in the forested regions east of the Mississippi, from 
Pennsylvania southward, and on the Pacific coast; {Mylodon 
was transcontinental in distribution ; while {Megatherium was 
apparently confined to the southern states. While all three 
genera undoubtedly originated in South America, tMegalonyx 
has not yet been found in that continent. 

This genus was originally named by President Jefferson in 
1805 from an ungual phalanx found in a cave in Virginia, and he 
imagined that it belonged to a colossal lion which must still 
be living in the mountains of western Virginia. This was 
deduced from the assumption that no species could become 
extinct, and the passage is of interest as showing the prevalent 
belief of the time, although Cuvier had already demonstrated 
that many species had actually been extinguished. The pas- 
sage is as follows: ‘“‘The movements of nature are in a never 


598 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


ending circle. The animal species which has once been put 
into a train of motion is still probably moving in that train. 
For, if one link in nature’s chain might be lost, another and 
another might be lost, till this whole system of oe should 
evanish by piece-meal.’’ 

The tglyptodonts were also southern in distribution, and only 
very imperfect remains of them have yet been recovered from 
the North American Pleistocene, quite sufficient, however, to 
make the identification certain. 

There were several genera of rather small tground-sloths in 
the Pleistocene of Cuba. The best known of these, +Megalocnus, 
had several peculiarities of structure, but was plainly a member 
of the fMegalonychide. The ancestors of this genus probably 
invaded Cuba in the Pliocene, when the island was joined to 
Central America. 


SUBORDER {GRAVIGRADA. tGROUND-SLOTHS 


As the {ground-sloths would appear to have had a more 
central position within the order than any of the other groups, 
our study of development may well begin with them. In the 
Pleistocene there were three families of these gigantic brutes, 
which ranged through the western hemisphere from Pennsyl- 
vania and California to Patagonia. Unfortunately our know- 
ledge of the developmental stages within the different families 
is very unequal, and it is therefore impracticable to do more 
than sketch the changes of the suborder as a whole and in a 
general way. In the successive geological stages the pro- 
portionate representation of the different phyla varied greatly ; 
in the South American Pliocene and Pleistocene the +Mylo- 
dontide and +Megatheriide were the abundant forms, while 
the tMegalonychide were but scantily represented. In the 
Santa Cruz Miocene, on the other hand, the overwhelming 
preponderance was with the tMegalonychide, the other two 
families being comparatively rare and incompletely. known. 
From ‘the still more ancient formations, the material so far 


HISTORY OF THE EDENTATA 599 


collected is so fragmentary that family distinctions have little 
meaning. After all, there was no very wide range of variation 
among the contemporary members of the three families, and 
the differences were principally in size, in the form and number 
of the teeth, the shape of the skull and the number of digits; 
in essentials they were all much alike. 

The genus }Megatherium (Fig. 122, p. 220) included the 
largest and most massive members of the suborder, {M. america- 
num being as large as an elephant, but very differently propor- 
tioned, as it was much longer and lower in stature, owing to the 
shortness of the extraordinarily heavy limbs; some of the 
skeletons measure 20 feet or more in length. The teeth, which 
were 7 in number, formed an uninterrupted series on each side ; 
all had the same quadrate form and by abrasion were worn 
into two transverse ridges, formed by the meeting of the harder 
dentine with the thick coating of cement. The result was a 
form of tooth which much resembled the lower molars of a 
tapir, but it was not a tooth-pattern in any proper sense of 
the word, being due entirely to the mode of wear. 

The skull was very small in proportion to the huge body 
and was low and narrow in shape; the cranium had a broad, 
flat roof, without sagittal crest; the orbit was completely 
encircled in bone, and the descending process of the zygomatic 
arch beneath the eye was very long and conspicuous. The 
nasals were short, and the slender, toothless premaxillaries 
projected far in front of them, which makes the presence of 
some sort of a proboscis likely. The lower jaw had a long, nar- 
row, spout-like symphysis, which was abruptly rounded at the 
free end, not pointed; below the teeth, the lower margin of 
the jaw was very strongly convex, descending in a great flange. 
The neck was short, the body very long and enormously heavy, 
as was also the tail. The immense shoulder-blade had a very 
long acromion, which curved forward and inward, fusing with 
the coracoid and forming a bony loop or bridge. The hip- 
bones had the anterior element (ilium) enormously expanded 


600 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


trausversely, so as to support the huge mass of viscera in the 
semi-erect position which the animal, it is believed, frequently 
assumed in feeding. Collar-bones were present. 

The fore limb was very much more slender than the hind, 
but of nearly the same length. The humerus had a com- 
paratively slender upper portion and extremely broad lower 
end, due to the great development of the internal epicondyle 
and supinator ridge; there was no epicondylar foramen. The 
radius evidently had the power of very free rotation upon the 
humerus. The femur was short, flattened antero-posteriorly, 
but excessively broad and heavy, and had no third trochanter. 
The tibia and fibula were likewise short and very massive and 
were extensively codssified at each end, leaving but a short 
interspace open between the bones. The very peculiar feet 
were so connected with the limb-bones, that the animal must 
have walked upon the outer edge of the foot, somewhat as the 
existing Ant-Bear (Myrmecophaga jubata) uses the fore foot. 
The manus had four functional digits, the first being a mere 
vestige; the fifth, upon which the weight rested in walking, 
had two very small phalanges and no claw, while the second, 
third and fourth had long, sharp claws. The pes had but 
three functional digits, for the first and second were reduced 
to rudiments; digit III had an enormous claw and of this digit 
the metatarsal was short and very heavy and the first two 
phalanges were fused together; the two external digits, Nos. 
IV and V, had no claws. The astragalus had a very peculiar 
shape, made necessary by the application of the external border 
of the foot to the ground and thus in both fore and hind feet 
the great claws were turned inward and, in the case of the pes, 
it must have been impossible to rest the sole upon the ground. 
The heel-bone was enormous and club-shaped and formed the 
hinder portion of the weight-carrying outer edge of the foot. 

Almost all who have studied the structure of this extraor- 
dinary beast are agreed as to its habits. That it fed prin- 
cipally, if not exclusively, upon leaves, is indicated by the 


HISTORY OF THE EDENTATA 601 


teeth. The general opinion as to its manner of life is well 
summed up by von Zittel: ‘‘The hip-bones, hind legs and tail 
are characterized by enormous strength. The entire structure 
of the extremities proves that the gigantic sloth could move 
over the ground but slowly and clumsily ; on the other hand, 
the fore limbs served as grasping organs and were presumably 
employed to bend down and break off twigs and branches and 
even to uproot whole trees, while the weight of the body was 
supported upon the hind legs and tail.” 1 It would be quite 
absurd to suppose that such ponderous animals could have 
been climbers or burrowers, hence the function of the enormous 
claws, especially the single one of the pes, is not obvious, though 
they may have been merely the weapons of the otherwise 
defenceless monsters. The great claw in the fore foot of the 
Ant-Bear is a terrible weapon, with which the creature vigor- 
ously and successfully defends itself against dogs, and it may 
even be dangerous to men, if incautiously molested. 

{Megatherium had no bony scutes, or other ossifications in 
the skin, so far as is known, and was probably covered with 
long and coarse hair, as is known to have been the case in 
another tground-sloth. 

Less specialized in many respects than the tmegatheres 
was tMylodon, type of a family which was numerously and 
variously represented in the Pleistocene of South America, 
much less so in that of North America f}Mylodon was smaller 
and lighter, being from 4 to } smaller in linear dimensions 
than }Megatherium, and the contemporary }{Scelidotherium 
was no bigger than a tapir. The teeth numbered ? and the 
anterior one above and below had a somewhat tusk-like form ; 
the others were worn off evenly, with nearly horizontal grind- 
ing surface, but a vertical groove on the inner side gave them 
a subtriangular, lobate form. The skull was short and broad, 
with flat top, and orbit only partially enclosed behind; the 
premaxillaries were very short and the muzzle very broad and 

1K. von Zittel, Handbuch der Palaeontologie, Bd. IV, p. 132. 


602 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


abruptly truncated, the nasal opening very large. The lower 
jaw had astraight inferior border, a short, very wide and shovel- 
shaped symphysis and square chin. Nothing indicates a pro- 
boscis, and the head must have been very different from that 
of {Megatherium. 

Within the family of the tmylodonts there was some variety 
in the dentition and more in the shape of the skull. In {Les- 
todon, for example, the first tooth in each jaw was a large, 
sharp-pointed tusk, the muzzle was greatly broadened, and the 
whole animal was larger. '‘{tScelidotheritwm, the smallest 
Pleistocene member of the family, had a much narrower and 
more elongate skull than the others. In 1+Glossotherium, 
which also had an elongate skull, there was an arched bony 
bridge connecting the anterior end of the nasal bones with the 
premaxillaries and dividing the nasal opening into two parts. 

The neck, body and tail.of {Mylodon did not differ mate- 
rially from those of |Megatherium, except in being smaller and 
less massive. The fore limb was relatively somewhat shorter 
and much stouter, but otherwise similar; the humerus had no 
epicondylar foramen and the femur no third trochanter; the 
tibia and fibula were separate. The manus had five digits, 
Nos. I, II and III carrying claws, that of III being especially 
large; IV and V had no claws and the outer edge of the manus 
rested on the ground in walking, the sole turned inward. The 
pes had lost the first digit, the second and third had claws, but 
not the fourth and fifth ; the weight rested on the outer edge. 

The skin is definitely known from large pieces belonging 
to the allied genus {Grypothervwm, found in a cavern near 
Last Hope Inlet, Patagonia, where it had been preserved by 
burial in dry dust. Externally, the skin was thickly covered 
with coarse hair and in the deeper layers was a continuous 
armour of small ossicles, which were close set and in the Last 
Hope specimens show like a cobble-stone pavement on the 
inner side of the skin, the innermost layers of which have been 
destroyed ; in life, these small bones were not visible. Simi- 


603 


HISTORY OF THE EDENTATA 


U0JOPPYS OY} JO ONY 8 UOM() UOT] Poloysoyy 


“uBOdUIR, 


d ‘(snysnqos wopojfi yy |) Yyos-punoss | oryUBAL) — "KRG OL] 


FS Ae 


TovaSyor oud 


604 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


lar ossicles have been found in association with several skele- 
tons of tMylodon. The habits, diet and mode of feeding of 
the latter were no doubt essentially similar to those of |Mega- 
therium, but +Scelidotherium, which had a much shorter and 
lighter tail, was probably more quadrupedal and browsed 
upon low shrubbery. 

The third family, the {tMegalonychide, was scantily 
represented in the Pleistocene of South America, but relatively 
common in North America. {Megalonyx was, on the whole, 
less specialized than tMylodon or +Megatherium, but had a 
strong resemblance to both of them. The teeth, # in number, 
had the foremost one in each jaw separated by a considerable 
space from the others and more or less tusk-like in form; 
the grinding teeth were worn smooth, without ridges, and of 
somewhat trihedral shape. The skull was short, broad and 
deep, resembling in shape that of the tree-sloths; there was a 
long, but feebly developed sagittal crest, and the orbits were 
widely open behind, with hardly a trace of any posterior boun- 
dary. The muzzle was very short and broad and abruptly 
truncated and the premaxillary bones were extremely small. 
The lower jaw was short, thick and massive, with very broad 
symphysis and almost vertical chin. Neck, body, tail, shoulder 
and hip-bones did not differ sufficiently from those of +Mega- 
therium to require particular notice. 

The fore limb was shorter and more slender than the hind ; 
the humerus had the epicondylar foramen and the very massive 
femur retained the third trochanter; the tibia and fibula 
were separate. The feet had five digits, three of which carried 
claws; the caleaneum was very peculiar, not at all like the 
massive, club-shaped bone of +Megatherium and +Mylodon, but 
long, comparatively thin and sickle-shaped. Nothing in the 
skeleton suggests that the creature’s habits differed in any im- 
portant way from those of the genera last named. 

{Megalocnus, of the Cuban Pleistocene, a member of this 
family, was apparently peculiar to the island and was prob- 


HISTORY OF THE EDENTATA 605 


ably derived from ancestors which in the Pliocene migrated 
from Central America. Aside from certain remarkable pecu- 
liarities of the teeth, this animal was more primitive, as well as 
smaller, than any other of the Pleistocene genera. 

Although remains of {Gravigrada are comparatively com- 
mon in all of the fossiliferous formations between the Pampean 
and the Santa Cruz, the material is too imperfect to throw 
any useful light upon the development of the various families. 
From the Santa Cruz beds, on the other hand, a great wealth of 
specimens has been obtained, and it is possible to give some 
fairly adequate account of the fground-sloths of that time. 
These animals were then extremely abundant individually and 
of extraordinary variety; evidently, they were in a state of 
rapid expansion and divergent evolution along many lines, for 
hardly any two specimens are alike and therefore the satis- 
factory discrimination of species is well-nigh impossible. Yet, 
with all this remarkable variability, the range of structural 
differences was not great; the group was a very homogeneous 
and natural one, and separation into families was not obvious. 
Two of the three families were, however, unequivocally pres- 
ent in this fauna and the third somewhat doubtfully so. The 
{Megalonychide, which in the South American Pleistocene 
had dwindled to such insignificant proportions, formed the 
overwhelming majority of the Santa Cruz jGravigrada; the 
{tMylodontide were quite rare in comparison and are still 
very incompletely known; while the ,Megatheriide, though 
probably present, have not been identified beyond all doubt. 

All of the Santa Cruz tground-sloths were small animals, 
the largest not approximating the smallest Pleistocene species, 
those of Cuba excepted, and many of them were no larger than 
the modern tree-sloths. This was a wonderful difference be- 
tween the Santa Cruz and the Pampean, but a difference which 
involved nearly all other groups of mammals. So far as the 
skeleton is concerned, this is known with completeness only 
for the {Megalonychide, especially the genus {Hapalops; but 


‘*BYB[q BT JO UNasnul ay} puv APISIOATU() UOPOULIG Ul SUOJS|aHS WoIy WYRIUY Aq po104sexy 
*(supougsnn snioydojdoyowypdo.g |) ywOpoydATS|. pus (sdaawHuo, sdoppdy zz |) yAoTs-punos3| zn1p vyueg — “ERz “Ol 


s Pete. 
hse Se tg 


LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


606 


HISTORY OF THE EDENTATA 607 


enough has been learned of the others to show that there was 
far less difference between the families than had arisen in the 
later epochs. This backward convergence of the three groups 
towards a common term plainly indicates their common origin, 
being exactly what might have been predicted in advance of 
experience. 

In all the genera the teeth number 3; the teeth on each side 
were sometimes in continuous series, sometimes the first one 
was isolated and almost always more or less tusk-like, most so 
in tEucholeops. The other teeth were usually of transversely 
elliptical shape and worn into two ridges, with a hollow be- 
tween; the tmylodonts ({Nematherium, etc.) already had the 
triangular, or lozenge-shaped, lobate form of-teeth, characteris- 
tic of the family. 

The skull varied considerably in its proportions; generally, 
it was long and narrow, with shortened face and elongate cra- 
nium; the sagittal crest was seldom present, never prominent, 
and the orbit was always widely open behind, without post- 
orbital processes. The premaxillaries were always short and 
toothless and in most of the genera they were slender rods, in 
others (e.g. tHyperleptus) broad and plate-like. The lower 
jaw had an elongate spout-like symphysis, in which the two 
halves were coéssified, tapering forward to a blunt point and. 
though the length of this spout differed greatly in the various 
genera, in none was there a broad, abrupt chin such as }Mylo- 
don and {+Megalonyx had. In {Prepotherium, which is be- 
lieved to be referable to the t{Megatheriide, the lower jaw had 
the extremely convex inferior border, in less exaggerated degree, 
of its huge Pampean successor; it would be premature to say 
descendant. 

While the long, slender skull was the prevailing type among 
the Santa Cruz tGravigrada, there was a group of small ani- 
mals in which the skull was shorter and more rounded and had 
a very suggestive likeness to that of the modern tree-sloths, 
as was likewise true of the teeth. 


608 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


Despite innumerable variations of detail, the skeleton of the 
Santa Cruz tground-sloths may be described without distinc- 
tion of genera, though it should be added that the skeleton is 
but partially known in many of the genera, and fuller knowledge 
might require modification of some of the statements. The 
neck was of moderate length, the body long, the tail long and 
heavy and, in some instances, very mas- 
sive. The sternal ribs were completely 
ossified and already had the same elabo- 
rate mode of articulation with the breast- 
bone as in the great Pampean forms, 
and the vertebre the same intricate con- 
nections. The shoulder-blade also had 
the same characteristics as in the latter, 
but the hip-bones had but a moderate 
transverse expansion, having no huge 
mass of -viscera to support. 

The limbs were stout and short, fore 
and hind legs of nearly equal length; the 
humerus had the epicondylar foramen 
and the broad, flattened femur retained 
the third trochanter. The radius had a 
discoidal upper end, which rotated freely 
upon the humerus; the tibia and fibula 


Fic. 290.—Left pes of 
tMylodon, Pampean (after 
Owen). Cal., calcaneum. were always separate. The feet were 


As., astragalus. N., 
navicular. On. 2, On. 3, five-toed, all the digits complete and 


middle and external cunei- functional and all provided with claws; 


forms. Cb., cuboid. ee ‘ 
; there was no codssification between the 


phalanges. The astragalus was little different from the 
normal form, but in some genera (e.g. {Prepotherium) the 
highly peculiar form of this bone characteristic of +tMylodon 
and {Megatherium was distantly foreshadowed. The gait 
must have been simply plantigrade, though some of the forms 
had probably begun to throw the weight upon the outer edge of 
the foot. 


HISTORY OF THE EDENTATA 609 


No dermal armour has yet been found in association with 
any of the genera, and, so far as the predominant {Megalo- 
nychide are concerned, of which so many skeletons have been 
collected, this negative evidence must be allowed great weight. 
But the material of the other two families is so rare and in- 
complete, that the failure to find dermal ossicles is of no value 
in determining the question; probably, the jmylodonts pos- 
sessed them. 

These small Santa Cruz tground-sloths were not so clumsy 
and slow-moving as their gigantic successors of the Pampean, 
and must have been inoffensive plant-eaters, 
some of them perhaps more or less arboreal 
in habits, but they could defend themselves 
with their long, sharp claws. 

It would require far too much space and 
lead us into a labyrinth of anatomical techni- 
ealities to point out all the many resem- 
blances to other edentate suborders which . 
are to be noted in the skeleton of the Santa Fic. 291.—Left pes 
Cruz {Gravigrada, which thus justified their bear meen 


Cruz. Princeton 
position as the most nearly central group of University = Mu- 


the entire order. Not only was the skeleton in Fie. goa 
of these Miocene ftground-sloths very much cae ae reduction 
less specialized than in their Pleistocene suc- 

cessors, but they were much closer to the anteaters than 
were the latter. Aside from the skull, all parts of the 
skeleton displayed this resemblance in so marked a manner 
that the common derivation of the two suborders seems hardly 
open to question. Different as was the skull in the two groups, 
the differences were not such as to preclude the origin of both 
from the same type. Even more closely connected were the 
tground-sloths and the tree-sloths; the resemblance was 
most clear in the teeth and skull, but there were also many 
points of likeness throughout the skeleton. In the tree-sloths 
the entire bony structure has been profoundly modified in 

2R 


610 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


adaptation to their altogether exceptional mode of life, in 
hanging suspended from the branches of trees ; but, despite this 
modification, there are so many notable resemblances between 
the Santa Cruz +Gravigrada and the existing Tardigrada as 
irresistibly to suggest their community of origin, and thus the 
former served to connect the anteaters, on the one hand, with 
the tree-sloths,.on the other. This must not be construed as 
meaning that the Miocene tground-sloths were the ancestors 
of the other suborders, which were probably already in exist- 
ence as distinct groups, but merely that all three suborders 
had a common origin, from which the Santa Cruz {Gravigrada 
had departed less than have the sloths and anteaters. 

There is evidence that at least two of the tground-sloth 
families, the {Megalonychide and the tMylodontide, were 
distinguishable in the Deseado stage, but materials are still 
lacking to give us any real knowledge of the suborder in that or 
the more ancient stages. 


SECTION LoricaTA. ARMOURED EDENTATES 


SUBORDER DasypopA. ARMADILLOS 


Armadillos are still an important and characteristic element 
of the Neotropical fauna, ranging from Texas to Patagonia 
and showing a considerable variety of structure and appearance. 
Existing species are all of small or moderate size, and the one 
which is by far the largest (Priodontes gigas) may somewhat 
exceed three feet in length, exclusive of the tail, and the smallest 
(Chlamydophorus truncatus) is hardly more than five inches long. 
In most armadillos the hair is greatly diminished in quantity 
and the animal is sheathed in a conspicuous armour of bony 
scutes, covered with horny plates. There is a head-shield 
which covers the top of the skull, and the tail is enclosed in a 
sheath; the back and sides are protected by the great carapace 
- and the limbs by irregular scutes and scales, leaving only the 
under side of the body and the inside of the legs uncovered. 


HISTORY OF THE EDENTATA 611 


In most existing genera, the carapace is in three parts, an an- 
terior and posterior buckler, in which the plates are immovably 
fixed together by their edges, and between a varying number of 
transverse, overlapping bands, from 3 to 138, which permit 
sufficient flexibility of the body. The tail-sheath is made up 
of a series of rings. One genus (Tolypeutes) has the power of 
rolling itself into a ball, the head-shield exactly closing the 
anterior notch of the carapace and the tail-sheath filling the 
posterior notch. The animal is thus perfectly protected against 
attack and does not seek refuge by digging, as other armadillos 
do and with astonishing rapidity. In the little Pichiciago 
(Chlamydophorus) the dermal ossifications are very thin and 
the carapace is composed of twenty transverse bands of horny 
plates, without bucklers; the rump is covered with a broad 
and heavy shield of bone, overlaid with thin plates of horn, 
which is attached to the hip-bones and notched below for the 
short tail. In certain rare and little known genera there is a 
greater development of hair; in one (Praopus) the whole 
carapace is covered with a dense coat of hair, and in another 
(Scleropleura) the middle of the back has only a hairy skin and 
the carapace is restricted to the sides. 

The teeth vary in number and size in the different genera ; 
in some (e.g. Dasypus) there is one upper incisor on each side ; 
the teeth are all simple and of nearly cylindrical form. The 
skull is low and flattened, with long tapering snout and orbits 
widely open behind; the zygomatic arches are uninterrupted. 
Most of the vertebra of the neck are fused into a single piece ; 
in the lumbar and posterior dorsal regions there are not only the 
usual highly intricate articulations between the vertebre, but 
also high processes on each side for the support of the carapace. 
The fully ossified sternal ribs have movable joints with the 
breast-bone, but not the double articulations found in the ant- 
eaters and tground-sloths. The shoulder-blade has a very 
long acromion, which does not form a bony loop with the cora- 
coid, and the clavicles are complete. The anterior element 


612 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


(ilium) of the hip-bone is narrow, very different from the 
broad plate of the {Gravigrada. The humerus has prominent 
deltoid and supinator ridges and an epicondylar foramen, and 
the femur has the third trochanter. Though the fore-arm 
bones are separate, the radius has no freedom of rotation ; tibia 
and fibula are coéssified at both ends. 

In the hind foot there is no great variety of character; it 
is five-toed and usually has claws, but may have broad, flat 
nails (e.g. Priodontes), but the manus, which is a burrowing 
organ, displays different degrees of specialization, which is 
carried farthest in the Giant Armadillo (Priodontes). Tatu has 
the fore foot of quite different type. The armadillos feed 
chiefly upon insects and worms, but they are omnivorous and 
eat roots and carrion and sometimes even capture and devour 
small rodents and lizards. 

As in the case of the tground-sloths, the fossil armadillos 
so far available are insufficient for tracing the history of the 
various phyla, or for doing more than making a very brief 
sketch of the development of the suborder as a whole. Nearly 
all of the modern genera have been found in the Pleistocene to- 
gether with several that are extinct, some of the latter of very 
large size. One of these, tHutatus, had a carapace without 
bucklers and made up of 33 movable, transverse bands. 
Another, tChlamydotherium, as large as a rhinoceros and the 
largest known armadillo, had anterior and posterior bucklers, 
with several movable bands between; it was especially char- 
acterized by the teeth, which were divided by a vertical groove 
into pillars or lobes, thus approximating the teeth of the tglyp- 
todonts. The genus went far back into the Pliocene, and the 
more ancient species were successively smaller. 

Though remains of armadillos abound in the formations 
between the Pampean and the Santa Cruz, they are for the 
most part so fragmentary as to be of no service in deciphering 
the history of the group. In the Santa Cruz beds also they 
are very abundant and varied, and several of the genera are 


HISTORY OF THE EDENTATA 613 


very completely known. As a whole, this assemblage of arma- 
dillos was very different from that of the Pleistocene, and only 
a few direct ancestors of the latter have been found in the 
Miocene of Patagonia; no doubt, like the ancestral tree-sloths 
and anteaters, they were then living in the warmer regions of 
the north. Most of the Santa Cruz armadillos belonged to 
aberrant types, of which no descendants have survived ; but, 
nevertheless, they throw welcome light upon the developmental 
stages of the suborder. 

These armadillos had the complete armour of head-shield, 
carapace and tail-sheath, but the carapace had no anterior 


Fic. 292. — Skull of tPeltephilus, Santa Cruz. Ameghino collection. 


buckler in any of the Santa Cruz genera, and in some there was 
no posterior buckler, the carapace consisting entirely of trans- 
verse, movable bands, as in the Pleistocene tH utatus. In one 
especially peculiar genus, }Peltephilus, the head-shield was 
remarkable; it was made up of large, polygonal plates, the 
two anterior pairs of which were elevated into high, sharp 
points, which must have supported horns, that were quite 
large in proportion to the size of the animal. A 4-horned 
armadillo, like a tiny rhinoceros in armour, must have been a 
sufficiently bizarre object. 


614 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


As a rule, the teeth of the Santa Cruz armadillos were of 
the same simple, cylindrical form as in the modern genera and 
arranged in the same way, but there were some exceptions. 
In the horned {Peltephilus, the teeth of each jaw were so in- 
serted as to form a continuous series around the sides and front 
of the mouth ; and, at first sight, it would seem that this genus 
differed from all other known edentates in having a full set of 
incisors, but actually it had but one on each side above and 
below, as has the modern Dasypus, with the difference that, in 
the latter, the incisors of the opposite sides are widely sepa- 
rated and in }Peliephilus were brought close together. The 
anterior upper teeth were long and sharp and passed outside 
of the lower ones, when the jaws were closed, and all the teeth 
had an external layer of hard and shining dentine, which had 
almost the appearance of enamel. Another variant in den- 
tition was +Proeutatus, which was the largest of Santa Cruz 
armadillos and larger than any existing forms except Priodontes 
and Cabassous. It had teeth like those of the huge Pliocene 
and Pleistocene tChlamydotherium, of which it was a probable 
ancestor ; the five posterior ones in each jaw were of trihedral 
shape, and the two kinds of dentine, of which they were com- 
posed, were so arranged as to form a rough grinding surface. 
Probably this animal subsisted largely upon vegetable food ; 
at all events, the food was of such a nature as to keep the teeth 
worn down more than in any of the associated genera. A 
fourth type of dentition was displayed by tStegotherium (Fig. 
243, p. 480) ; the teeth were so few and small that they can have 
had no functional value and were merely minute points almost 
level with the gums. In all probability, }Stegotherium was 
more exclusively insectivorous than the other genera. 

Among the Santa Cruz armadillos may be distinguished 
four well-marked types of skull. (1) That which agrees closely 
with the modern form, especially as exemplified by the genus 
Dasypus. (2) +Proeutatus had a higher and less flattened 
cranium and a very long, cylindrical muzzle. (3) In the horned 


HISTORY OF THE EDENTATA 615 


}Peltephilus the face was very short and broad, and the lower 
jaw was horseshoe-shaped, the two halves codssified at the 
symphysis, which is not true of any other armadillo. (4) 
Quite the opposite extreme was displayed by {Stegotherium, 


Fic. 293. —Skull of tProeutatus, Santa Cruz. Princeton University Museum. 


in which the face was drawn out into a very long, slender and 
tapering muzzle; the lower jaw was extremely weak and thin, 
the posterior, ascending portion low and ill-defined, the condyle 


Fic. 294. — Skull of tStegotherium, Santa Cruz. Princeton University Museum. 


and coronoid process much reduced. No other known arma- 
dillo has such fragile jaws, and there was a distinct likeness in 
the skull to that of the Ant-Bear. 

Aside from carapace and skull, the skeleton of the Santa 
Cruz armadillos was surprisingly modern. The vertebre of 
the neck were codssified, those of the lumbar and posterior 
dorsal regions had the extremely complex articulations and the 


616 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


high processes for the support of the carapace, just as in the 
Recent genera. The limb-bones did not differ in any signifi- 
cant way from those of the latter, and the feet closely resembled 
those of the modern Dasypus; none of the genera displayed the 
specialization of the manus seen in Cabassous, Priodontes or 
Tolypeutes. Whether these specializations have all been 
acquired since Santa Cruz times, or whether they had already 
appeared in some other region of the continent, is a question 
that remains to be determined. 

Little can yet be done in the way of tracing the history of 
the armadillos through the stages preceding the Santa Cruz 
times, because of the fragmentary character of the material. 
The suborder was abundantly represented in the Deseado 
stage, in which some of the Santa Cruz genera existed. Even 
in the most ancient of the Patagonian Tertiary formations are 
found scutes of the carapace essentially like those of the modern 
armadillos. The group is thus of very high antiquity, older 
than any other of the suborders is known to be. 

In addition to the typical armadillos of South America, 
there were, in other continents, certain more or less doubtful 
forms, concerning which a word should be said. In the Bridger 
Eocene of North America was a genus ({Metacheiromys) of 
armadillo-like animals, the true relationships of which are far 
from clear. The teeth were mostly lost, leaving but one on 
each side of each jaw, and this was covered with enamel, which 
is not true of any unquestioned edentate. However, this is 
not an insuperable objection to the inclusion of these animals 
in the edentates, for there can be no doubt that these were 
derived from ancestors with enamel-covered teeth. Even in 
modern armadillos the enamel-organ is formed in the embryo, 
though it does not perform its functions, The skull of {Meta- 
cheiromys had something of the armadillo-shape, but was not 
especially characteristic. The vertebre of the neck were all 
separate, and those of the dorsal and lumbar regions did not 
have the complex articulations common to all known edentates, 


HISTORY OF THE EDENTATA 617 


fossil and Recent ; the sacrum had on each side but one point of 
contact with the hip-bones, and the sternal ribs were not ossified. 
The shoulder-blade, hip-bones and humerus were all armadillo- 
like. The plantigrade feet were five-toed and the metapodials 
were very edentate inform. No indication of bony armour has 
been found. While these curious animals may very possibly 
have been referable to the Edentata and, at all events, had 
several features suggestive of relationship to that order, it can 
hardly be maintained that they were unequivocal members of it. 

In the Oligocene of France have been obtained some very 
fragmentary fossils which were classified and described as 
armadillos, but their character is quite problematical. It is 
thus possible, though far from certain, that in the early Ter- 
tiary, armadillo-like edentates were spread all over the northern 
hemisphere. 


SUBORDER {GLYPTODONTIA. TGLYPTODONTS 


In the Pliocene and Pleistocene these huge armoured crea- 
tures ranged from the southern United States to Patagonia. 
That they were nearly related to the armadillos is clear, but 
they were so greatly modified and specialized as to demand 
recognition as a distinct suborder. 

Aside from their enormous size, the most striking feature 
of the {Glyptodontia is the extraordinary development of 
their defensive armour, which was far more complete and mas- 
sive than in the armadillos. The top of the head was pro- 
tected by a thick head-shield, or casque, composed of several 
coéssified plates; the body and much of the limbs were en- 
closed in the immense carapace of elongate-oval, domed shape, 
which covered the neck and trunk and on the sides almost 
reached to the ground. This tortoise-like carapace was com- 
posed of very thick, polygonal plates of bone (no doubt 
covered externally with horny plates) immovably fixed to- 
gether by their rough edges, and ornamented with an elaborate 
pattern of sculpture, which varied according to the genus. 


618 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


With one or two exceptions, the plates of the carapace were not 
arranged in transverse rows, but formed a mosaic without dis- 
cernible banding. In the exceptions noted, the sides of the 
carapace were made up of bands, and near the margins were 
two or three overlapping transverse bands which permitted a 
minimal degree of flexibility. The tail-sheath was remarkable 
and differed much in appearance and make-up in the various 
genera. In {Glyptodon the tail was comparatively short and 
the tail-sheath was made up of a series of overlapping rings, 
each ring consisting of two rows of plates; those of the second 
row were ornamented, on the top and sides of the tail, with 
very prominent, conical projections, capped, in the living ani- 
mal, with still longer and sharper spines of horn, so that the tail 
must have bristled with spikes. A more usual type of tail- 
sheath was exemplified by {Sclerocalyptus, in which there were 
several overlapping rings at the root of the tail, but for much 
the greater part of its length the plates of the sheath were 
fused together into a long, transversely oval tube, tapering 
very gently to the free end, where it was bluntly rounded. A 
modification of this type was the very long tail-sheath of 
tPanochthus, in which there were seven overlapping rings at 
the root, followed by a long, massive tube, the sides of which 
were set with three or more large and heavy, horn-like spines. 
In +Dedicurus was reached the maximum specialization of 
this type; the very long tube had its free end greatly expanded 
and thickened into a huge, club-shaped mass, on the top and 
sides of which were fixed long and sharp horns. 

The teeth, which in all the known genera numbered 8, were 
all very much alike; each was divided by two broad and deep 
vertical grooves on each side into three pillars, connected by 
narrow necks. Harder dentine in the centre and on the pe- 
riphery of the tooth, with a softer intermediate layer, kept the 
grinding surface rough through differential wear. Teeth of this 
character are indicative of a vegetable diet and these great crea- 
tures were, no doubt, as harmless and inoffensive as possible. 


619 


OF THE EDENTATA 


HISTORY 


OY sada 


boyy ue 


Sh 


Yow WNVT-e \ 


ae 


a 


620 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


The skull was remarkably short, broad and high, the facial 
region being especially abbreviated; the cranium, though 
forming the greater part of the skull, was yet small in compari- 
son with the size of the animal; it had a distinct, though not 
prominent, sagittal crest. The occipital surface was inclined 
forward and had a very elevated position, the condyles being 
near the top of the head and raised very far above the level of 
the teeth. The orbits were relatively small, more or less com- 
pletely encircled with bone and as near to the top of the headas 
they could be brought ; this was to make room for the extremely 
high teeth, which required a great depth of jaw; the elevation 
of the whole cranium left unlimited space for the jaws beneath 
it. The zygomatic arches were strong and curved out widely 
from the sides of the skull; beneath each eye was given off a 

_ very long descending process which projected downward, out- 
side of the lower jaw. In most of the species the upper pro- 
file of the skull was nearly straight, but in {tPanochthus it 
descended very steeply from the forehead to the nose. The 
forehead was dome-like and the nasals extremely short. Si- 
nuses were extensively developed, especially in the frontals, and 
in {Sclerocalyptus the bones around the nostrils were grotesquely 
inflated. The two halves of the. lower jaw were fused together, 
and the symphysis was prolonged into a short, wide spout, 
which projected considerably in advance of the upper jaw, 
showing that the soft parts of the muzzle must have had a 
corresponding extension. The horizontal portion of the lower 
jaw, carrying the teeth, was short and very deep ; the posterior, 
ascending portion had a forward inclination and was very high. 

The skeleton of the Pleistocene tglyptodonts was unique 
among mammals, though evidently a modification of the ar- 
madillo type. The extreme modification was conditioned by 
the enormous weight of the carapace, which the skeleton had to 
support. The neck was very short, made up of short vertebre, 
which were extensively codssified ; the atlas was always free, 
but the axis was fused with a varying number of the succeed- 


HISTORY OF THE EDENTATA 621 


ing vertebre; usually, the axis and the third to the sixth 
formed one mass, while the seventh was fused with the dorsals. 
The joint between the sixth and seventh vertebre was such as 
to permit at least a partial downward bending of the head be- 
neath the carapace, closing its anterior opening with the head- 
shield. The seventh neck vertebra and all the dorsals, except 
the last one, were codssified into a heavy curved rod, the “dorsal 
tube” ; the conjoined neural arches formed a tunnel for the spinal 
cord and the spines made a continuous ridge. As the hind legs 
were very much longer than the fore, the back was strongly 
arched upward from the neck to the hips. The last dorsal, the 
lumbars and the sacrum were all fused together to form the 
“‘lumbo-sacral tube,” of which the codssified neural spines made 
a very prominent ridge, the principal support of the carapace in 
the median line; the anterior half of the trunk skeleton, com- 
prising the short, deep thorax, was free from the carapace, 
which in that region must have rested upon the muscles of the 
back and shoulders. The number of neck and trunk vertebrze 
combined varied in the different genera from 26 to 28, but 
fusion had reduced the number of separate parts to 4, or at 
most 5. Such greatly diminished flexibility of the back was 
rather an advantage. The tail differed much in length in the 
various genera, but was always massive; the anterior vertebre, 
usually 7 in number, were free, the others were fused into a 
heavy, tapering rod ; but for nearly its whole length the processes 
of the vertebra were very prominent, each vertebra touching 
the tail-sheath at five points and thus giving it very effective 
support. In {Glyptodon the tail-vertebre were all free. 

In most of the genera the scapula was very broad and had 
the very long acromion common to all the edentates; there 
were no clavicles. The hip-bones were very peculiar; the 
anterior element (ilium) stood almost vertically, at right angles 
to the backbone, and formed a broad plate, facing forward, the 
top of which was roughened and thickened to support the cara- 
pace. The posterior element (ischium) was also much ex- 


622 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


panded, but faced outward, and its hinder end, curved upward 
and thickened, was another point of strong support for the 
carapace. The two elements together formed an inverted 
arch, the crown of which rested on the head of the femur. 

Though less massive than those of the hind leg, the bones of 
the fore limb were yet very heavy. The humerus was short 
and had reduced deltoid and supinator ridges and no epicondy- 
lar foramen ; the short fore-arm bones were separate and heavy, 
the ulna especially so. The femur was much the longest of the 
limb-bones and was extremely strong, especially in its great 
breadth, the antero-posterior flattening, common to nearly all 
very heavy mammals, being well marked. A very unusual 
feature was the position of the third trochanter near the lower 
end of the shaft. The tibia and fibula were much shorter than 
the femur, extremely heavy and coéssified at both ends. The 
very short and broad feet retained five digits; in the manus 
the claws were sometimes ‘comparatively long and sharp, some- 
times blunt and hoof-like ; those of the hind foot were always 
broad hoofs. 

Among all the many strange and grotesque mammals 
which the study of fossils has brought to light, none can have 
been more remarkable than the Pleistocene tglyptodonts ; 
slow-moving hillocks they must have seemed, the larger species 
12 to 14 feet long and 5 feet or more inheight. Those that had 
claws on the fore feet probably used them to dig for roots and 
tubers, but: all were plant-feeders. When attacked by the 
tsabre-tooth tigers (fSmilodon) or the great bears (f{Arcto- 
therium) they needed only to squat down, bringing the edges 
of the carapace to the ground, and draw in the head, to be 
perfectly protected, while a sweep of the spiny or club-like 
and horned tail would have been fatal to anything in its path. 

As in the case of so many other groups, little has yet been 
learned regarding the history of the tglyptodonis during 
the interval between the later Pliocene and the Santa Cruz; 
the intermediate formations have yielded many tglyptodonts, 


HISTORY OF THE EDENTATA 623 


but not in such preservation as to be of any service in this con- 
nection. We find, as might be expected, many and very great 
differences between the Pampean and the Santa Cruz repre- 
sentatives of the suborder, the latter being in all repects less 
modified and less widely removed from the armadillos. 

(1) The most obvious and striking distinction was in size, the 
Santa Cruz forms being all small and some of them very small. 

(2) In all cases the carapace was made up of transverse 
bands, which permitted a slight degree of flexibility, and near the 
anterior end, at the margins of the shell, were two or three 
overlapping bands. The plates were thin and were but rarely 
codssified ; the ornamentation was made by shallow grooves. 

(3) The tail-sheath, which was of very uniform character, 
consisted of two quite distinct portions; the anterior region 
consisted of 5 or more freely movable, overlapping rings, each 
of two rows of plates, and in the posterior region the rings were 
closely fitted together, less distinctly marked and not movable. 
This posterior portion was sometimes thick and ended abruptly, 
sometimes slender and tapering and in one genus (fAstero- 
stemma) it was very armadillo-like. In none of the genera were 
there any spines or horns, nor were the separate plates ever fused 
together to form a tube. 

(4) There was considerable variety in the head-shield, which 
was usually made up of many separate plates, but in one genus 
(tEucinepeltus) they were codssified into a single heavy 
casque. 

(5) The teeth had a less extreme height and the four an- 
terior ones of each jaw were much simpler than in the Pampean 
forms. An interesting survival was the retention of two mi- 
nute incisors in each premaxillary bone, in one genus ({Pro- 
paleohoplophorus), but these were of no functional value and 
were early lost. 

(6) The skull was much longer, narrower and lower and had 
a relatively longer facial portion; the occiput was higher and 
more erect, and the condyles had no such elevation above the 


624 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


level of the teeth; the orbit was widely open behind and the 
descending process given off from the zygomatic arch beneath 
the eye had no such exaggerated length; the bones were not 
conspicuously inflated by sinuses. The lower jaw was shal- 
lower, the symphysis and anterior spout shorter and the as- 
cending portion far lower. 

(7) The backbone had a greater number of separate parts ; 
the atlas, as always, was free, the axis was fused with two or 
three of the following vertebre; the sixth was free and the 
seventh fused with the first and second dorsals to form one 
piece, which was succeeded by two or three separate vertebre : 
the other dorsals, except the last one, were united in the dorsal 
tube, and the lumbo-sacral tube was already complete. Thus, 
instead of four or five, there were eight or nine distinct parts. 
None of the tail-vertebre were fused together. 

(8) There was the same disparity in the length of the fore 
and hind limbs, but the bones were far more slender and ar- 
madillo-like; this was especially true of the radius and hu- 
merus, the latter having well-developed deltoid and supinator 
ridges and epicondylar foramen; the ulna was more massive 
and glyptodont-like. The femur was very much more slender 
and rounded and the third trochanter was placed higher up 
the shaft; tibia and fibula were codssified at both ends and 
resembled those of the Pampean genera, except for their much 
greater slenderness. 

(9) The feet were much as in the latter, but relatively nar- 
rower, and the manus had longer claws. 

In short, the Santa Cruz tglyptodonts departed much less 
widely from the armadillos than did the Pliocene and Pleisto- 
cene genera, and, to a certain extent, bridged over the gap 
between the two suborders. Such backward convergence in 
time is very strong evidence for the community of origin of 
the two groups. ; 

The tglyptodonts of the more ancient formations, so far 
as they are known, teach us little concerning the stages of 


HISTORY OF THE EDENTATA 625 


modification in these extraordinary animals, because of their 
fragmentary condition. The oldest stage in which representa- 
tives of the suborder have been detected is the Astrapo- 
notus beds, which may be Oligocene or upper Eocene. On 
the face of the records, therefore, the fglyptodonts had no 
such antiquity as the armadillos. 


It has long been recognized that the Edentata occupy a very 
isolated position among the placental mammals; their relation- 
ships to other orders and their point of departure from the 
main stem are unsolved problems. The South American 
fossils have so far thrown little light into these dark places, 
but they bear very cogent witness to the unity of origin of the 
five suborders, which were most probably all derived from a 
single early Eocene or Paleocene group. 

In the Paleocene and through most of the Eocene of North 
America there lived an order of mammals called the tTzenio- 
dontia (or {Ganodonta) which many of the foremost palzon- 
tologists regard as an ancestral type of the Edentata, and Dr. 
Schlosser actually includes them in that order. That the 
{teeniodonts had certain striking resemblances to the edentates, 
especially to the tground-sloths, is not to be denied, but the 
interpretation of these resemblances is a very complex and 
difficult question. Unfortunately, no member of the order 
is known from an even approximately complete skeleton, and 
therefore a discussion of the matter here would be unprofitable. 
My own conclusion, however, may be stated, to the effect that 
the supposed relationship of the {t#niodonts to the edentates 
is illusory and not real. Definite decision must await the find- 
ing of more complete material both of the {teniodonts and the 
most ancient South American edentates. 


CHAPTER XVII 
HISTORY OF THE MARSUPIALIA 


THE marsupials are a group of more primitive structure 
and greater antiquity than any which we have yet considered, 
so primitive, indeed, that they are referred to a separate 
infraclass, the Didelphia or Metatheria. The order is one of 
very great variety in size, form, appearance, diet and habits, 
and mimics several of the higher orders in quite remarkable 
fashion. Herbivorous, insectivorous and carnivorous forms 
are all numerous, as well as arboreal, terrestrial, cursorial, 
leaping and burrowing genera. Some are like hoofed mammals 
in appearance and the Rodentia, Carnivora and Insectivora 
are also closely imitated in externals. With all this diversity, 
most unusual within the limits of a single order, there is such 
a unity of structure, that a division of the group into two or 
more orders is impracticable. 

At the present time, marsupials are very largely confined 
to Australia and adjoining islands, where they constitute nearly 
the whole mammalian fauna, and it is in the Australian region 
that the remarkable diversity already mentioned is to be ob- 
served. There are found the phalangers, kangaroos, bandi- 
coots, Tasmanian ‘devil’ and ‘‘wolf,” and banded anteaters, 
not to mention many other curious creatures. In the western 
hemisphere only the opossums (Didelphis, Chironectes) and 
one very interesting relic of a long vanished assemblage, 
Cenolestes of Ecuador and Colombia, are in existence to-day. 
The opossums, of which some twenty-three species are recog- 
nized, have their headquarters in South America, to which 

626 


HISTORY OF THE MARSUPIALIA 627 


nearly all of the species are confined, North America having 
but two or three. 

The more important American marsupials are given in the 
table below : 


Suborder POLYPROTODONTA 


I. Dmetpanpz. Opossums. 

Didelphis, Opossum, Pleist. and Ree., N. and 8. A. Chironectes, 
Water Opossum, Rec., S. A. + Peratherium, low. Eoc. to low. 
Oligo., N. A. {Microbiotherium, Santa Cruz. t+ Eodidelphys, do. 
}Ideodidelphys, Casa Mayor. {| Proteodidelphys, {Cretaceous, S. A. 

II. Tuyztacynip#. Predaceous Marsupials. 

tCladosictis, Santa Cruz. tAmphiproviverra, do. t+ Prothylacynus, 
do. f{Borhyena, do. tProborhyena, Deseado. t+ Pharsophorus, 
do. fProcladosictis, Casa Mayor. fPseudocladosictis, do. 


Suborder DIPROTODONTA 


III. CanoLestpa. 
Cenolestes, Rec., S. A. tZygolestes, Paranéd. f{Paleothentes, Santa 


Cruz. tAbderites, do. {Palepanorthus, Deseado. 


IV. tGarzonupa. 
{tGarzonia, Santa Cruz. + Halmarhiphus,do. fCladoclinus, do. 


Suborder ,ALLOTHERIA 
V. TPLAGIAULACIDE. 
+ Polymastodon, up. Cretac. and Paleoc.,N.A. {}Ptilodus,do. tNeo- 
plagiaulax, Paleoc., N. A. 
VI. }PorypoLoPipz. 
{Propolymastodon, Casa Mayor. {Polydolops, do. fAmphidolops, 
do. 

Despite all their diversity of appearance and habits, the 
unity of structure among the marsupials is such that the forma- 
tion of groups of higher than family rank is very difficult, and 
it is by no means certain that the suborders currently accepted 
correspond to the facts of actual relationship. 

Except in certain extinct South American genera, there is 
very little change of teeth, only the last premolar in each jaw 
being replaced. Sometimes the temporary tooth is long 
retained in function and, more rarely, it is shed very early ; 
while in several genera no replacement of teeth has been ob- 


628 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


served. There is a difference of opinion among naturalists 
as to the proper interpretation of the marsupial dentition. 
According to one view, all except the replaced premolar belong 
to the milk-series and the permanent series has been lost; 
the alternative and more probable belief is that the milk- 
dentition has been almost or completely suppressed. Which- 
ever one of these interpretations be the right one, there is 
strong reason to maintain that the very limited amount of 
change is not a primitive condition, but a secondary one, for a 
series of rudimentary teeth is formed before those which are 
to become functional. The only reasonable explanation of 
such a condition is that it has been derived from one in which 
the normal succession and replacement of the teeth took place. 
Something of the same sort has been observed in the sim- 
plicidentate rodents. The marsupial dentition differs from 
the placental one in the usual number of four molars, in- 
stead of three, and frequently also in exceeding the normal 
total number of 44. The incisors are almost always of a 
different number in the upper and the lower jaw and are fre- 
quently more numerous than in the placentals. 

The skeleton has several diagnostic characters, which are 
present throughout the order, though one or other of these 
features may be absent in particular instances. The skull has a 
very small brain-capacity and elongate face and jaws. In the 
placental mammals, the sutures between adjoining bones of the 
skull tend to close by codssification, and the separate bones 
are clearly distinguishable only in young animals; but in the 
marsupials the sutures remain open for a much longer period. 
The lachrymal is expanded on the face and the foramen is 
outside of the orbit. -The tympanic is a mere ring and per- 
manently separate from the other bones of the cranium, while 
a false bulla is formed by the inflation of part of the alisphenoid. 
In almost all marsupials there are large openings or vacuities 
in the bony palate. One of the most characteristic and con- 
stant features of the marsupial skull is in the conformation of 


HISTORY OF THE MARSUPIALIA 629 


the angle of the lower jaw, which is turned inward, or inflected, 
at nearly a right angle with the body of the jaw. It is true 
that one existing Australian genus has lost this character ; 
and in some of the placental orders, especially the Rodentia, 
a somewhat similar structure may occasionally be found, 
but it is never quite the same as in the marsupials, in which 
it goes back to a remote antiquity. 

There are very constantly 19 trunk-vertebre, of which 
usually 13 are dorsals. The tail differs greatly in length in 
the various genera, but most of them have well-developed tails. 
An additional pair of elements, besides the three which are 
found in the placentals, enter into the composition of the hip- 
bones; these are the marsupial bones, slender, flattened rods, 
directed forward in the abdominal wall and diverging in 
V-shape. Save in a few genera, clavicles are present and of 
full size. The humerus may or may not have the epicondylar 
foramen, but the femur never has the third trochanter. The 
feet vary greatly in form and structure, in accordance with 
the habits, but there is a very widespread adaptation to an 
arboreal life, and even in terrestrial and burrowing forms more 
or less distinct traces of this arboreal adaptation may be noted. 
This fact has led to a generally accepted inference that all 
existing marsupials had an arboreal ancestry. 

The soft parts and more especially the organs of reproduc- 
tion are likewise very characteristic, and one or two of these 
peculiarities may be mentioned. (1) In the female, the vagina 
is double and on the abdomen is the pouch, or marsupium 
(which gives its name to the order), a hair-lined bag, opening 
either forward or backward, which serves to carry the young 
and into which the teats open. A considerable number of 
species have lost the marsupium, while other species of the same 
genera retain it, and there can be little question that its absence 
is a secondary condition. (2) Except in one modern Australian 
genus, the marsupials have no true placenta, and the young 
are born in a very immature state, incapable of even swallowing. 


630 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


The new-born young are transferred to the nipples of the mother 
and are attached to these and fed by the pumping of milk into 
their mouths by muscular action of the mother. A special, 
though temporary, arrangement of the gullet and windpipe 
is provided, so that the helpless young animal shall not be 
suffocated by the entrance of milk into the lungs. 


SUBORDER POLYPROTODONTA 


This suborder, as is indicated by its name, is characterized 
by its numerous incisors, which are §; or $, and none of them 
is especially enlarged ; by the large canines in both jaws, simple 
premolars and tritubercular upper molars. The members of this 
group are carnivorous or insectivorous in habit, and all the 
existing ones are of small or moderate size, though some very 
large extinct forms are known. Except in one Australian 
family, the feet are not ‘‘syndactyl,’’ a term which means the 
enclosure of two or more digits in one fold of skin. The only 
existing American representatives of the suborder are the 
opossums, the great majority of which are Neotropical in dis- 
tribution. 


1. Didelphiide. Opossums 


In this family the dental formula is: 73, c4, p3, m4, X2 =50. 
The incisors are small and closely crowded together, the canines 
large and tusk-like, the premolars simple and of compressed- 
conical form ; in existing species, the upper molars are triangular, 
each of the three main cusps is V-shaped and there are addi- 
tional minute cusps along the outer border; the lower molars 
have a high anterior triangle of three pointed cusps and a low 
heel with several distinct cusps. The humerus has an epicon- 
dylar foramen and the feet are five-toed; in the manus all the 
digits are armed with claws and the thumb is but partially 
opposable, while in the pes the hallux is without a claw and 
completely opposable, making the foot much like that of a 
monkey. 


HISTORY OF THE MARSUPIALIA 631 


The division of the existing opossums into genera has 
caused much difference of opinion and practice among nat- 
uralists ; there are five groups, which by some are regarded as 
genera, and by others as subgenera, all modern members of the 
family being very much alike. The species Didelphis marsu- 
pialis, which is common in the eastern United States and ex- 
tends through temperate North America, Central America and 
tropical South America, has a complete pouch and is chiefly 
arboreal and insectivorous in habit. In the woolly opossums 
(Caluromys) there is no pouch, and the young, when sufficiently 
advanced, are carried on the mother’s back, winding their 
tails around hers. In both of these genera the tail is long, 
naked and prehensile, but in the tiny species of Peramys the 
tail isshort and hairy. Another Neotropical genus, Chironectes, 
the Yapock or Water Cpossum, is the only existing instance of 
an aquatic marsupial. It has light grey fur, striped with brown, 
and webbed hind feet ; living chiefly in the water, it feeds upon 
crayfish, water-insects and small fish. 

The derivation of the modern North American opossums 
is a matter of great uncertainty. The present distribution 
of the family, with by far the greater number of its species 
confined to the Neotropical region, is certainly suggestive of 
a South American origin, but such considerations are very 
untrustworthy guides in tracing the history of animal groups. 
No opossum has been found in any North American formation 
between the Pleistocene and the lower Oligocene, though in 
the case of such small animals, negative evidence must be 
accepted with caution. In the White River Oligocene many 
minute opossums have been found and referred to the European 
genus }Peratherium, though it so closely resembles the modern 
Didelphis that many systematists do not make the distinction. 
In the Eocene, Paleocene and upper Cretaceous, opossums 
were represented doubtfully; the material is too incomplete 
for assured determination; in Europe they existed in the Oli- 
gocene and upper Eocene. In South America the family 


632 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


went back uninterruptedly to the oldest mammal-bearing 
beds of Patagonia, which may be upper Cretaceous. The 
opossums are thus the remnants of an exceedingly ancient 
group, whose beginnings are to be sought in the Mesozoic 
era and which was probably spread over all the continents. 
To all appearances, the whole group vanished completely fram 
the northern hemisphere, but reéntered North America from 
the south at some time during the Pliocene or early Pleistocene 
and permanently established itself here. 

The opossums are the most primitive of existing marsupials, 
especially the little South American genus, Marmosa, and are 
regarded, by some of the most competent students of the order, 
as closely representing the ancestral type of all the Recent 
families and genera, both of the Polyprotodonta and Diproto- 
donta. 

2. Thylacynide. Predaceous Marsupials 

By many naturalists this group of flesh-eating forms is 
included in the Dasyuride. The family never entered North 
America, but played a very important part in the Tertiary 
of South America. Three existing genera of the Australian 
region throw considerable light upon the South American 
types, and therefore some account of them will not be out of 
place here. 

The largest of modern predaceous marsupials is the animal 
(Thylacynus cynocephalus) erroneously, but very naturally, 
called the ‘‘Tasmanian Wolf,” now confined to Tasmania, but 
occurring also in the Pleistocene of Australia. As “wolf” 
applied to a marsupial is misleading, it will be less confusing 
to employ the anglicized form of the generic name ‘‘Thylacine.”’ 
This animal is of the size of the small Prairie Wolf or Coyote 
(Canis latrans) and has very wolf-like appearance and habits. 
The muzzle is long and pointed, the ears erect and rather 
small, the tail long, very thick at the base and tapering to the 
end, not bushy, but covered with short, close-set hairs; the 
colour is greyish brown, with dark, transverse stripes on the 


HISTORY OF THE MARSUPIALIA 633 


posterior half of the back and base of the tail. Apparently the 
creature is in process of losing its stripes and acquiring the solid 
body-colour. The dental formula is: 74, c4, p3, m4, x 2 = 46; 
the incisors are small, the canines large fangs, and the premolars 
simple; the upper molars are tritubercular, with large inner 
cusp and postero-external cutting ridge, and the lower molars 
are trenchant, with low heel. The whole dentition is remark- 
ably like that of many Eocene fcreodonts, such as 7Sinopa and 


Ee 


~ 
- 


i Pn 
e amc ae Rca a Seegtie, o ONN S  Sia D 


Fic. 296.— Thylacine, or ‘‘ Tasmanian Wolf” (Thylacynus cynocephalus). — 
By permission of W. 8. Berridge, London. 


tTritemnodon (see p. 566). The milk-premolar is small and 
functionless and is shed very early. The skull is very wolf- 
like in appearance, but thoroughly marsupial in structure, 
and has the large palatal vacuities common in the order. The 
marsupial bones do not ossify and are evidently on the point 
of disappearance. There are five digits in the manus, four in 
the pes, the hallux being completely suppressed. In habits, 
the Thylacine is carnivorous and so destructive to sheep that 
the farmers have nearly exterminated it. 


634 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


The other forms to be mentioned belong to the closely 
allied family of the Dasyuride. The ‘‘Tasmanian Devil” 
(Sarcophilus ursinus) is now, like the Thylacine, confined to 
Tasmania, but remains of it have been found in the Australian 
Pleistocene; it has one less premolar in each jaw, giving the 
formula: 74, c+, p%, m4,x2=42; there is no milk-tooth. 
The premolars are closely crowded and the molars resemble 
those of the Thylacine in construction, but are broader and 
heavier. The skull is disproportionately: large, with shorter 
and wider muzzle and jaws than in the Thylacine; the tail 
is of only moderate length and somewhat shaggy; the hallux 
is wanting. In size and build, the Tasmanian Devil resembles 
a badger and has long and heavy fossorial claws on the fore 
feet; the hair is rough and shaggy, black in colour with white 
patches. The animal has received its name from its fierce and 
savage disposition and is almost as destructive to sheep as 
the Thylacine. 

The five species of Dasyurus are distributed through Tas- 
mania, Australia and New Guinea and are called ‘‘ Native Cats” ; 
they are much smaller animals than the two preceding genera, 
not exceeding a domestic cat in size. As the Thylacine imitates 
a wolf and the Tasmanian Devil a badger, the dasyures resemble 
the civets. In them the dental formula is the same as in 
Sarcophilus, but the teeth have higher and sharper cusps. The 
head has a narrow, tapering muzzle and narrow ears; the body 
is long and the tail of moderate length. The limbs are short 
and slender and a small hallux is present in some of the species. 
The fur is grey or brown, with numerous white spots, and the 
tail is covered with long hair, but not bushy. The dasyures 
are largely arboreal and prey upon small mammals, birds 
and eggs. 

Until the arrival of the true Carnivora from the north, 
their réle was taken in South America by predaceous marsupials, 
which persisted as late as the presumably Pliocene beds of 
Monte Hermoso. Little is known of them in that stage, 


HISTORY OF THE MARSUPIALIA 635 


however, or in the older Parand, but abundant material 
representing those of the Santa Cruz has been collected. 
Among these there was a considerable range of size and some 
variety of structure, and they all differed in certain respects 
from the modern Australian genera, differences which have led 
some authorities to deny the marsupial character of all these 
South American forms. The differences are of three kinds: 
(1) there are no vacuities in the bony palate; (2) the milk- 
dentition is less reduced, the canines and one or two premolars 
being changed ; (3) the enamel of the teeth, in the only genus 
({Borhyena) which hasbeen examined microscopically, resembles 
in its minute features that of the placentals and lacks the 
marsupial characters. Though by no means unimportant, 
these differences are altogether outweighed by the thoroughly 
marsupial nature of all other parts of the skeleton, and I can- 
not but agree with Dr. Sinclair ' in including them in the same 
family with the Tasmanian Thylacine. 

The genus {Prothylacynus was especially like the latter 
and must have had a very similar appearance, though in the 
restoration (Fig. 297) the colour-pattern is changed to one of 
longitudinal stripes, as more probably pertaining to so ancient 
and primitive a form. The humerus had the epicondylar 
foramen, and a large vestige of the hallux was retained, though 
it could not have been visible in the living animal. 

A more specialized Santa Cruz genus was {fBorhyena 
(Fig. 244, p. 494), an animal of about the same length and height 
as {Prothylacynus and the Thylacine, but much more massive 
and powerful. The skull was remarkable for the small size 
of the brain-case and the great spread of the zygomatic arches, 
which gave a rounded and almost cat-like appearance to the 
head, as is shown in the restoration (Fig. 244). In this genus 
the upper incisors were reduced to three, a very unusual thing 
among the Polyprotodonta, and the humerus had lost the 


1Reports of the Princeton University Expeditions to Patagonia, Vol. IV, 
Pt. 3. 


LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


636 


“AYISIOATUL) WOJDOUNT JO ULNEsNUL oY} UI SUOPOTOHS WOTF qasiuy “oO Aq 


“Qunjsngos wnruayyn19aqUy |) e1ey}0d44| pues (snovuobnjod snuhavifiyjo4g |) jerdnsieut snose 


po104soyy 
paid zn1Q ByUVg — "16% 


“OL 


HISTORY OF THE MARSUPIALIA 637 


epicondylar foramen. ‘{Prothylacynus and +Borhyena were the 
largest of the Santa Cruz flesh-eaters and no doubt pursued the 
smaller and more defenceless ungulates, but were hardly 


Fie. 298. —Skull of tBorhyena, Santa Cruz. (After Sinclair, Reports Princeton 
‘University Expeditions to Patagonia, Vol. IV.) 


sufficiently powerful to attack successfully the larger hoofed. 
animals, which were probably well able to defend them- 
selves. 

Associated with these larger predaceous marsupials were 
several much smaller kinds, ranging in size from a fox to a 
weasel, which must. have preyed upon the abundant rodents 
and other small 
mammals and birds. 
One of these ({Am- 
phiproviverra) had 
an opposable hallux, 


somewhat as in the Fig. 299. — Skull of small predaceous marsupial ({ Amphi- 

opossums, and was _ proviverra manzaniana), showing the punctured wound 
from a bite. Princeton University Museum. 

therefore probably 

arboreal. An interesting specimen in the museum of Princeton 

University illustrates the pugnacity of these small creatures ; 

it is a skull in which the left upper canine was completely 


638 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


torn out, the circular puncture of the enemy’s bite being un- 
mistakable and the healed edges of the wound proving that 
the loss of the tooth was suffered during life. In structure, 
these smaller animals differed so little from the larger ones, 
that no particular description of them is needed. In the 
restoration of {Cladosictis (Fig. 300) the spotted pattern of 
the Australian dasyures, or native cats, has been taken as a 
model. 

In the Deseado formation the predaceous marsupials have 
been less abundantly found than in the Santa Cruz and there 
can be little doubt that the group is very inadequately repre- 
sented by the material so far collected. Only two genera, 
known from lower jaws, have been described, but one of these 
(tProborhyena) is of interest because of its enormous size, 
far surpassing any of the Santa Cruz forms and equalling the 
largest modern bears.. This is another illustration of the un- 
usual relationship between the Deseado and Santa Cruz 
faunas, the older stage so frequently having the larger 
animals. 

Predaceous marsupials of small size may be traced back to 
the Casa Mayor formation, but very little is yet known of 
them. There is no obvious difficulty in the way of their 
derivation from opossum-like forms, such as are found in the 
Cretaceous of North America and probably of South America 
also. 

The relation of the South American to the Australian 
marsupials offers problems of unusual interest, a discussion 
of which would be impracticable here. Several alternative 
solutions of the problem have been offered and great differences 
of opinion exist with regard to it. To my mind the most 
probable suggestion is that a land-connection, by way of the 
Antarctic continent, existed in early Tertiary times, by means 
of which the ancestors of the Australian marsupials migrated 
from South America, though this explanation is rejected by 
several eminent authorities. 


HISTORY OF THE MARSUPIALIA 639 


Cruz stage. 


a 
— 


S, 


“1, LG 


— 
OF O77 


640 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


SUBORDER DIPROTODONTA 


North .America never had any representatives of this 
suborder, but South America possessed many of them in the 
Santa Cruz Miocene and one genus (Cenolestes) has survived 
to the present time. Australia, on the other hand, has three 
well-defined families of the suborder, the kangaroos, phalangers 
and wombats, but no member of any of these has ever been 
found outside of the Australian region. So far as we know, 
therefore, the suborder is and always has been confined to 
the southern hemisphere. 

The modern South American genus Cenolestes is a small, 
rat-like animal and very rare; it.has been found only in Ecuador 
and Colombia. Its denti- : 
tion is not at all typically 
diprotodont, but rather 
intermediate in character 
between the latter and the 
Polyprotodonta. The 
dental formula is: 74, ¢4, 
pi, m4, X2=46. The, 
upper incisors are small and of subequal size, though the 
second is somewhat the largest of the series, and the canine 
is considerably larger and more prominent than any of them. 
The foremost lower incisor is long and pointed and directed 
almost straight forward; the other lower incisors and the 
canine are minute and can have little or no functional - 
value. The premolars are small and simple and the upper 
molars quadritubercular, the third one triangular, and the 
fourth very small and apparently about to disappear. Such 
teeth would seem to indicate a vegetable diet, but it is reported 
that the animal subsists chiefly upon small birds and their 
eggs. The skull, which is typically marsupial in all its char- 
acters, is most like that of the smaller Australian native cats 
(Dasyuride) and the feet show no signs of the syndactyly 


Fig. 301. —Skull of Cenolestes obscurus, en- 
larged. (After Sinclair.) 


HISTORY OF THE MARSUPIALIA 641 


which all the other diprotodonts display so clearly. Dr. 
Gregory is “‘inclined to regard Ccnolestes and its allies as an 
independent suborder, an offshoot of primitive Polyprotodonts 
which has paralleled the Diprotodonts in certain characters 
of the dentition.” ! 

Evidently, the animals of this series were extremely rare 
or absent in the areas where the known South American de- 
posits of the Pleistocene and 
Pliocene were laid down, for 
there is a very long hiatus 
in their history from the 
Recent to the Santa Cruz, 
during which none has yet 
been found, except one genus 
(tZygolestes) in the Parand. 
In the Santa Cruz, however, 
there was a great abundance 
of these little marsupials, to 
which various generic names 
have been given and which 
displayed considerable vari- Fic. 302. — Lower jaws of Santa Cruz ceno- 
ety in the forms of the teeth. _lestids, enlarged. A, f@arzonia patagonica, 

2 B, t Abderites crassignathus. C, tCallomenus 
Some (e.g. tGarzonia) agreed —tigatus. (After Sinclair, in Reports Prince- 
with Cenolestes in having no" aa Spee) ho eeeazonen, 
trenchant shearing teeth; 
behind the large, procumbent lower incisor, followed four or 
five very minute teeth, which must have been nearly or quite 
functionless, ‘succeeded by the well-developed molars. Other 
genera (e.g. tAbderites) had a similar dentition, with the im- 
portant exception that the last upper premolar and first 
lower molar were enlarged and trenchant, together forming 
a shearing pair; these teeth were vertically fluted or mbbed 
in very characteristic fashion. The Australian phalangers 


iW. K. Gregory, The Orders of Mammals; Bull. Amer. Mus. Nat. History, 
Vol. XXVII, p. 211. 


2T 


642 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


have very similar trenchant and fluted teeth, but in that 
family the lower one of the pair is the last premolar, not the 
first molar. Marsupials of this type have not been found in 
formations older than the Deseado. 

The relationship of these South American genera to the 
Australian phalangers is a very interesting question from the 
standpoint of mammalian distribution, but is not likely to 
receive a positive answer until something is learned regarding 
the history of the Australian family. 


SUBORDER {ALLOTHERIA 


This extinct suborder is still very imperfectly understood, 
for it is known almost exclusively from jaws and teeth; so far, 
the skull of one genus and 
</| most of that of another have 

Saf, been obtained, but hardly any- 
thing of the skeleton. The 
jAllotheria were small or mi- 
i 4 nute marsupials, herbivorous 
Fig. 303. —Skull of Paleocene fallothere OF omnivorous, which had lost 
(tPtilodus gracilis), enlarged, Fort Union g]] trace of the canines and 
stage. (After Gidley.) a eee 
had one pair of incisors above 
and below, which grew from persistent pulps and had a scal- 
priform, rodent-like character. The molars were composed 
of numerous tubercles (whence the name “ tMultituber- 
culata,’”’ often applied to the group) arranged in two or three 
longitudinal rows, and the premolars were either like the 
molars, but of simpler pattern, or compressed, sharp-edged and 
trenchant. The fAllotheria were among the most ancient 
of mammals and have been found in the Triassic of Europe, the 
Jurassic of Europe and South Africa, the Jurassic and Cre- 
taceous of North America and the Paleocene of both northern 
continents, while the South American Eocene (Casa Mayor) 
had certain problematical genera (+Polydolopide), which may 
be referable to the ftAllotheria or to the Cenolestes series. 


HISTORY OF THE MARSUPIALIA 643 


The suborder was thus preéminently a Mesozoic one and, 
with the doubtful exception of South America, it is not known 
to have passed beyond the limits of the Paleocene. There 
is not the least likelihood 
that any existing mammals 
were derived from the jAllo- 
theria. 

While the 7Allotheria 
have an antiquity at least 
equal to that of any other 
mammals known, there were 
other groups in the Jurassic 
and Cretaceous, which, so 
farus may be judged: trom, 216-308 — Hess of heihadtes gravis, abent 

natural size. Restored froma skull in the 
teeth alone, would seem to United States National Museum. 
have been ancestral to the 
other marsupials and to the placentals. It would serve no 
useful purpose to describe these minute creatures, which are 
so very incompletely known, though to the specialist they are 
of the highest interest. The genera found in the Triassic 
of North Carolina may or may not represent the primitive 
mammalian stock. 


The question of the origin of the Mammalia is still involved 
in great obscurity, and the most divergent opinions are held 
concerning it. It remains an unsolved problem whether the 
mammals were all descended from a common stock, or have 
been derived from two independent lines of ancestry, or, in 
technical phrase, whether the class is monophyletic or diphy- 
letic. Assuming, as seems most probable from present know- 
ledge, that the mammals are monophyletic, the question next 
arises: From what lower vertebrates are they descended ? 
A great controversial literature has grown up around this 
problem, one party regarding the Amphibia and the other the 
Reptilia as the parent group. The paleontological evidence, 


644 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


while not conclusive, is decidedly in favour of the latter view. 
In the Triassic of South Africa is found a group of reptiles 
which approximated the mammals very much more closely 
than do any other known representatives of the lower verte- 
brates. While it is not believed that any of these Triassic 
reptiles were directly ancestral to the mammals, they did, 
to a very great extent, bridge the gap between the two classes 
and show us what the reptilian ancestors of the mammals were 
probably like. 

With perhaps the exception of certain Insectivora, the Pal- 
eocene faunas contained few, if any, ancestors of modern mam- 
mals. These originated in some region which has not been 
identified, but may be plausibly conjectured to be central 
Asia, whence they migrated westward to Europe and eastward 
to North America, reaching both of those continents in the 
lower Eocene. From that time onward they increased and 
multiplied, becoming more and more differentiated through 
divergent evolution, until the existing state of things was at- 
tained. From the lower Eocene we are on firm ground, and, 
though very much remains to be learned, much has already 
been accomplished in the way of tracing the history and develop- 
ment of many mammalian orders. It has been my endeavour 
in the body of this book to sketch the better established and 
more significant parts of this marvellous story. 


po a ee a 


CHAPTER XVIII 
MODES OF MAMMALIAN EVOLUTION 


THROUGHOUT this book the theory of evolution has been 
taken for granted, as it seemed superfluous to present an out- 
line of the evidence upon which that theory rests. ‘‘ Descent 
with modification’’ is now accepted among naturalists with 
almost complete unanimity, but, unfortunately or otherwise, 
this general agreement does not extend beyond the point of 
believing that the present organic world has arisen by descent 
from simpler and simpler forms. The application of the theory 
to concrete cases is beset with grave difficulties and gives rise 
to the most divergent views. The uninitiated reader who 
takes up a treatise upon some animal group may well be sur- 
prised to see the apparently minute accuracy with which the 
genealogy of the series is set forth and the complex relation- 
ships of its members marshalled in orderly array. Another 
treatise on the same subject, however, while agreeing perfectly 
with the first as to the facts, will contradict its conclusions 
in almost every particular. Indeed, so notorious did this 
become, that ‘‘phylogenetic trees’? were rather a laughing- 
stock, and most naturalists lost interest in the problems of 
phylogeny and turned to fields that seemed more promising. 

To some extent, this almost hopeless divergence is inherent 
in the very nature of the problem, which deals with the value 
of evidence and the balancing of probabilities, as to which men 
must be expected to differ ; but there is another and more potent 
cause of the discrepancy. When the contradictory schemes are 
analyzed, it is seen that each is founded upon certain assump- 
tions regarding the evolutionary process, assumptions which 

645 


646 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


are generally implicit and often apparently unconscious. 
In the present state of knowledge, these postulates are, for 
the most part, matters of judgment, incapable of definite 
proof, and they appeal with very different force to different 
minds ; what to one seems almost self-evident, another regards 
as all but impossible. It will, however, be of service to examine 
such of these postulates as are involved in mammalian history. 

It is quite impracticable to construct a genetic series with- 
out making certain assumptions as to the manner in which the 
developmental process operated and the kinds of modification 
that actually did occur. In the preceding chapters, which 
deal with the evolutionary history of various mammalian 
groups, it was repeatedly: stated that, of two contemporary 
genera, one was to be taken as the ancestor of some later form 
and the other regarded as a collateral branch, but it was also 
pointed out that in certain cases, paleontologists differed more 
or less decidedly as to the proper interpretation of the facts; 
it is Just this lack of agreement as to the modes and processes 
of change that forms the root of the difficulty. 

There are instructive analogies between the history, aims 
and methods of comparative philology, on the one hand, and 
zodlogy, on the other. In both sciences the attempt is made to 
trace the development of the modern from the ancient, to 
demonstrate the common origin of things which are now widely 
separated and differ in all obvious characteristics, and to de- 
termine the manner in which these cumulative modifications 
have been effected. At the present time zodlogy is still far 
behind the science of language with regard to the solution of 
many of these kindred problems and has hardly advanced 
beyond the stage which called forth Voltaire’s famous sneer : 
“L’étymologie est une science ou les voyelles ne font rien et 
les consonnes fort peu de chose.””’ Many of the animal gene- 
alogies which have been proposed have no bétter foundation 
than the ‘‘guessing etymologies” of the eighteenth century, 
and for exactly the same reason. Just as the old etymologists 


MODES OF MAMMALIAN EVOLUTION 647 


made their derivations upon the basis of a likeness of sound and 
meaning in the words compared, so the modern zodlogist, 
in attempting to trace the relationships of animals, must proceed 
by balancing their similarities and differences of structure. 
The etymologist had no sure test for distinguishing a true 
derivation from a plausible but false one, and the zodlogist 
finds himself in the same predicament. How much weight 
should be allowed to a given likeness and how far it is offset 
by an accompanying difference, there are no certain means 
of determining, and we are still in search of those laws of organic 
change which shall render such service to zodlogy as Grimm’s 
law did to the study of the Indo-European languages. Doubt- 
less, the analogy may be pushed still farther, and it may be 
confidently assumed that, just as sound principles of etymology 
were established by tracing the changes of words step by step 
from their modern forms to their ancient origins, so the exist- 
ing animal forms must be traced back through the inter- 
mediate gradations to their distant ancestors, before the modes 
of organic development can be deduced from well-ascertained 
facts. 

The evolutionary problem has been attacked by the aid 
of several distinct methods, each of which has its particular 
advantages and its peculiar limitations and drawbacks. Most 
of the methods suffer from the fact that they deal only with 
the present order of things, and thus resemble the attempt to 
work out the derivations of languages that have no literature 
to register their changes. 

(1) Of necessity, the oldest of these methods is Comparative 
Anatomy, which had made great advances in pre-Darwinian 
days. It is the indispensable foundation of the whole in- 
quiry, for an accurate knowledge of Comparative Anatomy is 
absolutely necessary to the use of the other methods; in the 
hands of the great masters it has registered many notable 
triumphs in determining the mutual relationships of animal 
groups; but finality cannot be reached by this method, because 


648 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


it deals only with existing forms and possesses no sure cri- 
terion for determining the value of similarities. It is thus 
unable to distinguish with certainty between those resemblances 
which are due to inheritance from a common ancestry and those 
which have been independently acquired. It is a very fre-. 
quent fallacy to assume that, because two allied groups, 
B and C, possess a certain structure, their common ancestor, 
A, must also have possessed it. This may or may not have 
been the case, and Comparative Anatomy offers no assured 
means of deciding between those alternatives or of confidently 
distinguishing primitive characters from degenerative or retro- 
grade changes. 

(2) Embryology, which is the study of the development of 
the individual animal from the unfertilized egg to the adult 
condition, was long regarded as the infallible test of theoretical 
views in zoélogy. This was on the assumption that individual 
development (ontogeny) is a recapitulation in abbreviated form 
of the ancestral history (phylogeny) of the species, and was called 
by Haeckel ‘‘the fundamental biogenetic law.”’ It was soon 
learned, however, that the ‘“‘recapitulation theory”? was not 
to be implicitly trusted, for structural features which could 
not possibly be a part of ancestral history were imposed upon 
or substituted for those due to phylogenetic inheritance. Now 
the whole theory is strongly questioned, and the absence of any 
universally accepted rules of interpretation, by which the con- 
tradictory embryological data may be harmonized into a con- 
sistent whole, has deprived the method of that authoritative 
character once so generally ascribed to it. It is like dealing 
with a literature which has been vitiated with many forgeries, 
only the grossest of which can be readily detected. Embryol- 
ogy has rendered many great services in the solution of 
zoological problems and will no doubt render many more, 
but it cannot, of itself, reach final conclusions. 

(3) Experimental Zodlogy, especially that part known as 
“Genetics,” one of the newest and most promising provinces 


MODES OF MAMMALIAN EVOLUTION 649 


of the science, has already taught us much concerning the laws 
of inheritance and the manner in which new characters arise, 
and no one can venture to fix the limits of its possible results. 
On the other hand, it does not seem likely that the larger 
problems of relationship and: classification can be solved by 
this method, because of the brief time which the shortness of 
human life allows for the experiments. 

(4) Paleontology suffers from the drawback that much of 
the past history of life is irretrievably lost, and even when the 
record is remarkably complete, as it is for certain chapters 
of the history, the material is but partially preserved. With 
such rare exceptions as are of little practical importance, only 
the hard parts, bones, teeth, etc., are retained and the soft 
parts completely destroyed. Nevertheless, Paleontology has 
the preéminent advantage of offering to the student the actual 
stages of development, and thus, to recur to the simile of lan- 
guage, has preserved original documents and in the true order 
of succession. It is true that it is well-nigh impossible to re- 
construct a phylogenetic series of ancestor and descendant, 
unaffected by theoretical preconceptions, and the differences 
which arise in the interpretation of undisputed facts are caused 
by divergent beliefs concerning the actual course of the evolu- 
tionary process. If final and definitive results are ever to 
be reached, it must be through the coéperation of all the methods 
of research, and such results must be able to stand the tests 
applied by every sound method. On the other hand, the study 
of those phylogenetic series which are generally accepted as 
well established, should furnish us with some fairly definite 
information as to the modes in which development has operated 
in the past, since the order of succession in time fixes a limit 
to the rearrangement of related series. Some of the conclusions 
thus suggested may be stated here. 

I. One of the most fundamental problems concerning the 
course of development is that which deals with parallel and 
convergent evolution. The term parallelism implies that forms 


650 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


having a common origin may independently run through a 
similar course of development and arrive at similar results. 
Illustrations of this principle are given by the many phyla 
of horses, rhinoceroses and camels, which persisted side by side 
through several geological stages, following independent, but 
parallel, courses of change. An even more striking case is 
that of the two subfamilies of the cats, the true felines and the 
tsabre-tooths. Whatever view may be taken of the relation- 
ships of these two groups, it is clear that, at least from the 
upper Oligocene to the Pleistocene, they were separate, but 
kept remarkably even pace with each other in their advance 
and specialization. 

By convergence is meant a similar result which is reached 
by two or more independent lines having different starting 
points, so that the descendants are more alike than were the 
ancestors, and is thus the opposite of divergence, the result 
of which is to make the descendants of common ancestors 
less and less alike with each succeeding stage. Either par- 
allelism or convergence may be involved in the independent 
acquisition of similar characters, of which these are so many 
examples. It is obvious that this problem is fundamental and 
that little real progress is possible until a solution is reached. 
As to the correct solution, there is much difference of opinion 
among naturalists. Some deny altogether the reality and im- 
portance of these modes of development, but such are almost 
exclusively concerned with the modern world; others go to the 
opposite extreme, and looking upon every large group as poly- 
phyletic, consider parallel and convergent development to be 
the rule of evolution. Few paleontologists are disposed to 
doubt that these modes of evolution are very frequent; their 
difficulty is to determine what limits can be drawn, and this 
difficulty can be removed only by much wider and more exact 
knowledge than we now possess. 

‘So far as single structures are concerned, the fossils demon- 
strate unequivocally that they have been independently ac- 


on ne? eee 


MODES OF MAMMALIAN EVOLUTION 651 


quired in a great many cases. The resultant similarity may 
be attained through the loss, the acquisition or the modifica- 
tion of parts. The reduction of toes from the primitive number 
of five to four, three, two, or even one, has happened over and 
over again in the most diverse groups. There is good reason 
to believe that all the early and primitive placental mammals 
had the third trochanter on the femur and the epicondylar 
foramen on the humerus, but in most of the modern groups 
these structures are lost ; and the list of such similar reductions 
of parts might be almost indefinitely extended. 

Of much greater significance is the independent similar 
modification of parts and acquisition of new structures. In- 
numerable examples of this kind of parallel and convergent 
development might be given, but a few will be sufficient to 
illustrate the principle. (1) The odontoid process of the axis 
(second vertebra of the neck) was primitively a bluntly conical 
peg, a form which is still retained in the great majority of 
mammals, but in the true ruminants, the camels, the horses 
and the tapirs, the process is spout-shaped, concave on the 
upper side, convex on the lower. By tracing the development 
of those groups, it has been conclusively demonstrated that 
the change of form took place independently in each of the 
four. (2) The ruminants have molar teeth composed of four 
crescentic cusps arranged in two transverse pairs, the pattern 
called selenodont. The evidence is very strong that this highly 
characteristic molar pattern has been several times inde- 
pendently repeated, as in the true ruminants, the camels, the 
toreodonts and probably other groups also. (3) The family 
tMacrauchenide of the extinct {Litopterna shares with the 
camel tribe the remarkable peculiarity of having the canal for 
the vertebral artery running through the neural arches of the 
neck-vertebre. (4) A very striking instance is afforded by 
the three widely separated groups of hoofed animals, members 
of which had their hoofs transformed into claws; the fchali- 
cotheres arose from the normal perissodactyls (p. 356), the 


652 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


fagriochcerids from the toreodonts and the tEntelonychia 
from the ttoxodonts. From time to time attempts have been 
made to unite two or more of these groups, but in each case 
better material and fuller knowledge have demonstrated the 
unnatural character of such association and the separate 
origin of the peculiar structure. 

Admitting the reality and frequency of these modes of de- 
velopment, a far more difficult problem is to determine the ex- 
tent to which such independent acquisition of similar structures 
has actually been carried, and it is at this point that the widest 
‘ divergences of opinion are to be found. As yet, our knowledge 
is far too imperfect to permit the making of positive statements, 
but there is no evidence which would justify the conclusion 
that the same genus, family or order of mammals ever arose 
independently from radically different ancestors. We have 
no reason to believe that identical groups of mammals were 
ever separately developed in land areas which through long 
periods of time had no means of intercommunication. If such 
a thing ever happened, it must have been the rarest of excep- 
tions. On the other hand, parallelism, by which related forms 
pass through similar stages of development, would seem to 
have been so exceedingly common, as fairly to deserve being 
called a normal method of evolution. As more and better 
material has been gathered, it has grown increasingly clear 
that almost every large group of generic, family or higher 
rank, whose history is known in any adequate measure, con- 
sists of several distinct, though related phyla, which pursued 
more or less closely parallel courses of modification, though 
diverging from one another sufficiently to make the distinction 
of them comparatively easy. The parallelism was thus not 
exact, however perfect it may have been in particular structures, 
and the longer the phyla persisted, the more distinctly did 
they diverge. 

A typical problem, which involves these principles, is 
afforded by the very curious and interesting group of South 


MODES OF MAMMALIAN EVOLUTION 653 


American hoofed animals known as the ftLitopterna (Chap. 
XIII). The many remarkable resemblances between these 
ungulates and the perissodactyls and, more specifically, be- 
tween: the family {Proterotheriide and the horses, have been 
very differently interpreted by paleontologists. Some have 
insisted that the {Litopterna should be merged in the Peris- 
sodactyla, on the ground that such a degree of likeness could 
not have been independently acquired. Others hold that this 
is a remarkable case of parallelism or convergence, and the 
latter is, in my opinion, much the more probable view. Until 
the ancestry of both groups, Perissodactyla and {+Litopterna, 
shall have been definitely ascertained, it will not be practicable 
to make a final decision between these alternatives, nor, if 
the similarities were really independently acquired, to deter- 
mine whether parallel or convergent evolution is involved. 
It is quite possible that both groups were rooted in the common 
ground of the fCondylarthra, and, if so, their relation is one 
of parallelism; but no such common ancestry has been proved, 
and it is equally possible that their ancestry was totally dis- 
tinct. In the latter case the resemblances were due to con- 
vergence. 

Assuming that the remarkable resemblances between the 
{Proterotheriidz and the horses were separately acquired, 
it should be emphasized that these similarities nowhere amount 
to identity. The likenesses are not confined to a few structures, 
but are general throughout the skeleton and may be noted in 
the teeth, skull, trunk, limbs and feet, but in every single one 
of these parts the similarities are offset by differences of great 
significance. No competent anatomist would mistake any of 
the bones of the {proterotheres for the corresponding parts 
of the horses, whatever view he might hold as to the relation- 
ship between the two groups. The case is thus one of a very 
instructive kind, as tending to show that identity of structure 
in so highly complex creatures as mammals is not independently 
attained by widely separated or entirely unrelated forms. 


654 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


Probable as this conclusion is made by all the available evi- 
dence, it cannot be regarded as demonstrated; it is prover- 
bially impossible to prove a negative. 

On the other hand, it is equally probable that nearly related 
forms do very frequently, perhaps normally, pass through 
separate, but closely similar, courses of development. It is 
likely that a new species is usually formed through similar 
and simultaneous modification of many individuals, rather 
than from a single individual or pair. It may be the general 
rule, as almost certainly has often happened, that a new genus 
arises by the separate assumption of the new character by several 
species of the ancestral genus, rather than through the rapid 
diversification of a single species, though, no doubt, parallel 
and divergent modification are both very frequent and im- 
portant processes. Dr. Eigenmann concludes from his study 
of South American fresh-water fishes that a certain new genus 
is even now in process of origin through the transformation of 
several species of an older genus, which in different parts of 
the continent are ial cas but independently, taking 
on the new character. 

Sometimes it is possible to assign a definite reason for the 
independent origin of similar structures in different groups of 
mammals. Except for the head, there is much similarity 
of appearance among the very massive hoofed animals, such 
as the elephants, rhinoceroses, tapirs and hippopotamuses 
of the present time, a fact which induced Cuvier to unite them 
in one order, the ‘‘Pachydermata,’’ a term which has passed 
into vernacular, if metaphorical, usage. No doubt also, 
several extinct groups, such as the fAmblypoda and the 
perissodactyl family of the tTitanotheriide, would have been 
included, had they been known in Cuvier’s day. In the largest 
and heaviest of these animals, the elephants, tamblypods and 
ttitanotheres, there are many close correspondences in all 
parts of the skeleton, which are clearly due to the mechanical 
necessities imposed by the support of immense weight, and 


MODES OF MAMMALIAN EVOLUTION 655 


the developmental history of each group shows that the smaller 
and lighter ancestors were less similar than the larger and more 
massive descendants. Such subsequently acquired likenesses 
are thus obvious examples of convergence and were caused 
by adaptation to similar needs. 

Fiirbringer has shown that among birds size and weight 
of body determine many resemblances between unrelated 
families, the largest forms displaying a more advanced grade 
of specialization. 

It is thus extremely probable that evolution is a highly 
complex process, in which divergent, parallel and convergent 
modes of development are normally concerned. This com- 
plexity greatly increases the difficulty of determining phyloge- 
nies, which would be very much easier could every notable 
resemblance be at once accepted as proof of relationship. 
It often renders impossible the classification of some isolated 
group, which seems to have several incompatible affinities. 
It emphasizes the necessity of founding schemes of classification 
upon the totality of structure and the importance of determin- 
ing the value of characters, whether they are primitive or 
advanced, divergent, parallel or convergent, before attempting 
to use them in classification. 

In looking over the field of mammalian evolution, so far 
as that is recorded by the fossils, the general impression re- 
ceived is that the most important process is divergent develop- 
ment, one line branching out into several. This process became 
especially vigorous and rapid at times of important change in 
the character of the environment, what Osborn has called 
“adaptive radiation.” As we have repeatedly observed in the 
history of particular groups, e.g. the rhinoceroses, horses and 
camels, numerous parallel phyla of the same family existed 
together in certain geological stages, but as these phyla were 
traced back in time, they were found to draw together and dis- 
play themselves as branches of a single stem. This favours the 
inference that the mammalian orders, so far as they are truly 


656 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


natural groups and not arbitrary assemblages, are each of 
single, or monophyletic, origin, and that the parallel and con- 
vergent modes of development, while very frequent and im- 
portant, are subordinate to divergence. 

II. A second problem is whether development among 
mammals is always by means of reduction in the number of 
parts, or whether that number may not be increased. With 
this is involved the so-called law of the “irreversibility of 
evolution,” according to which organs once lost, or reduced to 
a vestigial condition, are never regained; or reéstablished in 
function. There can be no question that the usual mode of 
mammalian development is by reduction in the number of 
parts and the enlargement and elaboration of those which are 
retained, as, for example, in the reduction of five toes to one 
in the series of the horses; but there are’cases which require 
a different explanation. The very numerous teeth of the 
porpoises and dolphins and of the Giant Armadillo are not 
a primitive feature, but must have arisen by a process of multi- 
plication. In the very curious Large-eared Wolf (Otocyon) 
of South Africa the number of molar teeth % exceeds that 
found in any other placental mammal. This feature has been 
interpreted as a proof of marsupial relationship, but, as the 
creature is a typical dog in all other respects, such a relation- 
ship would involve a degree of convergence in development 
that is quite inadmissible without the most cogent evidence. 
Until something is learned regarding the descent of Otocyon, 
no positive statement can be made as to the significance of its 
exceptional dentition, but much the most likely supposition is 
that additional teeth have been developed in an otherwise 
normal canid. However that may be, the testimony of the 
fossils is unequivocally to the effect that the usual mode of 
development among mammals is by a reduction in the number , 
of parts; accompanied by enlargement and specialization in 
those which are retained. 

It is equally clear that the “‘law of irreversibility” holds good 


MODES OF MAMMALIAN EVOLUTION 657 


in a very large number of cases, but whether it is always valid 
is very doubtful. In the Guinea Pig, as in all its family 
(Caviide), there are four toes in the front foot, three in the hind ; 
but Professor Castle has lately succeeded in producing a race 
with four toes in the hind foot. To call this a “‘monstrosity”’ 
or ‘abnormality ” explains nothing; the fact remains that the 
four-toed race has been established and no reason can be 
assigned why the same thing might not happen in nature. If 
Dr. Matthew’s view concerning the origin of the American 
deer from tLeptomeryz (p. 409), should prove to be well founded, 
another example of the same kind would be furnished. In 
{tLeptomeryx of the Oligocene the upper canine was reduced 
to minute, almost vestigial proportions, while in the ancestral 
deer, {Blastomeryx of the lower Miocene, it was a large, scim- 
itar-like tusk. While I am unable to acept this derivation of 
the deer, it may be true nevertheless and, if so, will be a most 
interesting example of the rehabilitation of a vestigial organ. 
Decision must await the discovery of the intermediate forms. 
Many such cases and instances of the addition of parts may be 
so far undetected, but the phylogenetic series, as we have them 
before us, point decidedly to the conclusion that such rehabilita- 
tion or new addition is exceptional. 

III. So far as we are able to follow it by the aid of the fossils, 
development among the mammals would appear to be a re- 
markably direct and unswerving process. When any long- 
lived phylum, made up of numerous well-preserved members, 
is studied, the observer cannot fail to be impressed by the 
straightforward course of the evolutionary process, as though 
the animals were consciously making for a predetermined goal, 
which, needless to say, they were not. A minute cusp makes its 
appearance on a tooth, enlarges steadily in each succeeding 
genus, and ultimately becomes a very important element in 
the pattern ; and in this series of changes there is no oscillation 
backward and forward. In the perissodactyls and a few other 
groups, the premolars in each family gradually and steadily 

2U 


658 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


assumed the size and complexity of molars; beginning at the 
hinder end of the series, these teeth one by one become molari- 
form, not in irregular and haphazard fashion, but by perfectly 
graded stages. The same gradual and direct process was main- 
tained in the oft-recurring reduction of digits among the hoofed 
animals, differing for each group according to the symmetry 
of the foot. In the horses, for example, the first digit became 
vestigial and disappeared, and then the fifth followed, leaving a 
three-toed foot, in which the median digit was notably the 
largest and bore most of the weight. Throughout the Oligo- 
cene and Miocene epochs the horses were all tridactyl, but 
there was a gradual enlargement of the median digit and dwin- 
dling of the laterals, until these became mere dew-claws, not 
touching the ground, and the weight was carried entirely upon 
the median one. Finally, the laterals lost their phalanges and 
were farther reduced to splints, which is the modern condition. 
In the same gradual and unswerving manner the higher artio- 
dactyls went through a process of digital reduction from five to 
two, and numberless other instances of similar sort might be 
adduced. 

On the other hand, the direction of change long followed 
may be departed from, the deviation being due to the introduc- 
tion of a new factor. In the earliest deer the males were horn- 
less, but they developed effective weapons of defence by the 
enlargement of the upper canine teeth into long and sharp, 
sabre-like tusks. When antlers appeared, the work of defence 
was transferred to them, and the tusks began to dwindle, being 
eventually suppressed in those deer which had large and 
complex antlers, though persisting to the present time in the 
hornless Musk Deer and in the small-antlered Muntjaks, 
which can defend themselves with their sharp tusks. 

It would be inaccurate to say that fluctuations in the size 
and effectiveness of parts never occurred; on the contrary, 
there is evidence that such fluctuations in details were not in- 
frequent, and may have been even more common than we sup- 


MODES OF MAMMALIAN EVOLUTION 659 


pose. To give one instance, the very early camels of the upper 
Eocene and lower Oligocene had small canines, which though 
not at all functionless or vestigial, were yet little larger than 
incisors. Though the ancestral camels of the middle and lower 
Eocene are not yet definitely known, there is strong reason to 
believe that in them, as in all of their contemporaries among the 
ungulates, the canines were enlarged and fang-like. If so, the 
canine teeth in the camels underwent decided fluctuations in 
size, being first larger, then smaller and again enlarging. If 
Dr. Matthew’s interesting theory as to the origin of the true 
felines from primitive tsabre-tooth cats (see p. 540) should be 
confirmed, it‘would furnish a very striking example of fluctuat- 
ing development. The acceptance of the theory involves the 
admission of the following changes: (1) The upper canine was 
enlarged and changed into a thin, recurved, scimitar-like tusk ; 
(2) the lower canine was much reduced, becoming little larger 
than the incisors; (3) the lower jaw developed a flange on 
each side from its inferior border, against which the inner side 
of the upper canine rested, when the mouth was closed, and the 
chin was nearly flat, meeting the outer surface of the jaw at a 
right angle. After these peculiarities had been fully established, 
the stock divided into two series; in one, the tmachairodonts, 
the specialization continued along the same lines, assuming 
more and more exaggerated forms, while in the true cats it 
was reversed. The upper canine grew shorter and thicker, 
the lower canine was very greatly enlarged, the lower jaw lost 
its flange, and its external and anterior surfaces no longer met at 
a right angle, but curved gradually into each other. As pre- 
viously stated, such a reversal strikes me as improbable and 
not to be accepted without very much more complete evidence 
than we now have, but it is perfectly possible that such evi- 
dence may be forthcoming. . 

Making the fullest allowance io all such cases of fluctua- 
tion, it remains true that in the great majority of the phyla 
whose history may be followed in some detail, development 


660 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


has been remarkably direct and unswerving. Plasticity of 
organization and capacity for differentiation of structure in 
widely different directions would seem to be limited in the 
mammals, especially among the more advanced groups. 

IV. A question that has been much debated and is still a 
centre of controversy deals with continuity and discontinuity 
in development. In other words, does evolution proceed by 
the cumulative effects of minutely graded modifications, or 
is it a succession of leaps and sudden changes? The differ- 
ence is illustrated by many breeds and races of animals and 
plants under domestication, the history of which is known. 
Some have arisen from “‘sports,’’ sudden and marked devia- 
tions from the parent stock, which ‘“‘breed true” from the 
beginning. Of this character was the Ancon breed of sheep, 
which was derived from a single short-legged ram that was 
born of normal parents in 1791 and transmitted his peculiarities 
to his offspring. Professor Castle’s race of four-toed Guinea 
Pig originated from one four-toed individual, which suddenly 
appeared in a litter of normal ones. Other breeds have been 
formed by the careful and long-continued selection of minute 
individual variations. -Which of these methods is the one that 
has been followed under natural conditions? or has now one 
method been used and now another, according to circumstances ? 
The problem is one that has a profound and far-reaching im- 
portance for the whole of evolutionary philosophy, which 
largely hinges upon it. 

Unfortunately, paleontology is not well fitted to give a 
decisive answer to these questions, for, however complete the 
record of any given series may be, we never can be sure that it 
actually is so, and interruptions in the continuity of develop- 
ment might be due either to progress by abrupt changes, or 
to a failure to preserve all the gradations. For that reason 
different observers have put divergent interpretations upon 
the facts as we have them. The general impression that is 
made by the study of a well-preserved mammalian phylum 


MODES OF MAMMALIAN EVOLUTION 661 


is that of continuity, but a closer analysis reveals numerous 
small breaks, and suggests, so far as the record may be trusted, 
that the advance was made by separate steps, though very 
short ones. Indeed, it has been objected that so completely 
recorded a phylum as that of the horses must be illusory, be- 
cause there is not perfect continuity between the successive 
genera, it being taken for granted that such continuity is the 
normal mode of development. 

Dr. Schlosser, on the other hand, is a disbeliever in perfect 
continuity. ‘I am of the opinion that we must reckon with 
development per saltum more frequently than is usually done. 
We have been decidedly spoiled by the phylogenetic series of 
quiet. successive development, such as we meet with in the 
Oligocene and Miocene of North America in the titanotheres, 
oreodonts, camels, etc., and in the upper Eocene of Europe in 
Paleotherium, Paloplotherium, etc., as well as from the Oligocene 
into the Pleistocene, e.g., in the rhinoceroses, cervids, suillines, 
amphicyonids. Even here we often make for ourselves arti- 
ficial difficulties by balancing, with an exaggerated scrupu- 
lousness, the individual forms one against another, to see 
whether they really are exactly fitted to fill up any gaps. It is 
not the lack of suitable intermediate forms which so often 
renders difficult the establishment of genetic series, but, quite 
on the contrary, the abundance of the forms at our disposal, 
among which we must make achoice. If, however, the develop- 
ment of phyla did not take place in the same region and under 
constant climatic and topographical conditions, we must 
necessarily find apparent gaps, for adaptation to a new environ- 
ment occasions rapid changes of organization, so that the 
immediate descendant will often deviate considerably from its 
ancestor. But that must not mislead us into denying the 
connection between such forms.” ? 

Better adapted to a solution of this problem than mammals 


1M. Schlosser, Beitrige zur Kenntniss der Oligozinen Landsaugethiere aus 
dem Fayum, Vienna, 1911, p. 165. 


662 LAND MAMMALS IN THE WESTERN HEMISPHERE 


are the fossil shells of Mollusca, the development of which 
may often be traced through a thick series of strata, each step 
of modification being represented by innumerable individuals. 
In very many instances it appears that each species in a series of 
successive modifications had many contemporary fluctuating 
variations, but the change from one species to the next succeed- 
ing one was by a small though abrupt mutation. The differ- 
ence between two successive species may be no greater than 
that between two contemporary variants of the same species, 
but it was a constant and not a fluctuating difference. There is 
much reason to believe that such is at least a frequent mode of 
development, namely, that from species to species and genus 
to genus the transition has been by slight and sudden changes. 
The possibility that such abrupt changes, however slight, are 
illusory and due to small gaps in the record, must be admitted, 
and though this does not seem to be a very likely explanation, 
it is given plausibility by the almost perfect continuity between 
successive species which may sometimes be observed. 

The extremely important and significant distinction be- 
tween contemporary, fluctuating variations and successive, 
constant mutations was first drawn by Waagen, who says of 
them: ‘One must therefore distinguish strictly between 
varieties in space and those in time. To describe the former, 
the long-used name ‘variety’ will-suffice, for the latter, on the 
other hand, I would propose, for the sake of brevity, a new 
term, ‘mutation.’ A species as such, with reference to its con- 
nection with earlier or later forms, may be conceived and re- 
garded as a mutation. But also in regard to the value of these 
two concepts, just established (variety and mutation), an en- 
tirely different value is displayed on closer consideration. While 
the former appears extremely vacillating, of small systematic 
value, the latter, even though in minute characteristics, is ex- 
tremely constant and always to be recognized with certainty.”’} 


1W. Waagen, Die Formenreihe des Ammonites subradiatus, Benecke’s 
Geognost.-Paleont. Beitr., Bd. I, pp. 185-186. 


MODES OF MAMMALIAN EVOLUTION 663 


The same conception was adopted and elaborated by Neu- 
mayr: ‘Still other characteristics appear, which mark muta- 
tions as something different from varieties, especially that, as 
a rule, there is a definite direction of mutation in each series, 
the same characters changing in the same sense through a con- 
siderable succession of strata.’’ 1 

Whether development was continuous or discontinuous, 
there is no reason to suppose that the amount and rate of modi- 
fication were always constant. On the contrary, there is 
strong evidence that at times of great climatic or geographical 
changes, or when a region was invaded by a horde of immi- 
grants, widespread readjustments were accomplished with 
comparative rapidity. Indeed, such periods of relatively quick 
changes have long seemed to be implied by the facts of the 
paleontological records. 


It is only too clear that the principles as to the modes of 
mammalian development which can be deduced from the his- 
tory of the various groups must, for the most part, be stated 
in a cautious and tentative manner, so as not to give an undue 
appearance of certainty to preliminary conclusions, which 
should be held as subject to revision with the advance of know- 
ledge. Much has, however, been already learned, and there is 
every reason to hope that Experimental Zodlogy and Paleon- 
tology, by combining their resources, will eventually shed full 
light upon a subject of such exceptional difficulty. 


1M. Neumayr, Die Stamme des Thierreiches, Bd. I, p. 60. 


GLOSSARY 


Acetabulum, the deep socket in the hip-bone for the head of the femur. 

Acromion, the projecting lower end of the spine of the shoulder-blade. 

Alisphenoid canal, canal in the base of the skull for the external carotid 
artery. 

fAllotheria, an extinct suborder of Mesozoic and Paleocene Marsupials. 

tAmblypoda, an extinct order of hoofed mammals. 

Anconeal fossa, a deep pit on the posterior side of the humerus, near the 
lower end. 

Anconeal process, see Olecranon. 

fAncylopoda, an extinct suborder of Perissodactyla. 

Angle, of the lower jaw, the postero-inferior corner. 

Angular process, a hook-like projection from the angle of the lower jaw. 

Anterior nares, the forward opening of the nasal passage. 

Anthropoidea, Monkeys, Apes, Man; suborder of Primates. 

Appendicular skeleton, bones of the limbs and limb-girdles. 

Araucanian, Pliocene of Argentina, including the Catamarca and Monte 
Hermoso. 

Artiodactyl, see Artiodactyla. 

Artiodactyla, Cattle, Deer, Camels, Pigs, etc., etc., order of hoofed mammals. 

Ascending ramus, posterior, vertical portion of the lower jaw. 

Astragalus, the ankle-bone. 

Astraponotus Beds, upper Eocene or more probably, lower Oligocene of 
Patagonia. 

jAstrapotheria, an extinct order of hoofed mammals. 

Atlas, the first vertebra of the neck. 

Auditory bulla, one of a pair of inflated bony capsules at the base of the skull ; 
the tympanic bone. 

Auditory meatus, the entrance to the bulla. 

Axial skeleton, the skull, backbone, ribs and breast-bone. 

Axis, the second vertebra of the neck. 


-}Batytheria, an extinct order of elephant-like mammals. 
Biceps muscle, the large flexor muscle of the front of the upper arm; its 
contraction bends the elbow. 
Bicipital groove, a groove between the tuberosities of the humerus for the 
upper tendons of the biceps. 
tExtinct. 
665 


666 GLOSSARY 


Brachyodont, low-crowned teeth, with early-formed roots. 
Bridger stage, middle Eocene of N. W. America. 
Bunodont, teeth composed of conical tubercles. 


Calcaneum, the heel-bone. 

Cannon-bone, a compound bone formed by the coéssification of two or more 
long bones of the foot. 

Cape Fairweather, marine Pliocene of Patagonia. 

Carnassial, a shearing, sectorial tooth in a flesh-eater. 

Carnivora, Wolves, Bears, Cats, etc., etc.; an order of placental mammals. 

Carnivorous, flesh-eating, predaceous. 

Carpal, one of the elements of the carpus. 

Carpus, the wrist-bones. 

Casa Mayor stage, terrestrial formation of Patagonia, probably Eocene. 

Catamarca, a Pliocene formation of Argentina. 

Caudal vertebra, those of the tail. 

Central, a small carpal, wedged in between the two rows. 

Centrum, the body of a vertebra. 

Cervical vertebre, those of the neck. - 

Cetacea, Whales, etc.; a cohort of marine mammals. 

Chelodactyla, suborder of Perissodactyla. 

Chevron-bones, Y-shaped bones attached to the under side of the caudal 
vertebra. 

Chevrotains, ‘‘ Mouse Deer,” of the suborder Tragulina. 

Chiroptera, Bats, an order of placental mammals. 

Class, a group of the fifth order in classification. 

Clavicle, the collar-bone. 

Cnemial crest, a massive prominence on the front face of the tibia, near the 
upper end. 

Cohort, division of infraclass, containing a series of related orders. 

¢Condylarthra, an extinct order of hoofed mammals. 

Condyle, a knob-like, articular protuberance. 

Convergence, or Convergent Evolution, similar forms resulting from two or 
more independent lines of descent. 

Coracoid, a hook-like bone, fused with the shoulder-blade in the higher 
mammals. 

Coronoid process, a projection in front of the condyle of the lower jaw, to 
which the temporal muscle is attached. 

Cotyles, concavities on the atlas to receive the occipital condyles of the skull. 

Cranium, the part of the skull above and behind the eyes, which lodges the 
brain and higher sense-organs. 

tCreodonta, an extinct suborder of the Carnivora. 

Cretaceous, third and last of the Mesozoic periods. 

Crown, the exposed part of a tooth. 


GLOSSARY 667 


Deltoid crest, a ridge on the anterior face of the humerus for the attachmeut 
of the deltoid muscle. 

Dental formula, an arithmetical expression of the number and kinds of teeth. 

Dermoptera, Flying Lemur, order of placental mammals. 

Deseado stage, terrestrial formation of Patagonia, probably Oligocene. 

Didelphia, lower infraclass of the Eutheria. 

Digit, a finger or toe. 

Diprotodonta, Kangaroos, etc., a suborder of Marsupials. 

Dorsal vertebra, those which carry ribs. 

Duplicidentata, Hares and Rabbits, suborder of Rodentia. 


Edentata, Sloths, Anteaters, etc., an order of placental mammals. 

Edentates, see Edentata. 

fEmbrithopoda, an extinct order of elephant-like mammals. 

Embryo, young animal in early stages of development within the uterus. 

tEntelonychia, extinct suborder of the }Toxodontia. 

Eocene, second of the five Tertiary epochs. 

Epicondylar foramen, perforation of the internal epicondyle for transmission 
of the ulnar nerve. 

Epicondyle, a rough prominence on each end of the humeral trochlea. 

Epiphysis, the ends of the long bones, which ossify separately and do not 
coalesce with the shaft until growth ceases. 

Equus Beds, see Sheridan stage. 

Eutheria, the higher subclass of mammals; viviparous. 


Family, group of the third order in classification, typically containing several 
genera. “ 

Fauna, the totality of animals of a given time or place. 

Femur, the thigh-bone. 

Fibula, the external bone of the lower leg. 

Fissipedia, land-carnivores ; suborder of the Carnivora. 

Flora, the totality of plants of a given time or place. 

Foetus, young animal in the later stages of development within the uterus. 

Foramen, a perforation in a bone for the passage of a nerve or blood-vessel. 

Foramen magnum, the opening in the occiput for the passage of the spinal 
cord to the brain. 

Formation, a general term for a group of strata, laid down continuously and 
under uniform conditions. 

Frontal, one of a pair of bones which form the anterior part of the cranial 
roof; the forehead. 


Genus, group of the second order in classification, typically containing several 
species. 

Glenoid cavity, (of the squamosal) the articular surface for the condyle of the 
lower jaw; (of the scapula) the socket for the head of the humerus. 


668 GLOSSARY 


Hallux, the first digit of the pes, or great toe. 

Herbivorous, plant-eating. 

t+Homalodotheres, see tEntelonychia. 

Horizontal ramus, the tooth-carrying part of the lower jaw. 

Humerus, the bone of the upper arm. 

Hyoid arch, a series of bony rods, attached to the base of the cranium, for 
support of the tongue. 

{Hyopsodonta, an extinct suborder of the Insectivora. 

Hypsodont, high-crowned teeth, with late-formed roots. 

Hyracoidea, Klipdases, an order of hoofed mammals. 


Ilium, the anterior element of the hip-bone. 

Inferior maxillary, the lower jaw. 

Infraclass, division of subclass. 

Insectivora, Moles, Shrews, etc., an order of placental mammals, 
Ischium, the postero-superior element of the hip-bone. 


John Day stage, upper Oligocene of N. W. America. 
Jugal, the cheek-bone. See Malar. 
Jurassic, the second of the Mesozoic periods. 


Lachrymal, a small bone on the front edge of the orbit. 

Lachrymal foramen, a canal for the tear-duct piercing the lachrymal bone. 
Lemuroidea, Lemurs, suborder of the Primates. 

Lemurs, see Lemuroidea. 

Limb-girdles, the bones which attach the limbs to the body. 

Lipotyphla, suborder of the Insectivora. 

tLitopterna, extinct order of hoofed mammals. 

Loricata, Armadillos and Glyptodonts; the armoured Edentates. 

Lumbar vertebrz, those of the loins. 

Lunar, the middle bone in the upper row of the carpus. 


Magn.m, the middle bone in the lower row of the carpus; supports the third 
digit or middle finger. 

Malar, cheek-bone. See Jugal. 

Malleolar bone, the lower end of the fibula, persisting as a separate bone after 
loss of the shaft. 

Malleolus, external, the lower end of the fibula. 

Malleolus, internal, process from the lower end of the tibia. 

Mammal, a warm-blooded vertebrate, which suckles its young. 

Mandible, the lower jaw. 

Manubrium, the anterior segment of the breast-bone. 

Manus, the hand or fore foot. 

Marsupial, see Marsupialia. 


GLOSSARY 669 


Marsupialia, Opossums, Kangaroos, etc., etc.; only order of the infraclass 
Didelphia. 

Marsupium, the hairy pouch in which the young Marsupials are carried. 

Masseter muscle, a muscle of mastication, attached to the lower jaw and in- 
ferior border of the zygomatic arch. 

Mastoid, that part of the periotic bone which is exposed on the surface of the 
skull. 

Mastoid process, a spine-like outgrowth of the mastoid. 

Maxillary, the upper jawbone. 

Medullary cavity, the marrow cavity of a long bone. 

Mesozoic, the middle era of geological time. 

Metacarpal, a member of the metacarpus. 

Metacarpus, the long bones of the manus, or fore foot. 

Metapodial, a metacarpal or metatarsal. 

Metatarsal, a member of the metatarsus. 

Metatarsus, the long bones of the pes, or hind foot. 

Miocene, the fourth of the Tertiary epochs. 

Monodelphia, placental mammals; the higher infraclass of the Eutheria. 

Monophyletic, derived from a single line of ancestry. 

Monotremata, Duck-billed Mole and Spiny Anteaters ; the only existing order 
of the Prototheria. 

Monte Hermoso stage, upper Pliocene of Argentina. 

Mouse Deer, chevrotains; suborder Tragulina. 

Mystacoceti, Whalebone Whales; order of the Cetacea. 


Nasal, one of a pair of bones, forming the roof of the nasal passage. 

Navicular, central bone of the tarsus. 

Neural arch, the bony arch of a vertebra. 

Neural canal, the cavity in the arch, lodging the spinal cord. 

Neural spine, or spinous process, the projection arising from the summit of 
the neural arch. 

Notostylops Beds, see Casa Mayor stage. 


Occipital condyles, a pair of knob-like protuberances from the occiput for 
articulation with the first vertebra. 

Occipital crest, an elevated bony ridge around the margin of the occiput. 

Occiput, the posterior surface of the skull. 

Odontoceti, Toothed Whales; order of Cetacea. 

Odontoid process, a peg-like projection from the body of the second vertebra, 
which fits into the ring of the first. 

Olecranon, the heavy projection from the upper end of the ulna, forming 
the point of the elbow. 

Oligocene, the third of the Tertiary epochs. 

Opposable, used of the thumb and great toe, when they can be opposed to the 
other digits. 


670 GLOSSARY 

Orbit, the bony eye-socket. 

Order, a group of the fourth rank in classification, typically including many 
families. 

Oviparous, egg-laying. 


Palate, hard, the bony roof of the mouth. 

Palatine, one of a pair of bones which form the hinder part of the hard 
palate. 

Palatine process, a shelf-like projection of the maxillary, which forms most of 
the hard palate on each side. 

Paleocene, the oldest of the five Tertiary epochs. 

Palmate, form of antler in which the tines are fused into large plates. 

Pampean, Pleistocene, perhaps including the uppermost Pliocene, of Argentina. 

Parallelism, or Parallel Evolution, similar development of related, but szparate 
series. 

Parana stage, lower Pliocene (or perhaps upper Miocene) of Argentina. 

Parietal, one of a pair of large, vaulted bones, which form most of the sides 
and roof of the cranium. 

Paroccipital process, a bony projection from the infero-external angle of the 
occiput. 

Patagonian stage, marine lower Miocene of Patagonia. 

Patella, the knee-cap. 

Pecora, true Ruminants, suborder of Artiodactyla. 

Pelvic girdle, see Pelvis. 

Pelvis, the hip-bones. 

Periotic, a small, dense bone, which lodges the internal labyrinth of the ear. 

Pes, the hind foot. 

Petrosal, see Periotic. 

Phalanx, one of the joints of the fingers or toes. F 

Pholidota, Pangolins or Scaly Anteaters; order of placental mammals. 

Phylum, a genetic series of ancestors and descendants within a family. 

Pilosa, Sloths, Anteaters, etc.; suborder of Edentata. 

Pinnipedia, Marine Carnivores; suborder of Carnivora. 

Pisiform, an accessory bone attached to the postero-external angle of the 
carpus. 

Placenta, a temporary structure connecting mother and foetus, by means of 
which the foetus is nourished in the womb. 

Placental, having a placenta; the Monodelphia. 

Pleistocene, the older of the two Quaternary epochs. 

Pliocene, the fifth and last of the Tertiary epochs. 

Pollex, the first digit of the manus, or thumb. 

Polyphyletic, derived from two or more distinct lines of ancestry. 

Polyprotodonta, Opossums, ete.; suborder of Marsupials. 

Posterior nares, the hinder opening of the nasal passage. 


GLOSSARY 671 


Postglenoid process, a bony ridge behind the glenoid cavity of the squamosal 
to prevent backward dislocation of the jaw. 

Postorbital process, a bony projection from the frontal or jugal, bounding 
the eye-socket behind. 

Premaxillary, the anterior bone of the upper jaw, carrying the incisor teeth. 

Primates, Lemurs, Monkeys, Apes and Man; cohort and order of placental 
mammals. 

Proboscidea, Elephants, etc.; order of hoofed mammals. 

Process, a distinct prominence or projection of bone for the attachment of 
muscle or ligament. 

{Proglires, an extinct suborder of the Insectivora. 

Prototheria, most primitive subclass of mammals; oviparous. 

Pubis, the postero-inferior element of the hip-bone. 

Pyramidal, the external bone in the upper row of the carpus. 

¢Pyrotheria, an extinct suborder of tToxodontia. 

Pyrotherium Beds, see Deseado stage. 


Radius, the internal bone of the fore-arm. 

Rodent, see Rodentia. 

Rodentia, Gnawers; order of placental mammals. 

Rotular groove, a broad, shallow groove on the anterior face of the femur, 
near the lower end, in which the knee-cap glides. 

Round ligament, the ligament between the head of the femur and a pit in the 
acetabulum of the hip-bone. 


Sacral vertebre, those of the sacrum. 

Sacrum, a bony mass of fused vertebre, for the support of the hip-bones. 

Sagittal crest, a ridge of bone in the median line of the cranial roof, running 
forward from the occipital crest. 

Scaphoid, the inner bone in the upper row of the carpus. 

Scapho-lunar, a compound bone made up of the coalesced scaphoid, lunar 
and central. 

Scapula, the shoulder-blade. 

Section, primary division of a suborder. 

Sectorial, a carnassial or shearing tooth of a flesh-eater. 

Selenodont, teeth composed of crescent-shaped cusps. 

Shaft, the body of a long bone, comprising most of its length. 

Sheridan stage, older Pleistocene of the Great Plains. 

Shoulder-girdle, the bones to which the fore limb is attached. 

Simplicidentata, Squirrels, Rats, Porcupines, etc., etc. ; suborder of Rodentia. 

Sinus, an air-cavity in one of the skull-bones. 

Sirenia, Sea Cows and Dugong; order of marine mammals. 

Species, the unit group in classification, made up of individuals which are 
most closely similar. 


672 GLOSSARY 


Spine, (of the scapula) a bony ridge on the outside of the shoulder-blade; 
(of the tibia) a single or double prominence from the upper end of the 
shin-bone ; (of a vertebra) the neural spine. 

Squamosal, a bone forming the posterior side-wall of the cranium. 

Sternal ribs, the inferior segments of the ribs, which articulate with the 
breast-bone. 

Sternum, the breast-bone. 

Stratum, a layer of bedded rock. 

Subclass, primary division of class. 

Subfamily, a group of related genera within the family. 

Subgenus, a group of related species within the genus. 

Suborder, primary division of order. 

Subspecies, a definite subdivision of a species. 

Suina, swine-like animals; suborder of Artiodactyla. 

Superfamily, a group of related families. 

Superorder, a group of related orders. 

Supinator ridge, a crest on the outer side, near the lower end of the humerus, 
for attachment of the supinator muscle. 

Symphysis, the line of junction of the two halves of the lower jaw. 

Synonym, a name improperly given to a genus or species already named. 


{Teniodontia, an extinct order of clawed mammals. 

Tarsal, an element of the tarsus. 

Tarsus, the bones of the ankle-joint. 

Temporal muscle, a muscle of mastication attached to the side of the cra- 
nium and the coronoid process of the lower jaw. 

Tertiary, the more ancient of the two Cenozoic periods. 

Thoracic vertebra. see Dorsal. 

Thorax, the bony framework of the chest. 

Tibia, the shin-bone, internal bone of the lower leg. 

{Tillodontia, an extinct order of clawed mammals. 

+Toxodonta, an extinct suborder of the tToxodontia. 

+Toxodontia, an extinct order of hoofed mammals. 

tToxodonts, see {Toxodonta. 

Tragulina, ‘“‘ Mouse Deer’’; suborder of Artiodactyla. 

Transverse processes, projections from the sides of a vertebra. 

Trapezium, internal bone in the lower row of the carpus; supports the first 
digit, or thumb. 

Trapezoid, second bone in the lower row of the carpus; supports the second 
digit, or index finger. 

Triassic, first of the three Mesozoic periods. 

{Triconodonta, an extinct suborder of Mesozoic Marsupials. 

{Trituberculata, an extinct order of Mesozoic mammals. 

Trochanter, a projection from the femur. 


GLOSSARY 673 


Trochanter, third, a hook-like process on the outer side of the shaft of the 
femur, near the middle of its length. 

Trochlea, the pulley-shaped lower end of the humerus for articulation with 
the fore-arm bones. 

Trunk vertebrz, those of the body, the dorsals and lumbars. 

Tubercle, an articular projection on a rib, connecting with the transverse pro- 
cess of a dorsal vertebra. 

Tuberosities (of the humerus), heavy projections from the upper end of the 
bone, in front of the head. 

Tubulidentata, the Aard Vark; an order of placental mammals. 

Tylopoda, Camels and Llamas; suborder of Artiodactyla. 

Tympanic, a bone forming the support of the ear-drum and usually inflated 
into a hollow capsule. 

tTypotheres, see tT ypotheria. 

{Typotheria, an extinct suborder of the {Toxodontia. 


Ulna, the external bone of the fore-arm. 

Unciform, the external bone in the lower row of the carpus; supports the 
fourth and fifth digits, or ring and little fingers. 

Unconformity, the relation between two groups of strata, one of which was 
deposited upon the worn surface or upturned edges of the other. 

Ungual phalanx, the terminal joint of a digit, which supports the claw, nail 
or hoof. 

Unguiculata, clawed mammals; cohort of Monodelphia. 

Ungulata, hoofed mammals; cohort of Monodelphia. 

Ungulates, see Ungulata. 

Uterus, the womb. 


Vagina, the genital canal of the female. 

Variety, a more or less constant group within a species. 
Vertebra, a joint of the backbone. 

Vertebral column, the backbone. 

Viviparous, producing living young. 


+Zeuglodontia, an extinct order of Cetacea. 
Zygapophyses, the projecting processes, by means of which successive verte- 


bre are articulated together. ; 
Zygomatic arch, a bony bridge from the eye-socket to the hinder part of the 


cranium. 


INDEX 


N. B.—The most important references are in heavy-faced type; technical names 
of genera and species are italicized; though most of the specific names are omitted as 
unnecessary. Extinct groups are indicated by a dagger (f). 


Aard Vark, 60 
+Abderites, 627, 641 (jaw 


fig.) 
+Achenodon, ae 361, 369 
(skull fig.), 3 
caueucdenta Bridger, 
369; Uinta, 369; Wasatch, 


370 

tAccelodide, 477 

Adaptive radiation, 655 

yAdinotherium, 462, 473, 
474 (restoration) 

tAdpithecus, 462 

}{Milurocyon, 517, 551 

{4ilurodon, 517, 527 

Atlurus, 546 

Africa, 184, 245, 328, 332, 
417, 419, 421, 422, 426, 
442, 458, 481, 551, 579, 
642, 656; elephants of, 
138; mammals of, 145; 
zodlogy of, 146 

Acassiz, L., 129 

Age, geological, 15 

Agouti, 185 (fig.) 

Agouti, 183 (fig.), 185 

Agoutis, Pleistocene, 218 

jtAgriochceride, 247, 250, 
361, 383, 484, 652; 
Eocene, 383 ; John Day, 
250, 383 ; Oligocene, 383 ; 
Uinta, 267, 385 ; hite 
River, 268, 383 

+Agriochcerids, see tAgrio- 
choeridee 

yt Agriocherus, 252 (restora- 
tion), 361, 383 (skull fig.) ; 
384 (restoration) ; - 385 
(manus fig.) 

Alachua stage, 127, 225 

Alaska, 103, 106, 197, 199, 
202, 203, 332, 418, 419, 
420, 427, 433; tMam- 
moth in, 40; Miocene of, 
118; Oligocene of, 113 
Pleistocene glaciation in, 
131; roleanoeks 133; 
ocene of, 125 

+ Albertogaudrya, 509, 512 

Alce, 65, 151, 156 (fig.), 202, 
208, 362, 411, 412 

ALLEN, J. A., 141, 161 

Alligators, 102 

yAllothere, Paleocene., 642 
(skull fig.) 


tAllotheria, 59, 627, 642 

Alouatta, 578, 585 

Alps, Arctic animals and 
plants of, 193; Eocene, 
104 

tAlticamelus, 224, 362, 388, 
391; restoration, 236 

Amazon, 585; as barrier to 
species, 137 


| +Amblypoda, 60, 443, 508; 


Bridger, 269, 445; Eocene, 
443; Puerco, 286, 454; 
Torrejon, 285, 453; Wa- 
satch, 277, 452; Wind 
River, 274, 450, 452. 

+Amblytatus, 592- 

AMEGHINO, F., 228, 263, 
467, 471, 476, 496, 497, 
613 

America, connections of 
North and South, 123 

American tMastodon, 196; 
restoration, 195 

Americas, marsupials of, 
138 

Amherst expedition, 487 

Amphibia, 55; oy ani 
to mammals, 6 

Ue le ae 304, 525, 
30 


tAmphicyons, 558 

tAmphidolops, 627 

Ley twee 627, 637 ; 
skull fig. 

een ae. 291, 340, 
348, 349 

+Amynodontine, 291, 340, 
341, 346, 350, 351, 353; 
Bridger, 272, 350; Oli- 
pooens, 339; Uinta, 266, 

White’ River, 255, 

346. 


tAmynodonts, see tAmy- 
nodontinz 

3 | tAnacodon, 277, 554, 561 

+Analcitherium, 592 

+Anaptomorphide, 578, 583 

tAnaptomorphus, 281, 578, 
581; head restored, 581 

{Anchitherium, a 299 

Ancon sheep, 6 

tAncylopoda, ae 291, 353; 
Bridger, 357; Miocene, 
eae: 355; Pliocene, 224, 


675 


Andes, 178, 179, 180, 185, 
189, 211, 213, 322, 548; 
Miocene, 
glaciation, 
133, 134; Plioc. 128, 129. 
ANDREWs, C. W., 422, 435. 
Antarctic continent, 103, 
123, 638 
Ant-Bear, 91, 187, 188 (fig,), 
28 591, 355, 600, 601, 


Anteater, Collared, 187; 
fig. 188; Lesser, 591; 
tree, 591; Two-toed, 188 

Anteaters, 60, 75, 94, 187, 
189, 591, 593, 596; Pleis- 
tocene, 218, 596; Santa 
Cruz, 245, 596; scaly, 60, 
353; spiny, 57, 59 

Antelope, 202; bones of, 

35; Mioc. restored, 237 ; 
Prong-horned, 5, 162 (fig.) 

Antelopes, 54, 60, 222, 312, 
362, 409, 416, 418; flat- 
horned, 417; goat- 
horned, 417; Miocene, 
235, 417; Old World, 
202; Pleistocene, 202; Pli- 
ocene, 224; S. Amer., 
213, 215, 221, 418, 466; 
strepsicerine, 225, 417; 
Tertiary, 419; twisted- 
horned, 417 

+Anthracotheres, see TAn- 
thracotheriidse 

tAnthracotheriide, 259,266, 
361, 370, 381, 384, 386 

i aaa 259, 361, 


Anthropoidea, 60, 578, 579, 
580, 582 


Anthropoids, see Anthro- 
poidea 

Antigua, 134 

Antilles, Eocene, 112; 


Miocene, 123 ; Oligocene, 
117; Pliocene, 128 
Antillia, 112 ; Oligocene. 117 
Antilocapra, 162 (fig.), 202, 
225, 362, 416, 417 
Antilocapride, 362, 416 
Antilopide, 416 
Antler, 411 
Antwerp, 37 
Apar, 592 


676 


Apes, 60, 577, 578, 582, 583 ; 
night, 585 

tAphelops, 291 

Aplodontia, 153, 233 (see 
Sewellel) 

Aplodontiide, 249 

Appalachian Mts., 101, 150, 
1 

Aquatic habits, 2 

Araucanian stage, 128 

Arboreal case a 77, 84 

Archean period, 1 

TArchelurus, 249, 517, 541, 
543 

t+Archeohyracidx, 462 

tArcheohyrax, 462 

+Archeopithecide, 462, 477 

tArcheotherium, 259, 361, 
367; manus fig., 367; 
restoration, 252, 260; 
eral fig., 367; teeth fig., 


Arctic, archipelago, 125; 
islands, 210; fauna in 
Pleisto., 128; mammals, 
109 ; regions, 128 ; Cretac. 
climate of, 26; Sea, 106; 
shells, Pleisto., 27: species, 
distribution of, 141; zone, 
147 (map), 148 

+Arctocyonide, 554, 557, 
561, 575; Torrejon, 285 ; 
Wasatch, 561 

+Arctotherium, 211, 517, 


549, 553; head restor., 
549 
Argentina, 180, 185, 211, 


. 218, 215, 218, 219, 245, 
324, 391, 418, 436, 463, 
466, 531, 586, 596, 597; 
drought i in, 33; plains of, 
133 ; Pliocene of, 20, 128 
spread of horses mad 
cattle in, 142 

tArgyrohippus, 476 

Arid province, 164 

Aridity, evidences of, 24 

Arikaree age, or stage, 17, 
120, 235, 259, 356 

Armadillo, 5, 162, 591; 
6-Banded, 189 (fig.), 592; 
7-Banded, 592; 9-Banded, 
190 (fig.), 592, 593; 11- 

’ Banded, 592; Bridger, 
268, 616; Giant, 190, 592, 
612, 656; Pygmy, 592; 
restoration of Santa Cruz, 
243, 480 

Armadillos, 60, 97, 141, 185, 
189, 592, 593, 594, 595, 
610, 623, 624, ‘625; ‘Arau- 


canian, 226 Casa 
Mayor, 282, 595; De- 
seado, 262, 595, 616 


Parand, 228; Pleistocene, 
218, 596, 612, 613 ; Santa 
Cruz, 245, 596, 612. (See 
also Dasypoda and Dasy- 
podidee) 


INDEX 


Artiodactyl, tprimitive, res- 
toration, 252 

Artiodactyla, 54, 55, 60, 
69, 247, 284, 310, 355, 
358, 402, 459, 460, 491, 
507, 514; Araucanian, 
226, 227; Blanco, 222 ; 
Bridger, 273; classifica- 
tion, 361; John Day, 250; 
Miocene, 231, 235, 239; 
Neotropical, 176; North 
American, Old 
World, 176, 362; ‘Pleisto. 
N. Amer., 301; 8. Amer., 
213; Pliocene, 224; ¢Pri- 
mitiva, 60, 361, 370; 
Uinta, 266; Wasatch, 
“281; White River, 255, 
257 ; Wind River, 275 

Ash, volcanic, 29 

Asia, 106, 239, 254, 258, 
280, 317, 321, 328, 332, 

355, 369, 386, 390, 

, 413, 414, 417, 418, 

422, 426, 546, 550, 

552, 579, 644; circum- 
polar area, 148 ; elephants 
of, 138 ; hyracoids of, 138 ; 
Minor, 458 ; Pleisto. glaci- 
ation of, 130; zodlogy of, 
146 

tAsmodeus, 462 

‘| Asphalt, 31 

Ass, 52 

‘Asses, 218, 292, 308 

+ Asterostemma, 592, 623 

Astragalus, 88 

ytAstraponotus, 509, 512; 
Beds, 20, 281, 282, 476, 
479, 487 

tAstrapothere, Santa Cruz, 
_Testoration of head, 243 


yAstrapotheres, see tAs- 
trapotheria 2 

+Astrapotheria, 60, 489, 
508, 514; of tAstrapo- 
notus Beds, 282; Casa 
Mayor, 283, 512; De- 


seado, 264, 512; Pata- 

gonian, 512; Santa Cruz, 

247, 508 
tAstrapothericulus, 509, 512 


tAstrapotheriide, 509 


}tAstrapotherium, 243 (re- 
stor. of head), 509, 510 
(restor. of head), 

Ateles, 578, 5 

Atlantic coast, Eocene, 104, 
111, 117; Miocene, 117, 
120°: Oligocene, 113,116; 
Paleocene, LOL; Pliocene, 
125; Tertiary "mammals 
of, 369 


;| Atlantic Ocean, 106, 109; 


connection with Pacific, 
104 


Atlas, 70 (fig.) 
Auditory bulla, 66 
Australia, 14, 21, 57, 58, 


138, 140, 307, 340, 426, 
461, 520, 550, 634; mar- 
supials of, 626; Miocene, 
123; Permian glaciation, 
25; Pleistocene, 632, 634 ; 
rabbits introduced, 142; 
zoological peculiarity of, 
145 

Australian region, 640 

Axis, 71 (fig.) 

Axis, 46, 412 

AZARA, 34 


Baboons, 577, 582 

Bad Lands, 107 (fig.) 

Badger, 153, 162, 163, 168 
(fig.), 517 

Badgers, 174, 213, 518, 550, 

, 552; Pleistocene, 

203, 204, 205 

Bahia Blanca, 129 

Bandicoots, 626 

Barriers to spread of mam- 
mals, 139 

+Barytheria, 60 

Basal Eocene, 99 

Bassariscus, 517, 546, 547 

Bat, 89 


Bates, H. W., 585 

+Bathyopsis, 275, 443, 450, 
451, 455 

Bats, 59; absence from 


Amer. Tertiary, 39; in 
European Tertiary, 39; 
West Indian, 191 
Bear, Alaska Brown, 156 
(fig.); African, 548; 
Black, 90 (pes fig.), 548 
Pampean, 
148 (fig.), 
{Short-faced, 549 


548: 
South 


(restor. of head) ; 
American, 552; Spec- 
tacled, 172 (fig.), 176, 
517, 548 

}Bear-dog, 222; Miocene, 
525 (restoration) ; primi- 
tive, 523 (skull fig.) 

TBear-dogs, 523, 524, 530, 
554, 558; John Day, 249; 

* Oligocene, 526; Pliocene, 
222; Pleistocene, 524 

Bears, 4, 59, 90, 152, 163, 
517, 518, 519, 548, 553, 
554; Old World, 204; Old 
World origin of, 518, 549; 
Parand, 227 ; Pleistocene, 
208, 204, 549; Pliocene, 
223; polar, 141; +Short- 
faced, 210¢ 211, 517, 549; 
true, 211, 527, 549. (See 
also Ursidee) 

Beast, 1 

Beasts of prey, 59, 92 

Beaver, 2, 44, 157 (fig.) ; i 
dentition, 96 fig. 
+Giant, 195 feeatera gay’ 
205, 311, 222 

Beaver Creek, Wyo., 12 (fig.) 


Beavers, 60, 95, 153, 182; 
John Day, 249; Miocene, 
238; Pliocene, 222; 
White River, 254 

Bepparp, F. E., 580, 587 

Bedded rocks, 6 

Bering, Sea, 100, 101; 
Strait, 197, 588; opening 
and closing of, 23; Plio- 
cene, 125 

Berarivce, W. L., 160, 171, 
174, 175, 181, 183, 184, 
185, 189, 320, 584, 633 

Bicuspids, 93 

a Basin, 107, 108, 


Bighorn, 419 

Binomial system of nomen- 
clature, 42. 

Biogenetic law, 648 

Birds, 655; distribution of, 
141; migrations of, 143; 
Santa Cruz, 244 

Bison, 4, 152, 162, 358; 
American, 154 (fig.); en- 
tombment of, 36; Euro- 
pean, 152, 154 (fig.); 
Wood, 162, 419 

Bison, 202, 362, 420; B. 
bison, 152, 154 (fig.), 419; 
B. bonasus, 152, 154 (fig.), 
420; B. terassicornis, 203, 
420; B. flatifrons, 203, 
420: B. occidentalis, 
589 

Bisons, 409, 416, 418, 419 

Blanco age and stage, 17, 
127, 221, 388, 413, 551 

Blarina, 163, 173 

Blastoceros, 180 (fig.) 

{Blastomeryx, 224, 241, 362, 
414 (restoration), 657 

Boar, Wild, 45 (fig. of sow 
and young), 46, 363 

Bogs, burial of mammals 


in, 

Bolivia, 178, 184, 215, 225, 
436; Pleistocene, 20, 211; 
Pliocene, 129 

Bones, gnawed, 36; Pleis- 
tocene, 40; preservation 
of, 36; Tertiary, 40 

+Bodcherus, 361, 367 

Boreal, fauna, 178; region, 
150; subregion, 150; 
zone, 147, 148 (map), 
162, 164, 551, 588 

+Borhyena, 244, 494 (res- 
toration), 627, 635, 637 
(skull fig.) 

Borneo, 137, 3 27 

{Borophagus, 517, 524, 530 

Bos, 7 

Portintodon, 252 (restora- 
tion), 259, 361, 370, 371 
(restoration) 

Bovide, 362, 418 

+Bow-Tooth, 463 

Brachyodont teeth, 95 


INDEX 


{Brachypsalis, 517 

BRACKETT, 

ase 186 (fig. ), 

He ete fossil, 41 

Brazil, 118, 181, 190, 
213, 215, 218, 219, 
245, 324, 391, 436, 
530, 552; caverns of, 19, 
30, 133, 211, 218, 221, 
586, 596; Miocene, 596; 
Pleistocene, 20 

Brazilian subregion, 164, 
170 (map), 191 

Bridger age and stage, 17, 
30, 109, 110, 340, 380, 
386, 568; restorations of 
mammals, 271 

British Columbia, Miocene, 
118; Oligocene, 113; 
Pleistocene glaciation, 
131; Pliocene, 125 

Brocket, Weees 181 (fig.) 

Brockets, 1 

Brown, a 

Brown tailed Moth, 143 

Budorcas, 4 

Buffalo, 36, 59 

Buffaloes, 409, 416 

Bulgaria, 316 

tBunelurus, 517, 551 

Bunodont eae a 360 

TBunomeryz, 3 

an teeth, 371 

Buried valleys, 132 

BurRMEIsTER, H., 496, 497 

Burrowers, 45, 79 

Burrowing mammals, 77 

Bush-Dog, 174, 212, 527, 
530, 552 


Cabassous, 592, 614, 616 

Cacajao, 578, 585 

Cacomistle, 162, 517, 546 

Cenolestes, 58, 190, 284, 626, 
640 (skull fig.), 641, 642 

Ceenolestide, 627 

tCenopus, 238, 252 (res- 
toration), 256 (do.), 291, 
333, 336 (molar and skull 
fig. ), a (front teeth fig.), 
342, 3 

ence 274 

Calcaneum, 88 

California, Eocene, 104, 
111; marine Pleisto., 
132; Mesozoic, 23; Mio- 
cene, 118, 121, 127; Plio- 
cene, 125 

Callithriz, 218 

Caluromys, 631 

Cambrian pened: 15; gla- 
ciation in, 2 

Camel, 48, sa 60, 70, 79, 
358, 490 ; "distribution, 
138; family, 178; Mio- 
cene, 232 (restoration) ; 
tribe, 13; True, 178: 
White River, 252 (restor. ) 


677 


Camelide, 362, 386; distri- 
bution, 138 

Camel-like animals, 386 

Camels, 56, 81, 84, 87, 90, 
257, 258, 312, 362, 373, 
386, 421, 461, 651, 655; 
Bridger, 273, 398; brows- 
ing, 388, 393; Eocene, 
397, 398, 402, 659; graz- 
ing, 393; John Day, 250, 
394; Miocene, 23], 232, 
235, 241, 391; Ol orld, 
231; Oligocene, 394, 402, 
659; phyla of, 650; 
Pleistocene, 196, 202; 
Pliocene, 224, 388; true, 
13, 386, 387, 390, 391; 
Uinta, 267, 397; White 
River, 257, 394 

Camelus, 70, 138, 362, 387 

Canada, 257, 357, 565; 
Eocene climate, 111; Pale- 
ocene, 102; White River, 
113; zodlogy, 146 

Canadian fauna, 151; sub- 
region, 147, 150 

Canide, 173, 293, 517, 518, 
520; fox-like, a2 (See 
also Dogs) 

tCanimartes, 517 

Canine teeth, 93 

Canis, 152, 517, 522, 529; 
C. tdirus, restor., frontis- 
piece, 204, 521; C. tin- 
dianensis, 204; C. latrans, 
162, 165 (fig. ), 632; C. 
nubilis, 159 (fig.); 
occidentalis, 62 (skull fig. ), 
64 (skull fig.), 162. (See 
. Wolves) 

Cannon-bone, 84, 91 (fig.), 
410 (fig.) 

Cape Fairweather stage, 128 

tCapromeryz, 362, 417 

Capromys, 184 

Capybara, 205. (See also 
Carpincho and Water 


Hog) 
Capybaras, Pleistocene, 218 
Carboniferous period, 15 
Caribbean, region, Miocene, 
123; Sea, Oligocene, 113 
Caribou, 4, 181, 202, 207, 
208, 210, 412, 413; Bar- 
ren-ground, 148; Pleis- 
tocene, 27, 413; Wood- 
land, 152, 157 (fig.) 
Carnivora, 43, 59, 83, 90, 
244, 268, 282, 284, 285, 
459, 516, 634; "Arau- 
canian, 226; "Blanco, 
222; Boreal, 152; distri- 
bution, 138; Eocene, 
554; John Day, 249, 528; 
marine, 59; migration 
to S. Amer., 508, 518; 
Miocene, 229, 233, 238; 
Neotropical, 173; Pleis- 
tocene, N. Amer., 203, 


678 


210; S. Amer., 211; 
Plioc., 222; Sonoran, 
163; Uinta, 265; White 
River, 254, 312 
Carnivores, see Carnivora 
{Carolozittelia, 462, 488 
Carpincho, 183 (fig.), 185. 
(See also Capybara and 
Water Hog) 
Carpus, 82 
Casa Mayor age and stage, 
20, 112, 281, 488, 499, 


512 

Cascade Mts., 121; Oligo- 
cene craters of, 116 

Cast ez, W. E., 657, 660 

Castor, 96, 153, 157 (fig.), 

tCastoroides, 195, 205 

Cat, 222; Domestic, 546 
(manus fig.) 

Catamarca age and stage, 
20, 129, 226 

Catarrhina, 583, 587, 588 

Cats, 54, 59, 90, 176, 517, 
518, 519, 530, 532, 553, 
568 ; cursorial, 543 ; Mio- 
cene, 545; Native, 634, 
638, 640; Oligocene, 530; 
Pleistocene, 545; Pleisto. 
S. Amer., 211, 212; Plio- 
cene, 223, 545; South 
America, 552; true, 249, 
517, 530, 543. (See 
Felide) 

Cattle, 95; spread of, 142 

Caves as sources of fossil 
mammals, 30 

Cavia, 183 (fig.), 185 

Cavicornia, 328, 411, 412, 
416, 421 

Cavies, see Caviide 

Caviide, 185, 657; Arau- 
canian, 226; Pleistocene, 
218; Santa Cruz, 245 

Cavy, "Rock, 183 (fig.) 

Caxomistle, see Cacomistle 

Cebide, 172, 578, 584, 585 

Cebus, 218, 578, 584 (fig.), 


585 

Celebes, 579 

Cement, 96 

Cenozoic era, 15, 16, 17, 18, 
99; South America, 19 

Centetes, 173 

Central, 83 

Central America, 123, 164, 
178, 179, 320, 585; Eo- 
cene, 104, 112; geology, 
120; mammals, 141; Oli- 
gocene, 113, 117; Paleo- 
cene, 103; tapirs, 137; 
Fevers 22; zodlogy, 


Central American  sub- 
wulon, 164, 170 (map), 


Cerdocyon, 171 (fig.), 174, 
517, 552 : 
+Cervalces, 195 (restoration), 


INDEX 


208, 209 (restoration), 
362, 413 
Cervicornia, 411, 421 


Cervide, 362, 411, 661; 
Neotropical, 179. (See 
also Deer) 


Cervulus, 412 

Cervus, 208, 362; C. cana- 
densis, 151, 155 (fig.), 202, 
208, 411,412; C. elaphus, 
151; C. eustephanus, 151. 
(See Deer) 

Cetacea, 60, 442; Miocene, 
123, 125 


Chetomys, 184 
}tChalicothere, 240 (restora- 
tion), 356 (manus fig.) 
+Chalicotheres, see fChali- 

cotheriidse 

tChalicotheriidz, 60, 247, 
291, 354, 383, 385, 458, 
484, 651; Bridger, 357 - 
John Day, 250, 357: 
Miocene, 231, 235, 238, 
aoee White River, 257, 

tChalicotherium, 354 

CHAMBERLIN, T. C., 130 

Chamois group, 202, 417; 
subfamily, 152 

TChampsosaurus, 102 

Cheeta, 542, 543 

Chelodactyla, 60, 290 

Chevron-bones, 73 

Chevrotains, 54, 60, 408 
(see also Mouse-Deer anl 
Tragulina) 

Chili, 124, 184, 436; ma- 
rine rocks, 112; Pleisto- 
cene, 20; ‘Pleisto. glacia- 
tion, 133 

Chilian subregion, 164, 170 


(map) 
Chinchilla, 184 (fig.), 185 
Chinchilla-family, Arauca- 
nian, 226 
Chinchillas, 185; 
Cruz, 245 
Chipmunks, 141, 153 
Chironectes, 626, 627 
Chiroptera, 59 
Chlamydophorus, 190, 592 
{Chlamydotherium, 218, 592, 
596, 612, 614 
Cholepus, 74, 187 (fig.), 591 
Chronology, geological, 10; 
of rocks, 6 
Civet cats, 518, 558 (see 
Viverrids) 
tCladoclinus, 627 
{tCladosictis, 243 (restora- 
tion), 627, 638, 639 (res- 
toration) 
+Clenodon, 554, 561 
Classtfestion of mammals, 


Clavicle, 77 (fig. 
Clawed mammals, 59, 74, 
456, 459, 460, 492, 514 


Santa 


Climate, as barrier to 
species, 140; determin- 
ing distribution, 24; Cre- 
taceous, 26; Eocene, 
109, 448; Miocene, 122; 
Mioc. of Patagonia, 124, 
244, 586; Oligocene, 116; 
Paleocene, 102; Pleisto- 
cene, 116, 184, 192; Plio- 
cene, 127; vicissitudes 
of, 100 

Climatic changes, 14; 
affecting distribution, 
140; evidences of, 24; 
Pleisto., effects on migra- 
tions, 207 

Coast Range, elevation, 
122; Miocene, 113, 125 

Goati, 162 

Coatis, 76, 213, 517, 546, 
552 

tCochlops, 592 

Coendou, 182 (fig.), 184 

tColodon, 257, 291, 327 

Colombia, 626, 640 

AC orpnacersss 272, 291, 347, 

350 

Colouration, animal, 45 

tColpodon, 462 

Columbia River 
Miocene, 118 

Comparative Anatomy, 647 

Conard Fissure, 30, 210 

tCondylarth, 278 (restora- 
tion), 457 (skeleton fig.), 
459 (restoration) 

tCondylarthra, 60, 443, 
456, 484, 492, 499, 508, 
514, 515, 653; Puerco, 
286, 460; Torrejon, 285, 
459; Wasatch, 277, 457; 
Wind River, 274, 456 

Condylura, 152 

Conepatus, 174 (fig.), 213, 
517, 552 

Conies, 60, 458, 481 

Conifers, 103 ° 

Continental deposits, Eo- 
cene, 106, 112; Miocene, 
120; Oligocene, 118, 117; 
Paleocene, 101; Pliocene, 
127, 128 

Continental islands, 140 

Sonat of development, 


valley, 


Convergence, 650, 653, 655, 
656 


Cops, E. D., 306, 343, 399, 
400, 401 

Coracoid, 76 

tCoryphodon, 275, 277, 279 
(restoration), 285, 443, 
452, 454, 456 

}+Coryphodontidsa, 285, 443, 
454; lower Eocene, 456 

t+Coryphodonts, see fCory- 
phodontide 

Costa Rica, 181; 
128 


Pliocene, 


Cotton-rats, 163 

Coyote, 162, 165 (fig.) 

Coyotes, Pleistocene, 218 

+Cramauchenia, 489 

fCreodont, 252 (restora- 
tion), 563 (restoration) 

tCreodonta, 59, 516, 519, 
527, 529, ‘554, 574: 
Bridger, 268, 271 (restora- 
tion) ; Eocene, 633; Pal- 
eocene, 633; Puerco, 
286; Torrejon, 285; 
Uinta, 265; Wasatch, 
276; White River, 253; 
Wind River, 274. (See 
Flesh-eaters) 

Cretaceous period, 15, 16, 
103, 112, 117, 261, 281, 
443, 460, 514, 642, 643; 
climate, 26 

Crocodiles, 122, 244 ; absent 
from John Day, 116; 
Eocene, 111; Paleocene, 
284; White River, 116 

Crown of tooth, 95 i 

Crustal movements, Mio- 
cene, 122 

Ctenomys, 184. 

Cuba, 178, 185; junction 
with Central America, 
128, 598; Miocene, 123; 
Pleistocene, 134, 604; 
Pliocene, 128, 605 

Cuboid, 

Culebra Cut, Tertiary rocks, 


22 
Cuneiform, 83, 89 
Cuvier, G., 44, 654 
Cyclopes, 591 
tCyclopidius, 361, 376 
tCynodesmus, 517, 

(skull fig.), 523, 530 
TCynodictis, 254, 517, 529 

(restoration), 530, 547 
Cyon, 213, 517, 527 
TCyonasua, 517 


522 


Dama, 4 

fle 517, 525 (res- 
toration), 526, 530 

+Daphenus, 254, 517, 523 
(skull fig.), 524 (manus 
and teeth fig.), 526, 528, 
530, 537, 546 

Darwin, C., 33, 35, 52, 136, 
137, 143, 198, 217, 463, 
489, 490, 491, 492 

Dasypoda, 189, 592, 610. 
(See also Armadillos) 

Dasypodide, 592 

Dasyprocta, 185 (fig.) 

Dasypus, 189 (fig.), 
611, 614, 616 

Dasyures, Australian, 638 

Dasyuride, 632, 634, 640 

Deep River age and stage, 
17, 121, 233 

Deer, 46, 54, 60, 95 (molar 
fig.), 222, 312, 319, 360 


592, 


INDEX 


(molar fig.), 362, 409, 411, 
461; American, 153, 162, 
202, 208, 409, 412, 414, 
420, 657; Axis, 
Barking, 412; 
tailed, 5, 202; Chinese 
Water-, 412; earliest, 
658; Fallow, 412; Florida, 
179 (fig.); Hog, 412; 
hornless, 414; Marsh, 
179, 180 (fig.) ; Miocene, 
232, 235, 414 (restora- 
tion) ; Mule, 46 (fawns 
fig.), 167 (fig.) ; Musk-, 
224, 412, 658; Neotropi- 
eal, 179; North Ameri- 
ean, 179 ; Old World, 151, 
179, 181, 202, 412, 415; 
Pampas, 180; Patagonian, 
91 (pes fig.), 410 (manus 
and pes fig.) ; Pleistocene, 
202, 208, 412: Pleisto., 
8. ‘Amer., 218, 215; Plio- 
cene, 224, 226; - South 
American, 415, 418, 466; 
southern, 412, 413; Ter- 
tiary, 412, 419; Virginia, 
4, 166 (fig.), 179, 202, 412 

tDeer-Antelopes, 202, 224, 
362, 417; Miocene, 232, 
235, 414, 415 (restora- 
co Pleistocene, 417 

Degu. 

Dedatherie: 554 

Dental formula, 93 

Dentine, 96 

Deposits, continental (see 
Continental deposits) ; 
lake, 37; river, 36 

Dermoptera, 59 

Deseado age and stage, 20, 
117, 282, 283, 474, 
477, 479, 481, 485, 
487, 508, 511, 512, 
587 


Desiccation, Miocene 
Pliocene, 128 

TDesmathyus, 361 

TDesmatippus, 290 

{Deuterothertum, 489 

Development, convergent, 
446, 499; parallel, 499; 
per saltum, 661. (See also 
Evolution) 

Devonian period, 15; glaci- 
ation in, 25 

Dhole, 213, 249, 517, 527, 
530 


tDiadiaphorus, 248, 489, 
501 (skull fiz.), 502 
(restoration), 503 (pes 
fig.), 505, 507, 508 

+Diceratheres, see tDicera- 
therium 

TDiceratherium, 238, 239 
(restoration), 250, 256, 
291, 333, 334, 350, 444 

Dicerorhinus, 327, 329 

tDichobunide, 361, 398 


679 


Didelphia, 57, 59, 626 

Didelphiide, 627, 630 

Didelphis, 161, 626, 627, 
631; D. marsupialis, 161 
(fig.), 631 

+Didolodide, 489 

{tDidolodus, 489 

{Didymictis, 555, 558 

Digit, 90 

Digital reduction, 658 

Digitigrade, 90 

TDinictis, 254, 517, 538, 
539 (restoration), 541 (pes 
fig.), 542, 546 

+Dinocerata, 443 

+Dinocynops, 517 

TDinocyon, 524 

TDinohyus, 239, 361, 366 

TDinosaurs, 103, 284 

TDinotheres, see +tDino- 
therium 

tDinotherium, 435, 438, 486 

tDiplacodon, 266, 291, 313, 
317 (head restored) 

Dipodomys, 163 (fig.) 

Diprotodonta, 59, 627, 640; 
Deseado, 642; Parana, 
641; Pleistocene, 641; 
Pliocene, 641; Santa 
Cruz, 640, 641; South 
American, 640 

Discontinuity of develop- 
ment, 660 

Dispersal of species, 143 

tDissacus, 554, 560 

ee Eee discontinuous, 
127, 138. 193: geograph- 
ical, of mammals, 135 

Divergence, see Evolution 

tDedicurus, 212 (restora- 
tion), 219, 618, 619 (res- 
toration) 

Dog, 90, 553; family, 558; 
fox-like, 529 (restoration) 

Dogs, 90, 173, 517, 519, 520, 
48, 553, 554, 558; 
Blanco, 522; early, 550; 
John Day, 249, 523, 528, 
529; Miocene, 229, 234, 
238, 522, 527, 528, 529; 
Oligocene, 523, 547, 553; 
Paran4, 227 ; Pleistocene, 
521; Pleisto., S. Amer., 
212; Pliocene, 522; Plioc. 
S. Amer., 226 ; tprimitive, 
537; tshort-faced, 530; 
South American, 552; 
Uinta, 265 ; White River, 
254,529. (See also Cani- 
dx) 

+Dolichorhinus, 272, 291 

Dolichotis, 185 

Dolphins, 37, 60, 94, 656; 
Miocene, 123 

Domesticated plants, his- 
tory of, 288 

Douroucoulis, 578, 585 

Drainage, the Pleistocene 
changes of, 132 


680 


Drift-sheets, 25, 1382 
tDromocyon, 269 (restora- 
tion), 271 (restoration), 
554, 559 
tDromomeryzx, 235, 237 (res- 
toration), 362, 417 
Drought, effects of 
mammals, 33 
Duck-billed "Mole, 57, 59 
Dugong, 60, 442 
Duplicidentata, 59 
Dust, volcanic, 29; wind- 
blown, 33 


on 


Hest Indian Archipelago, 


191 

Echidna, 57 

Echimys, 184 

Ecuador, 178, 284, 391, 548, 
626, 640; Pleistocene, 20, 
211; Pliocene, 129 

Edentata, 60, 72, 75, 91, 
97, 120, 185, 267, 355, 
591; Araucanian, 226; ar- 
moured, 60, 592, 610; 
Casa Mayor, 283, 592, 
595; Deseado, 261, 595; 
distribution, 138; Eocene, 
N. Amer., 597, 616; 
hairy, 60, 591; Old World, 
185, 591; Parané, 227; 
Pleisto., N. ‘Amer., 205 : 
Pleisto., S. Amer., 218, 
596; Plioc., N. Amer., 
225, 597; Plioc., S. 
Amer., 226, 596; Santa 
Cruz, 245, 596; South 
American, 276, 625 

Edentates, see Edentata 

tEdvardocopeia, 509 

Egg-laying mammals, 59 

Egypt, 254, 370, 422, 432, 
442, 450, 587; Eocene, 
SF ; Oligocene, 234, 264, 
58 


Hi-4, 585 

Eragenmann, C. H., 654 

TElachoceras, 443, 449, 
450, 451, 


(skull  fig.), 
455 


jtElasmotherium, 350, 351 
Elephant, 590; African, 423 
(molar fig.); tColum- 
bian, 195 (restoration), 
198 (restoration), 
430; East African, 
425; tImperial, 199, 427, 
Indian, 97 (sec- 
of tooth fig.), 197, 
423, 425 (manus fig.), 
426. (section of fore foot 
fig.); tribe, 82; West 
African, 425 
Elephantida, 432 
Elephants, 45, 60, 73, 91, 
92, 95, 97, 215, 264, 312, 
436, 446, 448, 465, 487, 
654; American, 430; 
cranial bones of, 63; dis- 


INDEX 


tribution, 138; hairy, 448, 
proboscis of, 65; Pleis- 
tocene, 196, 211, 426; 
Siberian Pleisto.. 39; 
true, 423, 438, 439; tusks 


of, 97 

Elephas, 436, 437 (head and 
tooth fig.); #. tcolumbi, 
195 (restoration), 197, 
198 (restoration), 427; Z. 
Jtimperator, 199, 427, 485; 
E. maximus, 97 (section 
of molar fig.), 197, 423, 
425 (manus fig.); Z£. 

[prmigenius, 196, 207, 


332, 426 

Elk, 50, 141, 151, 155 (fig.) ; 
Scandinavian, 151 

Elms, 102 

tEmbrithopoda, 60 

Embryology, 648 

Emigrants from N. Amer. 
to Old World, 255, 256, 
456 

Enamel, 96 

England, early Man in, 
588 ; Paleocene flora, 103 ; 
Pliocene, 127 

Daharocy ery 517, 528, 


t+Entelodon, 369 

tEntelodontidz, 250, 361, 
366, 445; Wasatch, 281 

tEntelodonts, see tEntelo- 
dontide, also {Giant 


Pigs 
tEntelonychia, 60, 247, 462, 
482, 652; Casa Mayor, 
Deseado, 263. 
also. tHomalodo- 


Entrerios, 128 
tEoanthropus, 588 
pe oegsnets, 443, 449, 451, 


+ Boordia, 243 

Eocene epoch, 17, 104; 
climate of, 26; close of, 
111; Europe, 262, 370, 
452, 562, 661; North 
America, 104, 105 (map), 
201, 250, 251, 253, 273, 
287, 291, 325, 369, 421, 
519, 529, 554, 557, 574, 
644; South America, 20, 
112, 261, 281, 477, 481, 
482, 485, 487, 488, 508, 
509, 512, 514, 625, 642 

tEodidelphys, 627 

tHohippus, 280, 290, 302, 
303 (restoration), 304, 
305 (skull fig.), 307 
(manus and pes fig.), 308 

tEohyus, 281 

tEomoropus, 291, 357 

tHotitanops, 275, 291, 315 

tEotylopus, 257, 362 

tHpigaulus, 223 (restora- 
tion) 


tEpihippus, 290, 301, 302 

tEpitherium, 227, 489, 508 

Epoch, geological, 15 

tEporeodon, 361, 375, 379 

Equide, 290, 291. (See also 
Horses) 

Equus, 95, 199, 213, 223, 
291, 295, 305 (skull fig.), 
306 (manus and pes fig.) ; 
American species, 296; 
EB.  asinus, E. 
burchelli, 200; E. ca- 
bots, 52, 199, 213, 295; 

+fraternus, 199; E. 
fpioanio, 200, 201, "295; 

E. toccidentalis, 200; E. 
tpacificus, 201; £. +pecti- 
natus, 200; E. przewal- 
skit, 52, 292 (fig.); £. 
Tscottt, 195 (restoration), 
200 (do.); E. tsemiplica- 
tus, 200; South Ameri- 
can species, 307; E. ftau, 
199, 295 

Equus Beds, 33, 131, 133, 
200, 205. (See Sheridan) 

Era, geological, 15 

gs 151 (fig.), 153, 
182, 05 

+Erodes 578 

Ermine, 152, 159 (fig.) 

Ethiopian region, 146 

ey are 202, 362, 


tHucholeops, 607 
{Eucinepeltus, 592, 623 
j{Euprotogonia, 457, 459 
Eurasia, 110, 548 - 

Europe, 253, 254, 255, 267, 


642, 644: caverns of, 30; 
cireumpolar area, 148; 
Eocene, 104 ; Eoc. separa- 
tion from Asia, 104; 
human habitation of, 588; 
loess of, 133; mammals 
of, 145; +Mammoth in, 
197; i pre-Eocene immi- 
gration into, 108; Mio- 
cene, 235; Mioc. climate, 
122; Pleisto. glaciation, 
133; tapirs in, 138; Tri- 
assic, 642; zodlogy of, 
146 


tEusmilus, 254, 517, 538 

tEutatus, 592, 596, 612, 613 

Eutheria, 57, 59 

tEutrachytherus, 263, 462, 

477 

Extinction of species, 13, 211 

Evolution, of tAmblypoda, 
54; of camels, 400; 


convergent, 649, 650, 655; 


INDEX 


Fiber, 153 


of +Creodonta, 574; di- Fibula, 86, 87 (fig.) 


vergent, 18, 139, 650, 655 


of Fissipedia, 553 ; of 
horses, 305, 325, 400; 
irreversibility of, 541, 


656; modes of Mamma- 
lian, 645; of ftoreodonts, 
381; parallel, 393, 649, 
655 ; of Proboscidea, 436, 
437 (diagram) ; of rhi- 
- noceroses, 351; "of tapirs, 
324; of +titanotheres, 
316, 325 


Fallow Deer, 46 

Families, distribution of, 138 

Fauna, 56; Araucanian, 
226; Bridger, 265, 267, 
273, 315; Deseado, 261, 
638; mid. Eocene, 267; 
John Day, 249; low 
Miocene, 237; Neotropi- 
cal, 283, 610; Oligocene, 
237; Parand, 227; Pleis- 
tocene, N. America, 193, 
207; Pleisto., S. Amer., 
211, 226, 597; Puerco, 
285 ; Santa Cruz, 26, 124, 
242, 638; Torrejon, 284; 
Uinta, 265, 273; Wasatch, 
276; White River, 251, 
265, 266; Wind River, 
274, 275, 315 

Faunas, Casa Mayor, 281, 
283; Eocene, N. Amer., 
265; Eoc., S. Amer., 281; 
Miocene, 229 ; Oligocene, 
N. Amer., 249; Oligo., S 
Amer., 261; Paleocene, 
283, 286, 644; Pliocene, 
N. ‘Amer., 221; Plioc., S. 
Amer., 225 ; Quaternary, 
N. ‘Amer., 193; Quat., 
S. Amer., 211; successive 


mammalian, 192; Ter- 
tiary, 221; Tertiary, S. 
Amer., 461 

Fawns, 46 (fig.) 

Faytm, 432 


Felidew, 54, 517, 518, 530 

Feline, 54, 254, 535, 542, 
543, 650; Miocene, 229, 
234, 238, 541, 545; origin 
of, 659; Pleistocene, 204 ; 
545; Pliocene, 545 

Felis, 54, 517, 543, 545, 546; 
F. tatroz, 204, 545; F 
concolor, 168 (fig.), 544 
(skull fig.), 545 (denti- 
tion fig.); F. domestica, 
546 (manus fig.) ; : 
timperialis, 204; F. leo, 
204; F. onca, 176, Lee 
(fig. j, 552; F. pardalis, 
176 (fig.), 552 

Femur, 84, 85 (fig.) 

Ferret, Black-tooted, 160 


(fig.) 


' Field-mice, 141 

FitHou, H., 534 

Fisher, 152 

Fishers, 141, 518 

Fishes, Florissant, 121; 
Green River, 109; Pan- 
ama marine, 23; South 
American _ fresh-water, 
652; teeth of, 92 

Fissipedia, 59, 516, 517, 553, 
554, 555, 556, 557, 558, 
563, 576 

Flesh-eaters, tprimitive, 59, 
554; Santa Cruz, 637 

Florida, island, 122; Mio- 
cene, 117 ; Oligocene, 113; 
Paleocene, 101; Pliocene, 
125, 127 

Florissant. formation, 121 


FLowER, 9, 390, 
411, 412, 419 

Flying Lemur, 59 

Forests, Oligocene, 538; 


ogee 102; petrified, 
1 
Fort Union stage, 17, 99, 
* 102, 642 a 
Fossils, 7, 29;  classifica- 
tion, 55; entombment, 
29; evidence of climate, 
25; mammals, 61 
Fossorial habits, 2 
Fox, 191; Arctic, 148, 149 
(fig.), 150 (fig.); Grey, 
165 (fig). 517; Red, 158 
(fig.), 5 
Foxes, aL 173, 518, 520, 
530, 552; grey, 162; Pleis- 
tocene, "204° red, 152; 
White River, 254, 529 
France, 256, 333, 364, 441, 
574; Eocene, of, 108 ; 
Oligocene, 617 
Frankstown Cave, 30 
Friasian fauna, 509 
Fursrincer, M., 655 


Gait, varieties of, 90 
Galapagos ree ae 136 
+Ganodonta, 6 

+Garzonia, 627, 641 (jaw 


fig. 

Garsoniiiie, 627 

Gazelle, bones of, 35 

+Gazelle-Camel, 241, 242 
(restoration), 3m, 394, 
0; 


Genera, origin of, 654 
Generic area, 137 
Genetic series, 56 
Genetics, 648 
Genus, 53 
Geographical changesaffect- 
ing Ne 139 
Geology, 5 
Geomys, 163 
eomyide, 265 


681 


fGiant Pig, 252 (restora- 
tion), 260 (do.) 

Giant Pigs, 250, 259, 266, 
361, 366; Bridger, 273, 
370; John Day, 259, 367 : 
Miocene, 239, 366, 369: 
Oligocene, 281, 368; 
Uinta, 369; Wasatch, 
281, 370; White River, 
259, 367 

Gip.ey, J. W., 33, 202, 642 

Giraffe, 70, 79, 358, 389 

+Giraffe-Camel, 236 (resto- 
ration), 391, 392 (restor ) 

+Giraffe-camels, 235, 388, 
394; Miocene, 231, 241, 
394; Pliocene, 224, 388 

Giraffes, 54, 389, 409, 411 

Glacial, accumulations, 25; 
climate, 25, 26; periods, 
14, 25; stages, 17, 130; 
theory, 129 

Glaciation, Pleistocene, 25, 
130; causes of, 134 

Glaciers, Pleistocene, 131 

tGlossotherium, 602 

TGlyptodon, 212 (restora- 
tion), 219, 592, 618, 619 
restor.), 621 

+Glyptodont, Santa Cruz, 
243 (restoration), 606 


(do.) 

+Glyptodontia, 60, 245, 246, 
592, 598, 594, 595, 617; 
Araucanian, 226; Astra- 
ponotus, 281, 595, 625; 
Deseado, 262, 595; Pam- 
pean, 212 (restorations), 
619 (restorations), 623; 
Parané, 227 ; Pleistocene, 
N. Amer., 205, 206, 211, 
597, 598; Pleisto., S. 
Amer., 218, 221, 596, 597, 
620, 624; Pliocene, N. 
Amer., 221, 225, 596; 
Plioc., S. Amer., 596, 622, 
624; Santa Cruz, 245, 
596, 622, 623 

+Glyptodontide, 592 

7Glyptodonts, see tGlypto- 
dontia 

1Glyptotherium, 221, 592 

Gnawing mammals, 59 ‘ 

Goat, Rocky Mt., 152, 158 
(fig.), 202, 416 

Goats, 362, 409, 416 

+Gomphotherium, 229, 430, 
431 (head restored), 434, 
436, 437 (head and molar 
fig.), 438, 439 

Gopher, tHorned, 223 (res- 
toration) 

Grasses, 273; Paleocene, 
84 ‘ 

coy plains, spread of, 
23 

+Gravigrada, 91, 120, 355, 
591, 592, 598, 612; Pleis- 
tocene, N. ‘Amer., 205, 


682 


597; Pleisto., S. Amer., 
218, 598; Santa Cruz, 
605, 607, 609, 610. (See 
also +Ground- -Sloths) 

Great Basin, 322; Pleisto- 
cene of, 131 

Great Britain, 21, 140, 418 

Great Plains, 33, 200, ‘229, 
235, 322, 386, 432; Mio- 
cene, 121; Oligocene 
climate, 116; Pleistocene, 


131 
Greenland, 101, 103, 210; 
Pliocene, 125 
Green River stage, 109 
Grecory, J. W., 35 
Grecory, W. K., 641 
Grison, 175 (fig.), 517, 562 
+Ground-Sloth, giant, 195 
(restoration), 603 (resto- 
ration); Pleistocene of 
Cuba, 598; Santa Cruz, 
243 (restor.), 606 (restor.); 
skin of, 40, 602 
+Ground-Sloths, 75, 91, 120, 
267, 355, 591, 592, 593, 
594, 595, 598; Arau- 
canian, 226; Astrapono- 
tus, 595; Casa Mayor, 
284, 595; Deseado, 262, 
595; Miocene, 609; 
Mioc., N. Amer., 597; 
Pampean, 212 (restora- 
tion), 220 (do.), 605, 608, 
609; Parand, 227; Pleis- 


tocene, N. Amer., 205, 
206, 211, 219, 597; 
Pleisto., S. Amer., 218, 


219, 221, 596, 598, 604, 
605; Pliocene, N. Amer., 
221, 225, 597; Plioc., 
S. Amer., 596, 598 ; Santa 
Cruz, 245, 246, 596, 598, 
605, 608, 609. (See also 
+Gravigrada) 
Ground-squirrels, 164, 181 
tGrypotherium, 592, 602 
Guanaco, 60, 139, 178, 389 
(fig.), 399 (skull and 
tooth fig.), 400 (manus 
fig.), 401 (pes fig.), 490, 
491; destruction by cold, 
36; distribution, 138 
Guiana, 179 
Guianas, Miocene, 596 
Guinea-Pig, 185; four-toed 
race, 657, 660 
Gulf-coast, Eocene, 104, 
111, 117; Miocene, 117; 
Pliocene, 125 
Gulf of Mexico, Eocene, 
106, 113 ; -Oligocene, 113, 
117; Paleocene, 101 
Gul Stream, Oligocene, 113 
Gul# 152, 155 (fig.), 237, 517 
Gypsy Moth, 143 


Harcke., E., 648 
Hairless skin, 45 


INDEX 


Halicore, 442 

tHalmarhiphus, 627 

Handwriting, development 
of, 9, 18, 14 


Hapale, 578 

Hapalide, 172, 578, 582, 
583 

tHapalops, 243 


(restora- 
tion), 592, 605, 6 
(restor.),-609 (pes fig.) 

Hare, Arctic, 150 

Hares, 59, 181, 245, 249; 
Miocene, 229, 238 ; Plioc., 
N. Amer., 222; Plioc., 
S. Amer., 226;  tailless, 
or whistling, 153 

tHarpagolestes, 554, 559, 
560, 571 

Harrison stage, 120, 235 


Hatcuer, J. B., 337, 523, 
524 
Hayti, 173, 185; junction 


- with Centr. Amer., 128; 
Miocene, 123; Pliocene, 


128 
Hedgehogs, 59, 276; White 

River, 253 - 
+Hegetotheriide, 462, 472 
+Hegetotherium, 462, 479 
{Helaletes, 272, 291 
THelohyus, 273, 361, 365 
tHemiacodon, 578 
+Hemipsalodon, 253, 565 
+ Henricosbornia, 462 
{Heptodon, 275, 291, 327 
Herbivora, 516 


| Herbivorous mammals, 45; 


large, 44 
+Hipparion, 291 
tHippidion, 212 (restora- 
tion), 213, 214 (restor.), 
291, 296, 307, 308 (skele- 
ton fig.) 
Hippocamelus, 91 (pes fig.), 
aoe 410 (manus and: pes 


Hippopotamus, ng 54, 60, 
70, 92, 358 

Hogs, ie 372 

Holarctic region, 146, 147, 
150, 588 

+Homacodon, 273, 361, 398 

+Homalodontotheriide,462; 
Casa Mayor, 283 


+Homalodontotherium, 462, 
482 


+Homalodothere, 482 
ilenatidotia et: 462, 482, 


+tHomo heidelbergensis, 588 ; 
Hi. tneanderthalensis, 588 ; 
HZ. sapiens, 588 

tHomunculus, 578, 586 

Hoofed animals, 74, 77, 81, 
83, 89, 312, 313, 461: 
Araucanian, 997; Bridger, 
269, 273; Casa Mayor, 
282; clawed, 651; De- 
seado, 262, 264; mas- 


sive, 654; Miocene, 229, 
234; Paran4, 228; Pleis- 
tocene, N. Amer., 199; 
Pleisto., S. Amer., 213; 
Tprimitive, 492; Santa 
Cruz, 246;  ‘Torrejon, 
285; Uinta, 273; Wa- 
satch, 277; Wind River, 
274 (see Ungulata) 
Hoofed mammal, clawed, 
484 
Hoofed mammals, 60, 456, 
459, 460; even-toed, 54, 
60; odd-toed, 60; White 
River, 255 (see Ungulata) 
Hooker, J., 193 
tHoplophoneus, 252 (resto- 


ration), 517, 535, 536 
Gatemipn) , 539, 540, 
4. 


Horn-cores, 416 
Horse, 44, 48, 52, 62, 76 
(scapula fig.), 79 (hu- 
merus fig.), 81 (fore-arm 
bones fig.), 85 (femur 
fig.), 87 (leg-bones fig.), 
95 (molar fig.), 294, 
(manus and pes fig.), 359 ; 
Asiatic Wild, 52, 292 
(fig.); tDawn, 302, 303 
(restoration) ; Tforest, 
200; tPampas, 212 (res- 
toration), 214 (restora- 
tion), 308 (skeleton fig.) ; 
+Texas, 195 (restoration), 
200 (restoration) ; tthree- 
toed grazing, 298 (resto- 
ration); True, 199, 213, 
295; tWhite River, 252 
(restoration), 300 (resto- 
ration). (See also Equus) 


Horses, 56, 60, 81, 95, 97, 


289, 
330, 


290, 291, 312, 319, 
353, 360, 382, 397, 
458, 461, 499, 504, 651, 
653, 655, 656, 658, 661; 
Blanco, 222; bones of, 
33; Bridger, 272, 302: 
browsing, 223, 231, 235, 
297, 298; Eocene, 304, 
307; grazing, 223, 231, 
235, 297, 298; John Day, 
299; Miocene, 295, 297, 
298, 231, 232, 234, 238, 
301; North American, 
39; Oligocene, 299; 
phyla of, 289, 650; Pleis- 
tocene, N. Amer., 199, 
208, 211, 213, 221, 295, 
Pleisto., 8. 
Amer, 218, 215, 307; 
Pliocene, 223, 295, 307, 
331; South American, 
307: spread of, 142, 
143; three-toed, 33, 501; 


tridactyl, 658; ‘true, 
292, 308; Uinta, 301; 
Wasatch, 280, 302: 


White River, 257, 299, 


300; Wind River, 275, 
302, 303, 396. (See also 
Equidz) 

HorsFat.u, R. B., 42 

Hrouiéxa, A., 589 

Hudsonian fauna, 151 

Hudson’s Bay slope, inter- 
glacial forests, 131 

Huemul, 180 

Humerus, 78 (fig.) 

Humid province, 164 

Humidity, effect on distri- 
bution, 141 

Hungary, 316 

Hutias, 184 

Hux ey, T. H., 28 

Hyenide, 518 

tHyenodon, 252 (restora- 
tion), 253, 555, 562, 563 
(restoration), 564 (skele- 
ton fig.), 565 (teeth fig.), 
566 (teeth fig.), 567, 576 

tHyzenodont, primitive, 567 
(restoration) 

THyznodontide, 253, 555, 
557, 562, 565 (teeth fig.), 
566 (teeth fig.), 569, 573, 
575; Bridger, 268; Eo- 
cene, 254, 566, 576; 
Wind River, 274 

tHyxnodonts, see fHyzno- 
dontidz 

Tyenngnadis, 522, 524, 
530 


Hydrocherus, 183 (fig.), 185, 
205 


Hydropotes, 412 

Hyena, bones of, 35 

Li eee 222, 249, 527, 
530 


Hyenas, 518, 527, 553, 554 

Hyoid arch, 67 

THyopsodonta, 59 

Tageehiy pent, 213, 291, 
7 


+tHyperleptus, 607 
tHypertragulide, 267, 362, 
386, 402, 414; Eocene, 
408; John Day, 251, 404, 
407; Miocene, 241, 258, 
404; White River, 258, 
406, 408 
tHypertragulids, see tHy- 
pertragulidze 
THypertragulus, 241, 258, 
267, 362, 407, 408 
tHypisodus, 258, 362, 408 
tHypohippus, 291, 297, 300 
Hypsodont teeth, 95 (fig.) ; 
prevalence of, 232 
tHyrachyus, 271 (restora- 
tion), 272, 291, 339, 344 
(restor.), 345 (skull fig.), 
346, 349, 350 
tHyracodon, 252 (restora- 
tion), 255, 266, 291, 341 
(restor.), 343 (manus 


fig.) . 
tHyracodontide, 291, 403 


INDEX 


tHyracodontinez, 291, 
341, 346, 350, 351, 
Bridger, 272, 343; 
cene, 342; Uinta, 
348 ; White River, 
256, 341; Wind River, 
275, 276, 344 

tHyracodonts, 
codontine 

Hyracoidea, 60, 458, 481, 
492, 514 ; distribution, 138 

Hystricomorpha, 245, 262 


see Hyra- 


Ice Age, 25 
Ichthyomys, 182 
deluom 174, 212, 517, 527, 


2 

tI deodidelphys, 627 

Tnerine, H. von, 124 

tIlingoceros, 362 

Ilium, 77 

Immigrants from Old World 
to N. America, 229, 276, 
279, 316, 365, 370, 386, 
416, 417; artiodactyls, 
201, 202, 259; bison, 
420; Carnivora, 203; 
felines, 258; Thyzno- 
donts, 254; insectivores, 
253; mustelines, 238, 
254; otters, 234; TO- 
boscidea, 422; thi- 
noceroses, 234; sheep, 
419; from North to 
South America, 171, 211, 
226, 227, 242, 461; from 
South to North America, 
205, 206, 233 

Immigration, 266; Eocene, 
324; Miocene, 233; Plei- 


stocene, 151; Pliocene, 
151 

Incisors, 93 

India, 14, 213, 327, 390, 


412, 418, 430, 527, 542, 
wae Permian glaciation 
to) 
Indian Gane 442 
Indians, pre-Columbian, 
590 
tIndrodon, 580 
Insect-eaters, 92 
Insectivora, 59, 191, 249, 
459, 580; Bridger, 268; 
Miocene, 238; Neotropi- 
cal, 172; Paleocene, 284 ; 
Puerco, 286 ; Santa Cruz, 
245, 587; Torrejon, 285; 
Uinta, 265; Wasatch, 
276; White River, 253 ; 
Wind River, 274 
Insectivores, see Insectivora 
Insects, 141; Florissant, 
121; Green River, 109 
Interglacial stages, 17, 130, 
207; climate of, 134; 
mammals of, 131 
Tnterethenide, 462, 476, 
47 


683 


{Interatherium, 462, 481, 
636 (restoration) 
Irreversibility of evolution, 


TI schyrocyon, 517 

tIschyromids, Bridger, 270; 
Uinta, 265; Wasatch, 
280 

tIschyromys, 254 

tIsectolophus, 291 

tIsotemnide, 462, 485 

tIsotemnus, 462 

Isthmian region, geology, 
120; Pliocene, 128 

Isthmus of Panama, 170; 
geology, 21,22; Miocene 
123; Oligocene, 117, 123; 
Pleistocene, 122, 134 


Jackal, bones of, 35 
Jaguar, 176, 177 (fig.), 212, 
545, 552 


* 


Jamaica, Miocene, 123; 
mongoose introduced, 
142 

Japan, 135 

Java, 21, 140, 327 

JEFFERSON, T., 206, 597 


Jerboas, 90 

John Day age and stage, 
17, 30, 116, 375, 543 

Jumping Mouse, 153, 160 
(fig.) ; mice, 182; shrews, 
59 


Jurassic period, 15, 16, 642, 
643 


Kangaroo-rats, 163 (fig.), 
182; Miocene, 238 
Kangaroos, 59, 626, 640 
Kinkajou, 175 (fig.), 517, 
546, 552 
Klipdasses, 458, 481 
Knicut, C. R., 42, 470, 
478, 480, 481, 494, 502, 
506, 606, 636, 639 
Kowa.evsky, W., 233, 503 
Kudu, 225 


Labrador, Pliocene, 125 

Lagidium, 185 

Lake, Argentine, 36; Bonne- 
ville, 131; Callabonna, 
34; Lahontan, 131; 
Ontario, invasion by sea, 
132 : 

Lakes, relation to glacia- 
tion, 132; sediments of, 


37 

Lama, 138, 362, 388; L. 
huanacus, 178, 389 (fig.) ; 
L. vicunia, 178 (fig.) 

tLambdoconus, 489 

tLambdotherium, 275, 291, 
315 

Land-bridges, 18 

Land-connections, how as- 
certained, 20; Cuba 
and Centr. Amer., 128; 


684 


Hayti and Centr. Amer., 
128; N. Amer. and Asia, 
18, 125, 588;. N. Amer. 
and Europe, 18, 106, 108, 
109, 118, 120; N. Amer. 
and Old World, 21, 23, 
109, 115, 249, 251, 267, 
276, 287; N. and 
Amer., 100, 120, 123, 
233; S. Amer. and Africa, 
103, 112, 124, 587; S. 
Amer. and Antarctica, 
112, 124; S. Amer. and 
Australia, 103, 123, 638; 
S. Amer. and Old World, 
262; West Indies and 
Mediterranean lands, 120 
La Plata, estuary, 34 
Last Hope Inlet, 60 
Lataz, 517 
Lava-fields, the Columbia 
River, 121, 127 
Lavas, Miocene, 118, 121, 
122; Pleistocene, 133; 
Pliocene, 127 
Lecue, W., 63 
Lerpy, J., 372 
Lemming, 148 
Lemmings, 141, 153 
Lemur, +monkey-like, 581 
(head restored) 
Lemur, 578 
Lemuroidea, 60, 284, 459, 
577, 578, 588; Bridger, 
270, 578; Eocene, 579; 
Wasatch, 281, 580 ; 
Wind River, 275 
tLeontiniide, 462, 475 
+Leontinia, 263 (head re- 
- stored), 462, 475 
Leopard, 45; Hunting, 543 
tLeptarctus, 517, 547 
+Leptauchenia, 258, 361, 
377 (skull fig.), 378 (res- 
toration), 381, 
tLeptocheride, 361 
+Leptocherus, 361 
{Leptomeryx, 258, 267, 362, 
407 (skull fig.), 409, 563 
(restoration), 657 
tLeptoreodon, 362 
{Leptotragulus, 267, 362 
Lepus, 164 
tLestodon, 602 
TLimnocyon, 555, 573 
Linnzan system, 51, 56, 57 


Linnzvs, C., 1, 51, 52, 55, 
578 
Lion, 45, 48, 92, 204; 


Lions, 210, 212 

Lipotyphla, 59 

tListriodon, 364 

TLitopterna, 60, 469, 489, 
514, 651, 658; Arauca- 
nian, 297 ; Casa Mayor, 
283 ; Deseado, 264, Pam- 
pean, 212 (restoration), 
216 (do.), Parand, 228; 


INDEX 
Pleistocene, 215, 221; 
Santa Cruz, 243 (res- 


torations), 247 
Lizards, 102; Santa Cruz, 


244 
Llama, 54, 60, 490, 491; 
distribution, 138 


S. | Llama-like animals, 386 


Llamas, 13, 90, 241, 257, 

362, 386, 388, 390, 391, 
461; Pleistocene, 
196, 202; 


South American, 231 

Loess, 133 

Loncheres, 184 

Loomis, F. B., 487 

+Lophiodontide, 1257, 272, 
291, 319,. 325, 326, 341, 
343, 348; Eocene, 326: 
Oligocene, 339; Wasatch 
280, 326; White River, 
257, 326; Wind River, 
275, 315 

Soe see tLophi- 
odontide 

Loricata, 592, 610 

Loup a age and stage, 

Loup River stage, 127 

aca Sonoran zone, 148, 


Lowest Eocene, 99 

Loxodonta, 423 (molar fig.) 

Lucas, F. A., 337 

Lut, R., 437 

Lunar, 83 

Lutra, 152, 160 (fie.), 164, 
175, 213, 517, 551 

Lutreola, 152 (fig 2) 

Lypekker, R., 150, 181, 
389, 390, 411, 412, 419 

Lyncodon, 175, 552 

Lynx, 153, 163, 169 (fig.), 
517, 544 (dentition fig.) 

Lynxes, 141, 176, 543, 544, 
552; Pleistocene, 204 


?Machairodontine, 54, 530, 
535, 542; cursorial, 543; 
Olsens 535° 
tMachairodonts, see Ma- 
chairodontine, also see 
+Sabre-tooth tigers 
tMachairodus, 517, 584 
(skull fig.), 536 
+Machatroides, 555, 573 
}+Macrauchenia, 212 (res- 
toration), 215, 216 (do.), 
217, 227, 248, 489, 493, 
495, 496 (skull fig.), 497 
(do.), 498 
+Macrauchenid, Santa 
Cruz, 494 (restoration) 
TtMacrauchenide, 248, 489, 
496 (skull fig.), 497 (do.), 
651; Deseado, 264, 499; 
Eocene, 499; Parand, 


228, 496; Pleistocene, 
489 ; Pliocene, 493 ; Santa 
Cruz, 248, 493 

1 Macrotherium, 354. 

Madagascar, 173, 530; 
Pleistocene, 579; zodlogy 
of, 146 

Magnum, 83 

Malagasy region, 146 

Malay Archipelago, 146, 
191, 580; islands, 281, 
327,408; Peninsula, 137, 
281 

Malleolar bone, 87 

Mammal, defined, 1 

Mammalia, classification, 
50; evolution of, 645; 
geographical distribution, 
135; skeleton and teeth 


of, 61 : 

tMammoth, 39, 196, 207, 
332, 426, 427, 429; 
Siberian, 44 

Man, 60, 62, 66, 76 (scapula 
fig.), 77 ( clavicle fig.), 79 
(humerus fig.), 80 (fore- 
arm bones fig.), 82 
(manus fig.), 84, 88 (pes 
fig.), 90, 93, 577, 578, 
582; American Pleisto- 
cene, 589; European 
Paleolithic, 197; Eu- 
ropean Pleistocene, 39, 
588; origin of, 588; in 
Western Hemisphere, 588 

Manatee, 207, 442 

Manatus, 442 

+Manteoceras, 272, 
(head restored) 

Manus, 82 (fig.) 

Maples, 102 

Mara, 185 

Marine, fauna, Miocene 
117; Oligocene, 117; 
Pliocene, 127; habit, 2; 
mammals, 37, 45; rocks, 
87; shells, Pleistocene, 
132; Pliocene of Eng- 
land, 127 

Marmosa, 632 

Marmoset, 584 (fig.) 

Marmosets, 172, 578, 
583 

Marmot, 150, 152 (fig.) 

Marmota, 152 (fig.), 153 

Marmots, 60, 141, 153, 181, 
245; Miocene, 229; Plio-~ 
cene, 222 

Mars, O. C., 318 

Marsupial, tallotherian, 
286 (head _ restored), 
predaceous, Santa Cruz, 
243 (restoration), 494 
(do.), 636 (do.), 639 (do.) 

Marsupialia, 438, 57, 59, 
459, 626; Araucanian, 
226, 634; Australian, 
145, 632, 638; Bridger, 
268; carnivorous, 59; 


317 


582, 


Casa Mayor, 282, 638, 
642; Deseado, 261, 638, 
642; distribution, 138; 
flesh-eating, 553 ; herbiv- 
orous, 59; insectivorous, 


59; Miocene, S. Amer, 
226; Paleocene, 284; 
Parand, 227, 634, 641; 
predaceous, 627, 632; 
Puerco, 286, 642; Santa 
Cruz, 244, 635, 640; 


South American, 190, 
638; Torrejon, 285, 642; 
Wasatch, 276; White 


River, 251 

Marten, 551 

Martens, 152, 231, 517, 
550, 551; Miocene, 229; 
Pleistocene, 204 

Martes, 517 


tMastodon, 207, 426, 590; 
American, 195 (restora- 
tion), 196, 207, 229 
(molar fig.) 428, (res- 
toration), 429, 437 (head 
fig.), 438, 439, 448; Mio- 
cene, 431 (head restored) 

tMastodon, 429, 430, 437 
(head and molar fig.) ; 
TM. americanus, see 
tMastodon, American ; 
TM. andium, 436 

tMastodons, 60, 264, 430, 
438; Blanco, 222; early, 
432; Miocene, 229, 234; 
Pleistocene, N. Amer., 
196, 211; Pleisto., S. 
Amer., 215, 221, 436; 
Pliocene, 225; Tertiary, 
429 

MartrHew, W. D., 241, 257, 
407, 409, 414, 531, 532, 
540, 542, 546, 547, 565, 
566, 657, 659 

Mazama, 180, 181 (fig.), 362 

Meadow-mice, 153, 182, 218 

Mediterranean, Eocene, 
104, 106 

tMegalictis, 517, 551 

tMegalocnus, 592, 604 

*Megalonychide, 592, 598, 


+e sr eistiactie: 592 


tMegalonyx, 195 (restora- | +M 


tion), 206, 219, 221, 592, 
597, 604, 607 
tMegamys, 226 
+Megatheriide, 591, 598, ae 
tMegatherium, 206, 212 
(restoration), 220 (do.), 
591, 597, 599, 602, 604, 
608 
Mellivora, 551 


TMeniscotheriide, 457, 458 | 
t Meniscotherium, 457, 458, | 


452 (restoration) 
Menotyphla, 59 
Mephitis, 153, 167 (fig.), 
517, 552 


INDEX 


Merriam, C. H., 140, 141, 
147, 148, 150, 161 


Merriam, J. C., 31, 32, 
538, 543 

tMerychippus, 291, 297, 
298 


TMerychyus, 232, 361, 372, 
373, 374, 377, 381, 382 
tMerycocherus, 241, 361, 

372, 373 (head restored), 
ie 376, 381, 382 (manus 
Z. 
tMerycodontidez, 362, 414 
{Merycodus, 224, 362, 414, 
415 (restoration), 417 
tMerycoidodon, 252 (res- 
toration), 258, 259 (do.), 
361, 379 (skull fig.), 382 
(manus fig.), 536 (res- 
toration) 
tMesatirhinus, 271 
toration), 314 (do.) 
Mesaxonic symmetry, 359 
tMesocyon, 517, 528, 530 
TMesohippus, 252 (res- 
toration), 290, 300 (res- 
tor.), 302, 305 (skull fig.), 
308 (manus and pes fig.), 
326, 342, 343, 396, 397, 


505 

tMesonychid, 269 (restora- 
tion), 271 (do.) 

TMesonychide, 554, 556, 
558, 574; Bridger, 268, 
559; Torrejon, 285, 560; 
Uinta, 265, 559; Wa- 
satch, ae 560; Wind 
River, 2 

tahesonj. 554, 559 (teeth 

fig 

tMesoreodon, 361, 372, 378 

Mesozoic era, 15, 16, 18, 23, 
103, 284, 574, 632, 643 

Metacarpal, 84 

Metacarpus, 83 

{ Metacheiromys, 592, 616 

{Metamynodon, 255, 291, 
346, 347 (restoration), 
352, 510 

Metapodial, 90 

Metatarsal, 89 

Metatarsus, 89 

Metatheria, 626 

eteutatus, 592 


(res- 


Mexico, 33, 179, 181, 199, 
200, 207, 229, 419, 427, 
585; Eocene, 104; low- 
lands, 142, 146, 164; 
mammals, 135, 141, 142; 
Miocene, 118, 121; 
plateau, 142; Pliocene, 


125 

{Miacide, 527, 530, 554, 
555, 556, 557, 562, 576; 
Bridger, 268; Torrejon, 
285; Uinta, 519, 558; 
Wasatch, 277, 279; 
Wind River, 274 

TMiacis, 555, 558 


685 


Mice, 60, 244; groove- 
toothed, 182; teen Day, 


249; jumping, 182; 
Miocene, 229; Pleisto- 
cene, Amer., 218; 
vesper, 182; white- 
footed, 153, 164, 182; 
White River, 254 

tMicrobiotherium, 627 

Microtus, 153, 218 

Midas, 578 

Migration, of birds, 143; 


of mammals, 18, 19, 143; 
of thyznodonts, 567 ; 
between N. and S. Amer. 
129; Oligocene, 254; 
Pleistocene, 207, 211; 
re-Wasatch, 108; of 
oboscidea, 441; White 
River, 116 
Milk-dentition, 94 
Mink, 152 (fig.) 
Minks, 213, 518, 
Pleistocene, 204 
Miocene epoch, 17, 33, 112; 
North America, 117, 119 
(map), 233, 249, 251, 
284, 386, 420, 421, 438, 
554, 658, 661; European, 
235, 364, 435, 441, 550; 
South American, 20, 123, 
242, 261, 553, 640 
TMiohippus, 290, 299 
{Miolabis, 362, 391 


550; 


Mississippi, Embayment, 
104, 117; Valley, loess 
of, 133 

Missouri River, drowning 


of bison in, 36 

MircHe.i, P. CHALMERS, 
52 

{Meritherium, 434, 437 
(head and molar fig.), 
438, 439, 440, 441, 442, 
450 

Molars, 93 

Mole, 2; Star-nosed, 152 

Moles, 59, 77, 89; Amer- 
ican, 163; Bridger, 268; 
golden, 245; White 
River, 253 

Mole-shrews, 153 

Mongoose, 142 

Monkeys, 2, 60, 141, 282, 
283, 284, 577, 578, 582; 


Bridger, 270; eastern 
hemisphere, 172; howl- 
ing, 578, 585: Neo- 


tropical, 172, 536; New 
World, 583, 587; Old 
World, 583, 587; Pleisto- 
eene, 218, 586; 
Cruz, 245, 586, 587; 
South American, 578, 
583, 587; spider, 578, 
584; Wind River, 275 

Monodelphia, 58, 59, 145 

Monotremata, 59;  distri- 
bution, 138 


Santa ~ 


686 


Monte Hermoso age and 
stage, 20, 129, 226, 479, 
499, 508, 634 

Moose, 4, 65, 141, 151, 156 
(fig.), 181, 202, 208, 411, 
412, 413 

Moraine Great Terminal, 
131 


Moraines, 25 
TMoropus, 238, 240 (res- 
toration, 291, 356 (manus 


fig.) 

tM saline, 462 

Moschus, 412 

Mt. Hood, 121; Kenya, 
134; Tacoma, 121 

Mountain Lion, 153, 168 
(fig.) 

Mountain ranges, as 
barriers to mammals, 
142; history of, 23 

ay Jumping, 153, 160 


Neue Dey: 54, 60, 358, 
408. (See also Chevrotains 
and Tragulin: 

{Multituberculata, 642 

Mummies of Pleistocene 
rodents, 40 

Muntjac, Indian, 412 

Muntjacs, 412, 414, 658 

Musk-Ox, 148, 149 (fig.) 
202, 207, 211, 418 

Muah Oxebs 27, 141, 208, 

1 


Muskrat, 2, 151, 153, 182 


M beatae 159 (fig.), 160 
(fig.), 517 
Mustelide, 174, 222, 265, 


. 617, 518, 550, 553, 554; 


John Day, 349 : Mio- 
cene, 238, 551; Old 
World origin, 550; Pleis- 
tocene, 551; Pleisto. i 
S. Amer., 313; Plio- 
cene, 223, 551; South 
American, 552; White 


River, 254, 551 
Mustelines, see Mustelide 
Mutation, 662 
Mycetes, 585 


TMylageulldes, 222, 229, 
}Mylagaulids, see {Myla- 
gaulide 


+Mylodon, 206, 212 (res- 
toration), 219, 592, 597, 
601, 602, 603 (restora- 
Low); 604, 607, 608 (pes 


g. 
{Mylodontide, 206, 592, 
8, 602; Deseado, 610; 
Santa Cruz, 605, 607 
609 
TMylodonts, TMylo- 
dontids 
Myocastor, 184 
Myodes, 153 
Myrmecophaga, 


see 


91, 187, 


INDEX 


188 (fig.), 206, 355, 591, 
600 


Myrmecophagide, 591 
Mystacoceti, 60 


Nasua, 162, 176, 213, 517, 

, 552 

Nasuas, 141 

Navicular, 88 

Navidad formation, 124 
Necrolestide, 245 
Nematherium, 592, 607 


Neogeea, 145 
Neogeic realm, 146, 164 
tNeohipparion, 33, 291, 
298 (restoration), 299 
(skeleton fig.) 
tNeoplagiaulax, 627 
Neotoma, 153, 164 
+Neotragocerus, 362 
Neotropical region, 146, 
147, 164, 170 (map), 


322, 363, 418, 436, 461, 
552, 583, 591, 630 

tNesodon, 243  (restora- 
tion), 462, 467 (skull 
fig.), 470 (restoration), 
473 (pes fig.), 474, 475, 
ee 482, 483, 498, 510, 
11 


Nevumayr, M., 663 

New Guinea, 634 

New York Zodlogical So- 
ciety, 148, 149, 150, 
isl. "152, 154-169, 176— 
180, 182, 183, 186, 188, 
189, 190, 292, 389, 584 

Newfoundland, Pliocene, 


125 
New Zealand, 284; Miocene, 
123 


Nicaragua, 218 
+tNimravus, 249, 541, 542 
(skull fig.), 543 
Nomenclature, 50 
North America, 
cumpolar area, 148; 
mammals of, 145; z0d- 
logical divisions, 146, 147 


(map) | 
t+Notharctide, 578 
+Notharctus, 578, 579 
+Nothocyon; 530 
Nothrotherium, 592 
Notohippide, 262, 462, 


Noses 462, 476 
Notopithecide, 462 
+Notopithecus, 462 

TAN ta seuto pide) 282, 462, 


tNotostylops, 462 
Wotostylops Beds, 20, 281 
Notoungulata, 461, 489 
Nova Scotia, Pliocene, 125 
Nyctipithecus, 578, 585 


Oaks, 102 
Ocelot, 176 (fig.), 212, 552 


the cir- 


‘Old World, 


Ochotona, 153 

Octodon, 184 - 

Octodontide, 184 

TOctodontherium, 262 

Odocoileus, 95 (molar fig.), 
153, 162, 202, 208, 360 
(molar fig.), 362, 413; 
1O. hemionus, 46 (fawns 
fig.), 167 (fig.); O. vir- 
ginianus, 166 (fig.), 179, 
412; O. virg. osceola, 179 
(fig.) 

Odontoceti, 60 

Okapi, 45 

, 258, 266, 

332, 335, 

358, 386, 


295, 327, 
341, 351, 
390, 413, , 426, 518, 
550, 554, 558, 562, 583; 
camels, 138; horses, 201; 
mammals, 120, 121, 142; 
eee from N. A., 


JOligobunis, 517, 551 

Oligocene epoch, 17; 
Europe, 324, 352, 370, 
548, 552, 661; North 
America, 113, 114 (map), 
204, 224, 265, 287, 378, 
576, 658 ; South 
America, 20, 117, 282, 
456, 485, 508, 512, 625 

TtOmomys, 578 

{Onohippidium, 307 

Ontogeny, 648 

tOddectes, 555, 558 

Opossum, 161 (fig.), 627; 
Water-, 627, 631 

Opossum-like forms, Cre- 
taceous, 638 

Opossums, 2, 58, 59, 141, 
161, 249, 626, 627, 630; 
Araucanian, 226; Bridg- 
er, 268; Casa Mayor, 
282; Cretaceous, 631; 
Eocene, 631; European, 
631; North American, 
631; Oligocene, 631; 
Paleocene, 631; Par- 
anf, 227; Pleistocene, 
221; Santa Cruz, 244; 
South American, 190, 
221, 631; White River, 
251; Wind River, 274; 
woolly, 631 

Opsiceros, 327, 329, 330, 
332, 350, 351 

Orders, distribution of, 138 

Ordovician period, 15 

Oreamnos, 152, 158 (fig.), 
202, 416 

tOreodon, 379 

tOreodont, White River, 
252 (restoration), 259 
(do.), 586 (do.) 

tOreodontidz, 250, 361, 372, 
383, 384, 385, 404, 436, 
652, 661; Eocene, 372, 
381; grazing, 232; John 


INDEX 


Day, 250, 375, 377, 379; is vi san method, 9, 
2 


Miocene, 231, 23. 5, 241, 
372, 374; Pliocene, 225, 
373 : Uinta, 267, 380: 
White River, 258, 377 
Oriental region, 146 
Ornithorhynchus, 57 
YOrohippus, 272, 290, 
Ossorn, H. F., 18, 59, 
193, 194, 1 2 
273, 


341, 
414, 


Otocyon, 656 

Ottawa valley, marine in- 
vasion of, 132 

Otter, 2, 160 (fg.), rg 213 

Otters, 152, 164, ‘517, 
518, 550, 551; When’ 
229, 234; Pleistocenr, 
204; South American, 552 

Ovibos, 149 (fig.), 202, 208, 


Ovis, 152, 419 

Ox, 70 

ae ar 54, 60, 362, 409, 416, 
TOxyena, 274, 277, 555, 


565 (teeth fig.), 566 (do.), 
571, 572 (restoration), 
573 : 

TOxyenide, 555, 568, 575; 
Bridger, 268, 568,~ 573; 
Uinta, 265, 573; Wa- 
satch, 277, 571; Wind 
River, 274, 571 

TOxyenodon, 555 

TOxyclenide, 554, 561, 562, 
568, 574 

+Oxyclenus, 554 

fOxydactylus, 241, 362, 391, 
392 (restoration), 393 
(skeleton fig.) 

Owen, R., 217, 463, 467, 
510, 603, 608 


Paca, 183 (fig.), 185 
TPachyena, 274, 277, 554, 
560 


tPachycyon, 522 


Pachydermata, 44, 490, 
492, 654 
tPachyrukhos, 227, 462, 


478, 479, 639 (restora- 
tion) 

Pacific Coast, Eocene, 104, 
pod Be mingling of mam- 
mals, 140; Miocene, 117, 
120; Oligocene, 113: 
Paleocene, 101; Pleisto- 
cene, 132; Pleisto. vol- 
canoes, 133 

{Palearctonyx, 555 

tPaleomastodon, 432, 434, 
435, 436, 437 (head and 
molar fig.), 438, 439, 440, 


441, 450 
}+Paleonictis, 277, 555, 574 


Palzontology, 29, 649, 660, 
663 


}+Paleosyops, 272, 291, 314 
(molar fig.) 317 (head 
ae 318 (manus 


ig.) 
tPaloethentes, 627 
Tener sti, 490, 492, 


Paleozoic era, 15 

tPalepanorthus, 627 

Paleocene epoch, 17, 99, 
108, 253, 273, 276, 291, 
443, 453, 454, 456, 459, 
460, 519, 554, 557, 558, 
560, 561, 562, 568, 578, 
580, 625, 642 

Palms, 103, 111, 116, 122 

{tPaloplotherium, 661 

Pamir, 419 

Pampas, 133, 142, 211, 213, 
218, 219, 596 

Pampean Beds, 19, 133, 
136, 228, 248, 463, 471, 
478, 489, 493, 496, 498, 
586; mammals, 212 (res- 
torations), 489 

Panda, 546 

Pangolins, 60, 353 

tPanochthus, 592, 618, 620 

TPantodonta, 443, 451 

TPantolambda, 285 (restora- 
tion), 453, 454 

Paraguay, 164, 178, 189 

+Parahippus, 290, 297 

+Parahyus, 281, 361, 370 

Parallelism, 397, 649, 652, 
653 

tParamylodon, 592 

tParamys, 270, 271 (res- 
toration), 280 

Paran4 age and stage, 20, 
128, 242, 493, 499, 507, 
635 

Parand River, 34 

}tParapithecus, 583, 587 

{TParastrapotherium, 509, 
512 

Paraxonic symmetry, 359 

Patagonia, 30, 40, 139, 
178, 180, 184, 185, 189, 
190, 191, 242, 263, 463, 


467, 477, 586, 596; Creta- ; 


ceous, 117, 632; Eocene, 
112, 117; marine rocks, 
112; Miocene, 123, 613; 
Oligocene, 117;  Pleis- 
tocene glaciation, 133; 
pNGeenE: 128; Tertiary, 


Patagtaisi age and stage, 
20, 123, 474, 475, 479 

Patella, 86 (fig.) 

{Patriofelis, 271 (restora- 
tion), 274, 555, 568, 569 
(restoration), 570 (pes 
fig.) 


687 


tPaulogervaisia, 462, 488 
Peace Creek stage, 127, 


221, 322 

Peccaries, 141, 178, 361, 
363, 461; Bridger, 273, 
365; John Day, 250, 
365; Miocene, 232, 235, 
239, 365; Oligocene, 365; 
Pleistocene, 201; Pleisto., 
. Amer., 213, 215; 
Pliocene, 224, 226, 364; 
Uinta, 266, 365 

Peccary, 33, 60, 161, 177 
(fig.), 222, 360 (molar fig.) 

Pecora, 54, 60, 362, 387, 
402, 409, 420, 421; Neo- 
tropical, 179; Oligocene, 
421; Pleistocene, 201 

+Pelecyodon, 592 

TPeltephilide, 592 

Pee tae 592, 613 (skull 

Pelvis, 77 

+Pelycodus, 578, 580 

Penck, A., 134 

tPeraceras, 332 

Perameles, 58 

Peramys, 631 

}tPeratherium, 627, 631 

{tPercherus, 361, 365 

TPeriptychide, 443 

{Periptychus, 443, 454 

Perissodactyla, 60, 247, 248, 
284, 288, 310, 353, 354, 
358, 359, 360, 383, 402; 
450, 458, 484, 485, 491, 
499, 507, 514, 651, 653; 


Bridger, 270, 344; 
tClawed, 60, 353; 
Eocene, 289, 338, 339, 


352, 354, 359; John 
Day, 250; Miocene, 230, 
234, 238; Neotropical, 
176; normal, 291, 355; 
Pleistocene, N. ‘Amer., 
199; Pleisto., S. Amer., 
213: Uinta, 266; Wa- 
satch, 280; of western 
hemisphere, 322; White 
pg 255 ; Wind River, 


He ca vinnie see Peris- 
sodactyla 
Permian period, 15; cli- 


mate of, 24, 25; glacia- 
tion, 25 
Peru, 178, 179, 180, 184, 
356, 393, 548 
Petrifaction, 40 
Petrified forests, 122 
Phacocherus, 363 
Phalangers, Australian, 244, 
626, 640, 641, 642 
Phalanges, 84 
+Pharsophorus, 627 
+Phenacodontide, 457 
TPhenacodus, 277, 278 (res- 
toration), 285, 457 
(skeleton fig.), 458, 459 


688 


or ioe vig 

Philology, 6 

{Phiaocyon, B88, 517, 647 

Pholidota, 60, 353 

Phylogeny, 648 

Phylum, 56 

Pichiciago, 190, 592, 611 

Pig, 359 (fore-arm bones 
and manus fig.), 360 
(pes fig.); Wild Texas, 
161 


Pigs, 281 
Pikas, 59, 153, 181 
Pilosa, 60, 591, 592 
Pinnipedia, 59, 516 
Pisiform, 83 
Pithecia, 578, 585 
Pitheculus, 578 
Placenta, 58 
Placental mammals, 
59, 145 
+Plagiarthrus, 481 
+Plagiaulacide, 627 
Plagiodontia, 185 
tPlanops, 591 
Plant-feeders, 92, 95 
Plantigrade, 90 
Plants, distribution, 141; 
Florissant, 121, 122; 
Green River, 109; Mio- 
cene, 122; Miocene of 
Andes, 124; Mioc. of 
Europe, 122; Oligocene 
of Alaska, 116; Oligo. 
of Europe, 116; Plio- 
cene, 127 
Plateau region, 101, 111, 
122; Pleistocene up- 
heaval of, 1383 
Plateaus as affecting spread 
of mammals, 142 
bere 33, 202, 222, 
1 
Platyrrhina, 578, 583, 587 
Pleistocene epoch, 17, 129, 
130, 172, 229, 239, 245, 
, 299, 324, 
350, 351, 
354, 65, 386, 391, 
412, 413, 415, 416-419, 
426-429, 436, 438, 439, 
448, 485, 499, 518, 524, 


58, 


wo 
S 


246, 
332, 


530, 531, 545, 549, 
551, 552, 586, 588, 614, 
631, 632; climate, 25; 
effects of climate on 
animal distribution, 192; 
glaciation, 25; Euro- 
pean, 661; lowest, 127; 


mammals, 195 (restora- 
tions); South American, 
19, 20, 133, 296, 465, 
476, 479 

(Pleurocelodon, 462 
Pliauchenia, 362 

Pury, letter on eruption 
of Vesuvius, 30 

Pliocene epoch, 17, 112, 
125; North American, 


INDEX 


126 (map), 199, oo 202, 
229, 233, ‘238, 2 , 245, 
246, 248, 258, 
295, 298, 299, 
333-336, 340, 


612, 614, B32 
American, 20, i2s, 466, 
467, 479 
{Pliohippus, 291, 296, 307 
Pocket-gophers, 163, 164, 
182; John Day, 249; 
Miocene, 229, 238; Plio- 
cene, 222; Uinta, 265 
Pocket-mice, 191 
tPoébrotherium, 252 (res- 
toration), 257, 362, 394 
(restor.), 397, 399 (skull 
and tooth fig.), 400 
oe fig.), 401 (pes 


&.) 
| tPogonodon, 535, 544 


TPolydolopide, 627, 642 
{Polydolops, 627 


}+Polymastodon, 286 (head 
restored), 627 

Poly protogonta, 59, 627, 

Pompeii, 30° 


Poplars, 102 

Porcupine, Brazilian Tree, 
182 (fig.); Canada, 5, 
151 (fig.), 153, 182, 205 ; 
Short-tailed, 150, 182, 


Porcupine group, 182, 262; | f. 


suborder, 245 
Porcupines, 59, 184; short- 
tailed, 141; tree, Pleis- 
tocene, 218; tree, Santa 
Cruz, 245 
Porpoises, 3, 37, 45, 60, 94, 
442, 656 
Port Kennedy Cave, 30, 210 
Port St. Julian, 489 
Portugal, caverns, 40 
Popes, ae (fig.), B17; 546, 


!Pouched mammals, 57, 59. 


(See also Marsupialia) 
+tPreuphractus, 592 
Prairie-Dog, 169 (fig.) 
Prairie-dogs, 164, 181 
Praopus, 611 
Pre-Cambrian eras, 15 
Premolars, 93 
Preoccupation, 142 
+Prepotherium, 591, 607, 608 
+Preptoceras, 202, 203 (res- 

toration), 362, 418 
Primates, 60, 577; Bridger, 

270; Eocene, 577; Santa 


Cruz, 587; South Ameri- 
can, 587; Wasatch, 281, 
580 
Priodontes, 190, 592, 610, 
612, 614, 616 
{Proadinotherium, 262, 462 
+Proasmodeus, 462 
tProborhyena, 627, 638 
Proboscidea, 60, 230, 254, 
264, 269, 422, 442, 446, 
448, 449, 454, 455, 469, 
487, 488, 514; African 
origin of, 234; American, 
485; Eocene, 434; Mio- 
cene, 234, 238, 430; 
Oligocene, 432, 441; 
Pleistocene, N. Amer., 
196; Pleisto., S. Amer., 
436. (See also Elephants 
and +Mastodons) 
Proboscis, 65 
tProcamelus, 232 (restora- 
tion), 362, 391, 399 (skull 


and tooth fig.), 400 
(manus fig.), 401 (pes 
fig.) 
+Procladosictis, 627 
517, 529, 


tProcynodictis, 
530 


Procyon, 163, 175, 213, 517, 
546, ; P. cancrivorus, 
552; P. lotor, 153, 166 
(fig. i 547 (dentition fig.), 

552; P. tursinus, 552 

Procyonide, 517, 518, 546; 
Miocene, 238, 547 : South 
American, 552 

tProdasypus, 592 

{Proectocion, 489 

{Proeutatus, 592, 614, 615 
(skull fig.) 

tProglires, 59 

Promerycocherus, 235, 251, 

361, 375, 376 (restora- 
tion) 

TPronesodon, 262, 462 

Prong Buck, 202, 225, 416, 
417, 420. (See Antelope, 
Prong-horned) 

tPronomotherium, 231, 361, 
374, 375 (head restored), 
376, 381 

tPropaleochoplophorus 243 
(restoration), 592, 606 
(restor.), 623 

+Propolymastodon, 627 

+Propyrotherium, 462, 487 

+Prosthennops, 361 

}Protagriocherus, 267, 361, 
383, 385 

+Protapirus, 257, 291, 323 
(skull fig.), 324 (head 
restored), 325 (teeth fig.) 

+Proteodidelphys, 627 

tProterothere, single-toed, 
506 (restoration); three- 
toed, 502 (restor.) - 

fTProterotheres, see +Pro- 
terotheriide 


Proterotheriide, 227, 248, 
489, 499, 507, 653; 
Araucanian, 227, 508; 
Deseado, 264, 489; Pa- 
rand, 228, 499; Santa 
Cruz, 248, 501 

tProterotherium, 248, 489, 

tProtheosodon, 489, 499 

{Prothoatherium, 489 

tProthylacynus, 243 (res- 
toration), 244, 627, 635, 
636 (restor.), 637 

{Protitanotherium, 266, 313 

{Protobradys, 592, 595 

TProtoceras, 252 (restora- 
tion), 258, 362, 405 
(restor.), 406 (skull fig.), 
407, 445 


+Protodonta, 59 
{Protogonodon, 457 
tProtohippus, 291, 305 
(skull fig.), 306 (manus 
and pes fig.) 
+Proiaiatie, 362, 391 
tProtomeryz, 241, 251, 362, 
391 
tProtopithecus, 218 
{Protoreodon, 267, 361, 380 
(skull fig.), 381 
Prototheria, 57, 59, 76 
{Protylopus, 267, 362, 397, 
399 (skull and tooth fig.), 
400 oo fig.), 401 
(pes fi 
}Puniyoathestun, 243 (res- 
toration), 462, 479, 480 
(restor.) 
Provinee, zodlogical, 145 
{Prozaédius, 592 
+Pseudelurus, 517, 545 
+Pseudocladosictis, 627 
+Pseudolabis, 362 
+Pseudolestadon, 592 
{Pterodon, 253, 555, 565 
(teeth fig.), 566 (do.), 
567, 576 


{Ptilodus, 627, 642 (skull 
fig.), 643 (head restored) 

Pudu, 180 

Pudua, 180 

Puerco age and stage, 17, 
99, 101, 454, ee 561 

Puma, 168 (fig.), 212, 544 
(dentition fig.), 545 (skull 
fig.); South American, 552 

Pumas, 153, 163, 176 
Pleistocene, 204 

Pyramidal, 83 

Pyrenees, 104 ; 

tPyrotheres, +Pyro- 
theria 

tPyrotheria, 60, 462, 485, 
500; Casa Mayor, 283, 
488; Deseado, 262, 485 

+Pyrotherium, 264, 462, 485, 
486 (head restored) 

Pyrotherium Beds, 20, 117, 
261, 486 


2Y 


see 


INDEX 


Quadrumana, 582 
Quadruped, 1 

Quaggas, 292 

Quaternary period, 15, 17, 
61, 100, 129, 267, 319: 
South America, 19 


Quicksands, burial _— of 
mammals in, 37 
Rabbit, 218 


Rabbits, 59, 141, 142, 164, 
245; White River, 254 
Raccoon, 153, 162, 163, 166 
(fig.), 175, 547 (dentition 
fig.), 553; Crab-eating, 
552 

Raccoon-family, Miocene, 
oe Pliocene, S. Amer., 


Raccoons, 5, 90, 213, 517, 
518, 519, 546, 553; Mio- 
cene, 229, 547; Parand, 
227; Pleistocene, 204; 
Tertiary, 547 

Race, seoeraphical, 52 

Radius, 

Raised oii 213, 134 

Rancho La Brea, 31 

Rangifer, 70, 152, 157 (fig.), 
202, 208, 362, 412 

Ratel, 551 

Rats, 60, 245; fish-eating, 
182; Pleisto., S. Amer., 
218; spiny, 184 

Rattlesnake stage, 127 

Ra¥, Ja 51 

Realm, zodlogical, 145 

Recent epoch, 17, 132, 335, 
336; South American, 19 

Reduction of parts, 656 

Region, zoélogical, 145 - 

Reindeer, 70, 141, 412; 
Lapland, 152; Pleisto- 
cene, 27 

Reptiles, see Reptilia 

Reptilia, 55 ; as ancestral to 
mammals, 643; distribu- 
tion, 141; Mesozoic, 284 ; 
Oligocene, 117; Paleo- 
cene, 284; Santa Cruz, 
244; teeth of, 92; Trias- 
sic of S. Africa, 

Republican River age, 17, 


Restorations, how made, 42 

Rheithrodon, 182 

Rhinoceros, 350, 490, 492; 
‘African, 327, 328, 329, 
337; taquatic, 347 (res- 


toration); Bornean, 44; 
Broad-lipped, 329, 351, 
448; tcursorial, 


252 
(restor. ), 841 (do.), 343 
(manus fig.), 344 (restor.), 
thornless, 252 (restor.) ; 
256 (do.), 335 (skull fig.) ; 
Indian, 44, 327, 328, 329; 
Javan, 327, 328 (skull 
fig.), 473; tpaired- 


689 


horned, 239  (restor.); 
tprimitive, 271 (restor.) ; 
fsmall-horned, 230 (res- 
Sumatran, 327, 
329; White, 329; 
TWoolly, 332 
Rhinoceros, 327; R. son- 
daicus, 327, 328 (skull 
fig.), 473; R. unicornis, 
2: 


Rhinoceroses, 45, 56, 60, 63, 
91, 289, 312, 382, 461, 
510, 654, 655, 661; Afri- 
can, 346; taquatic, 291, 
340; taquatic Bridger, 
272; taquatic Uinta, 348; 
taquatic, White River, 
346 ; bones of, 35; feurso- 
rial, 291, 340; tcursorial, 
Bridger, 272, 343; teur- 
sorial, Uinta, 266; feur- 
sorial, White River, 255, 
340; feursorial, Wind 
River, 275; Eocene, 338, 
339; hairy, 448; John 
Day, 250, 256, 333; Mio- 
cene, 230, 234, 238, 256, 
332, 333; North Ameri- 
can, 39, 199; Oligocene, 
333; Pliocene, 224, 331; 
tpaired-horned, 256, 444; 
phyla of, 289, 650; Si- 
berian, 39; true, 291, 
326, 340, 346, 350, 351; 
true, Uinta, 266; true, 
White River, 255, 333; 
White River, 255, 333 

Rhinocerotide, 291, 326, 
340, 350 

+Rhynchippus, 462 

Ribs, 74 (fig.);. sternal, 74 

Rio de La Plata, 128 

River deposits, 36 

Robin, 50 

Rocky Mts., 101, 150, 153; 
Pleistocene glaciers, 131 

Rodent, tprimitive, 271 
(restoration) ; Santa 
Cruz, 243 (do.) 

Rodentia, 5, 59, 282, 283, 
284, 459, 629; Arau- 
canian, 226; Boreal, 153; 
Bridger, 270; Deseado, 
587; distribution, 138; 
John Day, 249; jump- 


ing, 90; Miocene, 229, 
233, 237: Neotropical, 
183 (figs.) ; Parand, 227; 
Pleistocene, 134, 205; 
Pleisto., S. Amer., 218; 
Pliocene, 222; Santa 
Cruz, 245; simpliciden- 


tate, 628 ; ‘Sonoran, 163 ; 
South American, 
Uinta, 265; Westah, 
280; "White River, 254; 
Wind River, 275; West 
Indian, 191 

Rodents, see Rodentia 


690 


Roots of teeth, 95 

Rootless teeth, 96 

Rosebud stage, 120, 235 

Ruminants, 81, 84, '87, 281, 
373, 651; hollow-horned, 
328; Miocene, 232; true, 
54, 201, 362, 387, 402, 
409, 446 

Russet, I. C., 589 


Sables, 141 
+Sabre-tooth, 32; cat, 252 
(restoration) ; cats, 659; 
false, 542 (skull fig.); 
rimitive, 539 (restor.) ; 
‘iger, frontispiece 
(restor.), 195 (restor.), 
517, 531 (skull fig.), 534 
(do.), 536 (restor.) ; 
tigers, 54, 210, 530, 552; 
Miocene, 229, 234, 534; 


Oligocene, 535; Pleisto- 
cene, 204; Pleisto., S. 
Amer., 211; Pliocene, 
223 

7Sabre-tooths, 265, 650; 
false, 249, 541; John 


Day, 249, 535, 541, 542; 
Miocene, 238; White 
River, 254. (See also {Ma- 
chairodontinz) 
Sacramento Valley, Mio- 


Sagittal crest, 63 
Saiga, 65 
Saiga Antelope, 65 
St. Elias Alps, 101 
St. Lawrence Valley, in- 
vasion of, by sea, 133 
Sakis, 578, 585 
Saline water, 34 
SatisBury, R. D., 130 
_ Salt Lake, Utah, 131 
Salt lakes, 24 
Sand, wind-blown, 33 
Santa Cruz age and stage, 
20, 30, 124, 262, 263, 264, 
, 283, 467, 470, 473, 
475, 477, 479, 481, 
' 485, 493, 499, 500, 
501, 504, 508-512, 586, 
587; mammals, 243 (res- 


torations) 
Santa Cruz Mts., Calif., 118 
Santa Cruz River, as 


barrier to <r ae 139 
Sapajou, 584 (fig.) 
Sarcophilus, 634 
SARMIENTO, 143 
+Scalibrinitherium, 489, 493 

495, 496 (skull fig.), 497 


(do. 
Scalops, 163 
Scalpriform teeth, 96 (fig.) 
Scapanus, 163 
Scaphoid, 83 
Scapho-lunar, 83 


INDEX 


Scapula, 76 (fig.) 

tScelidotherium, 592, 601, 
602, 604 

+Schismotherium, 592 

TSchizotherium, 291, 357 

ScHLossER, M., 262, 380, 
614, 555, 583, 625, 661 

ScuucHEert, C., 105, 114, 
119, 126 

tSciuravus;, 280 

Sciuromorpha, 270 

Sciuropterus, 164 

Sciurus, 164 (fig.) 

{Sclerocalyptus, 219, 592, 
618, 620 

Scleropleura, 592, 611 

Scott, D. H., 288 

Sea-Cow, 60, 207, 442 

Sea-Otter, 517, 518 

Seals, 1, 2, 3, 37, 56, 59; 
Pleistocene, 132 

Seas, barriers to land 
mammals, 139 

Section, geological, 7, 9 
(diagram) 

Sedimentary rocks, 6 

Sediments, 6 

Selenodont tooth, 360 (fig.) ; 
origin of, 651 

Sewellel, 153, 233 

Sewellels, 249; Miocene, 238 

Shales, Florissant, 129; 
Green River, 109 

Sheep, 54, 60, 93, 362, 409, 
416, 418, 419, 420; 
Rocky Mt., 152, "419 

Shells, fossil, 662 

Sheridan stage, 33, 131, 133, 


200 

Shrews, 59, 141, 173, 191; 
American, 163; jump- 
ing, 59; Old World, 152; 
tree, 59 

Siberia, 197, 207, 332, 350, 
426; frozen carcasses in, 
39 

Sierra Nevada, 101, 122, 
150, 153; Miocene, 118; 
Pleistocene glaciers, 131 

Sigmodon, 163 

Silurian period, 15 

Simiide, 583 

Simplicidentata, 60 

Sunciair, W. J., 107, 437 

}+Sinopa, 565 (teeth fig.), 
566 (do.), 633 

Sirenia, 60, 442 

Sitomys, 153, 164, 182 

Skeleton, 61; significance 
of, 42 

Skull, 61 

Skunk, 163, 167 (fig.), 213, 
517; Argentine, 174 
(fig.); Little, 174 (fig.) ; 
Spotted, 517 

Skunks, 153, 163, 174, 210, 
518, 550, 551; Pleisto- 
cene, '204 ; South Ameri- 
can, 552 


Sloth, Three-toed, 186 (fig.), 
rH ; Two-toed, 74, 187 
54 


-), 591 

Sloths, 2, 60, 97, 186, 189, 
592; Araucanian, 226; 
Pleistocene, 218; Santa 
Cruz, 245 

tSmilodon, frontispiece 
(restoration), 195 (do.), 
204, 211, 517, 531 (skull 
fig.), 532 (teeth fig.), 535, 
536, 537, 544, 553, 622 

Smira, Perrin, 23 

Smiru, WILuiaM, 7, 9 

Smith River stage, 121 

Snake Creek age and stage, 
17, 127, 222, 388 

eg 244; Paleocene, 
2 


Solenodon, 173 (fig.) 

Solitary species, 38 

Sonoran region, 146, 147 
(map), 152, 153, 161, 176, 


178, 191, 363 

Sorex, 152 

South Africa, 14; Permian 
glaciation, 25; Triassic 
reptiles, 644 

South America, Eocene 


separation from N. Amer. 
104; Miocene junction 
with N. Amer., 120; 
Permian glaciation, 25: 
Pleistocene Man, 589; 
zoological divisions, 173 
(map); zodlogy, 146 
South Australia, dry lakes 


of, 34 
South Shetland Islands, 124 
Sparnacian stage, 108 
Species, definition, 51; dis- 

tribution, 136; origin, 20 
Specific area, 136 
Spermophilus, 163 (fig.), 164 
+Sphenophalos, 362 
Speogste, 174 (fig.), 517, 

52 


Spiny rats, Pleistocene, 218 

Sports, 660 

Squirrel, Grey, 164 (fig.)¢ 
suborder, 270 

Squirrels, 2, 60, 245; fly- 
ing, 164; John Day, 249; 
Miocene, 229, 238; true, 
Lie 181; White River, 
2 


Stag, 358; European, 151; 
Thian Shan, 151 

{Stag-Moose, 195 (restora- 
tion), 208, 209 (restor. ); 
413 

Stage, geological, 15 

Stalagmite, 30 

Stations, 136 

+Stegodon, 430, 439 , 

+Stegodonts, 438 

{Stegotherium, 243 (restora- 
tion), 480 (do.), 592, 614, 
615 (skull fig.) 


TStenomylus, 241, 242 (res- 
toration), 362, 393, 408 
Sternum, 75 (fig.). 
TStibarus, 361 
Stiruine, E. C., 34, 35 
Straits, of Lombok, 135; of 
Magellan, 143 
Stratified rocks, 6 
Stream-channels, 
River,-113 
TStylinodon, 274 
TStypolophus, 555 
Subregion, zoélogical, 145 


White 


Bubaidences, Pleistocene, 
Subungulata, 514 
Suillines, 661 


Suina, 54, 60, 361, 362 

Sumatra, 21, 140, 327 

Superposition of beds, 7, 8 
(diagram) 

Sus, <— peel bones 
fig.), 3 

awanita” ial of mam- 
mals in, 33 

Swan, 70 

Swine, 54, 60; American, 
363; Old World, 363, 
364; Pleistocene, 201; 
true, 364, 365. (See also 
Peccaries) 

Swine-like eniraals 361, 362 

Sycamores, 1 

+tSymbos, Sng. 362, 418 

Synaptomys, 153 

tSyndyoceras, 241, 258, 362, 
403 (restoration), 404, 
406, 407 

Syria, 481 

tSystemodon, 280, 291, 324 


+Teeniodontia, 60, 276, 625 ; 
Bridger, 267; Puerco, 
286; Wind River, 274 

Tagassu, 161, 177 (fig.), 178, 
360 (tooth fig.), 361, 363 
(dentition fig.), 364 

Tagassuide, 361, 363 

Takin, 418 

;Taligrada, 443 

Tamandua, 187, 188 (fig.), 
591 

Tamias, 153 

Tapir, 47 (fig. of young), 81 
(fore-arm bones fig.), 8 
_(leg-bones fig.), 289 
(manus fig.), 290 (pes 


492; Asiatic, 321; 
chaque,322 ; White River, 
323 (skull fig.), 324 
(head restored) 

tTapiravus, 291 

Tapiride, 60, 65, 89, 141, 
176, 289, 291, 312, 315, 
319, 330, 341, 348, 359, 
461, 651, 653; American, 
Boni Bridger, 272; dis- 


INDEX 


tribution, 137; Eocene, 
323; John Day, 250; 
Miocene, 231, 234, 322; 
North American, 39; Oli- 
gocene, 323, 339; Pleis- 
tocene, 199, 201, 208, 210, 
322; Pleisto., S. Amer., 
213, 215; Pliocene, 223, 
322; South American, 
324; Uinta, 266; Wa- 
satch, 280, 324; White 
River, 257, 322 
Tapiroid, 272, 315 
Tapiroids, 321 


Tapirs, see Tapiride 
Tapirus, 176, 291; T. 
thaysti, 201, 322°: ca 


roulini, 322; T. terrestris, 
47 (young fig.), 87, 201, 
289 (manus fig.), 290 
(pes fig.), 320 (adult 
fie.), 321 (skull fig.), 322, 
325 (upper teeth fig. ) 

Tardigrada, 186, 591, 592, 
610; Araucanian, 226. 
(See also Sloths) 

Tarija Valley, Pliocene, 129, 
225 

avons, 31; Pleistocene, 


Tarsier, 281, 580 

Tarsiids, 583 

Tarsius, 281, 580 

Tarsus, 88 

Tasmania, 138, 632, 634 

Tasmanian Devil, 627 634; 
Wolf, 43, 226, 244, 626, 
632, 633 ‘(fig.) 

Tatu, ae 190 (fig.), 592, 
593, 6 

theborns 2 

Tieziden, 153, a 168 (fig.), 


517 
ee 175 (fig.), 218, 517, 
~ 652 


Teeth, 92; 
fossil, 38 

+Teleoceras, 291, 331, 332, 
333, 350 

tT elmatherium, 291 

tTemnocyon, 517, 528, 530 

Temperature as a barrier to 
species, 140, 141 

Tenrecs, 173 


importance of 


7 | tTephrocyon, 517, 522, 527, 
530 


Tertiary period, 15, 17, 
19, 99, 267, 319, 369, 
413, 460, 531: Central 
America, 22: Culebra, 
22: Great Plains, 36; 
Patagonia, 20; South 
America, 20, 248, 461, 
463; Tierra del Fuego, 


20 
Terrestrial habit, 2 
}Tetrabelodon, 430, 437 
Thalarctus, 148 (fig.) 
{Theosodon, 243 (restora- 


691 


tion), 248, 489, 493, 494 
(restor.), 496 (skull fig.), 
497 (do.), 498 (manus fig.) 

Thian Shan, 419 

TThinohyus, 361 

{Thoatherium, 243 (restora- 
tion), 248, 489, 500, 501, 
504, 505 (skull fig.), 506 
(restor.), 507 (pes fig.) 

TThomashuzleya, 462, 485 

Thomomys, 164 

Thorax, 74 

Thousand Creek age and 
stage, 17, 127 

Thylacine, 43, 632, 633 
(fig.), 634, 635. (See also 
Tasamanian Wolf) 

Thylacynide, 627, 632 

43, 226, 244, 


Tibet, 224, 418 
Tibia, 86, 87 (fig.) 
Tierra del Fuego, 20, 178 


Tiger, 45 
fTillodontia, 59, 276; 
Bridger, 267; Wasatch, 


276; Wind River, 274 
Time, geological, 16 
+Titanothere, 253 (restora- 

tion), 271 (do.), 309 (do.), 

314 (restor. and fig. of 

molar) 

{Titanotheriide, 291, 308, 
317 (heads restored), 334, 
352, 353, 357, 366, 445, 
446, 458, 465, 654, 661; 
Bridger, 270, 313; Oli- 
gocene, 310, 314, 315, 339; 
Uinta, 266, 313; White 
River, 255, 310, 313, 315; 
Wind River, 275, 276, 315 

TTitanotherium, 253  (res- 
toration), 291, 309 (res- 
tor.), 310 (molar fig.). 311 


(skull fig.), 317 (head 
restored), 318 (fig. of 
manus) 


Tolypeutes, 189, 592, 611, 
616 

Toronto, interglacial beds 
near, 130 

Torrejon age and stage, 17, 
99, 101, 286, 453, 561 

Tortoises, 244; Paleocene, 
244 

tTozodon, 212 (restoration), 
215, 217 (restor.), 462, 
463, 466 (skull fig.), 467, 
468, 469, 471, 472 (pes 
fig.), 473, 477, 487 

+Toxodont, 498; horned, 
228 (head restored), 263 
(do.) ; Pampean, 212 (res- 
toration), 217 + (do.); 
Santa Cruz, 243 (restor.), 
467 (skull fig.); Santa 
Cruz horned, 474 (restor.) 

tToxodonta, 60, 282, 462, 
463, 477, 482, 483, 487, 


692 


500, 509, 511, 652; Arau- 
canian, 227; Deseado, 
262, 264, 474; Parand, 


228; Santa Cruz, 246, 467 | 


}+Toxodontia, 60, 355, 461, 
478, 485, 489, 492, 500, 
he Pleistocene, 215, 


wcthendoniiche, 462, 474 

+Toxodonts, see +Toxodonta 

Tragulina, 54, 60, 408, 409, 
410. (See Mouse-Deer) 

Sepation zone, 147 (map), 
5 


Trapezium, 83 

Trapezoid, 83 

Tree-sloths, 591, 593, 594, 
595, 596, 609; Pleisto- 
cene, 596; Santa Cruz, 
596. (See also Sloths) 

Tremarctos, 172, 176 (fe.), 
517, 548, 552 

Traves, 10 

Triassic period, 15, 16, 642, 
643 ; climate, 24 

+Triconodonta, 59 

Trier, cathedral of, 10 

¢Trigodon, 227, 228 (head 
ev aie 462, 466, 473, 


TTrigonias, 256, 291, 336, 
837 (skull and_ front 
teeth fig.), pee 339 
(manus fig 5,3 

sar onalesten oa 361, 398 

+Trigonolestide, 361 

+Trigonostylopide, 509, 512 

TTrigonostylops, 509 

TTriisodon, 554, 561 

+Trilophodon, 229 

Trinidad, 170 

Trinomial system of no- 
menclature, 52 

tTriplopus, 266, 272, 343 
(manus fig.), 345 

}Tritemnodon, 271 (restora- 
tion), 555, 565 (teeth 
fig.), 566. (one 567 
(restor.), 576, 633 

}Trituberculata, 59 

Tropical species, distribu- 
tion, 141 

Tse-tse Fly, 142 

Tuatara, 284 

Tubulidentata, 60 

Tuco-tuco, 184 

Tuff, Miocene, 112, 122; 
Santa Cruz, 124 

Turkestan, 419 

Turtles, 102 


Tusks, 92 
Tylopoda, 54, 60, 362, 386, 
09, 410; Pleistocene, 

202 

+Typothere, 243 (restora- 
tion), 480 (do.), 636 (do.), 
639 (do.) 

+Typotheres, see tT ypo- 
theria 


INDEX 


+Typotheria, 60, 215, 372, 
462, 476; Araucanian, 
227; Casa Mayor, 282, 
479; Deseado, 263, 264: 
Paran4, 228; Pleistocene, 
215, 221, 476; Santa 
a 246, 479; Tertiary, 
21 


+Typotheriide, 462, 476 
tTypotherium, 215, 217, 263, 
462, 476, 477 


Uakaris, 578, 585 

Uinta age and stage, 11, 17, 
110, 270, 271, 272, 301, 
339, 345, 349, 365, 
370, 380, 383, 385, 
397-400, 409, 443, 
527, 529, 557, 559, 
579 

Uinta Mts., 106, 
Pleistocene glaciers, 

tUintacyon, 555, 558 

fUintatheres, see }Uinta- 
theriide 

}+Uintatheriide, 285, 443, 
444, 445 (skull fig.), 451, 
452, 454, 465, 509, 532; 
Bridger, 269, 443; Wa- 
satch, 279, 451; Wind 
River, 274, 450 

tUintatherium, 51, 271 (res- 
toration), 443, 444, 445 
(skull fig.), 447 (restora- 


Unciform, 83 
Unconformity, 312 
Ungual phalanx, 84 


Ungulata, 60, 513, 516; 
primitive, 460; Santa 
Cruz, 481, 511; +short- 


footed, 443 ; South Ameri- 
can indigenous, 461, 466, 
469, 486, 489, 490, 500, 
509, 511, 513, 514; White 
River, 258 

Ungulates, see Ungulata 

Unguligrade, 91 

University of California, 31, 


Upheavals, Pleistocene, 132, 
133; Pliocene, 132 
Uppss Sonoran zone, 148, 


be Mts., 106; Sea, 106, 


8 
Urocyon, 162, 165 (fig.), 517 
tUrotrichus, 153 
Ursidee, 517, 518, 548 
Ursus, 90 (pes fig.), 156 
(fig.), 163, 517, 549 
Uruguay, 585 


Variant, 53 

Varieties, 52, 662 

Vegetation, Eocene, 111; 
Paleocene, 283. (See also 
Flora and Plants) 


;| Voleanie ash, 


Vermilingua, 187, 591 

Vertebra, 68; caudal, 73 
(fig.) ; cervical, 70 (fig.) ; 
dorsal, 69 (fig.), 72 (fig.) ; 
lumbar, 72, 73 Gigd; 
a 73 (fig.) ; thoracic, 
9 


Vertebral column, 67 

Vertebrata, 55 

Vesuvius, 30 

Vicufia, 178 (fig.) 

Virgin Valley stage, 127 

Viscaccia, 183 (fig.), 185 

{Viverravus, 555, 558 

Mere 518, 553, 554, 
58 


Viverrines, see Viverride 
Viviparous mammals, 59 
Vizeacha, 183 (fig.), 185 
Vizcachas, Pleistocene, 218 
29; Bridger, 
110, 115; John Day, 116; 
Santa Cruz, 124; White 
River, 115 
Volcanic dust, 29 
Volcanic material, 6 ; Floris- 
sant, 121; Miocene, 118; 
Pliocene, 125 
Volcanoes, 133 
Voles, 182 
VouTarre, 646 
Vulcanism, Miocene, 
121; Pliocene, 127 
TVulpavus, 555, 558 
Vulpes, 149 (fig.), 150 (fig.), 
158 (fig.), 517 


WaaGEn, W., 

WALLACE, A. t 136, 139, 
150, 170, 171 

Walnuts, 102 

Walruses, 1, 45, 207, 210, 
516; Pleistocene, 27, 132 

Wapiti, 50, 151, 155 (fig.), 
181, 202, 208, 411, 412, 
413 

vo Temperate region, 


Wart Hog, 363 

Wasatch age and stage, 17, 
106, 273, 274, 275, 285, 
316, 325, 370, 
451, 452, 453, 
459, 560, 561, 
571, 572, 580, 581 

Wasatch Mts., Pleistocene 
glaciers, 131 

‘Waeetch-Spernacian stage, 


Water Hog, 183 (fig.), 185, 
205, 211. (See also Capy- 
bara and Carpincho) 

Weasel, 551; family, 174; 
Miocene, 238; Pleisto., 
S. Amer., 213; tribe, 518 

Weasels, 59, 152, 517; 
Miocene, 229, 238 ; Pleis- 
tocene, 204, 205 

WEBER, M., 426 


118, 


Western Hemisphere, mar- 
supials, 626 

West Indian, islands, 164, 
191; shells on N. J. 
coast, 113 ; subregion, 170 


map) 

West Indies, 583; Eocene, 
112; Oligocene, 113; 
Paleocene, 103; Pleis- 
tocene, 134; zodlogy, 146 

Whale, Right, 48 

Whales, 1, 2, 3, 37, 45, 60, 
74, 442; Miocene, 123; 
Pleistocene, 132 ; toothed, 
60; whalebone, 60, 94 

White Mts., Labrador 
plants of, 193 

White River age and stage, 
11, 12, 17, 113, 250, 266, 
267, 270, 271, 272, 312, 
325, 326, 340, 341, 346, 
350, 357, 365-371, 375, 
377-380, 382-385, 394— 
396, 399, 405, 407, 408, 

, 528-530, 535, 538- 

546, 557, 562, 563, 

566, 631; mammals, 
252 (restorations) 

Wild-cats, 141 

Willamette Valley, Mio- 
cene, 115 

WILLISTON, S. W., 33, 589 

Willows, 102 

Wind River age and stage, 


INDEX 


17, 109, 273, 315, 316, 
326, 339, 350, 400, 450, 
452, 456, 457, 460, 568, 


571 

Windward Islands, Pleis- 
tocene, 134 

Winter, destruction of mam- 
mals by, 36 

Wisent, 152 

Wolf, 32, 62 (skull fig.), 64 
(do.), 69 (dorsal vertebra 
fig.), 70 (atlas fig.), 71 
(axis fig.), 72 (cervical 
and dorsal vertebra fig.), 
73 (lumbar and caudal 
fig.), 74 (ribs fig.), 75 
(ribs and sternum fig.), 
76 (scapula fig.), 77 (hip- 
bone fig.), 78 (humerus 
fig.), 80 (fore-arm bones 
fig.), 82 (manus fig.), 85 
(femur fig.), 86 (femur 
and patella fig.), 87 
(leg-bones fig.), 88 (pes 


fig.), 92, 93 (dentition 
fig.) ; Fox-like, 171 
(fig.); Grey, 152, 159 


(fig.); Large-eared, 656; 
Miocene, 522 (skull fig.) ; 
Timber, 159 (fig.), 162 
Wolverene, 141, 152, 155 
(fig.), 213, 238, 517, 551; 
Pleistocene, 204 
Wolves, 59, 164, 173, 249, 


693 


517, 518, 520, 523, 525, 
530; fox-like, 173, 212, 
552; Pleistocene, 204; 
Pliocene, 222; White 
River, 254 
Wombats, 640 
Woodchuck, 152 (fig.), 153 
Wood-rats, 141, 153, 164 
Wormman, J. L., 383, 385, 
399, 570, 571 


+ Xotodon, 462 


Yapock, 631 
Yellowstone Park, petrified 
forests, 122; Miocene 


lava, 122; Pliocene lava, 
127 


Young animals, colour pat- 
tern of, 46 

Yucatan, 128 

Yukon Valley, Miocene, 118 


Zaédyus, 190, 592 

Zapus, 153, 160 (fig.) 

Zebra, 44; bones of, 35; 
Burchell’s, 200 

Zebras, 213, 292, 308 

tZeuglodontia, 60 

Z1ITTEL, K. von, 601 

Zoblogy, Experimental, 648, 
66 : 

+Zygolestes, 627, 641 

Zygomatic arch, 65 


HE following pages contain advertisements of 
books by the same author or on kindred subjects. 


BY THE SAME AUTHOR 


An Introduction to Geology 
By WILLIAM B. SCOTT, Pu.D., LL.D. 


Blair Professor of Geology and Paleontology in Princeton University 


New York, 1907 New Edition, completely revised, 1907 Latest Reprint, 1909 
Llustrated 12mo $2.60 

Intended to serve as an introduction to the science of Geology, 
both for students who desire to pursue the subject exhaustively 
and also for those who wish merely to obtain an outline of the 
methods and principal results of the science. To the future 
specialist such a preliminary survey of the whole field will afford 
the necessary orientation. To the non-specialist the graphic 
presentation of the outlines of the subject cannot fail to prove 
both interesting and informing. The book aims to cultivate a 
proper scientific attitude by training the student to carefully dis- 
tinguish between fact and inference and between observation and 
hypothesis. He is taught to weigh his evidences carefully, and 
while balancing probabilities suspend judgment where the data for 
decision are insufficient. 

The new edition incorporates the results of all the important ad- 
vances made in geological knowledge in recent years. The num- 
ber of illustrations has been greatly increased, thus adding to the 
admirable clearness of the text. 


Guide to the Study of Animal Ecology 


By CHARLES C. ADAMS 


Associate in Animal Ecology in the University of Illinois 
Cloth, 12mo 183 pp. $7.25 net 
This work is the outgrowth of the author’s efforts during the last 
ten years to find some consistent and satisfactory working plan for 
handling the almost bewildering number of facts of ecological sig- 
nificance which have been accumulating in the literature of zoology, 
biology, and the allied sciences. An ecological point of view is de- 
scribed more fully than other subjects, so that the student may see 
the need of familiarity with those tests or criteria by means of 
which he may be able to determine for himself ecological relations 
and the validity of ecological studies. The other phases are treated 
less fully in the discussions and with more detail bibliographically, 
so that this may be a useful source-book. In fact, the very exten- 
sive and up-to-date bibliography is one of the important features of 
the entire book. 


THE MACMILLAN COMPANY 


Publishers 64-66 Fifth Avenue New York 


The Age of Mammals in 
Europe, Asia, and North America 


By HENRY FAIRFIELD OSBORN 


A.B., SC.D. PRINCETON, HON. LL.D. TRINITY, PRINCETON, COLUMBIA, HON. D.SC. 
CAMBRIDGE UNIVERSITY, HON. PH.D. UNIVERSITY OF CHRISTIANIA 
PRESIDENT AMERICAN MUSEUM OF NATURAL HISTORY 
PRESIDENT NEW YORK ZOOLOGICAL SOCIETY 


ILLUSTRATED BY 232 HALF-TONE AND OTHER'FIGURES, 
INCLUDING NUMEROUS MAPS, GEOLOGICAL SECTIONS, 
FIELD VIEWS, AND REPRODUCTIONS FROM PHOTO- 
GRAPHS OF MOUNTED FOSSIL SKELETONS AND OF THE 
FAMOUS RESTORATIONS BY CHARLES R. KNIGHT. 


Royal 8uo $4.50 net Carriage ani 


“The Age of Mammals” is not written for the paleontologist only. “No 
zoologist interested in mammals, birds, fishes, or reptiles can- fail to 
find it of value. The geologist finds here the clearest exposition that 
has been given of the succession of geological events in the mammal- 
bearing continental formations of the Tertiary and Quaternary of the 
Western States. The anthropologist finds in the closing chapter on the 
Pleistocene a key to most of the problems which confront him as to 
the time of man’s first appearance. The botanist may refer to it for 
the succession and evolution of flora. 

To the genera] reader it offers the first connected account of the his- 
tory of life on the earth during the later geological ‘epochs, a record em- 
bodying the very latest results of the active research going on in this 
direction at the present time. In so far as. science has succeeded in 
piecing together the fragmentary evidence of the rocks, this volume con- 
tains glimpses into the remote past of the continental outlines, the climate, 
vegetation, and animal life of the epochs preceding the “Age of Man.” 
The text is supplemented by a very original and suggestive series of illus- 
trations, notable among which are numerous half-tone reproductions from 
the famous restorations of extinct mammals by Charles R. Knight, many 
of which are published here for the first time. Moreover, there is appended 
_to the volume an invaluable Classification of the Mammalia, which gives 
not only the systematic position but also the geologic. and geographic dis- 
tribution and the popular names of all the important genera of mammals, 
both living and fossil. 


THE MACMILLAN COMPANY 


Publishers 64-66 Fifth Avenue New York 


Comments on The Age of Mammals 


“Students of paleontology have awaited impatiently the past few years a 
promised work on extinct mammals by Professor Osborn. In his ‘Age of Mam- 
mals,’ expectations have been more than realized..—S. W. WILLISTON, in 
Science, Feb. 17, 1911. 


“Dr. H. F. Osborn is a great paleontologist; in this book he has gathered 
together the work of a lifetime, and that work, besides being original and con- 
structive, is also critical and selective. The result is a great book.” “While it 
is an incomparable text-book, a work of reference to the student, and, no doubt a 
fruitful field for the controversialist of the future, it is a work which can be read 
with interest and satisfaction by the ‘genial omnivore,’ as Huxley called him, the 
general reader.” — The Field, Jan. 7, 1911. 


“Tt is in the best sense a source book, for it gives at first hand, from the 
original material, the ideas of an acknowledged master in mammalian palzon- 
tology.” “It has the clarity and directness of style so welcome, and rare, in such 
a book.” —E. C. Casz, in Bulletin American Geographical Soctety, July, 1911. 


“ A book of the utmost value to the student and teacher of mammalian life and 
likewise to the serious reader.” — American Journal of Science, Feb., 1911. 


“M. Osborn . . . devait s’attacher a nous présenter le tableau aussi complet 
et aussi fidéle que possible des faunes de Mammiféres fossiles qui se sont succédé 
dans V’hémisphére Nord pendant Vere tertiaire. Et j’ai plaisir a dire tout de 
suite quil y a parfaitement réussi..—M. BouLe, in Mouvement Scientifique, 
IQII, p. 569. 

“ Professor Osborn has produced a book which will appeal to the learned spe- 
cialist and to the thoughtful general reader as well.” “The work is well 
adapted to school and college use, and is abundantly illustrated.” — Education, 
Boston, Jan., roi. 


“One of the most notable books on evolution since the appearance of Darwin’s 
‘Origin of Species.’ — Forest and Stream, Dec. 10, 1910. 


“Nejlepsi soucasny palzontolog americky, Henry Fairfield Osborn, vydal 
nedavno s titulem tuto citovanfm znamenité psanou a peékné vypravenou knihu o 
‘véku ssavei.’” — F. Bayer in Véstniku Ceské Akademie cisave Frantiska Josefa 
pro védy, slovenost a uméni. — Rotnik XX, 1911. 


“Written with clearness and vivacity, most admirably illustrated, especially by 
the ‘restorations’ of Mr. Knight, and illuminated by maps, Professor Osborn 
builds, page after page, his story-mosaic. ... The reader will soon discover 
that he is a brilliant generalizer, possessed of material gathered from all around the 
globe, fructifying his knowledge by the exercise of a constructive imagination, 
and expressing his facts and ideas in a literary style, clear, vigorous, and enter- 
taining.” — The Literary Digest, Feb. 4, 1911. 


THE MACMILLAN COMPANY 


Publishers 64-66 Fifth Avenue New York 


The Cambridge Natural History 


EDITED BY 
S. F. HARMER, Sc.D., F.R.S. 


Fellow of King’s College, Cambridge ; formerly Superintendent of the University 
Museum of Zodlogy; Keeper of the Department of Zodlogy 
in the British Museum (Natural History) 


AND 
A. E. SHIPLEY, M.A., Hon. Sc.D., Princeton, F.R.S. 


Master and Fellow of Christ’s College, Cambridge; formerly Reader in Zodlogy 
in the University; Chairman of Council of Marine Biological Association 


In Ten Volumes Fully Illustrated Medium 8vo Gilt Tops 
Lach Volume, $4.75 net 


CONTENTS 


VoL. I. Protozoa, by M. Hartog ; Porifera, by Igerna Sollas ; Coelent- 
erata and Ctenophora, by S. J. Hickson; Echinodermata, 
by E. W. MacBride. 

Vor. II. Flatworms and Mesozoa, by F. W. Gamble ; Nemertines, by 
L. Sheldon ; Threadworms and Sagitta, by A. E. Shipley ; 
Rotifers, by M. Hartog; Polychaet Worms, by W. B. 
Benham; Earthworms and Leeches, by F. E. Beddard ; 
Gephyrea, etc., by A. E. Shipley ; Polyzoa, by S. F. Harmer. 

Vor. III. Molluscs, by H. A. Cooke; Recent Brachiopods, by A. E. 
Shipley ; Fossil Brachiopods, by F. R. C. Reed. 

Vor. IV. Spiders, Mites, Scorpions, etc., by C. Warburton; Trilobites, 
etc., by M. Laurie; Pycnogonids, by D’Atcy W. Thompson ; 
Lingulatulide and Tardigrada, by A. E. Shipley ; Crustacea, 

* by Geoffrey Smith. 

Vor. \V. Peripatus, by A. Sedgwick; Myriopods, by F. G. Sinclair ; 
Insects, Part I, by D. Sharp. 

Voi. VI. Insects, Part II, by D. Sharp. 

Vor. VII. Hemichordata, by S. F. Harmer; Ascidians and Amphioxus, 
by W. A. Herdman; Fishes (exclusive of systematic account 
of Teleostei), by T. W. Bridge; Fishes (systematic account 
of Peleostei), by G. A. Boulanger. 


Vor. VIII. Amphibia and Reptiles, by Hans Gadow. 
Vor. IX. Birds, by A. H. Evans. 
Vor. X. Mammalia, by F. E. Beddard. 


THE MACMILLAN COMPANY 


Publishers 64-66 Fifth Avenue New York 


WHAT THE CRITICS SAY OF 


THE 


CAMBRIDGE NATURAL HISTORY 


New York Evening Post. 

Its editors may well be congratulated upon the completion of such an under- 
taking, whose vastness and difficulty.can be adequately appreciated only by the 
skilled zodlogist. The student of biology who turns to this volume (Vol. iv) will 
not be disappointed in its value as a serviceable handbook. It is pleasant to observe 
how numerous, clear, and satisfactory are the drawings that illustrate the text. 


American Journal of Science. 


The most convenient and generally useful work of reference on the subject that has 
appeared in the English language in recent years. 


Book Review Digest. 


The zealous student, anxious to bring his knowledge up to date, will find here a com- 
pendium on which he can rely. 
Field. 
The Cambridge Natural History series of volumes is one of very great value to all 
) Students of biological science. 
Times. 

There are very many, not only among educated people who take an interest in science, 
but even among specialists, who will welcome a work of reasonable compass and handy 
form containing a trustworthy treatment of the various departments of Natural History 
by men who are familiar with, and competent to deal with, the latest results of scientific 
research, Altogether, to judge from this first volume, the Cambridge Natural History 
promises to fulfil all the expectations that its prospectus holds out. 


Academy. 


The editors have aimed very high, and they have succeeded. .. . Well conceived, 
carefully codrdinated, and executed with the greatest detail and completeness, the 
Cambridge Natural History is certain to rank high amongst those gigantic scientific 
works to which, within the last half-century or so, the labours of so many experts, each 
without hope of more glory than falls to a mere assistant, have contributed, 


Athenzum. 

The series certainly ought not to be restricted in its circulation to lecturers and 
students only; and, if the forthcoming volumes reach the standard of the one here 
under notice, the success of the enterprise should be assured. 

Science Gossip. 

Every library, school, and college in the country should possess this work, which is of 
the highest educational value. 

Daily News in a Review of Vol. X. 


A volume which, for the interest of its contents and for its style and method of treat- 
ment, is not only worthy of its predecessors, but may be regarded as one of the most 
successful of a brilliant series, 


THE MACMILLAN COMPANY 
Publishers 64-66 Fifth Avenue New York 


A GREAT EXPLORER’S STORY 


My Life With the Eskimo 


By VILHJALMUR STEFANSSON 


ILLUSTRATED WITH HALF-TONE REPRODUCTIONS OF 
PHOTOGRAPHS TAKEN BY THE AUTHOR AND OTHERS 


Decorated cloth, 8vo 


A fascinating book of description and adventure 
has been written by the famous traveler and ex- 
plorer, who has passed years of his life within the 
Arctic Circle. Mr. Stefansson has had a vast amount 
of material from which to draw and he has made 
his selection wisely. He has lived with the Eskimo 
for long periods; he knows their language; he has 
subsisted on their food; he has heard their legends; 
he has seen them in their daily lives as have few 
explorers. Consequently his remarks about this prir- 
itive and matter-of-fact people are shrewd, true, and 
frequently amusing. The experiences and tales which 
he recounts, mirroring the hardships and the inspi- 
rations of life in a fearful but wonderful country, 
compose a work quite the most absorbing on it that 
has ever been published. 


THE MACMILLAN COMPANY 
Publishers 64-66 Fifth Avenue New York 


od 


dood